Diplomacy of Wolves
Natural Tendencies
It was a scent in the hallway that began the Shift. Kait moved
to a dark side passage and sank to the floor. She felt her bones
going liquid in her body, her blood bubbling like sparkling wine. I
want to run, she thought. I want to race the wind and hunt. I want
fresh, hot meat, the iron tang of blood.
Her blood pounded in her wrists, in her temples, behind her
tightly closed eyes. I dont want those things,
she said. I want to serve my Family. Her voice sounded
raw, husky, far too deep.
I can hold the other back, she thought. I am in control. I have
given up everything for this chance. I can be more than my cursed
self.
Kait opened her eyes and looked at her hands. Human hands. But
she had solved nothing. The Crash was coming . . .
ACCLAIM FOR
Diplomacy of Wolves
This fast-paced story moves along smartly; in-depth
characterizations bring the inhabitants of these troubled lands to
life. Lisle has mastered the technique of writing high fantasy
. . . leaves readers eager for the next
installment.
VOYA
Carefully crafted and well thought out . . .
wonderful.
SF Site
An exciting story.
Philadelphia
Press/Review
Entertaining . . . sorcery, wolves, and
deception. What more could you want?
BookPage
Lisle blends magic, politics, and romance . . .
a good choice for fantasy collections.
Library Journal
Lisles richly realized characters defy easy
classification, and are the complex products of their convoluted
environments . . . a tantalizing introduction to a
detailed world that will definitely lure me back for the next
installment.
Robin Hobb, author of
Assassins Apprentice
A tough, bold new epic fantasy that youll never
forget.
Kate Elliott, author of Kings
Dragon
Lisle is a powerful fantasy creator, and DIPLOMACY OF
WOLVES is her best yet!
Julian May, author of The Galactic
Milieu series
DIPLOMACY OF WOLVES. Copyright © 1998 by Holly Lisle. All
rights reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced in any form
or by any electronic or mechanical means, including information
storage and retrieval systems, without permission in writing from
the publisher, except by a reviewer who may quote brief passages in
a review.
For information address Warner Books, Inc., 1271 Avenue of the
Americas, New York, NY 10020
Aspect
® name and logo are registered trademarks
of Warner Books, Inc.
An AOL Time Warner
Company
ISBN 0-7595-0029-0
A trade paperback edition of this book was published in 1998 by
Warner Books.
First eBook edition: December 2000
Visit our Web site at www.iPublish.com
To Russell Galen,
my fantastic agent
for standing by me through hard times and leading me,
through his encouragement, persistence,
and belief in me and what I could do, to better.
Neither this book
nor the world of Matrin
would exist without him.
Thank you, Russ.
Table of Contents
Acknowledgments
Map of Matrin
Chapter One
Chapter Two
Chapter Three
Chapter Four
Chapter Five
Chapter Six
Chapter Seven
Chapter Eight
Chapter Nine
Chapter Ten
Chapter Eleven
Chapter Twelve
Chapter Thirteen
Chapter Fourteen
Chapter Fifteen
Chapter Sixteen
Chapter Seventeen
Chapter Eighteen
Chapter Nineteen
Chapter Twenty
Chapter Twenty-One
Chapter Twenty-Two
Chapter Twenty-Three
Chapter Twenty-Four
Chapter Twenty-Five
Chapter Twenty-Six
Chapter Twenty-Seven
Chapter Twenty-Eight
Chapter Twenty-Nine
Chapter Thirty
Chapter Thirty-One
Chapter Thirty-Two
About the Author
Acknowledgments
My thanks to Peter James and Nick Thorpe, authors of Ancient
Inventions, whose book proved a constant source of inspiration
in the writing of this one; to Betsy Mitchell, my editor, whose
incisive criticisms kept me on track, and whose enthusiasm for the
story made the book fun to write; to Michael Watkins, for early
technical criticism and the loan of books on dirigibles that made
some of this project work; to Becky and Mark, for encouragement and
support and carrying ten thousand glasses of ice water up the
stairs for me after school and during summer vacation; to Matt, for
love and support and many, many suppers.
DIPLOMACY
OF WOLVES
Men forge swords of steel and fire;
gods forge swords of flesh and blood and tragedy
Vincalis the Agitator
from
The Last Hero of Maestwauld
Chapter 1
For more than a thousand years, the Mirror of Souls
waited for the return of magic that would awaken it and allow it to
finish its work. It waited in a closed-off room on the side of a
hill in a long-abandoned city, its existence forgotten on a
continent where men had been replaced by the monsters spawned of a
hellish war. It slept, oblivious to the passage of time, oblivious
to the change that went on all around it, oblivious to the
destruction of an old order and to the chaos that followed, and to
the new world that rose on the ashes of the old. For more than a
thousand years, the Mirror had waited in vain.
Now, though, it glowed softly, as faint currents of distant
magic began to wash against it, and within the shimmering depths of
its central well, shadows stirred. That far-off spellcasting
still too weak to rouse the lost artifact to wakefulness
sufficed to permit it to dream.
Within the reborn stream of magical energy, the Mirror began to
dream of the past that remained its present. It dreamed of the
ghosts of the great men and women held within its memory. It
dreamed of a world lost and forgotten, of wonders no longer
imaginable, of secrets buried in the rubble of a world that no
longer existed. It dreamed of the task that it had left undone for
a thousand years.
Undone. But not forgotten.
The Mirror yearned to waken, and to complete the task for which
it had been created.
* * *
Your job will be to keep her away from the men, Kait. Just
until after the wedding. You know how Tippa is and with the
Sabirs getting a firm foothold into the Kairn Territories, we need
this alliance.
She had acknowledged her cousins fascination with all
things male, and the senior diplomat had smiled at her and patted
her shoulder. This is your chance to prove yourself,
hed said. Do well here, and the Family will place you
in a regular diplomatic position. Youll have other
assignments.
He hadnt said, Fail and youll go back to your
life as a decoration in Galweigh House. He hadnt needed
to. That was a given.
She would be secondary, of course. Tippa would have a
professional chaperone from the Galweigh Family, and another from
the Dokteerak Family; Kait would be a companion, as far
as anyone outside the Galweigh diplomatic corps knew. She would act
as a fail-safe, nothing more, and while her chances of failing were
slim, her chances of winning any recognition for competent
performance and with that recognition, a chance at a real
diplomatic job were even slimmer.
But this was her beginning. Her opportunity to serve her Family,
and perhaps to win a place in the diplomatic corps. This was the
opportunity shed thought she would never could
never have. Under no circumstances would she allow herself
to fail, or even to consider failure. Though she stood in the
breezeway with her head aching and her eyes throbbing, her pain
meant nothing; the fact that her skin crawled and her gut insisted
that something evil lurked in the party meant only that she needed
to focus her attention, that she needed to work harder. She had her
assignment and her chance. She would make it count.
So Kait Galweigh stood off in one corner at the Dokteerak Naming
Day party and scanned the crowd while she pretended to sip a drink.
The Dokteerak Family women in their gauzy net finery clustered
beneath the broad palms in the central garden, chatting about
nothing of consequence. Torchlight cast an amber gleam on their
sleek skin and pale hair and made the heavy gold at their throats
and wrists seem to glow. They were decorative Kaits
Family had such women, too, and theirs was the fate she so
desperately wished to escape. The senior diplomats from both
Families, Galweigh and Dokteerak, gathered in the breezeway that
surrounded the courtyard, leaning along the food-laden tables,
nibbling from finger servings of yearling duck and broiled monkey
and wild pig and papaya-stuffed python, telling each other amusing
stories and watching, watching, their eyes never still. Concubines
flirted and primped, tempting their way into berths in the beds of
the high-ranking or the beautiful. Dokteerak guardsmen in gold and
blue propped themselves against doorways, swapping racy stories and
tales of bravado with Galweigh guardsmen in red and black. Outland
princes and the parats of other Families and their cadet branches
drifted from group to group, assessing available women the way
hunting wolves assessed a herd of deer.
In the salon beside the breezeway, dancing couples moved in and
out of Kaits view. Tippa and her future father-in-law stamped
and swirled among them, performing one of the traditional
brides dances, with, perhaps, a bit more enthusiasm than
necessary. Kait watched the older man and wondered if the Dokteerak
paraglese would be a threat to his future daughter-in-laws
virtue. If he would, he wouldnt be a threat on the dance
floor in front of his son and subjects, but Kait wondered at the
wisdom of an alliance with a man who eyed his sons future
wife with such blatant lust.
Both Tippas Galweigh chaperone and her Dokteerak one
watched from the sidelines, and Calmet Dokteerak, the future
bridegroom, danced with a series of gaudily dressed paratas. Things
there remained under control.
The people she needed to watch were the parats. Like the one
approaching her at that moment.
Beautiful parata, he said, please dance with
me and be my flower of the evening. You are so beautiful, I cannot
continue to breathe unless my air has first been kissed by
you.
Kait had heard variations on the same line half a dozen times
already. As the night wore on, the protestations would become more
passionate and more vehement. Also, she mused, more desperate. The
concubines flocked to the older men and women those with
wealth and power, who could be expected to give fine gifts or even
offer permanent positions in their Houses. The younger men, who had
less to offer, could only seduce others among the partygoers if
they hoped to round out their night with sexual amusements. Kait
young, unmarried, and acceptably attractive had come
in for a complete range of attempted seductions, and her patience
began to wear thin.
Youll have to find another flower, she said.
Im afraid Ive promised myself that I would bloom
alone tonight. She didnt even waste time on a smile.
The parat, who wore the silk of one of the lesser branches of the
Dokteerak House, blanched and nodded stiffly and walked away, the
anger evident in his stride and the set of his shoulders.
He wasnt the sort who would interest her cousin Tippa, but
there were plenty of others roaming the party who would. Kait
discovered that while the parat had distracted her, Tippa had moved
out of view. Kait stepped closer to the arches and almost tripped
over the Dokteerak head artist, Kastos Miellen, who was
demonstrating the workings of a charming mechanical playhouse to a
pair of admiring Galweigh women. Kait apologized, backed away, and
caught sight of Tippa, now dancing with her future husband.
She relaxed, almost amused by her paranoia. From a quiet place
under the arches, she alternately watched the artists tiny
mechanical men and women moving across the miniature stage, and her
cousin spinning and leaping on the crowded dance floor.
A plump hand settled on her shoulder and she jumped. She turned
to the sun-browned, grinning man whod come up behind her, and
for an instant didnt recognize him. His scent tipped her off
before she placed his face.
Uncle Dùghall?
My Kait-cha. You havent forgotten me.
It is you! She hugged him hard and, laughing
a little at her own confusion, stepped back to look at him.
Youve changed.
He smiled. Age and women, Kait. Age and women the
first gives you wrinkles and the second makes you fat. Whereas you
are more beautiful than ever.
So Ive been told, Kait murmured.
Im sure you have. The lads are out in droves
tonight. But youre still alone. Havent found one you
fancy yet?
Kait lowered her voice. Cant even look. Im
working. She grinned then her uncle was the reason she
had any diplomatic assignment at all, however minor it might be. He
had recommended her to the diplomatic services when she turned
thirteen, and had insisted she be trained by the best teachers in
the best classes. He had shipped her final two tutors to Calimekka
from his post on the Imumbarra Isles himself.
He gave her shoulder a quick squeeze and leaned in close enough
to whisper in her ear, Then you have an assignment.
Minor, she said. But important to me.
She glanced in to be sure that Tippa was still behaving herself,
then turned to her uncle. What are you doing here? I thought
you couldnt get away from the islands for this
. . . that some holiday interfered. She tried to
remember the name of the holiday her mother had mentioned when
reading Dùghalls letter to her, but failed.
There are advantages to being considered a minor deity
back home. I changed the date of the holiday, boarded a fast ship,
and here I am.
She hugged him again, and started to effuse about how happy she
was to see him. But Kastos Miellens miniature had caught his
attention.
Impressive toy, isnt it? he asked her, nodding
at the mechanical stage.
Ingenious. And everyone seems to like it.
He held up a finger, the way he always had when he was about to
impart some tidbit of wisdom. Dokteerak hasnt forgotten
the immortal advice of Vincalis.
Kait raised an eyebrow.
Her uncle grinned at her. All your studies of diplomacy
and you havent read Vincalis the Agitator yet? Thats
criminal.
I dont think Ive even heard of Vincalis,
Kait admitted, hoping that he was one of Dùghalls island
diplomats, or someone obscure, so that she might have an excuse for
not knowing his works.
One of the Ancients. A troublemaker of the first water, by
all accounts, which is probably why you havent been taught
him. I hear you have some talents in the direction of trouble
yourself. Dùghall didnt look at her when he spoke
he squinted instead at the artist and his mechanical marvel.
Vincalis said, and I quote, To the man of wealth who
would be great, remember this an artist is a better
investment than a diplomat for three reasons: first, an artist,
once bought, stays bought; second, you screw the artist instead of
the other way round; and third, if you should find it essential to
permanently dispose of your artist, the value of his works will
increase, which no one will say of a diplomat. He
paused for just an instant, so that he could be sure she had a
chance to let the words sink in, then guffawed.
Kait laughed with him, but even to her own ears her laughter
sounded nervous.
Dùghall studied her face and his smile grew mischievous.
I believe Ive shocked you.
At first, I suppose. But Vincalis wasnt serious, was
he?
Dùghall shrugged. My dear, in the best humor lies the
deepest truth, and Vincalis is as true now as he was more than a
thousand years ago. He smiled at her, and then stiffened as
his gaze moved past her and fixed on something in the courtyard.
Suddenly he was as intent as a jaguar whod spotted a fawn.
The expression vanished as quickly as it had appeared, so quickly
that Kait couldnt begin to guess what had caught his eye, but
when he returned his attention to her again, his smile was
apologetic. And now, sadly, I must move on. I see an old
friend out in the courtyard, and if I dont hurry, shes
sure to vanish.
And before she could even give him another hug, or tell him how
glad she was to see him, he was gone.
She glanced into the salon to check on Tippa. She didnt
see either of the chaperones. Tippas future father-in-law had
vanished. Her future husband stood in the center of a circle of
admiring women, none of whom was Tippa.
Tippa . . .
Kait felt her stomach knot. This was her chance to prove she
could serve the Familys interests, and Tippa was nowhere in
the salon.
Kait looked around the breezeway and out into the courtyard; a
cluster of men parted, and revealed Tippa spinning in a circle on
the arm of a tall, handsome young outlander dressed in Gyru-nalle
finery, while two others, similarly dressed, looked on.
The couple stopped spinning and Tippa flung herself down onto a
seat beside a fountain in one shadowed corner of the courtyard. Her
companion said something too softly for Kait to catch over the
crowd noise, and Tippa squealed with laughter. She took a tall
goblet from one of the men whod been watching her impromptu
dance with his associate, and swallowed the contents in two hard
pulls. At some point she had opened the outer blouse of her silk
dress and pulled it back, revealing the filmy silk underblouse,
which was tugged so low that Kait could see a new-moon sliver of
one rouged nipple peeking over the scalloped hem. Very stylish
. . . but not appropriate for a woman who was to marry
within the week. Tippas hair had come loose from its netting
and hung around her face in wild tendrils. Her eyes were too bright
and her laughter too loud. All three men clustered around her as if
she were one of the party concubines, and not the bride-to-be of
Branard Dokteeraks second son, Calmet.
And that would be an incident, wouldnt it? The drunken
bride-to-be and three Gyru princes caught together in
some back room or stable stall a week before the wedding? Kait set
her goblet on a marble rail and pushed through the crowd, abruptly
and totally furious.
She caught her cousin just as the girl had begun to run her
fingers along the lacings of the tallest mans shirt.
Isnt he lovely? Tippa asked as Kaits hand
clamped around her wrist, and the man, who didnt look in the
least drunk, said, Unless you want to join our party, little
parata, just move on. But dont be spoiling our fun.
The anger that was always in her, anger that sought to break
free from the tight chains of self-control with which she bound it,
slipped toward the surface. She turned from the Gyrus with
difficulty. Tippa, we have to leave early. The Naming news
from Calimekka will be arriving soon, and we need to be there for
our devotions. The carriage is waiting.
It was a lie, but it was at least a plausible lie.
Tippa, oblivious to the scene she was about to cause, leaned
forward farther, and whispered in Kaits ear loudly enough
that Kait, the Gyrus, and probably most of the guests could hear,
Then go back without me, Kait. Im having a
. . . good . . . a good . . . time,
and Ive made some . . . some nice friends.
Arent they cute? Her smile when she leaned back spoke
of too much wine as loudly as her whisper. Theyre
Prince . . . um, Ersti, and Prince Keera . . .
er, Meerki, and Prince . . . Prince . . . I
cant remember. Ah, Prince Latti. She smiled hazily.
Right?
Im sure they are, Kait growled. But you
will have to visit with these . . . royals
. . . another time. How could Tippa have gotten so
drunk? The chaperones should have prevented that. And where were
they, anyway? She hated sloppiness, but this suggested more to her
than that.
And a princes hand suddenly gripping her shoulder, too
rough and insistent to be mistaken for anything but a threat,
screamed to her that the incident had been planned. Somewhere. By
someone. The man said, Leave her alone. Were having a
good time. Just go back to your Family, where you belong,
girl. He spit out the word Family as if it meant
garbage.
Kaits anger broke half of its chains, and she twisted out
of the mans grip and turned to face him, and her fury (or
am I slipping . . . have I lost control?) sent him a
step back wearing shock on his pale freckled face. Dont
press me, she said, so softly that only the three Gyrus could
hear her. She heard in her voice the dark timbre of that second
self that begged to be set free. Her skin grew hot; it tingled over
muscles that longed to shift and slip, over bones that yearned for
violent force and violent change. She stood fast, permitting no
flash of teeth, no growl, no tensing of muscle. She forced her
anger to whisper, knowing that she dared not let it shout.
She stared, and all three Gyrus glared back at her. She felt the
growl starting in the back of her throat, and the last of the
chains weakened. But the men saw something in her, something that
warned them. All three backed away.
Furious, Kait turned on her cousin. She pulled Tippas
outer blouse closed, then grabbed her wrist and yanked her to her
feet.
But I dont want . . . Tippa started
to say, but stopped herself when the edge of Kaits anger
seeped through the wine haze. Her eyes went round and her mouth
clamped shut. She followed, unprotesting, as Kait pulled her toward
the breezeway that led into the House, and eventually toward the
grounds where the carriages waited.
Kait glanced back to be sure the Gyrus werent following
them. She didnt want to cause an incident; wanted no one
dead, no difficult questions, not now when she was finally, finally
on her own and working as a productive member of the Family. The
three of them were huddled together, faces flushed and tight with
anger. She tried to listen to what they were saying while still
moving toward the door, and she told herself that was the reason
she ran right into the short young man who stood near the archway.
She hit him hard, but she was the one who staggered back he
was solid as a tree, and seemed to be as thoroughly rooted to the
earth. She caught her balance. Tippa wasnt so fortunate; she
tripped and went down. Both Kait and the stranger moved to help
her. Kait took Tippas arm but the man planted one hand on
either side of Tippas waist and lifted her to her feet.
Im so sorry, he said, loudly enough that anyone
who had seen the girl go down could hear him. I wasnt
watching where I was going.
Kait started to smile at him, appreciative that hed made
an attempt to cover her cousins drunkenness to preserve her
reputation, when she became aware of something noticeable only by
its absence.
The ache in her head and behind her eyeballs was gone. The
crawling sensation of her skin was gone. More, the pervasive sense
of stalking evil that Kait had felt all night had been lifted and
removed, like someone pulling a heavy counterpane off a bed. She
felt better. Safer. Her volatile emotions, fed by the aura of
danger that had surrounded her, calmed. She took a slow breath, and
smiled at the man, and had the presence of mind to thank him for
helping her cousin.
Think nothing of it, he said. He had a pleasant
voice. A nondescript face, an ordinary smile, kind eyes; when Kait
turned away from him, she was halfway to forgetting him
already.
Then, three or four strides away from the place where shed
run into him, with Tippa dragging along in her wake, Kait felt the
full brunt of crawling nighttime evil drop onto her shoulders
again. The headache grabbed her; her skin prickled and she
shuddered involuntarily, and she gasped from the pain. She
wasnt prepared. Not prepared at all. The change caught her in
the gut like the kick of a street fighter, and for just an instant
she almost couldnt think.
Her first thought when she could breathe again was that the
helpful stranger was the cause of the aura of evil that filled the
night. Her second and more logical thought was that he was somehow
immune to it or somehow protected from it. She stopped,
turned slowly, and stared at him. He looked back at her, and she
could no longer understand why shed thought him nondescript.
She could still see that outer shell of inoffensiveness, but
underneath she could see a man as complicated and fascinating as
that mechanical marvel the Dokteerak artist had unveiled for the
Naming Day party. Her expression told him something he didnt
like, for the Im no one of consequence smile gave
way to an expression of fear in his eyes, and a look of
understanding that unnerved her. The fact that she had looked twice
at him told him something about her. He knew. She didnt know
what he knew, but she had to find out. If her secrets got out, they
would kill her.
Who are you? she asked.
His eyes tracked from one corner of the courtyard to the other.
No one of importance. Just a guest.
Tell me. Ill find out one way or another. She
didnt mean for that remark to sound like a threat, but the
second the words were out of her mouth, she knew it did.
You probably will.
She moved back toward him, and seemed to step through a wall
when she did. On the outside, her nerves screamed that something
terrible waited to attack. Inside, the evil vanished as if it had
never been. How do you do that? She kept her voice low;
she sensed that whatever his secret was, it probably wasnt
one that he wanted bruited about to the world.
That weak smile again, and eyes that darted left, right, left,
checking to see if anyone was listening. Or watching. He said
nothing.
She had to know. She said, The wall around you. The one
that keeps out the foulness of this place. How do you do
it?
His face went slack with fear then. A man with a knife held to
his throat by a madman could not have looked more frightened.
Not here, he said. By all the gods, not
here.
Your name, then. And where I can find you. She
narrowed her eyes. Dont lie to me. I can smell
lies.
He nodded. I have a shop in the west quarter.
Hasmals Curiosities. Its near the wall, on Stonecutter
Street.
Youre Hasmal?
The Third. I work for my father.
Sons of shopkeepers rarely found themselves invited into the
Houses of the Five Families. And if they did, they would be there
as workers, not guests. Yet Hasmal the son of Hasmal, sipping at
his wine, dressed in his Naming Day finery, certainly looked like a
guest.
She tightened her grip on Tippas wrist and said,
Ill be by to talk with you tomorrow. Then she
turned, braced herself against the malevolent night, stepped out of
his circle of sanctuary, and dragged Tippa out of the
courtyard.
* * *
The paraglese of Dokteerak House, Branard Dokteerak, balanced
the tip of his dagger on the corner of his desk. With his index
finger pressing against the emerald in the pommel, he rocked it
slowly back and forth, gouging a tiny scar into the wood. Across
from him, standing next to the chairs because Branard had not
bidden him sit, the Sabir messenger stared at the rocking knife as
if he were a chick in its nest watching an approaching snake. The
paraglese was aware of the Sabirs attention. He kept his own
eyes fixed on the tiny chips of wood that he worked loose from the
desk. He was waiting for the messenger to fidget, or sigh, or in
any way express his impatience, but the man had been well trained.
He gave away nothing. At last, Dokteerak, still watching his knife
rocking back and forth, said, What do you have to say for
yourself?
The messenger said, My Family sends off the troops you
requested; they will depart at the first light of dawn tomorrow,
and the pigeon must have time to reach them if you have any last
message you will send. They require any final information that you
can give anything that has happened that might change the
number of troops required, or the route they must take, or the
necessary supplies.
The paraglese, disgusted, said, Anything that might change
the number of troops required, eh? Well, what about this, then? My
House is full to the rafters with Galweighs getting ready to
celebrate the marriage of their damned daughter to my son. As host
of this farce, my place is out there with them, acting the part of
doting father and eager ally. Instead Im in here with you,
and you cannot think for a moment that one of their number
hasnt noticed that. Further, if youre seen here and
recognized, all our work will be for nothing. Theyll call off
the wedding, get their people back to Calimekka, and go on the
defensive. If they do that, neither your people nor my people nor
the rest of the countryside combined will rout them out of that
House of theirs, and we will lose this fine opportunity
which the senior members of your Family and I have been planning
for three years to take it. Your presence here, and
your demand for my presence here, could be the tiny breeze that
topples our tower down upon us.
The Sabir envoy spread his hands wide. My people required
a final reassurance. My paraglese asks me to remind you that we
risk more than you do, Paraglese Dokteerak if we fail at
this we risk Galweigh retaliation more than you do. You dont
share Calimekka with them, whereas our House lies inside the same
walls as theirs.
Indeed. But when this is over, we will share the city with
you, and I ask you to remind Grasmir that he and I will get along
better if I havent lost the best of my fighters and my sons
needlessly through his carelessness, or his impatience, or his
pointless worrying. He felt his anger getting the better of
him. He shoved harder on the knife, and it dug itself deeply into
the wood he allowed himself no other display of temper.
Nothing has changed. Nothing. Now leave before you give us
all away.
The envoy bowed gracefully and said, Enjoy your party,
Paraglese.
And then he was gone.
The paraglese sat staring at the closed door for a moment, and
wondered if that hint of irony he heard in the Sabir envoys
last words was in the envoys voice or in his own mind.
Chapter 2
The stone walls, rough-hewn and slime-coated, gleamed in
the torchlight. The chill of the place, and the stink and the
darkness and the skittering sounds of the rats, wore on
Marcues nerves even when all the cells were full and the men
in them talked and quarreled and wondered about their futures. Now
the dungeon was empty except for one prisoner, and that was a girl
a child, really and she rarely spoke, but frequently
cried. Her crying was worse than the rats.
She was crying at the moment.
Your Family will ransom you, he told her. He
wasnt supposed to offer comfort to the enemy, but he had a
hard time thinking of a little girl as an enemy, and an equally
hard time understanding how his employers could justify treating
her as one, to the point of locking her in the lowest dungeon in
Sabir House for more than a month.
The girl said nothing for a few moments, but she did sniffle a
bit and take a few slow, deep breaths, as if she were trying to get
herself under control. Then she moved a little way out of the
shadow that hid her and looked at him. I thought
. . . I thought they w-w-would, too, she said, and
started sobbing again.
Marcue winced. Poor girl. She was so young and pretty, and so
very helpless. And she obviously didnt understand how these
things worked. Families didnt hurt little girls.
He had no compunction about holding warriors and diplomats in
the cells. He didnt lose sleep when he had to kill one for
trying to escape, either; the warriors and diplomats of the world
had chosen to be where they were, doing what they were doing, and
they knew the risks involved in their work. This girl, though, had
been kidnapped from her bed while she slept, and had been dragged
into this cell in the month of Brethwan, during the Festival of the
Full Circle. And there she had languished while his employers and
her Family bickered over the price of her return.
If I had such a daughter, the guard had thought more than once,
I would pay any price for her safe return. But he had discovered
long ago that the ways of the rich and powerful were not his ways.
From everything he had heard, her Family was demanding not only her
safe return, but also an exorbitant punitive payment to reimburse
them for the anguish they had suffered from her kidnapping. He
thought, though he hadnt dared to say it aloud, that her
Family didnt know a damned thing about suffering if they
could leave a daughter locked in a cell while they screamed for
compensation.
The girl rose and came to the gate. Even dirty and unkempt, with
the tattered blanket shed been given wrapped around her
delicate shoulders, she was impossibly beautiful. Dressed still in
the silk pajamas shed been wearing when she was kidnapped,
she looked so fragile he wondered again how she had survived a
month in the cold, dank, filthy cell.
You could release me, she said to him. Her
little-girl voice was soft and tentative, and tinged with hope.
Her voice could have broken the heart of a stone, and Marcue was
no stone. He looked at her sadly, though, and told her, That
I cannot do, though if I dared, Id do it in an
instant.
She gripped the bars and glared at him. Why
cant you? You admit your employers have taken me
wrongfully, and that their behavior is shameful.
Hed said those things to her a few days earlier, and now
wished he hadnt. Hed meant them; he thought what
hed said was completely true; but if she told any of the
Sabir Family about his indiscretion, his head would be decorating a
post at the west gate of Sabir House.
She leaned closer and her voice dropped to a whisper. If
you helped me, you could have anything you wanted from the
Galweighs.
He moved toward her, though no closer than the line of the
no-pass zone carved into the stone floor. He kept his voice low and
prayed no one was listening. I know I could, but I still
cant release you. Not for fear of my own life, but for the
lives of my parents. Both my mother and my father work in the Sabir
kitchens. If I set you free, whether I stayed on or ran with you,
both of my parents would be killed the moment my betrayal was
discovered. He stopped and reconsidered. No, that
isnt true. The Sabirs would torture them first, then kill
them.
She seemed to sag and shrink in front of his eyes.
Thats it, then. You were my last hope. And you say
exactly the same thing as the other five guards who have watched me
Id help you if I could, but
they would kill my family . . . or my wife
. . . or my sister . . . She
looked, for just an instant, furious. Id think, when
the Sabirs told you what stories to tell your prisoners, that they
would have told you to try to be a bit original.
He was startled. She thought he was lying to her? He shook his
head and almost moved across the line to explain to her, but
remembered himself in time and kept back of it. Girl
he began.
She cut him off. Danya. My name is Danya. I want you to
remember it, since you wont help me. Remember it, so that
when they do whatever theyre going to do to me, my face and
my name will haunt you for the rest of your life. She flung
herself away from the bars, facedown into the straw.
He winced. Danya, he said, you think we were
all told to tell you a story . . . but that isnt
so. How do you suppose the Families ensure the loyalty of their
guards? Eh? Have you ever thought about that? They choose only
those of us who have something to lose . . .
someone, actually. And they make sure we know, from the day
we don these uniforms, that our loved ones are the reason we were
chosen to serve and that they will be the price we pay if we
fail.
Danya rolled over and sat up. She glared at him and brushed
loose tangles of hair back from her face. Perhaps that is how
the Sabirs do it
Marcue didnt let her finish. Unless you have also
spent time in the Galweigh dungeons, and have spoken to the
Galweigh guards to be sure you know differently, assume the guard
who watched over you was chosen the same way. Assume that when your
Family discovered you stolen away, the person he once loved was
murdered while he watched, and when she was dead, that he was
killed, too. Loyalty can be bought and sold, child, and even given
away for free . . . but fear can make the price of a
mans loyalty higher than even the richest buyer could
pay.
The girl stared at him for a moment, horrified. My Family
would never hurt Quintal. He has guarded me since I was born. And
his wife and daughter . . . his daughter was my companion
until just last year, and his wife works for our seneschal. They
are a part of the Family.
She leaned forward to hide her face against her thighs. She
wrapped her thin arms under her legs and began to cry again.
No one would hurt them, he heard her insisting again
and again.
Oh, please, Marcue whispered. Dont do
that. Im sure youre right. Your guardsman will be fine,
and his family, too. Meanwhile, Danya, youre safe here. Your
Family isnt going to let anything happen to you. Theyll
pay to get you out any day now, someone will come down the
steps to release you.
She didnt raise her head. The guard could barely make out
her reply, muffled as it was. He thought she said, Its
Theramisday.
And what did the fact that it was Naming Day have to do with
anything? He asked her as much.
Because, she said, lifting her head, the Sabir
diplomat who came down and talked to me just after I got here gave
Theramisday as the last day that my Family could come to an
agreement on the terms of my release. If the Sabirs didnt get
what they wanted then, they said they would take it by other means,
and my life would be worth nothing to them.
The guard tried to smile at her. They always say things
like that when theyre dealing with each other. I cant
even tell you how many threats Ive heard the Sabirs giving
. . . and you have to know the stories Ive heard of
the Galweighs are no better. He shook his head and his smile
grew more confident. But all those threats wont mean
anything when it comes to you. What could they gain by hurting
you?
She gave him an eerie look, one that seemed to bite with
knife-edged teeth straight through his skin and into his bones.
That stare chilled him from the inside out, and made him wish that
there were more people in the dungeon than just the two of them.
Then she looked away and the awful feeling passed. She said,
Youd be surprised.
Perhaps I would after all, he thought, but he said nothing.
From far above, he heard the first soft, rhythmic thuds of boots
on the curving stairs that led down into the dungeon. The hour was
far too early for his relief to be coming, and too late for someone
from the kitchen to be bringing meals for him and the girl. So
then, who came?
Danya moved into the farthest corner of her cell and pulled
herself into a tiny bundle, huddled behind a little pile of straw.
She said, Its time for the bad news now. But perhaps
you could still find a way to save me.
The child was determined to get him killed. He shook his
head.
She watched him, eyes like those of a fox in a trap
terrified yet cunning, too. Id consent to marriage in
my own right, if thats what you wanted. Even if you demanded
both marriage and a name in the Galweigh Family, I could promise
that, and you would have it. I will promise it. I do. If
youll just get me away from here.
Her hand in marriage? He smiled sadly at her and said, How
old are you, Danya? Not old enough to be thinking of marriage,
Ill wager.
She said, Im eighteen. Old enough to give legal
consent.
She was eighteen? He wouldnt have guessed her age at more
than thirteen, and she wouldnt have made a particularly well
developed thirteen-year-old. If she was eighteen and he
wasnt sure he was willing to believe her about that
she might be in more trouble than hed guessed. As a legal
adult, she couldnt count on the safeguards promised to
children by the Family treaties. As an adult, if her Family
wouldnt ransom her and she couldnt offer her own
ransom, the Sabirs really might do what they wanted with her.
But they would start a war if they hurt or killed, but
that was unthinkable the daughter of a Galweigh. And none of
the Families and subfamilies in Calimekka wanted a war.
Did they?
The footsteps grew louder. He thought he could discern three
separate pairs of feet coming down the stone stairs.
Save me. Anything it is within my power to give,
youll have.
He felt her fear as if it were a blanket wrapping itself around
him, smothering him. You cant guarantee the safety of
my parents, he said quietly. Im sorry, girl, but
I cant help you.
She screamed fear and rage, in equal parts. She ripped
handfuls of straw from the floor and flung them at him. He drew
well back from the line and steeled his face to impassivity. Above
him, the pace of feet on stairsteps quickened. He grew uneasy.
Perhaps she had reason to fear. Perhaps. But so did he.
The first man appeared from around the curve of the staircase.
His long cloak, which swirled against his riding boots and billowed
behind him, also effectively hooded his face from view, but Marcue
knew him anyway from the ring on his right hand. A wolfs-head
ring, gold, with tourmaline cabochon eyes that glowed in the
torchlight, with a mouth opened in a vicious snarl. The wearer of
the ring was Crispin Sabir, one of the Sabir Wolves.
A wave of queasiness washed over Marcue. The girl had reason to
fear. Crispin Sabir was mad. Evil. Cruel beyond words, beyond human
comprehension. If even one one-hundredth of the stories Marcue had
heard about him were true, the man kept corpses in his quarters and
planted them in his private grounds the way gardeners planted
roses. Marcue had seen him torture a man once; that memory would
never leave him. If he had known the girl would end up with the
Sabirs Wolves instead of with their diplomats
Why is she screaming? Crispin asked, and Marcue
swallowed and said quickly, Shes afraid. She heard you
coming down the stairs and she said something about this being
Theramisday.
Theramisday. Gregor said he told her about that. Im
glad she remembered, Crispin said.
The second man appeared as he said it, and if Marcue had been
sick at the sight of Crispin, with the arrival of Andrew Sabir his
heart sank, weighted with dread. Andrew Sabir. Better a visit from
Zagtasht, god of the underworld. At least Zagtasht was sometimes
known to show mercy. Andrew was a massive man, twice as broad
through the shoulders as the leaner, taller Crispin, with a chest
like a beer barrel; he kept his head shaved in the manner of the
Sloebene sailors, with a single braid above his left ear; and he
was ugly as red-eyed evil. He grinned as he caught sight of the
girl, and said, Do you want me to shut her up,
Crispin?
Not at all. Let her sing a bit. I like the sound of
it.
The third set of footsteps on the stairs approached slowly.
Marcue heard a hissing slide, then a thud and a grunt, then the
normal click of boot heel on stone. A pause. Then the sequence
repeated. Over and over, louder and louder. And throughout, a
curious scraping that he hadnt heard at all until the other
two men were off the stairs.
Marcue shivered, and not from the chill and the damp. Hed
heard stories of the creatures the Wolves kept hidden in their
chambers. Hed heard, too, that they consorted with demons and
monsters. And that shuffle-step on the stair (what was that
scratching sound?) might just be a kindly old Family diplomat
limping down to tell the girl her ransom had been met
. . . but Marcue didnt think so.
We have news for you, little Wolf, Andrew said.
Crispin glared at him. Wait until Anwyn gets here. He
doesnt want to miss this.
Andrew laughed, a creepy high tittering giggle that made Marcue
want to retch. News, he repeated. But maybe Anwyn
will want to give it to you himself. Well all want to give it
to you. He giggled again.
The girl stood and faced the men. She wasnt screaming any
longer, and Marcue could see no sign of tears. Shed drawn
strength from someplace; shed found a measure of courage from
deep inside herself; now her chin went up and her shoulders came
back and her body wrote defiance in the air with her every move.
She glared at Andrew and said, So what is your news,
Wolf?
Crispin and Andrew both grinned at each other. As they did,
Anwyn slouched into the dungeon. Marcue had thought from his name
that he would be human. Anwyn was a good Parmatian name, like
Crispin . . . or Marcue, for that matter. The thing that
skulked into the dungeon wasnt human, though. He might have
been one of the Scarred one of the creatures from the
poisoned lands whose ancestors, stories said, had once been men. If
he was Scarred, however, he was from no realm that had ever traded
in Calimekka. And if he wasnt one of the Scarred, then he was
a demon from the lowest pit of Zagtashts darkest hell. Long
horns curled out from his forehead. His scaled brow beetled over
eyes so deeply set they looked more like hollow sockets. His lips
parted in a grin that revealed teeth long as a mans thumb and
serrated like a sharks. He hunched forward, and Marcue could
make out the ridge of huge spines that ran down the center of his
back beneath his cloak. His hands were talons, though
five-fingered, and while one of his feet fit in a mans boot
and grew from a man-shaped leg, the other was a cloven hoof
attached to a leg that, beneath a mans breeches, bent
backward at the knee. That leg he dragged forward as he moved into
the room.
Marcue longed to run. He kept himself where he was only by the
fiercest exercise of will, and he knew that his terror showed
plainly on his face.
The girl didnt flinch. She looked at the monster as if he
were someone she had known and disliked all her life. Marcue
couldnt even see fear in her eyes.
Well, he was afraid enough for both of them.
You should have helped her escape, a tiny voice in the back of
his mind whispered. You are going to regret the fact that you
didnt for the rest of your life. The name Danya Galweigh is
going to ride with you into the dark halls of nightmare when you
sleep, and perch on your shoulders when you wake.
The girl gripped the bars of her cell with slender,
long-fingered hands and, in a voice that said without words that
she was their superior and beyond anything they might do to her,
said, Youre all here now. Give me your news.
The monster Anwyn said, Dear child, the diplomats still
talk, and we will let them talk, of course but they achieve
nothing. Your Family is most unwilling to give us what we
want. He shook his head and looked from Andrew to Crispin,
then back to the girl. And the work of Theramisday has come
and gone, and no decision that we will accept has yet been
reached.
She frowned. But you said the diplomats are still
talking.
Anwyn smiled, and those horrible teeth gleamed. Well, of
course. If we had given your people our actual deadline, they would
know to be watching for our next move. As it is, they think
were still considering what they have to say, so they
wont be prepared for our attack.
Danya paled, and Marcue, pressed against the wall, ached for
her. Her Family still thought they had a chance to get her back
alive, when in fact she had become the trick that would make them
vulnerable.
Danya Galweigh didnt collapse into tears, nor did she beg
for mercy. She glanced at Marcue, then back at the monster, and
said, So now I assume you have come to kill me.
All three visitors to the dungeon laughed. The demon said,
Lovely girl, we wouldnt dream of killing you. Yet. What
a stupid waste of valuable resources that would be. How
would we bring ourselves to kill someone so young and beautiful, so
strong and full of life? No. We have a place for you among our
number.
Indeed, Crispin said, the central place of
honor in the circle of the Wolves.
That meant nothing to Marcue, but it meant something to Danya.
Her facade of courage and impassivity crumbled, and tears filled
her eyes. No, she whispered. Please, no. Not
that.
Andrew tittered again. Well, not that right away. After
you have been the guest of the Wolves, you wont be
. . . well, you wont be the same, and we hated the
idea of wasting so much prettiness. So for the next few days,
youll entertain the three of us. Just us.
She backed away from the bars. Dont touch
me.
Crispin and the demon laughed, and Crispin said, Well,
brother, I dont think she likes us.
The demon said, Shell probably like you well enough.
But I think I shall like her.
Andrew said, Guard, give me the key to her cell.
Marcue shuddered.
I should have helped her. I should have . . . I had
the time. I could have made an opportunity. I could have done
something. Maybe I still can. Maybe I can find a way to get her out
and lock the three of them in there I can run with her and
my parents before anyone is the wiser. Galweigh House isnt so
far . . .
Let me open it for you, he heard himself saying.
The lock is stiff and tricky, and wont open if you
havent practiced with it a great deal. His voice shook
when he spoke, but he thought anyones voice would shake on
being confronted for the first time with a demon. And what he said
about the lock was true, actually, though he took nearly three
times as long unlocking it as he would have normally. His delay
came partly because his hands were shaking from fear, but more than
that, the whole time he was scraping the key back and forth, he was
figuring out how he would get the men and the monster into the cell
and the girl safely out. By the time the door screeched open, he
thought he had found the way.
There, he said, and stepped back, keeping himself
beside the door and leaving the key in the lock.
Very good, Andrew said. That did look very
difficult.
Marcue nodded and took another step back. He tried to catch the
girls eye, but she was looking at Andrew, who stepped into
the cell first. Crispin followed, and Marcue wished with all his
heart the second one in had been the demon. Crispin would have been
so much easier to shove.
He watched both men close on Danya, and backed up another half
step, hoping to spot the demon, who had inexplicably vanished. He
felt his fear in the tightening of his gut and his testicles, in
the pounding of his heart, and he thought, Come on! Come on! Move
in front of me, you bastard, before its too late.
Then he felt the point of a needle at his throat.
It probably would have worked, the demon said from
behind him. He felt it rest one hand on his belly. The other
tightened around his neck, and the monster picked him up,
strangling him and dragging him backward at the same time. He
kicked and struggled, trying to pull the hand away from his neck
and finding that he might have bent the bars of one of the cells
with his hands more easily. He couldnt breathe at all,
couldnt make a sound. The demon took him to the stone wall
directly across from the cell (to the rows of manacles, why is he
taking me to the manacles?) and released his throat just as the
world was beginning to turn gray and his pulse was threatening to
explode out the sides of his skull.
Marcue vomited and gasped in air, choking, his throat on fire,
and the demon laughed. It grabbed one wrist and locked it into a
manacle, then caught the other one. You couldnt have
saved her, but you might have gotten all three of us into the
cell. The demon smiled at him (horrible smile) and added,
But you think too loudly, and with your whole body. Not a
good survival trait, that.
Marcue became dimly aware that the girl was screaming. He looked
past the demon to see her held between Crispin and Andrew. She was
staring at him. Screaming for him.
The monster fitted his other wrist into the manacle, closed it.
Locked it. Smiled at him.
Terrible, terrible teeth.
Terrible.
The girl, screaming, Let him go! Let him go!
We were just going to take her up to our quarters,
Crispin said from inside the cell. Just going to go on our
way and leave you to your job. But, naughty lad, you let yourself
think of a prisoner as something besides a prisoner, and you are
going to have to pay for that.
I dont think, the demon said, that he
should leave life without at least a little entertainment, though.
Do you, Crispin?
What did you have in mind?
Killing him slowly, the demon said. Letting
him watch us with the girl as he dies. So that at least he dies
amused.
Andrew giggled. Do it, he said. Do
it.
The demon turned to face Marcue and said quietly, A voice
speaks to each of us in the still silent places a voice that
tells us to stand, to have courage, to do what is right. He
smiled. And if were very, very clever, we hunt down the
source of that voice, and kill it.
He dragged one dagger-tipped finger down Marcues gut, and
the fabric of his tunic fell away, and the link mail under it
rattled. The demon clicked his tongue, and ripped the link mail in
half from top to bottom. Sliced away the padded quilt shirt
underneath. Exposed the bare skin of Marcues chest and
belly.
Such smooth skin, he said. Mine looked like
that once. Enough so that I think I would have had to kill you
anyway. I miss my old self.
Dont, Marcue said. Dont hurt me. I
didnt do anything.
You wanted to. Wanting to was enough.
You dont know that. You cant know what a man
thinks.
I can. I do.
Let me go.
Were going to let you watch. The mating of Wolves
not a sight many men have ever seen. The demon
laughed, and dragged its claw down his belly a final time.
white
red
pain agony pain
terror and blood and stink and
the incredible noise of screaming someone
screaming inside his head and he wanted it to stop he called to the
pain to kill him and it didnt
the weight of something hot and slick and stinking sliding away
from him, landing on his feet
faintness, but faintness that abandoned him at the last instant
and left him to the cruel ministrations of the waking world
he kept on living
and a voice that cut through his screaming like that claw had
cut through his belly, and silenced him.
We can do much, much more to you without killing you
outright, Crispin Sabir said. So unless you want us to
prove that, shut your mouth and watch. Were doing this for
your benefit.
Marcue opened his eyes. He didnt look down. He knew what
he would see there, and he couldnt look. Couldnt. He
couldnt keep his eyes from the scene in front of him, either.
His supply of courage was gone. He hung in the shackles, his back
against the wall, and watched, wishing he could die quickly,
wishing he could die right away. He watched the demon and the two
men who were no better than demons, and he tried not to look at the
girl. He tried not to hear her. Because he lived to know that they
had killed him, that he was a breathing dead man, and that was
terrible.
Terrible.
But the things they did to her were worse.
Chapter 3
It was a scent in the hallway that did it, that almost
threw Kait into an uncontrolled Shift; a scent at once as familiar
as family and as alien as the far side of the world. One instant
she was dragging Tippa down the long, empty side corridor toward
the yard where the driver had parked the carriage. The next, she
was leaning against a wall feeling her bones going liquid in her
body, feeling her blood bubbling like sparkling wine, while
exuberance filled her and colors and sounds grew sharper and
cleaner and the very air she breathed became a rich, full-bodied,
intoxicating beverage.
Tippa struggled to free her wrist from Kaits grasp, and
bleated, Kait? Kait? Whats wrong? in that timid,
frightened voice Kait loathed.
Kait wiped tears of frustration and longing from her eyes with
the back of a hand, checking the appearance of the hand at the same
time. Normal. Thank the gods, thank all the gods, it was
normal. If she could just get herself under control, she might
still be all right.
I want to run, she thought. I want to fly, to race against the
wind; I want to feel my muscles burn from exertion, I want to hear
my blood pounding in my ears. I want to taste the wind and feel the
cut of the tall grass against my skin. I want to hunt. I want
fresh, hot meat, the iron tang of blood and she pushed what
she wanted away from herself. Far away. Far down in the dark places
inside, her hungers fought against her and she struggled to lock
them away where they belonged. She said softly, I dont
want any of those things. I want to serve my Family and earn my
independence. Her voice sounded raw, husky, far too deep.
Bad. Very bad. Her vocal cords had already slipped. She turned to
Tippa, and gripped both her cousins shoulders, and stared
down into her eyes. Tippa swallowed, looking suddenly sober and
very frightened. Go to the carriage, Kait said.
Tell the driver to take you home. Wait with the Family
tell whoever meets you that I sent you because three Gyru princes
were up to something and your chaperones had disappeared. Ill
. . . be along when I can.
Tippa shivered. Kait, whats wrong with
you?
Nothing that I cant take care of. She wished
that were true. Control, always elusive, now felt as if it slipped
through her fingers like quicksilver. Go, she snarled.
Run.
Tippa stared at her an instant longer, then turned and fled.
When she disappeared through the archway at the end of the corridor
and thundered down the steps to the carriage, Kait moved to the
first dark side passage she could find, hid behind an enormous
statue, and sank to the floor. Her silk skirts rustled, and the
laced bodice of the damned party dress grew looser, then tighter,
then looser, then tighter.
Her blood pounded in her wrists, in her temples, behind her
tightly closed eyes her blood burned in her veins and fizzed
like the water of a sacred spring. The unbearable desire grew
worse. She smelled him, this stranger one of her own, an
adult male, in the prime of life. Like her, pushed too close to the
knife edge of control; like her, hungry for a hunt. She opened her
mouth and wrinkled her nose slightly and inhaled, and along the
back of her palate she tasted the scents of him that were both
wonderfully familiar and wonderfully strange. That bottled
exuberance threatened to burst free, to become the wild
exhilaration of total Shift.
She couldnt let it take her. She couldnt let that
other Kait loose. Not in the Dokteerak House, not surrounded by
hundreds of potential enemies. She had to stop herself, and
fast.
His scent was like a drug in the air, like incense made of
caberra spice, which clouded the mind and filled it full of
visions; his scent could lead her knowing and almost willing toward
her own destruction. First she needed to block that.
She had perfume. A little bottle, always with her. Stinking
stuff, like all perfume she hated it because it ruined the
taste of the air the way spices and sauces ruined the taste of
meat. But scents had caught her off guard before, and shed
learned. She pulled the little bottle of perfume from her
waist-purse, slopped some of it onto a corner of her skirt, and
wiped the reeking stuff across her nostrils and her upper lip.
The effect was jarring. Painful. Like being wakened from the
midst of a pleasant dream by being pitched headfirst into an icy
spring. Her eyes watered and she needed to cough and sneeze at the
same time, and she didnt dare do either. Her bones hurt. Her
blood churned. The thrill of Shift cooled, but not pleasantly. Her
skin became a layer of lead smeared over muscles that ached as if
theyd taken a hellish beating.
I can hold the other back. I am in control.
I want to run
The world is cool, blues and greens and icy whites, silent and
scented with flowers and spices. My heart beats slowly; my feet
remain firmly on the ground; I seek tranquillity.
the world is red and hot and scented with earth and blood and
the rich raw taste of meat and sex
I have given up everything for this chance to be human. I told
my parents I could do this, I promised I could take on the
responsibility, I told them if they wouldnt give me work
within my Family I would find work outside of it where they could
never be sure I was safe.
youre a fool
Im more than you would let me be. Im more than
instinct, more than running and hunting and rutting. My parents
sacrificed just to keep me alive to adulthood. They gave me the
keys to be human.
youre Karnee . . . youre a freak
. . . youre a Curse-touched monster and in the end
you will never be more than an animal
Kait opened her eyes and looked at her hands. Human hands. She
smelled the flowery stink of perfume, and ignored the salt taste of
her tears on her lips, and the wet heat on her cheeks. She would
not give in to the voice of the hated other. She could be more than
the Curse-trapped beast shed been born as. She would be
more.
The cool smoothness of the polished marble wall felt good
through the thin layers of her silk dress. She pressed back against
the wall, catching her breath, letting the stone caress the skin at
the nape of her neck. The crystalline perfection of the world that
had been within her reach had been erased, swathed in the dull,
lifeless tones that characterized everything when she came out of
an attack. She was already drifting into the Crash phase. She felt
the moodiness setting in. Not too terrible this time the
near-Shift hadnt materialized, and the price she paid for the
wild, joyous abandon of Karnee was always proportional. But the
Crash was coming, and with it the ravenous hunger, the lethargy,
and the other symptoms. Worse, this time she would have to pay the
price knowing that she would still have to deal with a pending
episode . . . and soon.
This time she had solved nothing. She had simply postponed the
problem. Her body demanded the Shift once within each forty days
that passed, no matter how inconvenient or dangerous such a Shift
might be. She planned and she accommodated . . . or she
got caught out.
. . . and in spite of that, you let him in here.
Tonight.
She raised her head and opened her eyes. Voices. From down the
hall, hidden behind the closed doors of one of the rooms.
Shed been hearing them for a while, but shed been too
lost in the morass of her own problems to really be aware of
them.
He insisted on seeing you immediately said that
what he had to discuss with you might alter the Sabirs
plans.
Sabirs? Kait thought she recognized the first voice as
belonging to Branard Dokteerak. The second she had no idea about,
but if she was right about the first, then what in all the
demon-spawned hells was he doing talking to Sabirs?
Especially with the Dokteerak alliance to the Galweighs pending
. . .
He wanted nothing more than my reassurance that wed
be ready to move the night of the wedding. Gave me some vague line
about his people needing to know if anything had changed, if they
were going to need more men or if they were going to need to bring
them down by another route but he didnt want
anything real. He didnt have any genuine reason to speak
with me at all, and less than none tonight of all nights.
Had I been able to force a response from him, I
wouldnt have let him in to see you, but you said
I havent changed my mind, either. Until the Galweigh
holdings in Calimekka are ours, we do nothing to anger the Sabirs.
That includes using force on their envoys. Once were firmly
entrenched within the House, however, I want the envoy killed.
Hes Sabir, even if it is by distant blood, and he was
disrespectful to me.
A pause. Ill take care of that, Paraglese.
Good. Meanwhile I have left my own party and my guests,
and I must give them an appropriate reason when I return one
that will stand up to scrutiny. Have any messengers
arrived?
None.
A pity. That would have been the easiest of excuses. Well,
then who among our current list of houseguests have not
attended my party?
Castilla and her children . . . your nephew
Willim, who has a touch of grippe . . . the paraglese
Idrogar Pendat
Stop. Idrogar is here and hasnt shown his face at my
party?
Just so. He arrived yesterday and is awaiting a moment of
your time.
Hes been causing me problems in the Territories. He
wants more control over affairs in Old Jirin.
I must assume, Paraglese, that his mission this time will
only be to continue with his earlier demands. He brings many
bodyguards, but no gifts.
Kait heard Dokteerak begin to chuckle. At last, a benefit
from this long and expensive night. What apartment is he
in?
The Summer Suite, in the North Wing. The best quarters for
. . . what I suspect you have in mind.
They are indeed. Please make sure my beloved cousin
Idrogars fatal illness doesnt inconvenience him too
much. Or leave any marks on the body. Well have to produce
the corpse tomorrow for my story to hold . . . but what
better reason could any man ask to leave his own party, at least
for a while, than an urgent visit to the bedside of a beloved and
dying relative? A pause. Then, Find out exactly what he
came here for before he dies, Pagos. I dont want to destroy
valuable information by accident.
As you will, Paraglese. Kait heard the sound of
stone sliding, and recognized it as the same sound that secret
panels in Galweigh House made. The paragleses man Pagos
heading off to do his masters bidding, no doubt.
She had no time to get out of the hallway; the door at the end
opened, and the paraglese came out. She couldnt see him from
her position behind the statue, but she could hear his heavy
footsteps and his labored breathing. He wasnt an old man, but
he was a sick one.
He went past her without looking either left or right, turned
down the larger corridor toward his party, and met a few guests
there. My dear cousin came suddenly ill . . .
she heard him say, his voice dwindling as he moved away from
her.
Kait waited another moment to be sure he didnt come back,
then rose and slipped out from behind the statue, and hurried out
toward the street. She had to get to the embassy to tell her Family
what shed heard. Keeping Tippa out of trouble was nothing
compared to making sure the diplomats discovered the game Branard
Dokteerak was playing at, but just as important was deciding which
member of the Family to tell. If she chose poorly, she would have
the awkward task of explaining why she was able to crouch behind a
statue at one end of a corridor and hear a conversation that took
place behind heavy closed doors at the other end of it and
for that matter, she might have to explain how she came to be
hiding behind the statue in the first place.
And even within her own Family, she suspected that if the truth
about her got out, she would be regarded as an abomination by most
of her clansmen, and as a dubious asset at best by the
remainder.
* * *
The evil that seeped into the city of Halles and crawled through
the streets and the homes had its beginnings in an ancient room
deep in the heart of the Sabir Embassy, which sat at the far
northern edge of the town. In the subterranean chamber, the Sabir
Wolves moved through flickering light and the curling smoke of
caberra incense, raising magic; they approached each other and then
retreated in bewildering patterns, following the path of a complex
design carved into the stone floor. Swirl and arabesque, move
forward, move back, circle clockwise, counterclockwise; and all the
while they whispered.
In the center of their path, a man branded with the mark of the
convicted felon hung limp and unresisting against the bonds that
bound him to the carved stone column. At the beginning of his
ordeal he had sworn, he had begged for mercy, he had fought and
screamed and cried but the beginning of his ordeal was hours
behind him, and he had nothing left in him with which to fight. He
had withered to half his size, had sunk in on himself as the life
drained out of him. Now he hung in silence as the Wolves moved
around him. From time to time he roused himself enough to stare in
terror at the shapes of ghostly others who trod the path between
the men and women he knew to be there. Sometimes he heard other
voices that emanated from the air around him. He didnt
understand what he was watching, but he didnt need to
understand to know that what they did was killing him quickly.
The Wolves paid little attention to him. Their focus was on the
path, and on their precise placement on the path; they moved in
relation not only to each other, but to their colleagues leagues
away in Calimekka, who followed the footsteps of the path with them
and who chanted as they chanted, linking the two places, raising
magic.
A handsome young man stepped through the doorway into the room,
and two of the Walkers looked up. He nodded to them. They kept
moving around the path, but signaled to Wolves waiting along the
wall, and as they reached the set point of a particular arabesque,
each stepped off the path, to be immediately replaced by those to
whom they had signaled.
The young man slipped out of the room and halfway down the
corridor outside, where he waited. Both Wolves joined him
there.
How did it go? The woman who asked the question,
Imogene Sabir, was about fifty, with pale skin and rich golden hair
just beginning to show some gray. Her eyes were slightly milky, and
though she looked at the young man her son she gave
the impression that she focused on him more by listening. She was
nearly, but not entirely, blind; the magic that had stolen most of
her eyesight had replaced vision with second sight, and she was
satisfied with the exchange. And aside from the increasing opacity
in her eyes, her visible Scars were still few enough that she
remained beautiful.
Dokteerak was furious that I showed up in the middle of
his party. Her son, Ry, had her slenderness combined with his
fathers height, dark gold hair hed inherited from both
of them, and a predatory cast to his features that was entirely his
own. I wasnt obvious, but I know at least two of the
Galweighs recognized me.
His father, Lucien, smiled a thin, tight-lipped smile
that hid his teeth. Excellent. Were you overheard?
I cant be certain. I couldnt hear anyone
outside the doors. Dokteerak closed them when we went in, and he
had a man hidden behind a panel who made so much noise breathing
and shifting from foot to foot that I almost couldnt hide the
fact that I knew he was there. It shouldnt matter. If the
Galweighs know I was in Dokteerak House, theyll get
suspicious.
His mother said, Hid a man behind a secret panel in the
same room, eh? She laughed. The Dokteeraks have no one
like you or me, and do not, I imagine, believe that anyone like us
could still exist in these days. Im sure the two of them
thought they were being quite circumspect.
Ry started to agree with her, then stopped himself. He frowned
and said, Now that you mention it, I should have realized
that was wrong when I was there.
Wrong? His fathers voice grew sharp.
What was wrong?
Mother said they have no Karnee. But I crossed through the
garden behind a guardsman on my way to find Dokteerak, and I caught
the scent of one of us.
His mother said, You cant have. None of our Karnee
were there, and the Dokteeraks have no Karnee. I know
this.
One was there. I didnt have the chance to find her
Her?
Yes. Female, young, a complete stranger
. . . He closed his eyes, remembering for an
instant that bewitching scent that had caught at him as he moved
between the milling mass of human sheep in the garden, and how
difficult he had found it to keep moving, to follow the guard,
instead of breaking free and finding her. Finding her. Gods,
hed almost slipped right then shed been at the
edge of her control; he was due and probably overdue; and her
nearness to a spontaneous Shift had almost taken him over the cliff
with her. And wouldnt that have been a mess?
She has to be one of the Galweigh Karnee, his father
said.
His mother frowned. We killed them all.
Evidently not.
Theyve kept her hidden, then and if they
could hide one from us, they might have hidden others.
Perhaps. Lucien sighed. Well, she isnt
hidden anymore. Theyve decided shes strong enough to
take care of herself and theyve realized how beneficial she
can be to them. Well have to kill her
Of course. But we can do that during the attack
Ry looked from his mother to his father, and remembered that
sweet, tantalizing scent, and cut them both off. Dont
kill her. I want her.
Both parents stared at him as if hed gone mad.
Be sensible. You couldnt breed her, Ry. His
mother rested a hand on his arm and turned her face up to his.
Every child you had would be stillborn. And how would you
keep her? Shed be forever at your throat, as dangerous an
enemy as you could have.
Weve found half a dozen young women who would serve
as mates for you, his father said. Choose one of
them.
Theyre sheep. I dont want a sheep. I want
someone like me.
Maybe you do, but you dont expose your throat to an
enemy when you sleep. And how could you lead the Wolves when your
father steps down, with such a consort as that?
Ry said, Ill take my chances. Besides, you assume
Ill receive the acclaim of the rest of the Wolves when Father
wearies of leadership. But the Trinity already are positioning
themselves to take over someday.
Both his parents snarled, and his mother said, The day
they take over is the day every decent Wolf is dead.
Which was basically true. The Trinity the cousins Anwyn,
Crispin, and Andrew were loathed by every Wolf who could
call himself human with a clear conscience. Which didnt mean
Ry had any desire to fight with them for leadership within the
circle of Wolves.
But he had years yet to worry about that. His father was still
hale and quick and powerful. Rys immediate problem was
finding a mate. He stood thinking about the young women his parents
had presented to him. Girls who carried the Karnee strain in their
blood in safely small amounts, but who had none of the Karnee fire.
Dull, passive creatures who simpered at him and tittered and
giggled, and who owned not a single original thought among the lot
of them.
He hadnt seen this Karnee woman at the party he
could tell she was young from her scent, but he couldnt tell
what she looked like. She might be hideous. That wouldnt
matter, though. Not if she was intelligent. Not if she was fiery,
tempestuous, spirited . . . and she would be,
wouldnt she? Shed survived. Her scent had been full of
passion, full of suppressed rage, full of her curiosity and overt
delight at everything around her and even at that moment,
well away from her, he could feel her tugging at him as the moon
tugged at the sea.
He said, Im sure youre right. She
wouldnt be suitable. And he excused himself. His
parents returned to the path, and to building the power that they
would have to have in the next week. He was not permitted to walk
the path those who walked the path became Scarred by it and
had to hide themselves away. His work for the Family was still in
the outside world.
And in breeding, of course. He stalked up the steep stairway,
glowering. When hed produced a suitable number of living
heirs, hed be pulled from whatever work he was doing out in
the world and placed on the path with the rest of the wizards, and
his world would narrow down to the research libraries and the
artifacts that those who still went freely outside brought in, and
to the making of dark magic.
His future had been determined by others from the time of his
birth. Now, though, he sensed a different direction that it might
take rather, he sensed a direction in which he might
take his future. The possibility of action and choice both
elated and frightened him.
Chapter 4
Galweigh House covered all of the first peak along
Palmetto Cliff Road, and its balconies, carved from the living
marble of the cliff and studded with chalcedony and turquoise and
set with glowing mosaics of colored glass, comprised the whole of
the cliff face beginning after the soaring stone span of the Avenue
of Triumph and only ending where Palmetto Cliff intersected with
the obsidian-paved Path of Gods.
The Galweighs did not build the House, though they had added to
it and decorated it both the stained-glass panels along the
balconies and the inlaid semiprecious stones were Galweigh
conceits. The House predated its inhabitants by more than a
thousand years. Once it had been a winter estate for a man of
unimaginable wealth and power who had in his summers inhabited the
city of St. Marobas, far to the south. The man and his wealth were
dust, and the city of St. Marobas was a perfectly circular patch of
water named the St. Marobas Sea down along the eastern coast of the
deadly Veral Territories, but the House survived. Over the course
of a thousand years, its shining white balconies had lost some of
their luster, and from time to time a stonemason had to be called
in to repair a pillar or bearing wall that the jungle had damaged
before the Galweighs found the House and claimed it, but those
small imperfections only gave Galweigh House character. It was the
finest known surviving artifact of the Age of Wizards, and was of
wizardly make and magical nature.
Part of its magic lay in its beauty, which was unsurpassed, and
part in its vast size, which could only be guessed at. The
Galweighs had not finished mapping the House, though they had lived
in it for better than a hundred years. Some portions of it they
knew well. The ground floor, which was the story that ran along the
top of the cliff, had been mapped and explored and filled up; it
was the floor that held the grand salons and the beautiful
fountains, the vast baths, the exquisite statuary, the broad
promenades, and the gardens both public and private. The first
floor, reached by gorgeous curving staircases from any number of
points on the ground floor, held rooms for business, courtrooms and
holding rooms, rooms for private entertaining, classrooms for
children, workrooms for adults.
The floor above that held the Family apartments, more gardens,
and several aviaries, as well as a fortune in artworks both ancient
and modern and an entire gallery of curiosities from around the
known world. The Family, and the spouses and concubines of the
Family and their children, and frequently their childrens
children, all lived there over a hundred people when the
place was emptiest, with plenty of room for more. The third floor
was for the servants of the Family (as opposed to House servants,
who lived on the first subfloor), and its apartments were as
spacious and graceful and lovely as those the Family occupied. It
was commonly known throughout Calimekka that the servants of the
Galweigh Family lived better than the richest of men outside of the
Family.
Two floors lay above the last of the occupied floors, testament
to the grandeur that had been before the Wizards War, and to
the promise, at least in the eyes of the Galweighs, of the grandeur
that would be again.
The great House was ringed with massive walls of ancient make,
high and smooth-sided as if formed of glass, harder than anything
save diamond or the unrusting steel of the dead wizards, so that
the people who lived within the upper stories of Galweigh House
feared little, and had little reason to fear.
But the House had a second face and a second character, as some
people do; a darker side hinted at in the secret passageways and
rooms sometimes accidentally happened upon aboveground by a child
at play, or by a servant intent on cleaning who pressed a secret
panel or tripped over a slightly uneven flagstone. At those
moments, the maps of Galweigh House grew by inches; and the Family
sometimes acquired another oddity or two for its collections; and
depending on the character of the passageway, and where it went,
and what it disclosed, sometimes the servants acquired a new
cleaning headache. Sometimes, one or more of them quietly
disappeared, along with the news of their discovery, and stories
circulated for a while among the staff about accidents.
That hint of darkness became more pronounced in the subfloors,
which lay below the ground floor. The first subfloor held kitchens
and pantries and servants work halls, and seemed as
comfortable and knowable as the aboveground floors. But below it
lay ten more floors. There, the open, breezy beauty of balcony
rooms carved along the edge of the cliff were characterized by
their vast panoramas of the beautiful city that lay below, and
occupied by downstairs servants and adventurous guests, by loud
revelries and late-night explorations of uncounted types. Moving in
toward the heart of the great hill, those rooms gave way quickly to
halls lit only by torches even in broad daylight, and deeper in, to
hallways left unlit, where light never reached and the last feet to
leave tracks had become nothing more than dust on the floor some
ten centuries earlier.
The secrets of the Galweigh Family resided, as most secrets do,
in the darkness and the silence, in the unventured depths. The
Galweigh Wolves kept themselves contained within the very heart of
this darkness, ten levels below the bright and public world of the
main Family, where not even the most curious of children dared to
explore, and where not even the most ardent of young lovers dared
tryst.
In the perpetual gloom of windowless rooms, in the stillness
that was more than silence, the Wolves, who were their own law, and
who were the secret and hidden power behind the Galweigh Family,
kept the power flowing and kept their enemies at bay and humbled.
They worked with ancient books and records, with instruments of
their own devising, and with those that had survived a thousand
years and a final war of unimaginable devastation. They studied the
one forbidden science of the world of Matrin the science of
magic and learned, and put their learning into practice in
every way they could devise. They were the new wizards, and the
unheralded kings, and the unworshiped gods.
Unhampered by the restrictions of society, equally unhampered by
the restraint of conscience, they pursued every avenue of personal
curiosity, indulging in experiments in every conceivable area of
magic, and in doing so touched areas of pure good and pure evil.
And like all wizards and all kings and all gods, they eventually
came to discover that the pursuit of goodness imposed uncomfortable
confinements, and the pursuit of evil for evils sake became
wearying after a while, and lost its novelty but that the
pursuit of power never failed to enchant.
* * *
Fog blanketed the city of Halles so that the dark houses,
shutter-eyes shut against the dark, became formless cliffs; and
taverns ejected their rowdy customers with a whisper, not a roar;
and ghosts welled up out of the darkness from nowhere and vanished
again, leaving only the faintest clicks and clanks to mark their
passing. Kait moved along a narrow cobblestone street, noting the
way the scents grew richer in the dark and the damp. She could have
tracked any of the dozens of people whod trod the streets
before her by scent alone, and never mind that others had passed by
long after them, and laid new scent trails over the old.
The moon rode overhead, fat but not full, casting murky light
into the swirling mists light that, fighting through the fog
as it did, illuminated nothing. It glowed ahead of Kait and off to
the right like a dull clot of turned milk viewed through
cheesecloth. Sharply to her right, the rich stink of sewage roiled
out of an open gutter. To her left and just ahead, the
wine-and-piss stench pinpointed a drunk curled up beneath mildewing
rags. Somewhere farther ahead, meat . . . but overcooked.
Her mouth hungered for the warm taste of raw meat the wild
Kait, the one she preferred to deny, had not been satisfied by the
dainty foods of the Naming Day party, and growled
dissatisfaction.
. . . hunting, running, fur and ripped and bleeding
flesh torn from its fur-coated package and the first hard gush of
hot, thick, iron-salt blood . . .
Ahead, three men waited at the mouth of an alley. They discussed
their nights take in gloating tones, and Kait wondered,
briefly, if the man under the rags who had smelled so strongly of
wine had fallen there on his own or if the thieves had robbed him
. . . had maybe killed him. She had not heard his
breathing, she realized.
Deep inside, the darkness coiled tighter, urging her to confront
the men, taunting her, naming her caution cowardice.
She clamped the rage tight. Moving silently, she crossed to the
other side of the street; the fog hid her, and she passed the trio
without any of them suspecting she had been near.
The slimy feel of evil that pervaded the night lay thicker in
the direction she traveled. It became an added dimension to the
fog, and for an instant she wondered about Hasmal son of Hasmal,
and how he had kept the vile grasping tentacles of hatred and
despair at bay.
She did not hold the thought long. The roads of Halles, narrow
and twisting, full of dead ends and maze-like alleys, were at that
late hour cheek by jowl with thieves, rapists, and other trouble,
and required her full attention. She kept the moon in front of her,
though twice she had to double back when she took a wrong turn. She
knew by feel where the Galweigh Embassy lay; she simply did not
recall the precise combination of roads that would take her
directly to it. This city was not hers; she did not feel it the way
she felt the streets of Calimekka. So she walked, patient. She
didnt fear the night. She had little to fear; her eyes and
ears and nose told her everything she needed to know to stay safe;
and if by some chance she found herself trapped between trouble on
two sides, she felt certain she could guarantee that her attackers
never bothered anyone again.
Shed been tried only once, but that once had given her the
courage of experience.
At the age of thirteen, when her parents first moved her into
the Galweigh House from their secluded farm in the country,
shed been unable to sleep. So in the middle of the night, she
got up to go prowling. Following her restless urges, and a nagging,
tickling sense at the back of her skull that insisted something
about the night was wrong, shed slipped through the
residential corridors and down a back staircase. She loved the
House loved its grandeur and its endless secrets, its
immense age and air of mystery and she had quickly learned
ways from place to place few others knew. Stalking by impulse,
following instinct, shed traveled downward, using every trick
she shared with the House. She slipped through a hidden corridor,
glided down a banister, skulked behind rows of statues, used the
noise of the fountains to cover any hint of her approach.
One man down in a dark back corridor carried a lumpy bag over
his shoulder, the bag human-shaped, human-smelling. Another man,
redolent of blood not his own, crept behind him watching their
backs. Neither spoke, and Kait could not identify their scents, but
the blood she smelled belonged to her oldest sister. Kait heard no
sound from Dulcie. Fear caught in her throat, and the darkness and
the rage that always waited inside of her broke free. She
remembered lunging at the men, her body ablaze with the Shift,
teeth bared, lips curled back, the exultation of the glorious
madness pulsing in her veins and the scent of her sisters
blood sour in her nostrils. She remembered the satisfaction of
rending and tearing, claws digging, teeth sinking in, the singing
of her blood in her ears . . .
The sounds of screams alerted the guards. They came running, to
find two men dead with their throats torn out, and Dulcie Galweigh
unconscious and bleeding in a bag on the floor. When they looked
further, they found the guards who would have been protecting the
Family lying in a back stairway with their throats cut. The guards
never found Dulcies avenger. No one knew the meaning of the
animal tracks smeared in blood across the pristine white floor.
Among the House staff, rumors grew that the Galweighs were
protected by a terrible ghost, that the spirit of a great wolf
hunted the halls of the House seeking to avenge any hurt that came
to the Family.
Neither Kait nor any of the other Galweighs saw fit to correct
this story.
* * *
Dùghall met the carriage at the door. But only Tippa was in
it, and Tippa wore the terrified expression of a doe that had
barely escaped the ravages of a leopard. Dùghalls
stomach twisted. Where was Kait? His heart thudded, and he felt his
blood drain to his feet. In an instant, Kait in a hundred forms
flashed before his eyes. Tiny Kait-cha with dark eyes and dark hair
and flashing white teeth, grinning up at him from the floor where
she played in her parents country home seven years
old, or maybe eight, the first time hed met her. Enchanting
girl, like a wild creature all shy and curious, stepping closer bit
by bit, ready to escape should she sense danger. And Kait running,
hair flying behind her like pennants, out in the walled yard with a
daisy chain around her waist. Kait at fourteen, astride a horse,
urging it over a gate, the two of them sailing like a single bird
through the air, then thundering across a meadow. Kait in a tree,
calling down to him. Then Kait, older yet, staring wistfully out a
window, yearning for places shed never been. Kait suddenly
angry, running from the room so fast she seemed to blur even in
memory. And Kait at seventeen, overjoyed when he told her hed
convinced her parents that she would be a perfect ambassador for
the Galweighs, that she could begin training.
And now Kait missing. And if anything happened to her, he could
only blame himself. He should have pulled her out the instant he
saw the treacherous Sabir stalking through the courtyard
. . . but if he had, he would have blown his own cover,
and he hadnt thought anyone would try anything against an
ambassador even such a junior ambassador at such a
public party, and on Naming Day.
He forced his mind to stillness. Maybe Tippa had some logical
explanation for coming home alone.
Where is she?
Those bright, terrified eyes stared up at him. She
. . . stayed behind. Something was the matter, but she
wouldnt say what. She got so fierce. . . . And
the princes . . . they treated me nice, but Kait fought
with them . . . and she made me come home on my
own. Tippa started to cry.
She stank of wine, and the flush in her cheeks and the
brightness of her eyes told him how drunk she was. Chaperoned
closely, she should never have been allowed to get drunk. And what
princes had been nice to her? The Families held little regard for
the pretenders after long-vacant thrones, and in Ibera any princes
she was likely to meet would have been of that sort. Kait was a
sensible girl shed seen trouble coming, and had pulled
Tippa out of the party and sent her home.
Then what? Had she gone back to deal with the princes? A lone
girl in a strange city, in the home of people who had been her
Familys sworn enemies for more than a hundred years? Would
she do a thing like that?
No. Kait was a sensible girl. Whatever had happened, it
hadnt been that.
Tippa looked too drunk to be of much use, though for Kaits
sake, Dùghall hoped she would be able to tell them something
of value. Hed take her inside, rouse the embassy physick, and
make the man give her something to sober her up. Meantime,
hed chase down the security staff and send them out looking
through the streets. He couldnt get into the private parts of
Dokteerak House not without an army and at this late
hour, and with most if not all of the guests surely gone he
wouldnt even be able to come up with a convincing excuse for
getting into the public part of the House. But he could send the
Galweighs trusted men to look around the outside of it
without being seen.
What it came down to was that he was severely limited in what he
could do without taking a chance at giving away the one secret that
he had to keep in spite of everything. Back home in the islands, he
could have moved the earth searching for the girl without fear of
reprisals. But in Halles, in an embassy that hired most of its
household staff from among the locals, and that had surely acquired
at least one spy, and probably several, he didnt dare. It
wasnt even that he didnt want to end up with his
drawn-and-quartered body hung on display in the city square, though
of course he didnt. If his secret got out, though, he would
risk exposing the Falcons, and he would jeopardize the Texts, and
he would fail his obligations as a Warden.
If only hed taken the time earlier to divine the location
of a safe room, or, if none existed, to create one.
While he hauled Tippa toward the physicks quarters, he
raged inside at how helpless he was. He would do everything he
could and everything he could wouldnt be enough to do
the girl a single bit of good if she was in real trouble. From the
way his skin crawled, and from the inescapable pounding of foreign
Wolf magic in the air, he could only fear the worst.
Chapter 5
Kait recognized the street on which she walked. Two
blocks, maybe three, and she would be at the embassy. Almost home,
almost safe, almost where she could tell the Family about the
Dokteeraks and the Sabirs. Perhaps within her room she would be
able to leave behind the pounding threat of evil that hammered at
her skull. Perhaps shed be able to shake the feeling that she
was being followed, that downwind of her something moved to
intersect her. Shed stopped several times, tasting the air,
and each time it brought her only the overripe scents of sewage and
the unwashed bodies of drunks and whores still ahead of her; each
time the wind, so often her friend, blew from the direction of
home, and not the direction of whoever . . . or whatever
. . . she sensed following her. She never heard anything
suspicious. She never saw anything out of the ordinary.
But the feeling remained. Eyes watched her through the fog. Eyes
saw her that were keener than her own.
Someone ran toward her. Focused on her she knew this in
her gut. Only in her gut. The rest of her senses were blind. But
her gut told her enough. The running wasnt random, the feel
of the runners intent was, to her, the feel of a bolt
launched from a crossbow, aimed at her heart.
Danger. Betrayal. Death.
She tucked the front hem of her dress into the bodice ties,
where it brushed against the hilt of her hidden dagger, and ran
down the nearest side street . . . silent, hard, as fast
as any man, all of her senses trained behind her to the one who
pursued. Her only goal became the eluding of capture; her attention
narrowed to the world of her pumping legs and arms, the placement
of her feet in the precarious uneven streets, the evasion of
obstacles that could slow her flight. Fear sent her blood singing
through her veins again; Shift pursued her as swiftly as the runner
who followed her every twist and turn, and who somehow, impossibly,
kept up with her. Was he a hired assassin? A Galweigh-hater who had
recognized her leaving the party, who was seizing an
opportunity?
She ran left, right, left, choosing streets at random in the
alien city. She toppled a drunk into the gutter in her haste; he
cried out and fell, clinging for the merest instant to her skirt
before she broke away. He cost her a step perhaps a step and
a half in a race she was already losing. Her fear rose
higher. She ran harder, fought Shift and the betrayal of her body
that would mean, in such public places, her death. The fog that had
been an ally became an obstacle, making each footstep precarious.
She wanted to hide, to disguise herself as a part of Halles and not
a thing apart from it; in the back of her mind, something whispered
people and, frightened and pushed to the limits of her human
bodys capacity, thinking only of what was behind her and not
of what might lie ahead, she made a mistake.
She smelled people above the fading scent of perfume on her
upper lip. Many of them. Men and women, the back of her mind
said, that way. She followed the scent to her right, down a
twisting street that narrowed instead of widening.
She prayed that the walls of the buildings on either side of her
would move away from each other again. That she would smell the
movement of air that indicated an opening at the other end of this
passage. She didnt. The air lay dead, the passage narrowed
still further, until, if she had stretched her arms out straight to
either side of her, she could have touched the walls. She heard the
people ahead of her now. Laughing. Voices kept low, an edge to
them, a feeling of caution. Man voices, but she smelled
woman-scent, too. Touches of sex-musk on the air, the iron-metal
tang of fresh blood. She lost the moons light in the shadows
of buildings, and only her Karnee eyes let her see well enough to
keep running. Her pursuer never slowed. She heard him turn in
behind her. How did he pursue her so closely? How did he follow her
so well? She had no time to think of how.
Suddenly the walls to either side of her fell away, and she
burst into the midst of the people shed sought out. She was
in a cul-de-sac; she crashed into two men; they caught her arms as
they staggered to keep their balance; she rasped, Hide
me.
Behind her the sound of running stopped.
She saw then what she had run into. A woman crouched on knees
and elbows on the paving stones, her wrists bound, a rag stuffed in
her mouth, a man at her head with a knife at her throat, two others
behind her. One kneeling; one standing. Her tattered, slashed
bodice exposed her breasts, her skirt bunched around her waist. She
bled freely from a cut down the cheek. A dead man dressed in the
height of Halles fashion sprawled against the alley wall to the far
side of her, his throat a raw patch of darkness against the
bloodless whiteness of his skin. One man who wasnt taking
turns raping the woman robbed the corpse. Kait heard the sounds of
the contents of a purse being emptied onto stones; the unmistakable
dull clink of gold, the rattle of jewelry. Six of them in all. Six
murderers, thieves, rapists . . . and the woman. Another
man moved out of the shadows and stepped in front of her, grinning.
A young man, handsome, well-dressed, well-born. Round face, pale
hair, pale eyes he had the look of a Dokteerak heir, and she
thought, So this Family entertains itself at the expense of its
subjects, too.
The hands that held her arms tightened. Look what the gods
sent to us, the man to her left said softly, and the one to
her right laughed.
Her blood fizzed, her bones tingled, she tasted metal in her
mouth and heard the singing of her heart in her ears. Fear died,
strangled by Karnee rage. Her voice grew husky as vocal cords
slipped toward another configuration; her other self strained for
release. With the last of her control, she said, If you want
to live, let her go and let me go. You dont know what I
am.
Giggles from the men who held her. Raw braying from the men who
were taking their turns at the woman.
The Dokteerak shook his head. Oh, help, shes going
to hurt us
a pretty rich girl who ran down the wrong alley
Give us your money and maybe well let you go
maybe well let you live.
Not me. Ill bugger er when shes
dead.
Raw, hating laughter. More giggles.
The highborn bastard slashed her silk bodice open, ripped
downward to her waist for just an instant the blade nicked
skin, and she smelled her own blood. He moved behind her, wrapped a
hand in the coils of her hair, yanking her head downward and
throwing her to her knees. Grabbed her dagger, pulled her dress
off, slashed at the ties of her underclothes lace breast
binder, silk tie-string panties. Cut her again removing them
. . . little cuts, the pain like bee stings, like a goad
to the madness that enveloped her. Red hazed her eyes.
The other Kait sang in exultation at the lightning bolt of pure
fury that tore into brain and gut. She twisted like a python in the
hands of her captors, tasting in her mind the gush of blood,
feeling the delicious crunch of bone and cartilage between teeth
before she even had a man in reach. The hunt. The hunt. The kill.
And that other Kait grinned, and a growl started low in her throat.
Rage drove through all the barriers between Kait-the-woman and
Kait-the-wild-thing. The growl in her throat grew louder. Naked in
the embrace of the night, rational Kait lost herself to the
exultant, joyous, buoyant, shivering other who wanted only to
fight, to destroy, to tear and taste and slaughter in the heady,
scent-rich darkness. She broke free, and spun around, and grabbed
the nearest man with a hand that Shifted and re-formed before her
eyes a hand already covered by the silky, glossy, close
black coat of Karnee, her fingers grown shorter and thicker, her
tendons standing out, retractable claws stretched forward.
She laughed, and in that laughter nothing human remained. She
growled, Youre mine, and leaped on top of him,
two hands and two feet Shifted completely into four widespread paws
in midair, spine stretching and flexing to give her a heavy,
flexible tail. Her muscles bunched and burned and flowed under her
skin, and the claw-tipped paws ripped through the rough cloth of
the would-be rapists shirt and she dug through the flesh of
his chest as if it were butter, and darted her face down close to
his, smelling on him the delicious stink of fear, hearing in his
throat the start of a scream. Her grin grew wider as her muzzle
stretched forward. Her teeth were daggers in her mouth. She bit
down, crushing his scream before it was born, tasting the iron and
salt of his gushing jugular against the middle of her tongue and
feeling the steady spurts of his pulse against the roof of her
mouth for only two bird-fast beats of his heart before she launched
herself backward and upward in a twisting arc that brought her
nose-to-face with the shocked young lordling.
She tore out his throat in passing, already on the way to her
next meat before her paws hit the ground. She charged the third man
who had held her. Tore into him. Brought him down.
Shed had the benefit of first surprise, and had taken the
three, but the other four had regained feet and weapons, and now
the odds were against her.
All four men moved through the fog to circle her, to surround
her. Their swords pointed in, and she knew she was in trouble.
Outnumbered, overmatched. In the fight between a beast and a man
without a weapon, or with only a dagger, the odds lay in favor of
the beast. Against four men with long blades, with murder in their
eyes well, there, the odds went to the men. And even as she
thought it, one darted in at her and slashed with his sword, and
she took a deep cut through her right shoulder and along her
ribs.
She snarled and leaped in low, beneath the upswung blade, and
lashed out at him with one paw. She connected across her
attackers knee and shin, but not deep enough, for though he
shouted, he stayed standing. And she took another cut, hard into
her left flank, because she had left her flanks unguarded and one
of the men behind her had seized the advantage.
She twisted, snarled, and snapped but came up with only empty
air as the second attacker stepped back and brought his sword to a
defensive posture. He grinned; she could see his teeth flashing in
the darkness. He knew they had her. She knew it, too. And she was
afraid. She didnt want to die.
One of the blades wavered and she charged the man who held it,
broke through his guard and dug into the softness of his belly with
her claws, and he went down. But not without cost to her. She
exposed her back to the other three, and they charged in at her,
and the nightmare bite of sharp metal scored the back of her neck
and her other flank, and sought her vitals, though she twisted away
before the blade found its target.
Im going to die.
Here. Now.
And then the miracle happened. Something dark and big and
terrible burst from the alley. The man who had his back to it
screamed once, then went down and didnt rise. A looming
shadow, fast and solid, ripped his throat when he fell, then
slashed the next closest man. Kait didnt have time to watch
the outcome of that second battle; she turned to face her only
remaining attacker. One man, but that one remained armed, unhurt,
wary. She feinted right, then left, faked a leap high in the air
and when her enemy brought his weapon up, anticipating a gutting
stroke, she lunged in low again. He wasnt as fast as she was,
and she bit through his thigh, and leaped away before his blade
could come down across her spine. He took her across the back of
the skull, though, and had the blow carried more force, he might
have taken her right there. She was lucky that he struck while off
balance. As it was, she staggered and a million white lights
sparkled behind her eyes and pain half blinded her.
Breathing hard, hurting and bleeding, she braced herself for the
mans attack. But the stranger
. . . hes Karnee, hes the one I smelled
in Dokteerak House, hes the one who was following me
. . .
the stranger charged the last of the criminals from
behind, biting into the back of one leg. The man screamed and fell.
It was over very quickly then.
Kait felt the heat of her Karnee metabolism burning her wounds
closed. The shallow ones wouldnt even leave scars by morning;
the deep ones probably would, but even those would be gone in a day
or two. The blessing of her curse, such as it was. She was a
monster, but a monster who was damned hard to kill.
We should leave, the strange Karnee said.
Guards will have heard the screams. His voice shivered
through her bones straight to her gut. Hypnotic. Growling,
sensuous, full of passion and mystery she turned away. He
could not do to her what he was doing; he wasnt doing
anything but standing there, bleeding, covered in blood, warning
her of danger, and yet his voice was as powerful as a drug to her,
as overwhelming as caberra incense or as his scent had been earlier
in the night, in Dokteerak House. He was impossible, and so she
turned away, and looked at the woman who huddled against the far
wall of the cul-de-sac.
Terrified, clutching the tattered remains of her gown over her
breasts, she stared at Kait and the stranger as if this night of
hells had just spawned the greatest hell of all. And that was the
worst of it. Kait had saved the womans life, but because she
was Karnee, she could expect only fear and hatred perhaps
even betrayal. Kait wanted to offer comfort, to help the woman to a
place of safety, but she dared not.
So she glared down into the huddled womans eyes and curled
her lips back in a snarl that exposed every knife-edged fang. She
growled, I know you. I know where you live, who you pray
with, which streets you walk on. Ive saved your life tonight,
but I know you dont appreciate that boon from someone like
me. So Ill warn you only this once if you dare speak a
word to anyone of what you saw here tonight, Ill find you in
the darkness and youll never greet another dawn.
The woman had pulled the rag from her mouth with still-bound
hands. She shivered, nodded, croaked, What shall I tell them,
then?
That you saw nothing. That you struggled to escape, that
those bastards hit you on the head, and that when you woke, you
found them the way they are now. A word other than that will be
your death my promise.
I saw nothing, the woman whispered. Tears gleamed on
her face. I saw nothing . . . saw nothing
. . . they hit me . . . I fell
. . . She whispered to herself, not to Kait.
Kait had other things to do. She dug among the corpses and found
the remains of her dress and her underclothes. She located the
slippers shed worn, and the dagger shed carried. Any of
those things would betray her far more immediately than the woman
could the silks were woven by Galweigh weavers in the
Galweigh pattern, the lace was Galweigh Rose-and-Thorn, the shoe
buttons bore the Galweigh ring in gold, the dagger had both rubies
and onyx in the hilt and the Galweigh crest on the pommel, and her
name worked into the vines that decorated the crosspiece.
Everything she owned would be mute betrayal, would bring soldiers
and priests and blood-hungry mobs to her and to everyone she
loved.
She bundled her belongings together as tightly as paws and claws
were able, lifted the bundle in her mouth, and loped toward the
alley. Obstacles remained people in the streets, finding the
embassy, getting past her own Familys people and inside. She
had to clear her mind, to put everything that had just happened out
of her thoughts, or she would not survive.
But the stranger moved beside her, silent and beautiful and
bewitching. He picked up his own bundle halfway down the alley and
loped at her side, until they reached a place where the moonlight
lay across him like a kiss. Then he moved in front of her, turned,
and stopped. Ive spent my life waiting to find
you, he said.
He was huge, easily twice her weight, massively boned, sculpted
by the hands of an artist who had loved him. His eyes, pale blue
ringed around the outside of the irises with black, would be
recognizable even after Shift neither their exotic color nor
their striking pattern would change. His glossy coat, copper
striped with black, emphasized powerful muscles that bunched across
his broad chest and steeply sloped shoulders and rippled in his
haunches. His powerful jaws spread in a grin; his strong, arching
neck tapered upward to a head as broad-skulled and sleek as any
wolfs or jaguars. Small gold hoops pierced both of his
ears and the silver of a shield-shaped medallion gleamed from the
point where his neck curved into his chest, suspended by a heavy
silver chain. She could make out the crest on the medallion
clearly: twin trees with curved branches intertwined, delicate
leaves interspersed with the full curves of ripe fruit. The Sabir
Family crest a lovely design unless one considered that the
Sabirs claimed one tree bore good fruit for the Sabirs and their
friends, and the other bore poisoned fruit for their enemies.
And Kait was Galweigh, and thus was an enemy with five hundred
years of Family hatred behind her. She was what she was because of
the curse some Sabir wizard had put on her Galweigh ancestor; he
was what he was because that curse, after it poisoned the Galweigh
bloodlines, had rebounded on the man who cast it. Five hundred
years of bad blood, and he said hed been waiting his whole
life to find her.
The worst of it was, the attraction she felt for him was so
overwhelming and so total that she found herself wanting to believe
him, and wanting to tell him what she was thinking that she
wanted him. Which of course was ridiculous; she couldnt
desire him in any real way. She didnt know him, and if she
did, she would hate him because he was Sabir. Never mind that
hed saved her life. He didnt know who she was, or he
would have been, at that moment, at her throat.
He watched her, waiting for her to make the next move.
She dropped the bundle between her paws, pressing it tightly so
that she could pick it up again. Pretense would have to get her
away from him. My thanks, she said. Formal words, at
odds with her incomprehensible feelings. She knew him
somehow, though she had never seen him before in her life. The
knowing was more than simple identification; it was the bone-deep
knowing of one who has, coming around the corner of a crowded city
street, rushed headlong into the arms of the man who is destined to
be her soul mate.
My enemy. My soul.
Ludicrous. It made her want to laugh and made her
grateful that she didnt believe in destiny.
My soul. My enemy.
Come with me, he said, and his rich, rumbling
subterranean growl made her own fierce Karnee voice sound soft and
high-pitched. Be with me.
I must go home.
But I want you.
The guards are already coming, she said.
Cant you hear them? She thought she lied, but as
she said the words, she realized they were true. The rhythmic tramp
of footsteps double-time, strides matching moved up
through the streets. And voices, still faint but moving closer.
Break off! Search that alley! Faster, men, before we lose
them!
For an instant he hesitated. An instant only. Then he said,
Find me. Please. Please find me. And he picked up his
own bundle in his teeth and turned, ready to run. She followed
suit, and they raced toward the mouth of the alley together, claws
drawn in so that they made no more noise in running than wind made
moving across the cobblestones. Both cut sharply to the right as
they came out into the street, moving uphill, away from the
oncoming guards. For a short while they ran side by side, sometimes
brushing each other, sometimes pulling away. Her muscles bunched
and flowed, her spine arched and stretched, her body sang at the
breeze that caressed her skin, sang with the joy of movement, and
with the wonder of her nearness however temporary to
him. The world was all her senses: sweet night scent, Karnee musk,
the wetness of fog, green growing things far off and the food-scent
of city vermin in the streets nearby; the steady rush of water from
a fountain, voices calling from far away, the soft
thrup-thrup of a nightbird hunting overhead; late moonlight
falling like silver through the thickening curls of fog, the
graceful lace patterns it cast through trees and buildings; the
cool smooth roundness of the cobblestone beneath her feet, the damp
fog condensing on her sleek fur, cooling her. The sting of her
healing wounds, the fire of the air in her lungs, the joy of being
alive. Later, and once again human, she knew she would feel horror
at the slaughter shed wrought. The ghosts of the dead men
would haunt her dreams. Later she would grieve the actions of her
monstrous half. But the Karnee Kait did not grieve. She felt
glorious. Glorious. She was alive, and those who would have raped
and murdered her were dead, and their deaths filled her with
furious joy.
The strange Karnee turned away from her, left down a side road.
She kept to the road she was on; shed finally recognized
where she was. She had chanced upon the combination of roads that
would take her home. One block, one right turn, and she would come
upon the high, spike-topped fence that separated the embassy from
the city surrounding it. The Sabir Karnee was already out of sight,
fleeing to his own safety; he would not, then, discover who she
was. Good. Shed live longer that way.
She slowed to a lope, becoming wary. While she was in this form,
her own people would be as deadly to her as any enemy. She dared
not let herself be seen. She had to get past the guards, over the
fence, up three stories of stone wall to the window of the suite
where she stayed. She had neither closed the shutters nor barred
the window before she left for the party; the Karnee part of her
chafed at the smell and feel of enclosed places, and the more she
needed the Shift, the worse the feeling became. That was to her
benefit. Nothing else was.
She crouched in the park across the street and watched the
guards moving behind the fence. Regular movements; a sweep by two
men, a short interval, then two men going across the grounds in the
opposite direction. Shed watched them from above on other
sleepless nights. The intervals at this early morning hour were
shorter than they would normally be more men were on the
grounds, and they were more alert. No joking now, no banter as
pairs crossed; they were anticipating trouble . . . or
her absence in the carriage that brought Tippa home, and whatever
garbled story of trouble Tippa had managed to convey, had put the
embassy on alert. Kait would have to be quick and precise to get
past the guards. They never looked up at the walls of the house,
though. So she had a second fact to her advantage.
She moved under cover as close to the street and the fence as
she dared. Then she waited. A pair of guards passed. The fog would
help hide her from sight, but would amplify any noise she made. The
guards moved as far from her as she dared let them; their opposite
pair already worked its way toward her from around the corner of
the house, and the next pair of following guards from the first
direction would not be far behind.
She raced across the street and bunched herself into the air,
teeth clenching down on her bundle. Her body compacted and then
uncoiled as if she were a spring. Straight up to twice the height
of a tall man she soared, clear to the top of the fence. All four
paws found purchase; her back arched high to avoid the impaling
spike over which she swayed; her tail lashed behind her, keeping
her balance.
From her left Did you hear something?
Sounds like . . . like something shook the
fence.
Yes. Ahead?
Cant tell. The whole damned fence rattled.
They would stop and check. Maybe work their way back to her. She
couldnt meet them, didnt dare let them catch sight of
her. She gauged distances, then poured downward, liquid as a cat
though no one who saw her could ever have mistaken her for
any sort of cat and landed in the clipped grass on the far
side of the hard path. The faintest of rustles when she landed; she
heard it clearly, but the guards wouldnt. Their voices
camouflaged the sound. One leap over shrubbery, several lengths of
skulking behind plantings to bring her to the spot below her
window, the merest instant to ensure that her bundle was secure and
that nothing would fall to the ground and draw attention upward to
her. A wait, as the next pair of guards moved past, their attention
on the two men ahead of them, and on the fence. Good.
She climbed up the rough-cut stones to the window that let into
her room, limbs spread wide to improve her balance, claws hooking
around every projection, body tight to the wall. One moment of
worry, heart-stopping, as just above the second floor she came
clear of the fog. The moonlight would outline her clearly to anyone
below she was a gleaming black-furred monster on luminous
white stone. But no one looked up.
She threw herself through the window and sprawled on the floor
of her bedroom; there, finally, the rush of fear and desperation
that had kept her going guttered out, and the Karnee beast gave way
once more to the sense-dulled, guilt-ridden creature who could pass
as human, but who could never be human.
Kait the woman washed away the blood left by Kait the monster as
best she could in the darkness. She hid her bloody bundle beneath
her bed, and tugged on a dressing gown. Then she fell into her bed,
and into the world of nightmares and terror, where her
victims specters hunted and haunted her, where blood clung to
hands, and where a destiny she did not believe in mocked her and
whispered in her ear, Your soul, your enemy; your enemy, your
soul.
* * *
Dùghall Draclas turned to the captain of the guards and
said, Im going to be useless if I dont get some
sleep. Wake me the second anyone finds out anything. Ill be
in my quarters.
The captain nodded. You think this is like what happened
to Danya, sir? That someone snatched her?
I think I dont know what to think. If this is
kidnapping, well get the ransom demand soon. But it
doesnt feel like a kidnapping to me. My gut says otherwise.
And anything could have happened to her. She doesnt know her
way around the city; if she tried to walk home, she could have
wandered down into a bad alley and been robbed . . . or
worse . . . He turned away from the captain.
I wish shed told Tippa what she thought shed
found. Or why she was staying behind. Then maybe Id know
where to start looking.
His people had already tracked down the princes who had schemed
to get Tippa drunk so they could disgrace her and, through her,
shame all of Galweigh House. Theyd been part of a small band
of the Gyru-nalle fanatics who thought a union of the Dokteeraks
and the Galweighs would spell the end of Gyru-nalle independence in
the disputed territories that lay between Dokteerak land and
Galweigh land. All three were going to deny everything
. . . until they discovered that they were being
questioned on the disappearance of an ambassador and not on their
plan to cause embarrassment to the Family. Had they been linked to
the kidnapping of any Family ambassador, every Gyru-nalle in the
Iberal Peninsula would have been hunted down and slaughtered. The
Families maintained their hold on the lesser people of Ibera with
the iron-clawed grip of eagles, and had no respect for the
crownless royal heads of long-dead empires.
So the Gyru-nalle princes talked hard and fast with some
encouragement from the embassy torturer and Dùghall,
after listening to the questioning, was satisfied that none of the
three had anything to do with Kaits disappearance.
He walked toward his quarters, the weariness of a night spent
anticipating disaster adding weight to every step he took. It
wasnt enough that an ambassador was missing. It had to be
Kait. He had too many relatives, and most of them he loathed. But
Kait was the image of his favorite sister, Grace delicate,
dark, and beautiful, and with the spirit of a young lioness. He
would grieve if anything had happened to her.
His path took him past Kaits room; on impulse he stopped
outside her door. Perhaps he should go in and look through her
things to see if he could find anything that might tell him what
had become of her. He felt sure the search would be pointless, but
the same gut instinct that insisted she hadnt been kidnapped
told him he ought to look.
He glanced up and down the hall to make sure no one was
watching. There in the empty hallway he felt he had a bit of an
advantage; spies would find it pointless to hide in rooms and spy
on hallways most of the time, since the business that would keep
them in the embassy in the first place would almost always take
place behind closed and locked doors. Nevertheless, hed be a
fool to betray the Falcons with such a simple gesture as opening a
locked door. The hallway remained empty, though. He decided to take
the calculated risk. He drew his dagger and made a quick, light
slash across the index finger of his left hand just enough
to draw blood, no more. When the dark droplets welled to the edge
of the cut, he murmured a few words, and a soft, radiant light
coalesced around his hand. He touched the lock above Kaits
door handle. A thought, a flicker of light from the tip of his
finger to the smooth metal cylinder, and her door swung open.
She lay sprawled in her bed, in restless sleep, covers flung to
the floor in a tangle, her nightdress riding up to reveal several
long, freshly healed scars on the back of her right thigh, and
smears of what looked in the dim light like blood on her leg, her
hand, and her face. She whimpered as she slept and her legs
thrashed; she breathed in short, hard gasps. As if she were running
from something.
Dùghall frowned. He closed his eyes for an instant, and
studied the faint glow of her form on the bed that his second sight
revealed. Odd that in all the time hed known Kait, hed
never seen that before. Odder that hed never thought to look.
The aura of magic lay lightly on her, and seemed to grow dimmer as
he stood there. It wasnt Wolf magic, though, and it
wasnt Falcon magic. She was the source of it, and yet she
wasnt, as well. His frown deepened. Mysteries within
mysteries that she could get into her room past guards who
were looking for her, that she had vanished in the first place,
that she carried enigmatic scars, that a faint whisper of magic
clung to her in spite of the fact that he knew her to be
magically unschooled.
These were mysteries he would have to fathom. And quickly. But
not so quickly that he had to disturb Kaits restless sleep.
Perhaps he would discover something useful if he just waited.
He settled himself into the chair across from her bed, set a
shield around himself that she would disturb the moment she woke,
and let his head drop back. Within minutes, he slept deeply.
* * *
Hasmal trailed salt across the surface of the mirror with his
left hand. It soaked into the line of blood that hed drawn
into a triangle. He sucked at his right thumb for just an instant
to lick away the last traces of his blood should he let any
stray drops fall onto the mirror when he summoned the Speaker, he
would find himself devoured. Or worse.
He whispered the final lines of the incantation:
Speaker step within the walls
Of earth and blood and air;
Bound by will and spirit,
You must bide your presence there.
Answer questions with clear truth,
Do only good and then
Return to the realm from whence you came
And dont come back again.
The salt on the mirror began to burn. The pale blue flames
flickered for an instant, then settled into a steady glow. And in
the center of the flames, a tiny light burst into life and shaped
itself into a perfect representation of a woman, though one no
taller than Hasmals longest finger.
She stared up at him, long glowing hair blowing in a breeze that
never traveled beyond the triangle of fire. What do you want
to know? Her voice was deep and sweet, softer than
Hasmals whisper, but not whispered. She spoke from
unimaginably far away, over the incessant sobbing of the wind that
blew between the worlds, and her words only reached him by the
magic of her simulacrum standing on the glass.
Hasmal cleared his throat and crouched nearer the glass,
shielding the light it cast with his body. I met a woman
tonight. She saw through my shields, though she should never have
been able to do that. I told her my name, though I didnt
intend to. She frightened me. Shes not what she seems to be.
Does she mean me harm?
No, though she will someday bring it to you anyway. You
are a vessel chosen by the Reborn, Hasmal son of Hasmal; your
destiny is pain and glory. Your sacrifice will bring the return of
greatness to the Falcons, and your name will be revered through all
time.
My sacrifice? Hasmal felt his heart tie itself into
a hard, small knot inside his chest. Having a revered name sounded
good enough, but the people the Falcons revered tended to be dead,
and worse, to have died badly. What kind of
sacrifice?
The woman waved a tiny hand, and in the flames Hasmal saw his
parents being nailed to the Great Gate. Then he saw himself being
beaten, tortured, and flayed by men wearing the livery of one of
the Five Families; and finally standing skinless in the midst of
the city of Halles while a crowd jeered and threw rotted fruit at
him, and soldiers tied his limbs to four horses, then sent the
horses galloping in four different directions.
Hasmal thought he might faint. Hed suspected he
wasnt being asked to sacrifice a pure black goat, or even a
bag of gold. But his parents lives and his own
. . .
The images died away, leaving the tiny woman looking up
earnestly at him. Your deeds will make you beloved.
Youll live on in the pages of the Secret Texts, and in the
hearts of all Falcons forever after.
Hasmal looked away from her, trying to erase from his mind the
image of his skinless body being ripped into four pieces by the
galloping horses.
Ill forgo the glory, he decided. Id rather live in
the present than on the pages of a book.
He stared down at the Speaker and shivered. Can I escape
this fate?
For an instant, he heard only the sound of that otherworldly
wind. Then she laughed. You can always try.
How? he asked.
But the fire on the glass burned low and all at once guttered
out. The Speaker vanished, leaving the mirror bare of salt and
blood.
He could draw more blood, summon another Speaker, perhaps get
the information he desired. But the spell had cost him in energy.
And worse, it had cost him in time. He might be able to control the
energy of another spell, but he would never get back the time
hed lost.
The strange woman had said she would be coming to find him. His
fate, and his and his parents destruction, were linked to
contact with her. He had no guarantee that he could escape the
Speakers images of doom; hed been given no promise that
he could spare his mother and father, either. But if he was not in
Halles, the woman would not find him, and perhaps he would not be
such a danger to them or to himself.
He rose, tucked the mirror back into his case, and stepped out
of the storeroom. Before she arrived, he needed to pack his
belongings and leave. He dared not say goodbye to his parents
his father would demand an explanation when his solid,
dependable, decidedly unadventurous son suddenly decided to pack a
kit and hare off to destinations unknown. And if the old man ever
suspected his son was fleeing his sacred duty to die for the
Falcons, he would probably turn Hasmal over to the Dokteeraks, then
nail himself and his wife to the Great Gate in penance. The elder
Hasmal wouldnt approve of running away from destiny
especially not a destiny that furthered the aspirations of his
beloved Falcons.
Hasmal the younger was neither so dedicated to that ancient,
secret order, nor so sanguine about his portended demise in its
service. He packed a few necessary belongings, his magic kit, his
copy of the Secret Texts, and what little money he had, and
wondered not how he could serve, but where he could hide and how he
would get there.
Chapter 6
In her sleep, Kait heard breathing not her own and felt
eyes watching her. In spite of her dreams dreams of running
and Shifting she became aware of a stranger who entered her
domain. She fought against the pull of sleep, knowing that she had
to awaken, feeling that while she lay unprotected someone was
discovering her secret, but she could not break free of the
tenacious depths of the Shift-fueled dreams.
The nightmares gripped her and tore at her. She saw the Sabir
Karnee coming for her, and she fled, but he caught up to her. This
time he did not come to rescue her from rapists and murderers; this
time he came because he wanted her. He touched her and kissed her,
and her mind cried out that her desire was a betrayal of her
Family, that she should flee before she gave in to him. But she was
weak. She did what she knew she should not do. She welcomed his
embrace and her Family died in droves at the hands of his
Family while she fed her lust and ignored her duty. Then the dream
metamorphosed, and she ran, wild and reckless, smelling the rich
earth and the vibrant growth of jungle and forest and field,
floating at incredible speeds with her feet never quite touching
the ground. And all the while, something terrible pursued her. The
scent of her pursuer rose out of the ground and poisoned the air
she breathed. Honeysuckle. Sweet honeysuckle. It terrified her,
though she did not know why. She careened along the edge of a cliff
that appeared out of nowhere, and discovered in the same instant
that she was running beside her cousin Danya. The two of them were
girls again, exploring the grounds outside of the House, and she
knew without knowing how she knew that the two of them had wakened
something old and evil . . . and that the monster that
they had awakened wanted to destroy them. Then the cliff fell away
beneath them, and she and Danya fell silently. As she fell, Kait
started to Shift again terrified that her cousin would see
her and discover the secret she fought so hard to keep. In spite of
her attempts to control the Shift, her arms stretched into front
legs, then thinned into wings . . . but she still fell.
She dropped, helpless, into an abyss, and watched the ground loom
closer and closer.
With a snap, heart racing, mouth dry, she was awake. She
didnt move, didnt open her eyes because someone
was in her room. The scent told her that the someone was her
uncle Dùghall; the irregular purring snores told her he slept
in the chair next to the door. When had he arrived, and why had he
chosen to wait for her to wake instead of waking her? And more
importantly, what had she betrayed of her nature while she
slept?
Her body ached, and she wished she could forget the disasters of
the previous night. She wished she could forget the Sabir son.
She also wished she could get past Dùghall without waking
him so that she could get something to eat before she had to answer
a lot of questions. She was ravenous her body demanded a
price for its Shifting, for its rapid healing and tremendous
strength and speed. It demanded food in enormous quantities; if it
didnt get what it needed, it would drive her into despair,
and then into a deadly, uncontrollable rage. The longer she waited
to eat, the more out of control her moods would become. But the
instant she opened one eye to survey the room, Dùghall woke as
if hed been slapped. His snore became a snort, his eyes flew
open in bewilderment, and he shot upright, gasping.
And there went any hope of breakfast before the interrogation
she was sure to face. She said, Good morning, Uncle,
and tried her best to look pleasant.
He required a moment before he remembered where he was and how
he had come to be there. Kait could see the information filtering
out of the dreamworld hed inhabited and into his eyes, and
she saw pleasure leave him by degrees, replaced by . . .
what? Worry? Fear? Anger? Whatever she saw there vanished beneath
the diplomats mask of calm before she could identify it.
What happened? he asked.
How much did she dare tell him? Dùghall wasnt the
senior ambassador in Halles. He was peripheral to the embassy
itself he was important, certainly; in the islands where the
Galweighs harvested their meager supplies of caberra, the natives
worshiped Dùghall as a god and wouldnt deal with anyone
else. He had power and prestige, and he represented the Family at
the moment as a respected elder statesman. But he was not the head
of the Halles embassy, and thus he would not be the man who would
decide what to do about the Dokteeraks and the Sabirs. If she
followed protocol, she would tell Dùghall she couldnt
discuss the issue, and she would go upstairs to speak to Eldon
Galweigh, to whom responsibility for the decisions would fall. But
to Eldon Galweigh, she was a junior diplomat of no real importance.
To Dùghall Draclas, she was a beloved niece and the young
woman hed sponsored into the diplomatic service. And Uncle
Dùghall would be less inclined, she thought, to pursue
difficult questions. So she said, First, I ran into
conspiracy.
He raised an eyebrow. The Sabirs and the
Dokteeraks.
Kait should have been relieved that the plot had already fallen
into the hands of those capable of dealing with it, but she was
perversely disappointed. Shed hoped that, by telling the
Family what shed discovered and by thus saving them from
betrayal and defeat, she could expiate the sin of desiring the
Sabir Karnee. She closed her eyes. You already
knew.
I recognized one of the Sabirs being led through the midst
of the Naming Day party by an irate houseman. I have no idea what
he was doing there.
Kait met his eyes and told him. I know.
She reeled off the conversation shed heard between the
Dokteerak paraglese and his servant.
When she finished, Dùghall sat for a moment staring at her,
his face pale and his lips and knuckles white. At last he said,
Good gods, girl, thats a nightmare. They plan an attack
during the wedding itself? Actual battle? I had thought at very
worst the damned Sabirs were attempting to curry favor
perhaps arrange a marriage of their own to weaken our
alliance. He looked down at the backs of his hands for the
longest time. Then, quietly, he said, If I can verify this,
you will have obtained valuable information, Kait-cha. Tell me, how
did you come by it?
Kait had given the answer to that question plenty of thought as
she made her way home the night before. Shed already fixed
her lie firmly in her mind. I felt ill, and sent Tippa to the
carriage ahead of me. I told her to go ahead home she was
flirting with three Gyru-nalle princes and somehow had managed to
get herself drunk, and I didnt see any sign of the chaperones
who were supposed to be with her. I wanted her out of the Dokteerak
House before she did something stupid. As it was, Im afraid
it was a near thing.
Ive . . . heard . . . from the
princes already. Last night. Some colleagues of theirs on the
Dokteerak staff drugged both chaperones and dragged them off,
intending to make both women look like theyd indulged in too
much of the Dokteeraks wine and had been sporting with some
of the concubines that were on hand for the evening entertainment.
They hoped to humiliate our Family. He waved her on.
Weve already dealt with that. Continue.
She glanced at him sidelong, curious. In Tippas condition
the night before, she would have been able to tell him little that
would have been useful; considering that, Kait found herself
wondering if perhaps Dùghalls methods of acquiring
information were as unconventional as her own. How had he known to
go after the three princes? How had he managed to locate them? She
leaned against the stone wall, pulled her blankets up around her
shoulders, and said, I went down a side corridor, thinking I
might find a fountain from which to draw a drink of water. I became
dizzy, and leaned against a statue, and when the dizziness passed,
I realized that I heard voices. I listened to what they were
saying; I moved behind the statue to hide when I found out what
they discussed was of interest to us. When the paraglese left, I
saw him go. She closed her eyes, remembering the pale, squat
man who strode down the corridor past her, so close that she could
feel the breeze when he passed. Hed looked remarkably like a
toad, she realized. She glanced at her uncle. He ordered a
visiting paraglese in from the Territories killed to give himself
an excuse for leaving his party.
Dùghall frowned, and for a moment she wondered what
shed said wrong. But he said, Damnall. Thats one
confirmation of your story. One of our runners came to the embassy
not long after Tippa arrived to inform us that the paraglese
Idrogar Pendat from Old Jirin died of a sudden fever last night. It
doesnt fill me with joy to discover his death was
. . . convenient.
You dont seem surprised.
His thin, humorless smile wasnt comforting. Im
not. Pendat assumed that he would be welcomed into the
Dokteeraks House and kept safe because he was among his own
Family. But new faces in any House create opportunities for many
sorts of change, and if the visitor isnt careful, he often
finds himself a pawn in anothers game. Sometimes a dead
pawn.
But he was Family. To Kait, Family was
sacred.
Dùghall said, Not all Families are like ours,
Kait-cha.
Kait nodded. Shed known the Sabirs were evil, and she
hadnt liked the Dokteeraks much when shed been
introduced to them. She still found it difficult, though, to
reconcile her hazy images of evil with the reality of a man
murdering one of his own Family to provide a convenient excuse for
missing a party. That gave a face to the word evil that
she would never have imagined on her own.
She tried to block out her hunger by concentrating on
Dùghall. She knew she needed to stay on her guard. But the
aftereffects of Karnee Shift would not be denied; she wanted food.
Food. Dùghall seemed to blur in front of her eyes and his
voice came from far away, as if he spoke from the other side of a
long field.
What happened to you on the way home? he asked.
I couldnt help but notice the blood on your legs and
hand and face when I came in.
Her hands flew to her face and she felt herself flushing.
I thought Id washed it all off.
He nodded. So what happened?
She hadnt had time to come up with a good lie for that.
I was . . . attacked, she said. While I
walked home. Thieves. She shrugged. I was lucky
I cut one with the dagger Id hidden in my skirt when he
threatened me, and just then a stranger came along and chased off
the others. I got a little bloody, but I was fortunate.
You were indeed. The streets of this city are dangerous.
You could have had much worse happen.
She nodded solemnly and said nothing.
If I can confirm the parts of your information that we
havent verified yet, Ill pass it on to Eldon, he
was saying. She continued to nod, thinking more of what she might
find to eat than of his words. But what he said next brought her
attention back to the present. Meanwhile, well have to
make an appearance at the Celebration of Names today. The
Dokteeraks have a parade and some sort of festival in the main city
square. I want you to come along you did a fine job of
protecting Tippa last night, but even more than that, you managed
to be in the right place at the right time to get information that
your Family desperately needed. I never attribute opportunities of
that sort entirely to luck. There is always some skill involved.
Perhaps youll be fortunate again today. Ill see that
you get a commendation for your work last night, by the way.
He studied the backs of his hands. Perhaps even a
posting. He glanced up, noted the delight in her eyes, and
smiled. No promises on the posting, though, Kait. Youre
very junior.
I understand.
He added, But about the celebration, be ready to leave by
Stura. The ceremony begins at Duea, and were to have places
alongside the Dokteerak Family atop their old ruin of a
tower.
Kait wondered if shed heard her uncle correctly.
Theyre plotting to kill us all, and were going to
sit in their damned tower with them and pretend to enjoy
their festival?
Dùghall smiled broadly. Indeed, we are going to go
and have a marvelous time. Further, were going to be
understanding and magnanimous about the unfortunate situation last
night with Tippa and the princes; our chaperone failed as badly as
theirs at protecting her, after all, and in these days reliable
help is hard to find. His eyes narrowed and something lethal
crept into his smile. And while we play the fool, our people
here in the embassy will be making sure that their plot against us
turns around and bites them instead.
He chuckled, shook his head as if the whole thing amused him,
then rose to leave. Dont wear anything orange. These
Baltos think its an unlucky color the first month of the new
year. You havent eaten yet, of course.
No. Not anything.
Youre hungry?
Ravenous.
Dùghall opened her door, then turned again and said,
Youll need to hurry. No time to go to the kitchen.
Ill have the staff bring something up for you.
If they dont bring me enough, Ill devour
whoever carries the food into the room, she said, and perhaps
some edge of her hunger crept into her voice, for Dùghall
looked at her oddly. Tell them to bring me something meaty.
And not that spiced meat they love so much here.
He laughed. All grown up and you still hate spices?
Ill just tell them to trot a whole lamb up to your room
you can have that as plain as youd like.
Still laughing, Dùghall stepped out the door and closed it
behind him, then poked his head back in. His face still wore its
merry smile, and Kait grinned at him. Forget
something?
Nothing vital. How did you get into your room last
night?
She wasnt thinking clearly. Hunger had dulled her
reactions. Worse, the question took her completely by surprise and
his tone was so casual that she didnt sense the danger in it.
She glanced at the window through which shed climbed before
she could stop herself. The logical lie came an instant too late,
but she tried it. I came in through the front door, of
course, she said, but Dùghalls smile had vanished
so quickly and so totally that she realized hed been acting
when he asked how shed come in that hed been
planning all along to ask that question, and that he had delayed
asking her so that she would relax. So that she would think he had
forgotten that she had come in without being seen or checked in at
the gate.
He ignored her lie; instead, he came back into her room.
Strolled to the window. Pushed open the shutters and leaned out and
stared down at the ground. Her room was three stories up, and
though the stone was unpolished, it offered no visible handholds.
She knew what he saw, and she knew that a human woman could not
have climbed up the wall and in that window. When he pulled the
shutters closed and turned to face her, she couldnt begin to
guess the meaning of the look on his face.
Well talk later, you and I, he said. No trace
of his previous good humor appeared on his face. But he didnt
look angry, either. She couldnt read him at all.
Meanwhile, eat and get ready to accompany me to the
Celebration of Names.
This time when he left the room, he didnt return. She
stared at the window, hating the stupidity of her response and
wondering if she had, with that single thoughtless glance,
destroyed her chances in the Galweigh diplomatic corps
. . . if she had betrayed herself . . .
Or worse, if she had betrayed her parents and sisters and
brothers.
* * *
Dùghall hurried toward his room, lost in thought. Kait
presented mysteries within mysteries, and he would have to take
whatever time was required to divine the secrets she kept hidden.
The Family couldnt entrust its diplomacy to anyone who kept
secrets from it agents with secrets gave enemies easy tools
for blackmail.
Whatever Kait was hiding, however, appeared potentially useful.
If all her information about the Sabirs and the Dokteeraks checked
out, shed won the gold ball in the spying game, and he
wondered how she had really done it. Mind-magic? Some form of
invisibility? Access to an artifact that gave her new talents?
Whatever shed done, shed be the best diplomat the
Family had ever had if she could do it again.
Maybe shed learned how to fly. That had been an impossible
bit of wall shed gone up and with the guards doubled
and on alert, he thought the invisibility theory gained another
point in its favor, too.
Further, he didnt believe for a moment her tale of a minor
attack by thieves and a rescue by a stranger. First, shed had
long scars on her leg and her hand, and blood all over her; a minor
attack would have done less damage. Second, she hadnt managed
to meet his eyes with confidence while she told him the story. If
she was going to survive as a diplomat, he would have to teach her
some of the finer points of effective lying.
Kaits secrets could wait, though, until he made sure that
her information was sound. If the business between the Sabirs and
the Dokteeraks proved to be true, she would be worth any time she
took.
Dùghall went directly from Kaits room to his own, and
once there made a show of stripping off his morning clothes and
putting on the broad black silk pantaloons and elaborate red silk
brocade robe that were his official garments as chief Galweigh
ambassador in the Imumbarra Isles. He knew he was being watched
someone always watched his room from the hidden panel along
the north wall. Hed discovered that the first night, and had
pretended to remain oblivious. Knowing for certain that a spy was
watching was almost as useful as knowing one wasnt.
Once dressed, he opened one of the half-dozen wig boxes he had
in the room, pulled out an elaborately braided wig, and settled it
on his head. From another box he pulled out the spike-adorned
headdress that would hold the wig in place. He settled the
headdress in place so that the rib bearing the seven spikes ran
from ear to ear, wiggled it a bit to be sure it was firmly on, then
drew out the tuft of beaded feathers that fit into the tip of each
spike and slipped them into their sockets.
Hed not intended to go so formally attired to what was
basically a semiformal event, but the wig, the headdress, and the
brocade robe all had special characteristics about them that suited
his purposes at the moment, and the spy would think it odd if he
donned them, then took them back off again before going
anywhere.
They were the clothes hed prepared before he left the
islands to attend this wedding. The brocade robe was lined with
hidden pockets, and each of those pockets carried in it a packet of
powders useful for the casting of spells, or a talisman already
spelled for a specific purpose. He slid a hand into what looked
like a decorative slit and felt along the beads embroidered just
beneath the edge for a particular pattern. When he found it, he
pulled out the silk bag tucked into the pocket beside it.
He opened the drawstring on the bag and pulled out a charming
gold brooch the design was a playful fox kit done in
intaglio, surrounded by the seven ruby stars that stood for the
seven major islands of the Imumbarra Isles, on a background of
hundreds of tiny incised stars indicating the uncounted lesser
islands. It was a very good copy of an official piece of jewelry,
and the spell it bore had cost him a solid week of work, and more
than a little of his own blood.
He affixed it to the central panel of his robe, and felt the
wall of magic hed created come to life. He smiled. The spy
sitting on the other side of that cunning peephole
would now see nothing more than what hed been seeing and what
he expected to see: a man getting ready to go to an important
function. Dùghalls double would appear to putter around
the room, riffling through documents, perhaps writing one of the
endless correspondences that made up diplomatic life, but doing
nothing noteworthy. Dùghall, meanwhile, went to another wig
box, lifted the wig from the stand it sat on, and took the stand,
dumping the wig back in the box. The stand, a head-shaped bit of
carved wood, came apart in his hands when he moved a carefully
disguised slider in the right jaw to expose a hidden recess, and
pressed fingers simultaneously into that recess and against the
left ear.
Hed hidden his divining tools inside: a bowl and stand for
catching blood, a mirror for the flames, two powder brushes, sulfur
sticks and warding powders, and a bloodletting kit hed
designed himself after wearying of the pain he got when cutting
himself with even the best knife. He sat cross-legged on the floor
and set the divining tools up, then fixed one of the hollow thorns
into the glass vial, wrapped a rubber tourniquet around his
forearm, and plunged the thorn into the first vein that rose to the
surface, wincing as he did. Still not the most comfortable of
methods, but infinitely preferable to the knife.
Blood spurted through the thorn into the bowl. When it covered
the bottom, he marked the first circle of his blood on the mirror,
letting it drip out in a neat, perfectly narrow line from the tip
of the thorn. Then he sprinkled the warding powders into the cup,
struck one of the sulfur sticks to make a flame, and lit the
powders. While they burned, he hurried through his opening
incantation with the speed of long practice.
A sympathetic fire sprang up along the circle of blood, and he
drew a glyph within it that indicated the past. Then he murmured
the name of the Dokteerak paraglese, and focused on the last time
he saw the man at the party the night before. Dùghall dripped
a little blood onto the mirror every time the flame began to burn
low; he watched as the enemy paraglese talked with the Sabir
emissary about his Familys destruction. He tried to follow
the Sabir emissary back through the streets of Halles to wherever
he was hiding, but magic blocked him from seeing the man once he
was well away from the Dokteerak House.
It didnt really matter. What mattered was that hed
confirmed every word of what Kait had told him. The Dokteeraks and
the Sabirs were in alliance, and the Galweighs were their
target.
Chapter 7
Stolen horses made for uncomfortable riding. Hasmal
cursed every ill-gaited strike of the beasts hooves on the
stone road, and every nervous bolt at the sudden eruption of birds
from shrubs or children from hovels. The horse, he had no doubt,
belonged to none other than Brethwan, the Iberan god of celibacy
and sex, of pleasure and pain, and of life and death and was
a harbinger of pain and death, and probably, if the state of his
testicles was any indication, of long-term celibacy. Hasmals
sores had sores, and he hurt so much that taking short breaks to
walk on the ground and lead the accursed animal no longer gave him
any relief.
Which would teach him to live in a country watched over by
Iberish gods, instead of the good Hmoth gods a man knew he could
depend on. Would Vodor Imrish have permitted him to steal such a
foul beast? No, no, and never.
Hasmal intended to get himself to someplace where the gods had a
sense of decency about them where he didnt constantly
have the feeling that they were laughing at him or playing clever
tricks at his expense. He heard the humans who still hung on in the
Strithian lands had congenial gods, if amoral . . . but
perhaps gods who approved of thieving and whoring wouldnt
look with too cold an eye on a Falcon, even one so far from where
he belonged. So he would go to Strithia, then a place enough
like another world to suit his needs, yet still within his reach. A
hundred leagues southeast to Costan Selvira, he could book working
passage aboard the first ship leaving harbor for Brelst. Once in
Brelst, he could sign himself aboard a riverboat going up the
Emjosi River; traveling upriver, the boatmen always needed extra
hands. Had he wanted to travel downriver, he would have had to pay
passage, so luck favored his enterprise already. The less a thing
cost, the more dearly Hasmal loved it, and the better he considered
the omens regarding it.
And as soon as he was across the border into Strithia, hed
be safe. The woman who was his doom was Familied, he would bet his
life. He was betting his life. She was probably Galweigh, if
hed read the woven pattern of her silk dress right, and she
certainly stood well up the ladder of social rank. She
wouldnt throw all that away by crossing the Strithian border
to come after him.
Thus engaged in his thoughts, he allowed himself to forget the
pain his razor-backed mount caused him; more importantly, he
allowed himself to forget that he rode the Shatalles Forest Road.
The former might have been a blessing, but the latter nearly became
his death.
He trotted the execrable excuse for a horse around a sharp curve
in the road, and suddenly men dropped out of the trees that tangled
their branches across the road like a canopy and the men
held knives and wore rags and desperate expressions. His horse
panicked and reared. Hasmal, because he was a poor rider and
inexperienced, fell to the road. And just like that, a knife grazed
his throat and all he could do while his horse galloped back the
way it had come was sit very still, trying hard not to breathe too
deeply.
Your money, the man with the knife at his throat
demanded.
I have none, Hasmal said.
Several of the thieves laughed, and one said, You ride a
horse, dont you? Your clothes are new and very fine,
aint they?
And the thief with the knife at his throat said again,
Your money.
Hasmal swallowed hard, wishing he had taken the time to build a
shield of nonseeing around himself before he left Halles but
that would have taken hours, and she might have come for him
before then. For that matter, he should have made himself a
permanent shield talisman long ago . . . but he had
always had tomorrow for such luxuries, and too many things to do
today. So the talisman had gone unmade, and now he stood in need
and helpless.
I swear, he said, I swear on my own soul that
I have no money. Not so much as a dak. And he thought of the
bit of money hed had, and of his precious magical supplies
and his book, and his other clothes, all of it at that moment
galloping away on the back of the damned horse. I stole the
horse, he said in a burst of honesty, then added an inspired
lie. And the clothes, too.
The men laughed at him, and the one with the knife at his throat
said, He thinks hes hid it too good for us. Strip him
well find it soon enough.
Four thieves held his arms and four his legs, and three more
began pawing at his clothes. The one with the knife at
Hasmals throat snarled, Dont tear his clothes,
you pigs. I want them. Then he leaned in close to Hasmal and
said, Even if you swallowed your money, Ill find
it. His smile was evil.
Hasmal sweated and shook. He had no chance of winning free of
the thieves, no matter how hard he fought. They held him tightly
and they didnt relax their guard or assume that because they
outnumbered him he wouldnt fight. They were careful and
cagey, and acted with a unison and a precision that spoke of long
practice at their work. They were going to find out he had nothing
on him, and then they were going to gut him to see if hed
swallowed his gold as some men were said to do before setting out
over dangerous roads. And when they discovered he really did have
nothing, the truth would come too late to benefit him.
One of the thieves finished going through his clothing.
Nothing on him.
I reckon Ill have to gut you, then. The men
who held Hasmal tightened their grips, and Hasmal stiffened and
squinched his eyes shut.
Everything I had in the world took off with that damned
horse, he gasped. He expected the sharp fire of the knife in
his belly at any instant, but nothing happened. He cautiously
opened one eye and found all the thieves staring at him.
The one who had been on the point of gutting him said, You
piss-brained idiot. Everything you had was on the horse?
Everything? What were you going to do if you were
thrown?
Hasmal said, I didnt know the damned things were so
hard to ride.
The thieves guffawed then, and their leader shook his head and
said, I almost believe you now . . . almost
. . . cause who else would be so stupid that he
wouldnt keep hisself anything in case of he lost his horse,
excepting a man who never had hisself a horse?
One of the other thieves said, Look at the raw spots on
his legs. Looks to me like he really aint never rid a horse
before.
Hasmal felt a moment of hope. He was naked, he had nothing, but
if they didnt kill him, he might always find clothes to steal
and food to eat and a place to sleep, and, given time and a few
materials, he could spell himself some protection, find work
. . .
But his hope died at birth. Still want to gut him?
another one asked, and the leader said, For what? To get
blood all over my new clothes? Just hang him and be done.
Why hang me? Hasmal asked. Just let me go. You
dont need to hang me.
And let you go and tell a mess of guardsmen where we met
you? Or how many of us they might catch out, if they came looking?
I reckon not. Well stretch your neck until you wont
tell anyone anything. Thatll do for our needs. He
turned to his men. Tie him and bring him.
Bring me? Hasmal kept hoping that something might
break his way; if they werent going to hang him right away,
perhaps he would get a chance to escape.
If we strung you beside the road, the leader said in
a surprisingly patient voice, wed as well as tell the
roadsmen this was where we was. Well take you into the woods
a ways and do you there. His voice said, No hard feelings;
this is just the job.
Hasmal couldnt find it in himself to be understanding.
They walked a long way, dragging Hasmal between them at
one point, one of them explained without being asked that they had
to walk so far because if the smell blew out to the road, that
could sometimes bring down the authorities, too. He didnt say
the smell of the corpse, but he didnt need to.
Hasmal realized that he was a walking dead man. He sagged at
last, and quit hoping for an opportunity to present itself. He
allowed himself to be dragged forward. He was sure he had ceased
caring. Then he heard singing. He thought at first he heard the
voices of the karae, prematurely beginning the dirges that
would accompany him into the Darkland; however, the karae
only sang into the ears of the dead, never the living, and several
of the thieves had started at the sound.
Boesels? someone whispered.
Boesels were supposed to be great hairy man-eating forest
creatures that lured travelers to their deaths by pretending to be
humans. Hasmal wouldnt swear that no such creatures existed
after all, he had seen stranger things with his own eyes
but he had never heard of one being taken in civilized
lands. And hed never heard of them singing.
Hunters, I think, someone else suggested, keeping
his voice down, too.
But the refrain of the song reached them then, and with it the
sweet minor-key piping of a stick-flute.
Khaadamu, khaadamas, merikaas cheddae
Allelola vo saddee.
Emas avesamas betorru faeddro
Komosum khaadamu zhee.
Its not either, the leader said. He grinned
like a leopard come upon unguarded goats. Thats Gyrus,
by Coz, and the first goddamned bit of luck weve had
all day.
Luck for the thieves half-luck for Hasmal. The song was
haunting, the singers voice a rich and vibrant baritone that
ached with pain and loss, but the only way Hasmal could have
regretted hearing it more would have been had the thieves already
hauled him by his neck up into a tree when it started. He knew at
the same time that he had been granted both a possible reprieve
from death and a likely sentence in hell.
When the thief had said
Gyrus, hed meant
Gyru-nalles: the notorious Gyru-nalles, members of an entire race
devoted to thievery of a high and organized order; known from the
ends of Ibera to beyond as traders of horses and dogs and stones
and rare metals; reputed as liars and pickpockets who claimed to
have once been kings of all Ibera; and most importantly, whispered
in the dark of night and behind the safety of barred doors as
stealers of children and young women and handsome boys, as slavers
with no scruples about where they acquired their human merchandise
and no quibbles about where they sold it, or for what purpose. Men
who dealt with the Gyru-nalles unlicensed buyers who would
buy unpapered, untaxed slaves would do so, Hasmal thought,
only because they wanted their slaves disposable. Hasmal knew worse
deaths existed than hanging, and were he sold into the ungentle
care of the Gyrus, he thought himself likely to meet one of those
deaths at firsthand.
Not that he had any choice in the matter. The thieves dragged
him forward again, and at a harder pace than before, and the leader
began to whistle: a long, falling note, two short, sharp rising
notes, and a trill. He repeated the call three times more as they
hurried forward, and the fourth time added a bit of what sounded
like birdsong, though Hasmal was city bred and couldnt begin
to guess what bird that call might have imitated. When the thief
fell silent, from the trees around them Hasmal heard movement where
he had heard nothing before. A man stepped out from behind an
enormous ficus he was pale-skinned, blotchily freckled, and
light-eyed. Red hair in hundreds of tight braids hung to his waist,
and he wore his mustache braided, too, and tipped with gold beads.
He smiled and gold teeth flashed in the forest gloom. He was a
Gyru-nalle for sure. Hasmal would have wept if he hadnt
thought doing so would make things worse for him. None of the other
Gyrus who surrounded them stepped into view, but Hasmal knew they
were there. And that they had arrows pointed straight at his
kidneys, no doubt.
The Gyru hugged the leader of the thieves and said,
Tra
metakchme, baverras ama tallarra ahaava?
The leader laughed and clapped the Gyru on the back.
Allemu kheetorras sammes faen zeorrae llosadee, vo emu ave.
Haee tahafa khaarramas salleddro. He tipped his chin
toward Hasmal.
Tho fegrro awomas choto?
Hettu!
Hasmal had caught a fair amount of that exchange Gyrus
traded antiquities, and hed been hearing them selling to his
father since he was old enough to walk. Shombe was not a tongue
Hasmal ever thought he would hear while he was the merchandise
being discussed, but then life was like that. The Gyru had said,
roughly, Well met, you hoary bastard, and what have you
brought to trade me? And the thief, in dreadful pidgin
Shombe, had answered, My brother, I found the most marvelous
slave wandering on the road, and no one to claim him. So what will
you give me? Come and lets trade.
The Gyru sauntered over and stared down at Hasmal, and his
eyebrows rose and his lips pursed. He walked around Hasmal,
studying him from all angles, came back and crouched in front of
him, snorted with disgust, and subjected Hasmal to the sort of
concentrated visual inspection that would have made a stallion
blush. At last he stood and turned to the thief. Still in Shombe,
he said, Well, he isnt bad, I suppose. He has some
muscle to him. I cant sell him to the dowagers, though,
because hes hung like a gnat, and the boy-market wont
care much for him, either, for the same reason. The thieves
giggled and laughter echoed from the trees where the Gyrus
allies hid. About the best I can hope for is to sell him as a
laborer, and those dont go for much.
The thieves leader glanced over at Hasmal. He says
he likes you, he said. He says if you futter any women,
they will still be virgins afterward. He thinks owning you might
give him a market in miracle babies.
Hasmal didnt see any reason to let anyone know he knew
what the Gyru had actually said. In Iberan, he replied,
Lucky, then, that no one is trying to sell you. I dont
imagine dickless eunuchs would be worth anything to that
market.
The head thief glared at him, though the other thieves
and a few of the Gyrus laughed. The head thief turned his
back on Hasmal and said, Give me eight ros?
The braid-haired Gyru rolled his eyes and held up two fingers.
I could see my way to give you two.
That eats donkey dung. I want seven anyway, for all my
trouble in getting him here.
The Gyrus laughed again and the one who bargained shook his
head. You want seven ros for that?
Phtttt! Ill
give you four, but Ill be lucky to sell him for
that.
The thief raised his eyebrows. Maybe miracle babies
aint worth much right now, he said to Hasmal in Iberan.
He wants you cheap. Then in Shombe to the Gyru,
Ill take six ros . . . and youre
stealing my eyes and the food from my mouth to get him for a
bargain like that.
The Gyru grinned. I cant steal what you dont
own. You can be lucky we dont take the lot of you and sell
you all I think that one is more a freeman than any of the
rest of you. But because I like you and because weve done
some business before, Ill buy your problem from you. For four
and a half ros. No more.
The thief flushed and frowned, and suddenly no one was laughing.
He stood there for a moment looking like a man who wanted to fight,
but with all of the Gyrus men still hidden in the trees, he
would have been a fool to start anything. At last he shrugged and
said in Shombe, Yeah. Ill take your four and a half
ros. He added in Pethca, one of the backcountry dialects of
Iberan, And I hope your balls rot off, you stinking
whoreson.
No flash of comprehension showed in the Gyrus eyes. He
opened a small leather purse that hung at his waist and with a
smile counted out four silver ros and two small coppers. He dropped
the coins into the leaders outstretched hand, bowed slightly
to all the thieves, and, still smiling, beckoned Hasmal to follow
him. The thieves whod dragged him into the woods let him
go.
For only an instant, Hasmal considered running. But in the trees
above him and from the thick underbrush all around him, he heard
the soft murmurs and faint movements of the Gyrus friends. He
felt their stares, and he could almost feel their arrows piercing
his body as he fled. Better to live, he thought, for tomorrow may
bring freedom better to live a hard life than to die an easy
death. He stumbled a bit his hands bound behind him threw
off his balance, and his nakedness made fighting his way through
the thorns and scrub brush and needle-edged palmettos more of an
adventure than any man deserved.
He followed, wishing that he were a stronger man, or a faster or
a braver one; wishing that he might suddenly be set free by a
miracle or an act of the gods, knowing that he wouldnt.
He had only one pleasant thought that he could hold on to. At
least he was well away from the woman who would have been his
doom.
Chapter 8
The great square of Halles fluttered with ribbons and
pennants and jangled with tambourines and mamboors and cymbals and
gongs. The thronging lower classes danced in long, snaking lines up
the broad main avenue toward the ancient obsidian tower in which
the Dokteerak Family and this year the members of the
Galweigh wedding party who had already arrived in Halles
waited and watched. Kait thought the tower was interesting; it was
certainly an artifact in that it predated the Dokteeraks and most,
if not all, of the other structures in Halles, but no one would
mistake it as the work of the Ancients. Where their structures,
built almost entirely of white stone-of-Ancients, soared in
delicate arches and pinnacles and bore no designs on their smooth,
translucent surfaces, the Halles tower had been built out of black
marble, with each stone dressed to fit perfectly against the rest
and the topmost stones carved into fantastically hideous winged
monsters. Time had marred them and worn some of the detail from
them, but the pocks and moss only accented their terrible teeth and
the mad expressions in their eyes. Who had built the tower? Kait
looked down at the rabble below and thought their ancestors were
unlikely candidates.
The crawling sense of blindly seeking evil that had set Kait on
edge at the party the night before had, if anything, grown
stronger. The entire city reeked of it. But her senses were dulled
and the tension of pending Shift had been sated, and she was able
to push the awareness of that evil to a dark corner of her mind,
where she could ignore it. Having eaten a huge meal before she left
the embassy, Kait wanted nothing more than to sleep; the
inescapable weariness that always overcame her after she Shifted
held her in its unrelenting grasp. But she had to stay awake;
further, she had to be charming when what she wanted most was to
rip out the throats of the lying Dokteerak bastards who surrounded
her.
The paraglese, Branard Dokteerak, short and fat, with his long
hair greased and twisted into beribboned ropes, walked over and
leaned on the balcony next to Kait and didnt attempt to hide
the fact that he was looking down the neckline of her dress to see
her breasts. She kept her irritation hidden after all, her
purpose in attending the ceremony and wearing the revealing dress
and associating with the lying, double-crossing connivers was to
allay suspicion and to give her Family time to come up with a
suitable revenge. Nevertheless, the paraglese was a loathsome toad
and had Kait been able to do it without causing an incident, she
would have hurt him.
Lovely girl, he said, smiling up at her.
Youre called Kait-ayarenne, arent you? Daughter
of Strahan Galweigh, if Im not mistaken.
Kait hoped she appeared sufficiently flattered by his attention.
I am, she said, though I must admit Im
surprised that you heard my name mentioned at all. Im far too
junior a diplomat to have been brought to your attention by my
Family.
And far too exquisite a creature to have escaped my
eye. His smile stretched, making his resemblance to a toad
startlingly exact. I confess that it wasnt in your role
as diplomat that I heard your name. I saw you at my party last
night, and thought that you looked very lovely, and I asked one of
your people who you were so that I might come over and make your
acquaintance. His smile vanished, and he shook his head, eyes
suddenly downcast. Unfortunately, before I could find a
mutual acquaintance who could introduce us, I was called away to
attend to a dear cousin who was taken ill
Idrogar Pendat? I heard that he died last night.
Sadly, you heard right. His death came unexpectedly
he was a strong man, and in the prime of life, and though he had
been ill, no one realized how terribly near death he was. My
physick says he had some weakness in his heart, and that the heat
and the dampness of the air here became too much for him.
I grieve with you in your time of loss, and commend your
cousins spirit to Lodan that she may treat him with
kindness, Kait said. That was the expected formula; she
managed to say it as though she really meant it, however. She
discovered to her amazement that she was enjoying the interchange;
not speaking to the paraglese as such, because he disgusted her,
but knowing the truth behind the lies that he told her and
pretending that she didnt, and acting a part that made her
someone other than who she was in order to deceive him. Unlike her
lifelong charade to be human, she shared this charade with everyone
around her. All of the people atop the tower were pretending
well, with the possible exception of Tippa, but Tippa was an idiot.
Sweet, but an idiot.
For Kait, the conversation with the paraglese was a revelation.
The creation of a Kait that did not exist the living lie
that had made most of her existence a study in guilt now
served a purpose. Through the years of pretense she had learned to
act, and acting was part of diplomacy. And through diplomacy she
could serve her Family and bring honor to the Galweigh name.
The paraglese smiled again, but sadly. You are as kind as
you are beautiful. Which makes me all the sadder that when I
returned to my party, I discovered you had already gone.
She nodded, and conveyed disappointment of her own. The
regrets are mine. But I had no choice. A few of your guests were
bothering my cousin Tippa, as you have no doubt heard. I only
attended the party as her companion I had no choice but to
take her home.
For one unguarded instant, she saw shock in his eyes. He hid it
quickly with another oily smile. The three guests have been
apprehended, and are now in our care. The Gyru-nalles have plotted
against the Families for years; this time, however, they were
careless enough to get caught. All three of those so-called princes
are to be executed today as part of our entertainment. The insult
to your cousin my future daughter cannot be
tolerated. He gave her a long, thoughtful look and added,
But I had no idea you were the one who took her home. The
men, when we . . . ah, questioned them . . .
they mentioned a terrifying Galleech of a woman who frightened them
away from dear Tippa, but neither I nor anyone else could recall
such a woman at the party. And seeing you now, I fail to see any
resemblance to the Galleech.
The Galleech was one of the five Furies, goddesses who predated
Iberism she was blue-skinned and fang-toothed, with ruby
eyes that shot fire that consumed her enemies. She strode through
the myths of Ibera like a one-woman plague, laying waste to all
that enraged her.
Kait said, Id hardly compare myself to the Galleech,
though I do have a bit of a temper.
The paraglese responded with a cocked eyebrow and a half-smile.
Evidently. He chatted only an instant more, then
excused himself to visit with other guests.
Bemused, Kait watched him go. When he found out she was the one
who stood down the three princes, the musky scent of attraction he
had emanated while talking to her had vanished, replaced by a faint
sweat stink of fear. Interesting. She wondered what the men had
seen and what they had said that would create such a response in
him.
Down in the square, the tail end of the parade came into view,
and the peasants who lined both sides of the avenue began to cheer.
Easily a hundred parnissas in the purple robes that they alone
could wear on the day after Theramisday marched forward. On their
shoulders the foremost carried a litter, and in the litter sat a
woman wrapped all in cloth of gold. The new carais of Halles, the
woman who had by oracle and lottery named the citys new year,
waved to the cheering hordes. Kait leaned forward on the
balustrade, interested in spite of herself. The choices of the gods
in picking their caraisi never ceased to be surprising.
This woman appeared to be tiny and ancient.
Beside Kait, someone chuckled. Wait until you hear what
she named the year.
She turned to find Calmet Dokteerak, who was to be her
cousins husband within a week, standing at her shoulder. He
was as clearly Baltos with his white hair and ice-blue eyes
and flat face and short, stocky body as Kait, tallish and
slender and dark of hair, and eye, was Zaith. He didnt yet
look like a toad, but Kait could see signs that he would one day. A
perfect young copy of his father. Kait tried to imagine herself
married to such a man to seal an alliance, and she had to swallow
her revulsion. Thank all the gods that her branch of the Family
lacked the status to make such marriages an issue.
She smiled. Were almost Family already. You
wouldnt keep me in suspense, would you?
He winked at her. I think I could be convinced to tell you
. . . if you gave me a little kiss. Seeing as we are
almost Family.
Like father, like son. The other Kait, the dangerous Kait,
stirred in her sleep, dreaming of the slaughter and destruction of
men who deserved it. The Kait who had won her place as a diplomat,
however, smiled broadly and said, I would have given you a
kiss without the excuse. I think my cousin is a very lucky
woman. She leaned toward him and gave him a brief but
passionate kiss on the lips.
He flushed an amazing shade of red and rewarded her with a smile
that almost made him likable. Almost, but not quite. The new
carais is a pig farmer, he said, staring down at the
procession that wended its way ever closer. And she named the
year My Glorious, Enormously Fat Pig Abramaknar.
Kaits laugh was genuine. Oh, no! A pig year.
Thats embarrassing . . . She flashed a wicked
grin at him and said, But we had worse once.
He had regained his composure. Do tell.
Four years ago a girl of fifteen became our carais. On the
day she added her yearname to the lottery, shed had a fight
with her brother. Her name was so terrible our family parnissa said
all the parnissas lobbied the oracle to see if they might discard
the name and draw out another. But of course they
couldnt.
Really. Ive never heard of parnissas wanting to
change a name before. What was it?
Now we just call the year Miracle Sword, but his
full name was My Shit-Breathed Brother Gamals Penis, Which
He Has Named Miracle Sword, and Which I Hope Turns Green and Falls
Off Because Gamal Is an Asshole.
Calmet giggled and his ears turned red. I can see where
they would want to change that yes.
That isnt the worst of it. The parnissas had a
terrible time deciding which god ruled over the year. They finally
loaded him off on poor Brethwan in his dark aspect, and decided he
was to be an ill-omened year. We were all glad when he passed, not
least of all the carais. She got tired of being linked in
everyones mind with the omens and Brethwan-Dark and her
brothers penis. Probably especially that last.
I should think so, Calmet said vehemently. At
least with a nice fat pig, you know the omens will be
good.
Below, the parnissas had finished their instructions to the new
carais. Now the crowd began to chant, first softly, then louder and
louder. Kait caught what they were saying and winced. They shouted,
Bring them out! Bring them out! Traditionally, on the
day after Naming Day, the parnissas executed criminals in public as
a symbolic sacrifice of evil, to destroy evil influences for the
coming year. The sacrifices were real crowd-pleasers, too, as the
increasingly wild calls below demonstrated. Kait hated them, and
had almost always found reasons to avoid them. But she
wouldnt be able to escape the spectacle this time; if Calmet
hadnt been at her elbow, she might have managed to slip away
unseen. The paragleses son, however, showed no inclination to
move on to other guests.
We have some excellent sacrifices, Calmet said.
In the street below, first one horse-drawn cage and then another
rolled into view. The cheering grew louder.
You have a lot of people in there. Kait could make
out at least ten in the first cage; the first blocked the second so
she couldnt see how many it held, but she guessed it would
carry roughly as many as the first why crowd one cage and
not the other? Her stomach knotted; shed hated the sacrifices
in Calimekka, but usually only one or two criminals were offered,
and they had always done such evil things that Kait had to admit
their deaths served justice. But twenty people . . . she
didnt know how she could force herself to watch twenty people
die, no matter what evils they had committed.
This isnt many at all. Last year we did almost a
hundred, most of them by drawing and quartering. The people would
be disappointed by such meager entertainment if we didnt have
something really special for them this year. You talk about good
omens . . . He shook his head, bemused. I
didnt think we would ever find anything like this again. And
after the slaughter in the Blamauk Quarter last night
. . . but you wouldnt have heard anything about
that . . .
He didnt finish his thought. In the square below, a dozen
mounted guardsmen in the blue and gold livery of the Dokteeraks
rode out from their station at the base of the tower; their black
stallions pranced to the blare of trumpets. The horses wore not
saddles but gleaming black harnesses that looked like they had been
designed for drawing the plows of the hells damned. To either
side of the twin line of horsemen marched armed pikemen in squares
five wide and five deep. The people in the square cheered
louder.
Kait thought about feigning a fainting spell; it wouldnt
be that hard, and she would be able to escape the gruesome
spectacle that was about to play out in front of her. But any
action of that sort would draw attention to her and the
wrong sort of attention and one thing Kait had learned early
in her life was never to draw attention to herself. She
would stand fast. She would witness the sacrifices. And she would
remind herself that the time she stood pretending to be a part of
the crowd atop the tower was time that her Family was using to plan
the destruction of the traitorous Dokteeraks.
Below, a sudden gust of wind swirled down the street, blowing
leaves and trash toward the tower, and several things happened at
once. The guardsmens horses reared and shied. Their
unexpected movement threw several of the pikemen to the ground,
causing localized uproars. And a familiar, terrifying scent, borne
up to the top of the tower by the gust, reached Kaits
nostrils. She froze.
Who are your sacrifices? she asked quietly, though
she already knew if not by name, then by ties that ran
deeper than mere blood.
Calmet grinned at her. I cant spoil the surprise
. . . but this is going to be marvelous.
It wasnt going to be marvelous; it was going to be worse
than anything Kait had anticipated.
The Dokteerak guardsmen had gotten themselves in order and were
awaiting the arrival of the cages. Conversation atop the tower had
died; the representatives of both Families aligned themselves along
the balustrade so that they could watch the proceedings. The
exception was Kaits uncle Dùghall, who appeared suddenly
at her left shoulder.
She looked at him hopefully. We have to leave? she
asked.
He shook his head. I thought I would watch the
entertainment with my favorite niece. He smiled when he said
it, but she sensed, or maybe just smelled, warning in his
demeanor.
She forced herself to smile back. You know your
companionship always brings me pleasure. She glanced over at
Calmet and was startled to find him moving away from her. For just
a moment, anyway, she and her uncle were far enough from the others
on top of the tower to have privacy.
He turned and stared down at the crowd, to all appearances as
enraptured by the unfolding spectacle as the rest of the Family
spectators. In a voice so quiet that she could barely hear him with
her own extraordinary ears (a voice which told her more than words
ever could have how severely her secret had been compromised) he
murmured, I heard from the elder Dokteerak what this is to
be. And while I dont know what I know about you, Kait,
I know what I suspect. We cant leave for any reason;
our every move is being watched. Are you going to get through
this?
She followed his lead, pretending to focus on the three princes
shed pulled Tippa away from the night before; pikemen were
binding their arms and legs, one limb per horse, to the modified
harnesses the stallions wore. She said, Ive spent a
lifetime maintaining appearances. Ill do whatever I have to
do.
The screams and pleas for mercy from the three men echoed louder
in the square than the jeers and shouts of the delighted crowd. The
head parnissa stepped up on a dais and gave a signal, and the crowd
fell silent. Paraglese, he shouted, and his voice
filled the square and boomed up to the tower, on this first
true day of the year of My Glorious, Enormously Fat Pig
Abramaknar, I ask you what you say to these men.
The paraglese took a deep breath and shouted down to the crowd,
I say these things. For treason against the Families of
Ibera, conspiracy, plotting to harm Family members, and the
breaking of sacred trusts with the gods who find favor in the rule
of the Families, I declare guilty by means of confession the
Gyru-nalle men who declare themselves princes, and who are named
Erstisto Ghost-in-the-Road, Lataban Too-Long-to-Home, and Meeraklf
Three-Tunes-Waiting, and sentence them to death.
The parnissa shouted back, Do you offer mercy or
pardon? Kait thought if there was any hope of mercy or
pardon, the men shouldnt have already been tied to the horses
. . . but the crowds, who wanted their spectacle,
didnt seem bothered by any qualms about the fairness of the
proceedings they witnessed. Immediately they began to shout,
No mercy! No mercy!
The paraglese raised his hands, and the crowd quieted. No
mercy! he shouted. The roar of approval from the mob covered
the order that sent all twelve horses lunging in opposite
directions.
Kait clamped her jaws so tight the muscles in her face ached;
she stared with outward impassivity as all three men tore
apart.
She became aware of a hand on her wrist, and glanced at her
uncle to see her own anger mirrored in his eyes. Realizing that she
wasnt the only one who did not revel in the public sacrifices
lightened a burden in her that she didnt even realize
shed been carrying. In something, at least, she was not
alone.
Servants were cutting loose the pieces of the three Gyru-nalles;
the guardsmen, meanwhile, had gone to the second cage. From it they
drew a lone boy. He was no older than five or six, and he was
beautiful, with a sweetness and an innocence that seemed to radiate
from him. His clothes marked him as a merchants son, and
suggested that his family was well off. His cleanliness and the
care that had been taken with his grooming suggested, further, that
he was well loved. He twisted toward the people in the second cage,
and Kait could hear his thin, terrified wail of Maman!
Papan!
She swallowed hard, fighting back the tears that she could
already taste. Several of the parnissas took the boy from the
guardsmen and dragged him to the center of the dais. The head
parnissa drew a great jeweled dagger from within the folds of his
robe and shouted, Paraglese, behold the monster! He
slashed the dagger down one side of the childs face, and a
red line gaped open in the blades wake. But not for long. The
child screamed, and Kait felt his terror as strongly as if it were
her own. And she felt the response, too the scream that
became a growl, the pain that set free the red-eyed, always-waiting
rage, the sense of power as blood began to sing and bones began to
flow and re-form and skin and muscles leaped to the glorious
promise of Shift.
Then fingernails dug hard into her wrist, and
Dùghalls voice in her ear murmured, Steady,
girl, and Kait drew back from a brink she had not even known
shed stood upon. Thank one and all the gods that she had
Shifted the night before, or not all the calming voices in the
world could have kept her from betraying herself. As it was, the
rage surged through her, refusing to be leashed, as she stared down
at the beautiful little boy who was no longer a little boy. His own
Shift had thrown him partway into the four-legged form the Karnee
curse bestowed, but only partway. His captors must have kept him
hurt enough and frightened enough that he would have spent much of
his time in a state of Shift; by doing so, they exhausted the fuel
that fed the fire of Shift. He was a small boy, but he would have
been dangerous for them to handle in a fully Karnee state.
Half-Shifted, unable to go either forward or back, he merely proved
to the paraglese that he was what they said he was. A monster. A
beast.
The crowd rippled with excitement. This was better than pulling
thieves apart, more thrilling than bear-baiting; one of their
respected neighbors had hidden a monster among them, and the
monster had been revealed, and with it the dirty secrets of a
family that had become criminal. The head parnissa shouted up to
the paraglese, The child is Marshalis Silkmans son, and
each Gaerwanday for his first five years, another child was
presented in his place to the god Abjan and the parnissas, so that
his monstrous nature might be hidden. Paraglese, on this first true
day of the year of My Glorious, Enormously Fat Pig
Abramaknar, I ask you what you say to the Silkman
family.
I say these things. For the breaking of oaths and the
hiding of monsters in our midst, for the deceiving of both gods and
men, for the endangerment of the public good, and for conspiracy
against the Families of Ibera and the people of Halles, I find
guilty by means of physical proof the Silkman family, and sentence
every living member of the family, by either birth or marriage, in
all generations, to death.
It was the sentence Kait had dreaded for her own family; not her
Family, for the Galweighs as a whole were immune to summary
justice, but her family father, mother, sisters, and
brothers because no single branch of the Family was so
valuable that it could not be cut off if doing so appeased a mob or
maintained the power of the Family as a whole.
Do you offer mercy or pardon?
The gods themselves have judged this beast and his family.
There can be no mercy, and no pardon.
The boy wept. The family begged the gods to intervene. The
guardsmen bound the boy to the horses. The mob screamed its
delight.
The horses leaped forward.
Chapter 9
Half a dozen young men leaned elegantly on pillars or
draped themselves across the white stone benches that decorated the
tavern courtyard. A single barmaid, her face flushed and her eyes
worried, brought them trays of ale in flagons and platters of fried
pork strips and fried bread, but her mind obviously wasnt on
her customers, or on the sizable tip she might reasonably hope for;
every time she heard cheering in the distance, she cringed. When
she had delivered the last of the refreshments Ry Sabir had
requested, she asked, Will you be needing me for anything
else? She was a typical peasant, her mind on the religious
festivities she was missing.
Several of the men laughed coarse laughs, but Ry silenced them
with a wave of his hand. No. Go. Enjoy your festival. Give my
regards to the gods, he added as she slipped through the
arches of the breezeway and vanished.
We could have had fun with her. The man who spoke
wore two vertical scars on his cheeks like badges of honor. His
shirt, of the sheerest and most expensive red silk, was so
transparent it served only to emphasize the powerful, lean lines of
the torso beneath; his leather pants, oiled to a shine, limned the
rest of him in equally sharp detail. His black slouch boots and
wide-brimmed scarlet velvet hat and the careful weaving of
cloth-of-gold ribbons through his long blond braids declared him a
dandy, but only a fool would mistake him for a weak one. His name
was Yanth, and he was rich, and a member of one of the cadet
branches of the Sabir Family, and for most of his life he had been
Rys best friend and closest ally.
Ry shrugged. He was so tired he ached, and was still starved and
testy as he always got after a Shift. If it hadnt been for
the festival, he would have spent the day in bed, demanding the
servants bring him food. But the festival gave him the chance to
speak alone to his lieutenants, away from the Sabir Embassy and
also away from any spies that might listen in a place like the
pleasant outer courtyard of this small public tavern and inn.
True. But then we wouldnt have been alone.
What fun is being alone? You have something better for us
than a pretty girl?
I need your help.
Rys five lieutenants glanced at each other with
expressions that ranged from curiosity to surprise to caution.
You know you have it without asking, brown-haired,
green-eyed Valard said.
Not this time. What I want goes against the Familys
orders. You have to decide whether youll help me or not;
Im not going to tell you that you owe me this, because this
could break me with all of them, and maybe you, too.
Now he could tell they were really curious. Hed never gone
against anything his Family told him to do, and they knew it.
Yanth stopped leaning against the pillar trying to look like
life bored him, and sat on one of the stone benches. Just sat;
didnt drape himself, didnt worry about presenting his
best profile to the passageway in case some lovely young thing
might come in. He leaned forward, elbows on thighs, frowning.
I cant speak for them, but Im still with you. Not
because I owe you, even though I know I do. Because youre my
friend.
Valard nodded. Same for me. You lead, Ill follow.
Doesnt matter where or why.
Broad-faced, pale Trev spoke up. I suppose I want to know
that we arent talking about an overthrow first. I cant
put my family at risk with something like that. Trev had two
younger sisters for whom he would have moved the world. And while
Ry knew that in all other ways he was as loyal and as devoted as
either Valard or Yanth, he also knew that Trev would never do
anything that would put his sisters into the slightest disfavor. He
was of a lesser family, and hoped to see them both marry well.
Not treason, Ry said. But not something that
will make you beloved in the House, if your role in it should be
discovered.
Karyl, Rys cousin and older than all the rest of them by a
few years, gave Ry a thoughtful look. If youre about to
do something stupid, I suppose I ought to be along, if for no other
reason than to pick up the pieces and return them to your mother
when the worst happens. So count me in.
Ry laughed. Leave it to Karyl to maintain the darkest possible
perspective.
He turned to Jaim, who had said nothing so far. That was typical
of Jaim slow to commit, but even slower to concede defeat
once he had committed. Ry felt if he could enlist Jaims
assistance, he would guarantee his own success. How about
you?
Jaim smiled his slow smile. I want to know what were
going to do before I say yea or nay.
Ry chuckled. So typical of Jaim. He was their voice of reason,
the one who advised caution, the one who always saw weaknesses in
plans before anyone else, and who usually already knew how to find
a solution before anyone else had defined the problem. Ry
wanted Jaim with him.
Im going to steal a girl that the Family wants
killed.
Now the eyebrows did go up. A girl? Whatever for? The
Family is always throwing them at you, and you never want to
catch, Karyl said.
This one is special.
Shed have to be. Youve refused most of the
beauties in Calimekka.
Yanth was grinning. We do have to wonder what makes her so
special.
And that was the question Ry couldnt honestly answer
not because he couldnt trust these five friends with
the truth, but because he didnt know what the truth was. How
did he explain to them that the Galweigh woman he had met the night
before had moved into his mind, and that even though she was
nowhere near him, he could still feel the heat of her body pressed
against his as they ran together after the fight; how could he
admit that his thoughts were no longer his own? How could he make
them understand that somehow he sensed where she was if he closed
his eyes and thought about her; that he could feel her anger at
that moment at some injustice which, in ways he couldnt quite
fathom, was linked both to her and to him? He sighed.
Shes . . . like me. And shes Galweigh,
which is why they wont let me have her. And its why
they want her dead.
Now they were frowning at him, not so amused by the idea of his
risking his relationship with the Family over a woman. Yanth said,
Like you in what way? Reckless? Bullheaded?
Stubborn?
Karnee, Ry said.
The silence that followed that blunt reply stretched, while
Rys lieutenants stared at each other. It kept on stretching,
as one by one they turned from each other to look at him.
Karnee, Yanth whispered.
The silence fell again.
Finally, Jaim sighed. It wont be like catching a
normal girl. If we do anything wrong, shell destroy us.
Id hate to stand against you with a dozen armed men; I
dont imagine she will be much weaker. Considering that
shes survived this long. He sucked in a breath, then
blew it out. One moment of carelessness is all it will take
. . . He looked down at his hands. And
Im guessing that you mean to grab her when we take Galweigh
House.
Ry nodded. I thought that in the confusion we would have
the best chance to get her out without anyone realizing what we
were doing. I cant steal her before then without risking the
Familys plan to take the House, and if I wait and try to find
her after, shes likely to be dead.
Yanth said, So were going into the House during the
invasion, just as wed planned, but instead of rounding up the
Galweighs and taking them prisoner, were going to search
through that whole enormous place for one woman.
Right.
One woman who knows the lay of the House, who isnt
going to want to come with us, and who just happens to be one of
the more efficient killing nightmares were ever likely to
meet.
Right.
Yanth nodded. I only wanted to be sure I
understood.
Jaim sighed. Well, put that way, I dont see any way
that I can refuse. Without my planning, none of you will live past
the first rush. So Im in, too.
Everyone laughed. Laughing came easy, Ry thought, when all the
danger and all the trouble lay in the future, when the six of them
had nothing to do but drink and eat in the pleasant shade of the
palm trees, with the sweet scents of jasmine and roses in the air.
But all five of his friends had just volunteered to die for him, if
dying was called for, and he couldnt allow himself to forget
that, or to overlook how much it meant.
Shes staying at the Galweigh Embassy right now.
Theyll move her back to Calimekka before the wedding, of
course, along with all the rest of the noncombatants. Before then,
we have to find out who she is.
Yanth groaned. You dont know her name?
Jaim sighed. And if we dont know her name, how are
we to find her?
Ill show you what she looks like. Ry was
nervous about doing so the showing was only a small magic,
and nondestructive, but until now, not even his best friends knew
of his involvement with magic. They knew of his Karnee curse;
hed Shifted in order to save Yanths life once, when
both of them had been younger, and reckless, and woefully
outnumbered. The magic, though, hed kept hidden, afraid that
there were some heresies so grave that not even best friends would
forgive them.
Which only proved to him how mad he had become. He was going to
betray the one secret about himself that he had kept hidden at all
costs, and he was going to do it to try to save the life of a woman
who had been born his enemy. Who was still his enemy. A woman he
had every reason to hate.
Why didnt he hate her?
He wished he knew.
He sprinkled caberra powder on the ground in a circle, and his
friends all stared, bewildered. He murmured his incantation, and
sliced the palm of his left hand with his dagger, and dripped the
blood into a tiny circle within the circle. He called on the link
he felt inside of himself, and summoned the only image of her that
he had bleeding and half-exhausted and covered with blood,
still in her Karnee form. He closed his eyes and drew the image
close, recalling as he did her scent, the sound of her voice, and
the incredible, impossible way her mere presence made him feel. He
did not call last nights image into the circle
instead, he called on the inexplicable bond he felt between the two
of them, and focused on her as she was at that moment.
He heard a gasp, and opened his eyes, and drank her in. She
stood in the center of the circle hed cast, staring at
something in front of her while she leaned against the parapet of
the tower in the center of Halles; the black carved stone monster
glowering just beneath her was unmistakable. Her straight black
hair blew like a silk pennant behind her. She wore a deep blue silk
gown, elegantly cut in the Calimekkan style that had not yet come
to backwater cities like Halles. She looked the highborn and
delicate daughter of power; she did not look like a woman who had
killed an alleyful of murderers and thugs the night before. In his
first glimpse at her in her human form, he fell more completely
under her spell. He knew he had to have her, or die trying. She was
exquisite, beautiful . . . forbidden. But not so
forbidden as the manner in which he had conjured her image.
His friends his lieutenants seemed frozen in time;
silent as ice statues, they stared at the shimmering image, their
eyes huge and shocked. Slowly, one by one, they pulled their gazes
away from the bewitching, ephemeral, softly glowing image of the
woman and looked to him. Ry looked for their rage or for signs of
betrayal, but instead he saw only wonder.
How . . . ? Yanth whispered.
For the longest time, none of the other four said a word. Then
Jaim added, I dont care how. Could you teach
me?
That broke a dam, and his friends words rushed out. They
wanted him to do more magic; they wanted him to show them how to do
what he knew; they wanted to be a part of this beautiful, forbidden
world that he had revealed to them; and they didnt care that
the knowledge he had was knowledge men had died to rediscover, or
that it had been lost for a very good reason, or that they would be
executed in the public square if they were ever caught. They
didnt intend to get caught, and in the meantime the wonder of
it held their imaginations and promised them secrets and a world
beyond the everyday. They wanted that world. And they were willing
to overlook any sin, any crime, were willing to promise almost
anything, to gain access to the door that would take them
there.
Well help you get the woman, Yanth said,
summing up for all of them. But promise that youll
teach us magic in return. As a favor to your loyal friends and your
unquestioning allies, just give us that boon.
For what they were offering to him their lives, their
honor he had to offer suitable recompense. He had thought of
land and additional titles . . . but they had the right
to request the favor they wanted most. And he would not refuse
them. He agreed.
* * *
I didnt think I was going to make it through
that. Kait paced from one end of the narrow library to the
other. Numb and sickened and still enraged, she fought the demon
inside her that begged for a chance just one chance
to destroy the monsters who had ordered that nightmare slaughter of
innocents.
All through the ceremony, Dùghall had said nothing.
Hed stayed by her side and headed off anyone who seemed to
want to talk with her, though he didnt seem to be doing
anything at all; hed kept her calm and hed gotten her
and Tippa back to the Galweigh Embassy at the earliest possible
opportunity. When he brought her to the library alone, though, Kait
knew he wanted to talk. You did make it through,
Dùghall said. Now you have to let it go. You still have
a part to play, and the Family needs you to play it without
stumbling. Especially . . . He stepped into her
path and brought her to a standstill, and stared into her eyes.
Especially since your information checked out exactly.
The Dokteeraks and the Sabirs are plotting against us, exactly as
you told me. You have certain . . . talents, should I
say? . . . Yes, talents . . . that make you
irreplaceable to your Family.
Kait held her breath, then released it slowly. You need to
know what I am, Uncle.
Ive figured it out at least I think Ive
figured out some of the difference in you. Sooner or later, perhaps
a few others of the Family will need to know. But you need not
think your differences make you anything but an asset to us.
Youre a gift, Kait. Youre beautiful, youre
intelligent, youre charming, youre educated
. . . and your special talents allow you to do things
other people cant. He patted her arm. You were a
marvelous child never afraid of anything. Youre
becoming a magnificent young woman. But more than that, you can
become a weapon for the Galweighs unparalleled by anything the
other Families can bring to bear against us.
Kait raised her eyebrows, thinking of the Sabir Karnee. If
Dùghall didnt know he existed, he didnt realize
exactly what the Galweighs were up against. Thats all I
want. Its all I have ever wanted to serve my Family. I
want to do anything I can to protect them from their enemies. To
repay them for protecting me, and giving me the chance to take a
place among them. She paused and looked beseechingly at
Dùghall. But maybe I dont have the right to risk
Maman and Papan by staying with the service, she said.
Maybe I dont have the right to serve, because more
people than I will pay the price if I fail.
Sit. Dùghall pointed to the high-backed carved
chair nestled into the corner beneath one of the librarys
leaded glass windows. He settled himself into its twin, and only
when Kait was seated said, You serve the Family; that is
duty. You do so without endangering the lives of your
family; that is both obligation and act of love. But the needs of
the Family must come first, Kait-cha. I have lived by this
dictum, as you must: You are born to greatness, but greatness
must be re-earned in every generation. Your life
Kait cut him off. is an extension of the
lives of my ancestors, and a bridge to the future, and as such my
life can never be wholly my own, for my every action reaps
yesterdays fruit and sows tomorrows seeds.
She quoted Habath solemnly. I know my duty.
Then no more uncertainty about whether you do right to
serve. You have been chosen; you must serve.
My comment is that I was not chosen by those who knew the
truth about me; I question that I would have been asked to serve if
the truth were known.
And that you reached adulthood alive so that you could be
chosen, what of that? I do not question too closely the value of
miracles the gods guide our feet down mysterious paths; I
chose you, but I think now that my choice was better than I had
previously thought, rather than worse. No matter what anyone else
might think. Ill keep your secret to myself for now; I
dont trust everyone in the Family to know a boon when one is
given.
Kait laughed at that. I dont trust anyone in
the Family to keep me from the horses in the square, to tell you
the truth. Except my family and you.
Nor should you. Remain circumspect, and Ill make
sure that you receive assignments suited to your peculiar
talents. He leaned back and laced his fingers together.
And speaking of your talents . . . what are they,
exactly? Ive already figured out that your hearing is better
than mine, and I know that you can climb sheer walls that I would
have thought impossible to breach without hammers and pitons. But
why can you do these things?
Kait said, Im Karnee.
Dùghall looked at her thoughtfully for a moment, and let
out a slow breath. I thought that might be it. For that
reason I warned you of the boy they executed today Id
heard . . . rumors . . . before we left the
embassy that such a creature had run wild last night and had been
apprehended in the early hours. I doubt the boy was the cause of
those deaths in the alley. He arched a thoughtful eyebrow in
her direction. So the Family curse has not yet
abated.
I would seem to be proof that it hasnt.
To what degree are you affected? Improved hearing,
improved sight, increased lust and vigor, added strength?
Kaits laugh this time had no humor in it. All of
those benign things, and all of the foul ones as well. Im
fully Karnee, like the child who died in the street today. I Shift
when Im angry or overcome by other emotion, or when Ive
gone too long without Shifting; Im both woman and monster in
one body, and the part of me that knows joy and pleasure without
regret is not the woman, but the monster. When Im Karnee, my
blood sings out for other blood, and for the hunt, and for rutting,
and Im without mercy, and without remorse.
There are times, child, when both mercy and remorse are
curses, too.
Kait frowned. Maybe so. But the human part of me carries
the remorse for both parts and seems to carry it in double
measure.
Dùghall nodded and leaned back in the chair, and templed
his fingers in front of him. In order to live with
ourselves, we accommodate who we are with who we wish to be. If we
are to know happiness in this short life, we do it without lying to
ourselves, and we remember to be kind. Vincalis again. I
really must find you a copy of To Serve Honorably when we
get back to the House. It and the Secret Texts will be essential to
you. Simply essential.
Kait said, Ill read both if theyll help me
serve the Family better.
Theyll help. Of course if you really want to serve
the Family, find the Mirror of Souls for us. He laughed when
he said it.
Kait didnt get the joke. The Mirror of Souls?
Whats that?
A myth, I think, Dùghall told her.
Weve found several references to it now in the oldest
books we have, and of course the Secret Texts speak of it. He
sighed. Supposedly, its the greatest artifact of the
Ancients. From the best translations weve obtained, it seems
to have been a device that called the dead back from the grave and
returned them to the world of the living. Imagine being able to
bring back to life all of our dead relatives. He shook his
head, bemusement clear on his face. We could overrun the
Sabirs and Dokteeraks and Masschankas and Kairns in days and take
control of Ibera. And that would be the end of the wars and the
slaughter and the struggle.
You sound like you think such a device might
exist.
Do I? Forgive an old mans wistfulness. I wish
such a device existed if the Galweighs alone could obtain
it, of course. But in spite of the several references to it in the
ancient literature, I believe that, had it ever existed, it has
long since vanished from the face of the earth. And I number myself
among the cynics, for I dont believe it ever existed. Such
magic would be . . .
He sat forward and smiled. Forget my musings, Kait. How
childish of me to fill your head with the fancies of the Ancients.
You dont need any such silliness. Concentrate on keeping
Tippa out of trouble, and make sure she doesnt suspect the
Dokteeraks treachery, or shell give us all away.
Shes a sweet child, but far too naive.
Ill make sure she thinks everything is still fine.
How long will I have to keep up the pretense?
Dùghalls grin was predatory. You and I and
Tippa will be leaving for Calimekka by airible four days from now,
at predawn.
Thats the day of the wedding.
Yes.
What about everyone else?
Most of them will be gone by tomorrow. The last few will
leave the day after.
Kait winced. The Dokteeraks will notice.
Dùghall laughed. Thats the beauty of this. The
airibles have been bringing in a steady stream of wedding
guests since we got word home yesterday . . . but
they arent truly wedding guests, of course. Theyre
soldiers in wedding dress, many of them disguised as women to make
up for the few swordswomen and female archers we have. And the
embassy staff has been traveling back in the supposedly empty
airibles, disguised as ballast. The three of us cant leave
until the last minute because Tippa and that rodent Calmet have the
sunset purification ritual the night before the wedding, and I have
to stand witness, and youre to chaperone again. But
well have an airible waiting for us when we return to the
embassy, and veiled soldiers will attend the wedding in your stead,
and my replacement shall wear a hood.
Kait smiled, and for the first time that day the smile felt
genuine. Then the wedding wont be what the Dokteeraks
are expecting.
Far from it. When its over, the Galweighs will be
the only ones celebrating.
Chapter 10
His horse well, even in the most liberal terms he
couldnt truly call it his horse, but it was the horse he had
stolen stood in the makeshift paddock with the Gyrus
other beasts, contentedly munching on hay. He recognized both the
animals speckled hide and the curving brand on its right
flank . . . and he thought, too, that he recognized the
vindictive gleam in its eye. Hasmal saw the animal when his guard
took him down to the stream to wash himself; the Gyrus kept the
horses both downhill and downstream, by which they showed more
concern for sanitation than the designers of the city hed
lived in. He didnt give any sign to the guard that he
recognized the beast; reticence seemed the best course of action to
him. But inwardly, he was elated. If the Gyrus had found his horse,
perhaps his belongings were somewhere in the camp, too. Perhaps he
could find a way to recover them.
The Gyru camp covered the north slope of the low hill it
occupied, from the long crest down to the stream that meandered
through the trees in the valley. Hasmal guessed more than a hundred
of the Gyru wagons sat there, though he couldnt be sure,
because the forest was thick enough that as he got a clear view of
some of the wagons, others disappeared, and the wagons themselves,
beautifully painted with scenes of forests and meadows, had the
unnerving tendency to blend in with their surroundings. Still, he
had a rough count, which was good enough to tell him that the Gyrus
outnumbered him by at barest minimum fifty adults so he
could give up any plans of overpowering guards and fleeing.
Too, he knew his strengths, and he knew his weaknesses, and he
considered himself intelligent enough not to mistake one for the
other. Born a city boy, raised in civilization where water
came to his home via the aqueduct and where people cooked food
indoors in fine brick ovens, and where they washed in public baths
instead of a river he did not think for an instant that he
would be able to escape through the forest, eluding his pursuers
and surviving the dangers of the wild. The wilderness was not his
strength.
Guile and caution were, though, and with guile and caution, he
would get himself out of this mess.
His guard didnt seem impatient with the time Hasmal was
taking with his bath. He sat on a fallen tree and grinned, his
crossbow steady on Hasmals chest. The crossbow made Hasmal
nervous; nevertheless, the guard had treated Hasmal well, made sure
he got plenty of food, and let him walk around the thorny
underbrush instead of pushing him through it. Since Hasmal still
didnt have any clothes, that last consideration meant a great
deal to him.
Kind of you not to mind my taking the time to get
clean, Hasmal said in Iberan. He and the guard were playing
out an elaborate game, in which the guard pretended not to
understand a word of Iberan, and he pretended hed never run
into Shombe. They pantomimed when they wished to communicate, and
spoke into the air in asides to the gods at other times, each
attempting to get the other to be the first to reveal secrets.
Hasmal scrubbed with the soap the guard had given him,
appreciating the lather on his skin as much as he appreciated the
feel of running water on all those places yesterdays
horseback ordeal had left aching. Those bastards who grabbed
me yesterday dragged me through every patch of filth and thicket
they could find between the road and the place where they met you
folks.
The guard kept grinning; he made no sign that he understood a
word that Hasmal said.
Hasmal relaxed into the water. It wasnt as clear as
aqueduct water, and it was colder, but at the moment it felt good
enough. I dont imagine you have any idea what it feels
like to be sold, Hasmal continued. To be a free man
running away from omens that spell your death, and to be captured
by thieves, and to have them decide to hang you because you
dont have anything to steal, and to have them decide, when
the rope is already around your neck, to sell you into slavery
instead so they can make some profit off of you. He shook his
head, ducked completely under the surface of the water long enough
to thoroughly wet his hair, and came up to begin lathering.
The bastards stole my clothes and left me naked, too.
Didnt even throw me a few rags so I could cover myself. Still
. . . being a naked slave is better than being a dead
freeman. He finished lathering, rinsed, and stood.
His guard, still grinning, threw him a towel so coarse and crude
that in the bathhouses of Halles, it would have been used for
nothing more lofty than knocking the dirt off shoes. Hasmal
wasnt sure whether he was supposed to dry himself off with it
or wrap it round his waist, and decided, since his guard offered
neither suggestion nor pantomime, to do both. The women in the camp
had gotten a few giggles out of his nakedness when hed
paraded by them on his way down to the stream; if he could skip a
repeat of that experience on the way back, he thought he would.
Id give anything to get my things back and get out
of here, Hasmal said. The guard pointed up the hill. Hasmal
started walking. The rough forest floor hurt his feet, but he felt
almost cheerful after the bath and with the towel to keep him from
being completely naked. Youd probably want me gone,
too, if you knew the sort of trouble Im likely to become.
Im under a curse a doom tied to some Galweigh woman. I
want to put as much distance as I can between the two of us, before
something terrible happens. Its sure to happen to me, but the
oracle didnt say there wouldnt be trouble for anyone
around me.
The guard led him back to the tent where hed been kept. He
left the towel something good and didnt put
Hasmals hands back into the stocks in which hed had to
sleep. Something else good. He did still put the metal ring around
his neck, and he did attach it to the chain that attached to the
stone ball that rested in the center of the tent. Hasmal
didnt fight this indignity any more than he had fought any
other. He let happen what was going to happen, and then he settled
in to wait. He was good at waiting.
The sun followed more than half its path across the sky, and the
noises in camp changed in character and volume. Hasmal heard
shouting and the stamping of horses and creak of wagons, and he
wished he could see what was going on. Finally someone came back
into the tent, but she wasnt his guard. She was a woman of,
he guessed, middle years, though she had aged extraordinarily well.
She dressed in loose leather pants and a gaudy silk shirt, the
costume favored by Gyru women, and she wore a heavy gold torque
around her neck and rows of gold beads in her braided hair. In her
youth she had been, he had no doubt, a stunning beauty, and even
though time had added lines to her face, and streaks of gray to her
fiery hair, it had not been able to erase her loveliness. All it
had done was add character something he always found lacking
in the faces of women his own age. He smiled at her out of reflex.
She was the sort of woman who would have caught his eye in any
circumstances, and these difficult times made no exception.
She studied him, thoughtful. He continued to wait, sensing in
her presence the shifting of his fate. Finally, she said,
Youre a strange sort of slave. You havent begged
for your freedom, yet you claim to be a freeman; you have not
threatened us with doom if we do not release you, yet you claim to
be under a curse. You havent tried to reclaim your horse or
your belongings, yet Ffaunaban says you saw your horse tethered
among ours.
So Ffaunaban does speak Iberan.
As well as you speak Shombe, unless I miss my guess. We
told him to find out what he could about you. You were most
obliging. And, I might add, most unlike our usual slaves.
Hasmal smiled but said nothing. Politeness, gratitude for
kindnesses done, and a bit of information dropped in the right ears
at the right time never failed to yield action. He could only hope
that it was the right sort of action.
The woman waited, too, as if expecting him to say more
perhaps to protest his status as slave, or to ask if he could have
his belongings back. When he remained silent, she rewarded him with
a brilliant smile of her own and arched an eyebrow.
Excellent, she said. You honor yourself with
your silence. Then she said something that shocked him to his
core. Katarre kaithe gombrey; hai allu
neesh?
They were the words of greeting used among the Falcons; words
from a language mostly lost in the destroying tempest of time, but
kept alive by the brethren sworn to uphold the secrets of the past
and to work toward the prophecies that would better all of
humankinds lot. His father had taught him that they meant
The falcon offers its wings; will you fly?
He responded as his father had taught him. Alla
menches, na gombrey ambi kaitha chamm. I accept, and for the
falcons wings I offer my heart.
Well met, brother, she said. She leaned over him and
unlocked the ring that bound him to the stone. Her heavy braids
brushed against his naked shoulders, and her sweet, faintly musky
scent filled his nostrils, and he was suddenly more grateful than
words could express for the coarse towel still wrapped around his
waist. We have things we must discuss. Please come with
me.
As quickly as that, he found himself a guest of the Gyru-nalles
instead of a slave. She led him out of the tent, and he saw that
the wagons were lined up, and that people were tying spare horses
to the backs of the wagons, and that outriders already moved along
the enormous train, shouting orders.
She showed him into a beautifully painted wagon which she
identified as her personal residence. A driver already sat on the
high crossplank, reins in hand. She waved to him and shouted
something in Shombe, then ushered Hasmal into her home on
wheels.
He was immediately enchanted. He had never seen the inside of a
Gyru wagon before, and he hadnt imagined how delightful such
a tiny space could be. The structure formed a single room, with a
stone-polished, close-planked wood floor and a painted wood ceiling
high enough to permit him to stand upright easily. A padded bench
seat ran along one wall below a genuine glass window, and along the
other wall were a pantry, a built-in floor-to-ceiling bank of
drawers, and between them another window and an area for food
preparation. The front of the cabin was given over to a deep closet
with a ladder that ran up one side to a loft, which a thick down
mattress and several cushions completely filled.
She had everything anyone really needed, he thought, and she
took it with her everywhere she went. For a moment, he was
envious.
Then she moved one of the cushions on the long bench seat, and
lifted the hinged lid of the compartment beneath. From the storage
space, she pulled out a pair of worn, dark green leather pants and
a dove-gray silk shirt. She tossed them to him, and he put them on,
conscious that she was watching him. They didnt fit him too
badly, considering that Gyru men were, on average, tall and lean,
and he was short and muscular. The clothing was very fine
better than what had been stolen from him the day before.
Whose are these?
Yours, now. They once belonged to a . . . friend
. . . but he has since moved on.
Thank you, then . . . He paused. He
didnt know her name. . . . Lady.
Never a lady, she said with a chuckle, though
always a woman. You may call me Alarista.
Which wasnt her name, he knew. Gyrus never gave anyone
their real names they felt possession of the real name gave
one access to the soul. He nodded. Alarista. You may call me
Chobe. That had been his nickname as a child, and would not
cause him to commit the social error of forcing his real name on
her, thus making her partly responsible for his soul whether she
wanted to be or not.
When hed dressed, she sat him down and offered him a drink
she called kemish, which she told him was made from the
seeds and fruit of the cocova plant, and from red peppers and
ground dried fish, and which tasted bitter and spicy and fishy
it was the most noxious thing he had, in fact, ever been
asked to drink. His people made confections from ground cocova and
honey that were sweet and smooth and marvelous; hed never
imagined anyone would find a way to make cocova taste terrible.
Still, he was a guest, and more importantly, the guest of a fellow
Falcon, and as a guest he swallowed the noxious stuff and smiled
and pretended he loved it.
When theyd finished their drinks, she finally got to what
was on her mind.
When you told Ffaunaban about the curse you were under, I
told him that was nonsense, and that you were just trying to tell
him something that would frighten him into letting you escape. But
I couldnt permit such an assertion to go unverified.
She smiled at him.
Of course not. He waited without adding anything
about the curse, because she was going somewhere with this, and
anything he added would only take away from the information she
gave him.
I did a divination. What I saw was . . .
frightening.
He kept waiting. Maybe she knew more than he did. Maybe she
would tell him what shed found.
She sighed. We cant keep you with us, as much as I
would like to; Ive never had the opportunity to meet a Falcon
from outside of my own people. But the doom you carry on you will,
according to my divination, swallow us in order to reach you.
She sat looking at him, her hands folded primly in her lap, her
head held high. We have always made a point to offer
sanctuary to those oppressed by the forces in power. But the forces
that want you . . . She shrugged delicately.
Not even I could suggest that my people stand between you and
the gods.
He hoped she would say more, perhaps tell him specific details
of the doom her divination had foretold, and why it had fallen on
him. But she had taken his route of silence; she watched him, and
now she waited.
Then you intend to release me? To set me free?
In a fashion. Weve sent pigeons to our agent in
Costan Selvira, and passage has been arranged for you aboard a
ship. Were breaking camp now were going to take
you there, give you back your belongings, see you aboard the ship,
and watch until it leaves the harbor. Once were certain that
we have sufficient distance between you and us, you may do whatever
you wish; until the time that your ship leaves harbor, however,
either a guard or I will accompany you.
Then Im a prisoner.
Her laugh was as lovely as her smile. Well, you
arent a slave any longer, and Id rather you considered
yourself my personal guest, but if you decided to try to
. . . ah, escape my hospitality before you sailed with
your ship she shrugged again, a movement that he
noticed did interesting things to her breasts my
people would be forced to shoot you before you ran ten
steps.
Why? Why not just return my horse and my things to me and
let me leave?
Her laugh this time was heartier than before, and the corners of
her eyes crinkled with merriment. Because and you will
pardon my frankness, please I dont think you have
either the sense or the skills to get yourself as far away from my
people as I want you to be. You apparently have neither the ability
to ride a horse nor the woodsense to know when youre riding
into an ambush, and I think, for all your intelligence and whatever
skills you do possess, that youd end up someone elses
captive before youd gone a furlong. She leaned forward,
and her silk shirt gapped enchantingly over her bosom, affording
him a clear view of her right breast and most of the left one.
Hasmal was having a hard time feeling indignant.
So you are going to make sure I end up a long way from
here.
As far as the sea and the ship will take you.
I suppose I cant complain. Id planned to do
something similar; as long as I leave my doom behind, Ill be
content.
She hadnt moved, and he became aware that hed been
talking to her chest. He flushed, looked into her eyes, and
realized that she knew exactly what hed been looking at
. . . and that she seemed amused by his scrutiny. He
stared down at his hands, feeling like an oaf and an idiot, and to
change the subject, asked, What am I to do in the
meantime?
She didnt answer him. After a moment he looked up to find
an enigmatic half-smile on her lips and a smoldering look in her
eyes. Her voice dropped to a low, husky purr, and she said, I
imagine we can think of something.
Chapter 11
Kait walked down Freshspring Street with Tippa at her
side and a retinue of soldiers disguised as servants and minor
functionaries at her back. They were ostensibly on a mission to buy
additional silks and glassware for Tippas trousseau, but in
fact were simply out to be seen, to convince the Dokteeraks and the
Sabirs that the Galweigh Family suspected nothing and would walk
into the wedding trap when the bells rang in the station of Soma
the next day.
Tippa, poor dim child, still suspected nothing. Shed been
told that her parents and the other notable members of the Family
would be arriving by airible that night, after the dedication
service, and that those who had arrived so far were simply distant
relatives from Goft and the colonies. She accepted the whole tale
as sacred writ, and tried to spend time meeting these
relatives, much to everyones chagrin. So Kait got
the twofold job of keeping her out in the public eye and away from
the newly arrived soldiers, who needed the time to finish going
over strategy.
Thus this buying expedition, which had resulted in the purchase
of five bales of sapphire-blue silk, and the order of a hundred
ruby-red spun-glass goblets at a price Kait couldnt begin to
believe, and the acquisition of a set of silver decanters shaped
like leopard cubs that Tippa declared precious and that
Kait found ridiculous. Thus, also, Kait acquired a blinding
headache that came partly from trying to push away the incessant
pounding waves of evil that had grown worse instead of better since
the night of the Naming Day party. In part, however, she thought
the headache had to be from hunger; shed had only a light
morning meal, and that had been at sunrise. Already the Invocation
to Mosst was ringing through the streets, and the sun, directly
overhead, beat down on her.
The fragrant smells of meat and bread and pies and a multitude
of other delicacies filled Freshspring Street from one end to the
other; the silk houses and metal changers and craftsmens
shops shared the narrow street with bakeries and fish houses and
mead brewers and Kait, smelling the various offerings,
thought that if she didnt get something to eat soon, she
would go mad.
Wouldnt you like a pie? she asked Tippa, who
had already turned her nose up at python-on-a-stick, and whole
roasted parrots beautifully braised in their own juices and stuffed
with corn and sweet yams, and a peccary stew that had smelled like
heaven to Kait.
Now Tippa sighed that pained sigh of hers that indicated she
thought herself surrounded by idiots. Cousin, dont you
see? I cant eat food from these places. Im to be an
adrata in this city, and I may someday be paraglesa. You should
know that I cant allow myself to eat street food like a
commoner.
Kait, eyeing a beautiful rolled-crust mango pie that sat on the
counter of one of those common cookeries, was not about to be put
off yet again, and for no better reason than that eating common
food was below the station that her cousin wasnt going to
attain anyway. So she said, One of the things Ive
learned in the diplomatic corps is that if you would be truly
beloved by all the people, you must find ways to make them believe
you care about them. And what better way to begin showing that you
care than by sharing their food without shame?
Tippa frowned down at her feet, and Kait could see her lips
moving. Finally she looked up. Youre certain that
eating the street food wont make us seem . . .
base-born?
Kait schooled her face to sincerity. Im
positive.
A pause. Another sigh. Then, Very well. Well all
eat. I was a bit hungry.
So they waited in line behind the workingmen and the merchants
and the salesgirls, and they bought two of those beautiful pies,
and the soldiers got themselves pastries. Then they visited another
shop, where they ate stuffed parrots. After that, a meadery, where
they indulged in strong red mead served in containers made of the
leaves of bassos trees, curled and sealed with wax to form hollow
cones. Kait thought the idea of disposable cups wonderfully clever
it was the first thing shed seen in all of Halles that
had genuinely impressed her. Finally, just before they reached the
last silk shop on the street, they stopped at an icery.
The shopkeeper bowed graciously and asked them what they would
have. Ice was even rarer in Halles than it was in Calimekka,
because it had to be brought in not only from the mountains, but
overland as well, and the prices marked on the mans board
were astronomical. Still, the heat of midday made frozen
confections irresistible to both women and Kait, in a moment
of largesse, bought her cousin and herself plus all of the mock
functionaries and mock servants little bowls of shaved ice flavored
with fruit juices and honey. They stood against the building
savoring these treats and trying to stay out of the sun when Kait
suddenly became aware that she was being watched. She stiffened
slightly but managed to avoid giving any outward sign that she knew
what was happening she and Tippa were supposed to be drawing
attention, of course, but this was different.
He was somewhere in the crowd. The other Karnee. The one
she had met and wanted.
She had been at least slightly aware of him since the moment
they had parted. She could tell through stone walls when he paced
outside the embassy, hoping for a glimpse of her. She could feel
her heart begin to race sometimes in the middle of the night in
acknowledgment of nothing more than his existence. She felt herself
drawn to him, as if he were a lodestone and she were iron;
something beyond her reach and her understanding made her desire
him even though she knew that her desires were a betrayal of her
Familys well-being. He was a hunger that she dared not
confess and dared not sate; he was both potion and poison, and even
the contemplation of indulging her craving felt as compelling and
as unforgivable as Shift.
Now he was close to her not within smelling distance, or
perhaps just downwind but close enough that she could feel
this other hunger building inside of her like a madness. Animal
passion, she told herself. Karnee lust, the weakness of your
inhuman other self. Dont give in to beast behavior.
The lust raged unabated.
And for the thousandth time since the night of the party, she
thought of Hasmal son of Hasmal, and of the wall of peace that he
carried with him. For the thousandth time, she chafed at the
presence of the inescapable others; she had never had time during
the daylight hours to make good on her promise to find him. She
suspected her uncles design in that fact, and not just bad
luck though Dùghall had not asked her what else had
happened before she arrived at the embassy and climbed the wall
that night, she thought he suspected more went on than shed
admitted. And he seemed determined to have her observed to ensure
that nothing else happened without his knowledge.
Now, though, with Tippa and the soldiers with her, Kait wondered
if she might suggest a side trip to Stonecutter Street, to
Hasmals Curiosities, on the excuse that she had heard of
something fabulous there that she wanted to buy for Tippa as a
gift. She caught the attention of Norlis, who was the embassy
master sergeant dressed up today as a junior undersecretary. He
came to her side and in a low voice said, My thanks, lady,
for the ice. It was very fine.
She smiled. A recognition of the . . . ah, the
suffering you have done today. Tippa would never have dared
speak to a master sergeant in the same tones she employed on junior
undersecretaries, and Norlis and his men, so disguised, had found
themselves the targets of several petty tongue-lashings. Soldiers
attached to Families held high rank and positions of great esteem,
and Family members treated them with the respect any sensible
person gave to those who, in moments of crisis, stepped in to save
ones life. Mere household staff hadnt earned such
respect and usually didnt get it.
Norlis flushed and shrugged. Its been a long
morning, and difficult, but . . . all for a good
cause.
I have a request. Ive heard that wonderful gifts
might be found at a little shop on Stonecutter Street. She
stared off to one side and frowned, as if struggling to remember
the name. Had . . . Har . . . something
Curiosities. She met his eyes and smiled triumphantly.
Hasmals Curiosities! Thats it! Id
like to go there before we return to the embassy, to buy something
special for Tippa and her new husband.
Norlis shook his head slowly and stared into her eyes, trying to
figure out what she really wanted. Well, of course he knew that the
wedding present story was a lie, because he knew as well as she did
that there would be no wedding. But the expression on his face led
her to believe that he would not have been enthused about her
request no matter what excuse she had given. He said, I know
more or less where that is . . . but I could never take
you there. Its a dangerous part of the city; people dressed
as well as we are go missing there in broad daylight, and the fact
that were traveling in a group would be no
protection.
She raised her eyebrows and silently mouthed the words, But
youre soldiers.
He pointed to his belt, where only a poniard hung. She realized
he carried no sword; none of the soldiers carried a sword. After
all, what household servant could afford a weapon of war
. . . and what could he hope to do with one if he had it?
She felt a wave of pity for the warriors dressed in the
functionaries red-and-black fusses and frills they
must feel naked without their blades and their own uniforms, which
were designed for ease of movement, not to show off the fine curves
of their calves and shoulders.
On Freshspring Street, a block from the embassy and in an
excellent neighborhood, the group had no real worries. Kait and
Tippa carried only the smallest amount of actual cash like
the rest of the well-born, Tippa purchased the things she wanted
with a letter of credit. Robbery would be a futile gesture, a fact
even the poorest city inhabitants knew well. Kidnapping, though,
was always lucrative, and with the soldiers mimicking functionaries
even to the arms they carried, the group would be easy targets for
a gang looking for such opportunities, if they were to allow
themselves to get too far from home or to wander down the wrong
streets.
But she had to find Hasmal, to discover his secret for keeping
the evil of the world from touching him. This was her last chance;
when she and Tippa returned to the embassy, they would immediately
begin to prepare for the dedication service. They would be under
constant supervision until the moment they returned once again to
the embassy, which would not be until the station of Telt, when the
sky was fully dark and the Red Hunter joined the White Lady in the
sky. And then she and Tippa would be hustled onto the last airible
leaving Halles, and they would lift into the blackness, and Hasmal
and his secret for peacefulness would be lost to her forever.
She had to find him, and she could not. She knew she could order
Norlis to take her there, and he would be duty-bound to follow her
orders and to protect her with his life . . . but Family
did not recklessly expend the lives of loyal soldiers. Kait had her
duty, too, and it was to accept Norliss warning for her own
safety and to protect Tippa. Kidnappings forced the Family into a
position of weakness; look at poor Danya, still not ransomed while
the Sabirs dithered over sacks of gold and inches of boundaries
like matrons over fish in a market, and the Galweighs tried
everything they could think of to get the kidnappers to accept some
sort of deal and send her home.
She looked away, toward the western wall of the city, where
Hasmal went about whatever it was he did during the day, and then
she hung her head. She would have given almost anything she had to
get his secret; she would not, however, chance ransoming her
Familys strength and honor.
She looked back at Norlis and said, Then lets go to
this last silk market for Tippa. She hasnt managed to buy
everything in the town yet.
Norlis said softly, If there is something in particular
you would like to get, I could go there once Im off duty and
purchase it for you.
No. I just wanted to look around. But thank you for
offering. Youre very kind.
Norlis smiled and turned away, and Kait closed her eyes for just
an instant, feeling the inescapable evil that pounded at her skull,
and the Sabir spy watching her and lusting after her as she lusted
after him, and she mentally said good-bye to Hasmal and his secret,
and to the possibility that she would ever find the sort of peace
and self-control he carried with him.
She wondered briefly if he even remembered her. Then she got
back to the business at hand.
* * *
Hasmal, finally over the seasickness that had kept him in his
tiny cabin for days, sat on the aft deck of the small Rophetian
merchantman. Out of the way of the sailors who scrambled up and
down the riggings, he enjoyed the pleasant breeze and the clear air
and wondered why the ship seemed to be sailing steadily
northeast.
True to her word, Alarista had put him on the ship with orders
to the crew that if he tried to get off, they were to kill him.
Shed paid one-way passage for him to the Kander Colony on the
other side of both the ocean and the world. The ship was supposed
to already be heading there to trade silk and glass and grain for
caberra spice. Alarista had given him his belongings and a final,
passionate kiss, and had told him she would miss him like
shed never missed anyone in her life. And then she had walked
away without even looking back, and the ship had sailed, and he had
discovered that he didnt have much stomach for the sea.
Well, maybe he would never make a sailor, but he still had a
sense of direction, and he knew that the ship had been heading due
southeast when they sailed from Costan Selvira. When he tried to
ask the captain or the crew why they had changed headings
for he had lost an unknown number of days lying in his hammock, too
sick to move they made the sign of the viper at him and
quickly spit on the deck to ward off evil. Hed finally given
up asking. He worried about the ships change of direction,
though, and the fact that he was the only passenger, and the fact
that everyone without exception regarded him with dread. He knew
that they had found out about his doom no doubt one of the
Gyrus had let it slip and he wondered if he was to be dumped
into the sea and left for the sharks and the sea monsters.
The cry of Land! brought him out of his reverie. He
looked to the horizon, and to the northwest made out a low black
smudge, like a line of clouds rising along the horizon. He
squinted, and the line stayed a smudge, but after a while time
brought into focus what his eyes could not. A large point lay
before them, flat and green, with the land falling back to either
side; the place had seemed tiny from the distance but grew as they
drew nearer, until he wondered if he looked at a large island or
the leading edge of a continent. Three of the soaring white towers
that marked the work of the Ancients stood above the trees; he
imagined that they were used as lighthouses. The merchantman cut
sharply east and sailed some distance off the coast, running
parallel with it. The wind hummed through the ropes and snapped the
sails as the crew lowered the largest of them and raised smaller
sails instead. The captain shouted his directions, the sailors
shouted their replies, and everyone acted as if Hasmal didnt
exist.
Before long, a town rose into view to Hasmals left;
plastered houses painted vibrant shades of red and yellow and
purple, with bougainvillea climbing the walls, sending cascading
blossoms of fuchsia and lavender and crimson over the curved-tile
roofs. Monkeys clambered over the houses and bounded into the palms
and banyans and swung from the feathery fronds of date palms and
shrieked; a flock of parrots screamed overhead; gulls spun in lazy
arcs around the merchantmans mast and pelicans trawled in the
ships wake. People thronged the streets, most of them dressed
entirely in white, so that they seemed to glow in the tropical sun.
The merchantman heeled over suddenly and headed due north around a
point that Hasmal hadnt seen because the long line of coast
behind it hid it, and a mass of tiny islands off to Hasmals
right slid into view, while to his left he discovered a beautiful
harbor, in which berthed easily fifty sailing ships of every
imaginable description, their bare masts rising like a denuded
forest. Among them, cockboats and rowboats and lean outriggers and
catamarans slipped from ships to shore and back, ferrying
passengers and cargo.
The merchantmans crew furled her sails and dropped her
anchor, and the tempo and mood of the ship changed; it became
slower and darker, and somehow ominous. In that lively, lovely
place, Hasmal thought fear should be an obscenity, but he was
afraid.
The captain came back to him and said, Get your things.
You leave us here.
The look in the mans eyes didnt encourage questions,
and Hasmal didnt ask any. He ran below, grabbed the single
bag that held his artifacts, his clothes, and his few other
belongings, and scurried back up the ladder, in time to see four of
the crewmen hoisting the ships longboat over the side. The
captain was waiting for him. He said, Go with them, and
dont give them any trouble. Youre lucky I didnt
drown you the first night out; the only reason I didnt was
because that band of Gyrus did me a favor once, and they asked that
you be treated well. But favor or no favor, your trip with me ends
here. Ill rot in Tonns hell before Ill drag you
and your curse clear across the Bregian Ocean and chance the
sinking of my ship.
Hasmal didnt have any money, any place to stay, or even
any clear idea of where he was; he thought perhaps he might be in
the Fire Islands, or perhaps up along the Lost Souls Coast. But he
didnt protest. As much as he would have been happy to find
himself in Kander Colony (which along with being clear across the
world had the advantage of being settled by Sabirs sure
promise that his trouble wouldnt follow him), he would get
himself to land wherever he was and take stock of the twin
blessings of being alive and of being farther from the Galweigh
woman than hed been before.
He got into the longboat, rode in silence across the water to
the shore, and at a sign from one of the crew, jumped into the
water when it was knee-deep and waded to land. The four men in the
longboat immediately began rowing back to the ship, and by the time
hed found a comfortable observation spot on a stone pier, the
merchantmans sails were already flying again, and it was
headed back out to sea.
He sat watching it until it disappeared around the point again;
his sense of loss seemed stupid to him, but he couldnt deny
the feeling. That ship had been a tie to his old life and his old
self, however tenuous, and when it sailed away, it left him
wondering who he would become, and what he would be.
At last, though, he stood; his leather pants were still damp,
and he needed to find fresh water so that he could clean the salt
out of them before they dried and cracked. He needed to make
arrangements for a place to stay, and for some way to earn money.
He needed to find a place to eat, too; his stomach, freed of the
rolling of the sea, began to announce to him that food had been
scarce of late and would be appreciated.
And he needed to find out where he had come to ground. That last
would be the easiest problem to remedy, if he could find someone
who spoke Iberan and if he was careful how he asked the question.
He didnt want to start out his new life the way hed
finished his old one, as a man commonly known to be under a curse.
He thought for a while about innocuous reasons why he might have
been put ashore with no money and with no idea of his location
it took him a while, but at last he concocted a story that
he thought would serve.
Then he located a Rophetian sailor standing by the pier, both
arms around a white-dressed girl, and went up to the man.
My comrades threw me off my ship, he said. I
thought I had sure luck with the bones, and at the last throw the
goddess deserted me, and I ended up owing more than I had
. . . He sighed and grinned. And Ive
been drunk the last five days, and I dont know where I
am.
The sailor laughed, white teeth flashing behind the thick black
beard. The bones and the mead have landed more than one man
on strange soil, he said, but if youre an ass, at
least youre a lucky ass. Youre a stones throw
from civilization. This heres Maracada, on Goft.
My thanks, Hasmal said. He managed a smile that he
didnt feel, and walked away without stumbling, and looked for
a place where he could hide. He fancied he could hear the gods
laughing at him; Goft was a big island perhaps thirty
leagues in length but it wasnt big enough. A narrow
strait separated the island from the mainland, and on the other
side of that strait lay Ibera, and no more than twenty leagues from
there lay Calimekka. The home of the Galweigh Family.
He was closer to disaster than hed been in Halles. He
needed to find another ship, and he needed to get himself to sea,
and he needed to do it fast.
Chapter 12
Darkness, the hard cold blackness of the station of Huld,
when the presence of light and warmth seems like a dream that will
never come to pass. Kait stood beside Tippa in the courtyard,
watching Dùghall pace. Tippa kept sobbing, How can I not
have a wedding? Im to get married today! and neither
Kait nor Dùghall had the patience to explain anymore that she
was to have been murdered at her wedding along with the rest of the
Family. The last airible should have already arrived, should have
come during Telt, and had not. Something was wrong, and the three
of them were going to be trapped in an enemy city in the midst of
war. Kait kept very still, watching the sky, listening for the
airibles engines, for the soft thudding of the pistons and
the beating of the rotors against the night air, but the beast
inside of her already tasted panic and wanted to flee. To run, to
go to ground, to hide.
The Galweigh soldiers responsible for catching the
airibles tethers held their pose, torches lit, waiting along
the line of fire that marked the embassy landing field. They would
catch the tethers and pull the airible down to anchor; at least,
they would if it ever arrived . . .
Kait fingered the hilt of the longsword at her hip and tried to
keep the monster inside of her still; tried to figure out what she
could do to keep Tippa and Dùghall safe; tried to think not of
becoming the Karnee creature, but of staying human and helping her
Family as a human. But the walls of the invisible cage constricted,
and her heart raced and her senses grew sharp with incipient Shift
and it was only then that she heard the steady, metallic
thupp, thupp, thupp of the airible over the normal noises of
the night.
Its coming, she said, and a murmur ran through
the line of soldiers; they heard nothing, and said as much.
Dùghall turned and stopped pacing and looked at her.
Youre sure?
I hear it.
Good. He nodded. Waited a moment, and another, while
to Kaits ears the noise of the engine became impossible to
overlook. But only when still another moment had passed, and the
sound she heard began to drown out the background sounds of Halles
with its predawn racket of peddlers and tradesmen rattling through
the streets, did the first of the soldiers stare at her and say,
By the gods, I hear it, too.
Karnee ears. They were their own betrayal. She told herself to
be more careful about her timing in admitting what she heard. At
another time, in another place, perhaps revealing her acute hearing
might be her death.
The noise of the airible grew louder, then yet louder, and
suddenly Kait could make it out against the sky, its shape a darker
blackness that blotted out the stars. This time she said nothing,
uncertain if human eyes would be able to mark the form so soon, and
not wanting to seem a woman of too many miracles in one night.
A moment passed, and one of the soldiers said, There!
Against the Shepherds. He pointed north by east, to a
constellation high in the night sky. The airible moved across those
stars, blotting them out, and the rest of the soldiers nodded and
bent to the groundlamps that would mark the readiness of the
landing field. They put their torches to the lamps and, as the
flames in the green glass lanterns flickered one by one to life,
doused the open flames of the torches in the buckets that lay
alongside. The airibles no longer used gaimthe, the burning gas, to
fill their large balloons, but the fuel the engines used was
flammable and dangerous, and the practice of never permitting open
flame around an airible remained.
The field, lit only by the row of green lanterns, looked eerie.
The grass of the field seemed leached of color, and the people in
it looked like week-old corpses. A chill crawled down Kaits
spine; the ghastliness of the scene seemed an omen to her, as
portentous as the pulsing, unending waves of evil that rolled over
Halles, or the inescapable certainty that the Sabir Karnee wanted
her and was coming for her. She pushed it out of her mind; the
airible dropped with surprising speed, and ropes snaked down out of
the sky. The soldiers caught them with practiced hands and looped
them around huge wooden pulleys anchored deep into the ground, and
began winding in the rope, straining against the huge cranks.
Within moments the airible hung just above the ground, tugging
at its moorings. In the green light, the red and the black of the
Galweigh crest blended on the garishly green-smeared silk of the
airible balloon, rendering the whole an illegible blob. Men and
women dropped out of both hatches in the long, enclosed basket,
landing on the ground below with the soft clanks of muffled armor.
The pilot appeared in the front hatch last of all and said,
Quickly, quickly, we must go. From the air I can already see
the leading edge of dawn in the east.
The soldiers hoisted Tippa into the hatch, and then
Dùghall; Kait refrained from jumping and allowed herself to be
unceremoniously shoved upward. She was grateful that she wore
sensible traveling clothes sturdy boots and heavy leather
pants and a cotton blouse with a wool tunic instead of the
delicate silk dress that Tippa had insisted on wearing. Entry into
an airible was never a graceful thing, and even less so when in
such a hurry. While she still lay on the basket floor, Kait heard
the whine of the rope paying out, and felt her weight press her
tight to the floor; they were rising fast, shooting upward so
quickly that her eardrums felt as if they would burst.
Dùghall said, Why were you so late?
Kait sat up. The pilot, a Rophetian named Aouel, didnt
turn from his stopcocks and his rudder wheel. His back to all of
them, he said, We had a foul crosswind in the midsky that
blew us south of course before I could rise out of it, and when I
did, I found myself in a headwind that I fought all the way in. If
you want the good news with the bad, though, well have the
same east-running wind all the way back, and this time it will
speed us on our journey.
I thought you werent coming, Dùghall
said.
Aouel glanced quickly at Kait, and as quickly made the look take
in the three of them. I would have flown through Tonns
hell itself to get to you, he said.
Which Kait suspected to be true; Aouel was a longtime friend of
hers, since the day when she had wandered onto the airible field on
the House grounds in Calimekka at the age of thirteen, and he had
shown her the miracles of airible flight for the first time. In
secret, in the following years, he had taught her to fly the
smaller of the airships those, like this one, that could be
handled by one person. The two of them had discussed her dreams and
his, and had remained in each others confidence even when
Kait had been sworn into the diplomatic service and her time had
ceased to be her own. The Family would have been horrified; a girl
of Galweigh breeding and future high position learning the trade of
a sailor, even a sailor of the air? A woman who would one day
negotiate the fate of the Family the confidante of a Rophetian
commoner? Unthinkable.
As Kait was wont to do, she had cherished the friendship and
guarded it as she guarded her own dark secrets and, giving a nod to
Rophetian theology, had decided the Family could go to Tonns
hell if they couldnt understand what Aouel meant to her.
The airible rose higher and the first flat gray light of dawn
that edged the horizon to the east suddenly illuminated the inside
of the cabin. No sight of the sun yet, but it wouldnt be
long. Kait shivered at the narrowness of the margin of their
escape; below, in the darkness that still blanketed Halles, eyes
watched the sky, waiting for the first beam from the sun to fall
across the top arch of the stone tower in the city square. That
light would herald the arrival of the station of Soma, and start
the ringing of the single alto bell that would mark the greeting of
the new day and launch the wedding processions from
Dokteerak House and the Galweigh Embassy into the streets. And
would culminate in the destruction of the Dokteerak Family, and
perhaps a large part of the Sabir Family as well.
For an instant, staring into that pale light, Kait saw a
reflection of the lean, hungry face of the Sabir Karnee, and for an
instant she felt his touch. And in that instant, her traitorous
heart hoped that he would escape destruction.
* * *
The first beam of sunlight struck the top arch of the black
Tower of Time through cloudless skies, and at once the bell ringer
filled the air with the single, repeated tolling of the station of
Soma. First station of morning, the First Friend of the New
Day.
As if the gates of the Galweigh Embassy were linked to the bell,
they swung open at the first note, and ten trumpeters and ten
drummers stepped into the street. They were gorgeously dressed in
the Galweigh red and black, their faces covered from forehead to
nose with fringes of gold beads, their instruments poised at the
ready. Behind them came ten handbell players, and behind them, ten
wood-flautists, and behind them, fifty dancers.
The bell of Soma rang seven times, and the last note hung in the
air, and the musicians waited still, poised until the
final shivering whispers died away into the morning hush. Then, at
a spoken signal from someone still in the compound, they launched
into the Wedding Dance. The dancers leaped in the street,
catapulted themselves into the air, and launched into great,
rattling flips and clattering spins. The heavy fringes of beads
rattled like another phalanx of drummers on their metal costumes.
The dancers carried curved swords that they swung at each
others legs with blinding speed and jumped over as they moved
forward; they shouted the names of the god of the week, who was
Duria, the spinner, and the god of the day, Bronir, who was the god
of joy and they never missed their footing. Graceful,
glorious they presented a grand and noisy spectacle.
The sides of the streets all the way from the embassy to the
Dokteerak House were already lined with workingmen and women
dressed in their finest clothing, out to see and be seen. The
paraglese of the Dokteeraks and the citys parnissas had
already jointly declared Durial Bronirsday a holiday, and the
common people of Halles were determined not to miss an instant of
the grand wedding parade that had come to amuse them; free
entertainment came hard in the city, and not often.
Behind the acrobatic sword dancers came the jugglers; oddly, all
of them juggled flashing swords, three at a time. The folk who
lined the streets murmured to each other that the trick wasnt
so much everyone knew jugglers never used sharpened swords.
But everyone agreed that the way light caught the edges of the
false weapons made them look sharp.
The concubines followed the jugglers. They flirted with the
crowd as they swayed forward, waggling their hips, jutting their
breasts, seeming a bit uncomfortable in the unaccustomed covering
of their wedding finery.
The people of Halles had hoped for trained tigers next, or
perhaps for some of the weird beasts that inhabited the Scarred
lands, but none were forthcoming. Instead, sixteen powerful litter
bearers in full dress uniform brought out the first litter, in
which sat a handsome man and a rather sturdy-looking woman, both
oddly dressed in heavy cloaks, with the customary beaded fringes
covering their faces from forehead to upper lip. Behind this first
litter came a seemingly endless succession of others, each litter
gaudier than the last, each couple swathed and veiled in more or
less the same manner. Crimson and black, a sanguinary Galweigh
river studded with flashes of gold poured forth from the embassy,
and in that outpouring the breathtaking gleam of gemstones seemed
as common as mere stones in the bottom of an ordinary river.
Glittering faceted rubies and cabochon onyx on everything; studding
the litters, the litter bearers, the brides family. A few of
the more knowledgeable marked the unending flow of gemstones as
almost surely glass, but even they had to admit the glitter made
for a gorgeous spectacle.
A choir of male singers accompanied the last litters, those of
the ambassadors, the Galweigh paraglese, and finally the bride.
They sang the standard selection of wedding songs, dedicating the
marriage to Maraxis, the god of sperm, seed, and fertility, in
whose month the wedding took place, and dedicating the bride to
Drastu, the goddess of womb, eggs, and fertility.
As was customary, the bride was completely veiled; the younger
married women in the crowd tried to make out the lines of her face
beneath the swaths of red silk and the gold-beaded fringe (for
seeing the eyes of a bride before her wedding was supposed to be an
omen of fertility in the coming year) but had to content themselves
with responding to the generous waving of her jewel-studded hands.
Those gems, everyone agreed, were real. The Hallesites
passed rumors back and forth about the bride. She was beautiful and
kind, she had taken a meal in the street, eating common food, she
had been generous with gifts and money to those shed
encountered in the streets. She had good wide hips, excellent for
bearing babies. Breasts big enough that those babies would have
plenty of suckle. She wasnt clever or witty and hadnt
seemed terribly ambitious always a plus in a woman who would
be the bride of a second son.
Altogether a fine young woman that was the common
consensus. Perhaps too good a girl for their paragleses
second son, who had the reputation throughout the city for being
spoiled, and something of a shit.
Another batch of sword jugglers and musicians followed the
brides litter, but they werent any great surprise. As
wedding parades went, the people decided, this one hadnt been
bad. A few tigers, less clothing and more cleavage on the
concubines, and perhaps a couple of fire-eating midgets and it
would have been perfect.
* * *
In the White Hall of the Sabir House in Calimekka, brilliant
morning sunlight slanted in through colored glass windows, throwing
harlequin patterns of tinted light across the carved white marble
floor so that it looked like a field of jonquillas and rubyhearts
and bluebells bursting out from beneath a sudden snow. The delicate
vaulted arches of a vast stone canopy soared over the circular
stone room, and the ceiling curved with them, echoing back every
soft sound born within the rooms confines. In this beautiful
sanctuary, the Sabir Wolves walked the final arabesques of their
power-building spell, joined by arrivals just in from Halles
Imogene and Lucien Sabir, the head Wolf and his consort. The Wolves
murmured in unison, their voices joined by the ghost-whispers of
their distant colleagues who moved insubstantial and only
half visible along the path with them . . . and
perhaps joined by other, stranger spirits as well.
The scent of honeysuckle suddenly filled the room from nowhere,
and as it did, all whispering and treading of the path and steady
chanting ceased at once, as abruptly and as completely as candles
snuffed out by a sudden draft. On the path, the Wolves in the
chamber and the ghostly images of Wolves that walked with them from
Halles and Costan Selvira and Waypoint halted as one, feet solidly
planted on the worn stone lines, heads turned toward the central
pillar which was not carved stone, as the pillar in Halles
had been, but solid gold. The air, tinged with spicy curls of
caberra incense and with the thickening sweetness of the
honeysuckle, and with malevolence, shimmered expectantly. A voice
spoke clearly into the mind of each Wolf: The time has come
let the sacrifice begin.
Something pattered softly across the room, unseen but felt by
the Wolves nearest it as pressure in the chest, as icy air that
stirred not one hair on a single head when it moved by; and all
breathed in the cloying honeysuckle reek that thickened, tainted
suddenly with the underlying stench of something long dead and
rotting.
Silence. A sense that more than the Wolves within the room
waited that other, older eyes watched, that other ears
listened. The walls of the sanctuary sighed, then murmured on their
own; words in a long-forgotten tongue that might have been full of
meaning or might have been the babble of some long-dead
madness.
Further silence.
A moment passed, and another, and then a third. Then the
faintest of drumbeats rippled through the air. One, then another,
then a third, ghostly, drummed by something that was not and had
never been human, pulsing through the air, increasing in speed and
strength as they increased in volume. The sound was the starting of
some monstrous heart that gathered resolution and power as it moved
nearer the source of its lifeblood: the White Hall and the center
of the Sabir magic. That beat moved nearer, and still nearer,
became louder and more forceful. Quickening as it moved nearer.
Nearer.
The Wolves stared straight at the pillar, eyes never wavering
toward the rooms single arched doorway, through which the
roar of that hellish heartbeat now ripped and raced like the pulse
of a stag pursued by wolves.
A girl appeared, hanging in the air, floating in the embrace of
nothingness. Her long black hair had been braided with elaborate
attention to detail and woven full of flowers, so that, as she
floated through the patterned sunlight, she seemed for an instant
to be another flower in that stained-glass garden, an ephemeral
creation of light and shadow.
She should have been beautiful; her delicate cheekbones, fine
lips, straight nose, and large, slanting eyes were perfectly
shaped. Her hands, resting folded in her lap, were works of art.
Beneath the gauzy whiteness of her gown, her small, perfect breasts
curved away to a slender rib cage and a tiny waist.
She should have been beautiful. Surely, she had once been
beautiful.
But the deadness of her expression, the unnatural pallor of her
skin, and the faint tint of bruises imperfectly covered by powders
and creams, and revealed by the sharpness of the morning light,
gave her the ghastly appearance of a corpse animated by something
other than life.
Three pairs of eyes glanced away from the pillar long enough to
study the girl to be sure that the signs of days and nights
of torture and rape and degradation were sufficiently hidden by the
makeup and fine clothes to ward off censure or punishment. Crispin,
Anwyn, and Andrew then looked to each other from their places on
the path, all of them disturbed that Danya didnt look as
convincingly pristine as she had when theyd prepared her in
their quarters. Crispin gave the faintest of nods, though
affirmation that if her appearance caused a commotion, he would be
the one to deal with it. With no other sign, the three of them
returned their gazes to the pillar.
The girl floated in the cloud of frigid, honeysuckled air to the
center of the room, where invisible hands lowered her to the ground
and held her against the golden column with an unbreakable grip.
She shivered with each beat of the phantom drum, but otherwise gave
no sign of life.
The drumming died into silence and the room sighed again, the
walls breathing softly, whispering unintelligible things. The
Wolves beneath did not permit themselves to be distracted by the
murmurs; they immediately set to the task of casting the spell into
which all the preparation had gone. Years of research, more years
to cull the proper spell from Ancient texts and reform it from the
old tongues of wizards into the rich, rolling Iberan language,
months of power-building, hundreds of lesser sacrifices, the
kidnapping of a young and powerful enemy Wolf, a delicate
diversionary plot and the commitment of all the Sabir Family
resources, in both material and manpower all moved at last
to this single time, this single place, this single irrevocable
irretrievable opportunity to annihilate the Familys
hereditary enemies, the Galweighs, from Calimekka. No faltering
now, no going back, no second thoughts. The dead were in
attendance; the living must act.
In unison the Wolves began the chant.
Chapter 13
Somethings wrong, Kait said.
Dùghall looked up from patting the sobbing Tippa.
Wrong in what way?
The feeling of all-pervasive evil had, in the last few moments,
grown unendurable. Kait felt it as nausea and joint pain and a
pounding headache behind her eyeballs, and as the crawling of
thousands of invisible spiders up and down her spine.
Ive felt something evil in Halles since the night of
the Naming Day party, she told him, but now I feel
almost as if it were going to . . . She frowned.
As if it were going to burst.
Dùghall turned to Tippa. Lie down, child, and breathe
as slowly as you can. Youll feel better soon. He waited
until she curled up on the velvet-upholstered bench, then came over
and sat next to Kait. Youve felt the presence of
evil. And you feel it now. He frowned, but to Kait he
also had the scent of excitement about him.
Yes.
How do you feel it?
I dont know how. I just do.
That isnt what I meant to ask. Describe the
sensations by which this evil tells you of its existence.
Kait nodded, understanding. First as pressure against my
skin. And tingling along the back of my neck. A sort of
. . . of greasiness, I suppose, that seemed to
move around and through me. Now . . . I feel as if my
eyes are about to explode from my head, and I want to vomit, and I
hurt everywhere.
Dùghalls eyes were wide. Yes. Yes. And the
sensation of greasiness?
I still feel that, but everything else is so much stronger
that it doesnt bother me as much.
Yes. Precisely. Tell me . . . have you had
dreams recently?
Nightmares. Every night. Monsters chasing me, and death
everywhere I havent had a good sleep since we got to
Halles.
Just so. Dùghall had begun to grin. The scent
of excitement around him intensified. Im going to do
something. Tell me what you feel.
Kait waited. Dùghall sat with his hands clasped on his
knees, eyes squeezed tightly closed . . . and did
nothing. And then, suddenly, Kaits headache was gone, and the
nausea and the pain with it. She felt wonderful as wonderful
as she had the moment she ran into Hasmal. Perhaps even better,
since her discomfort and anxiety had been so much worse to begin
with.
Its all gone, she said. All the evil,
all the pain.
Marvelous, Dùghall murmured, so low that only
she could hear him. This is simply marvelous,
Kait-cha.
Why? She kept her own voice pitched nearly as low
and soft as his.
What you sense is magic being worked. I must assume that
no one taught you to do this . . . ?
No. Of course not. Bewildered, Kait stared at her
uncle. Magic? She sensed magic being worked? But no one did
magic its practice had been forbidden ever since humans had
climbed out of the rubble left by the Wizards War and set
about rebuilding the world. Why would you say I felt
magic?
He took her hand and held it between his own. Dont
think that because it is forbidden, magic isnt practiced. Or
even that it is solely the tool of evil. If you can sense it, girl,
you have the potential to use it. And you could do good things with
it magic was once one of the paths to enlightenment.
He sighed. Even being able to tell when you are around magic,
though, will be invaluable to you as a diplomat in the
Familys service. We always need to know when our enemies and
allies have capabilities that we dont.
Kait considered that for a while. Magic was heresy of the worst
sort; doing magic was worse even than being Karnee. If she could
sense magic, did that mean she was doing magic? Was she guilty of
this further heresy in spite of having never sought it out?
She probably was. It didnt matter. She could only die
once, and the automatic death sentence she carried just by being
Karnee couldnt be made any worse if she added a cartload of
other sins.
Dùghall seemed able to follow the tenor of her thoughts,
for he said, You think about it and discover that things
cant get any worse for you, dont you?
Thats exactly what I was thinking.
Well, now Ill tell you how they can get better. You
must let me teach you how to tap your talents with magic. Once you
know how to use the forces all around you, youll be able to
avoid the pain you feel when you are close to those who are working
darsharen, which is the magic of Wolves, and the sort of
magic that is making you feel sick. And with farhullen,
which is the magic of Falcons and a force for good, you will be
able to overcome and even prevent some evils. Your
ability to serve the Family will increase beyond your
imagining. As he told her this, his face lit up as if he were
a boy receiving a great gift, and he radiated scents of pleasure
and excitement.
Kait remained cautious, though his enthusiasm allayed most of
her misgivings. Everything Dùghall had ever done with Kait had
made her life better. She trusted him. So she asked, If this
is so if magic can be used for good and not just for evil
why is it forbidden?
Dùghall made a disgusted face. Because the parnissas
would rather forbid what they dont understand than learn how
it might be of value if it were permitted. This is, I think, a
characteristic common to those who seek public power. Willful
ignorance and endless laws become the replacement for
self-education and self-restraint, because ignorance and laws are
easy.
Kait despised the parnissas. If ever they discovered what she
was, they would demand her death that same instant. Her parents had
risked their own lives for five years substituting another child
for her in the inspections on the Day of Infants. Yet she had done
nothing to deserve death; and she could not forgive the parnissas
for enforcing the laws that demanded it. Teach me, she
said. Im quick, and I work hard. Youll find me an
eager student.
Well start tomorrow. He smiled, then looked
over at Tippa. She was sitting again, and sobbing twice as loudly
as she had been before, and now she was rocking back and forth,
too. His smile tightened and Kait could see strain in his eyes.
Meanwhile, I can see that your cousin feels shes not
getting the attention she deserves. Excuse me while I tend to her
. . . or else I suspect shell resort to tearing her
hair and clothes and wailing like a war mourner.
He moved to her cousins side and left Kait to contemplate
magic and what it meant to her, and to her world.
* * *
Sacred is the binding of two lives, sacred the bond
between two families, sacred the promises made this day. The
parnissa who presided over the wedding shifted on her dais, and the
morning sunlight caught her hair and spun a silver nimbus around
her head. She smiled down at the veiled bride and bridegroom who
stood before her on the rise at the north end of the basin. She
smiled at the representatives of the two Families, the ranks of
blue and gold filling the stone risers on the west side of the
amphitheater, and the wall of red and black that rose to the east
side. She even deigned to smile briefly at the troops of
entertainers who crowded all the way around the rim of the
amphitheater, though most parnissas would have not noticed them;
the gods had nothing to say to their sort on these occasions.
Norlis, the embassy master sergeant, was playing the part of
Macklin Galweigh, father of the bride. He watched the swordswoman
playing the bride slide her right hand slowly into the deep folds
of her skirt. He forced himself not to stiffen and he kept his
breathing easy in spite of himself, and in spite of knowing that
the same anticipation ran through the veins of every other man and
woman in the Galweigh troops. Almost . . . almost
. . .
Jerren Draclas Galweigh, commander of the troops, shifted on the
hard stone riser. He sat just to the left of Norlis; he was,
because he was slender and shorter than average, dressed as a
Family woman. Norlis heard his breathing quicken.
Almost . . . almost . . .
And above, the extra ranks of swordsmen and archers, in their
disguises as jugglers and concubines, made ready without being
obvious about it.
The parnissa raised her arms over her head, her hands forming
the symbols of the sun and the earth. As the sun feeds
Matrin, so the man feeds the woman. As Matrin gives life to the
universe, so the woman gives life to the man. You are equal, and
from this day forth you shall stand together, paired, two made one
and stronger than any three.
The battle hunger pounded in Norliss veins, tinged with
the sharpness of fear. Inescapable, the fear that death
could be such a familiar face and still be such a stranger, that it
waited for him and for the rest who sat in the sacred basin
and yet he lived for moments such as these, when he became more
alive than he ever was elsewise. He waited, watching the lemon
lizards skittering through the grass below him, their bright yellow
bodies gleaming in the shortening rays of the tropical sun
. . . gleaming as bright and metallic as the tiny
glimpses of armor reflected back at him from the Dokteerak side of
the amphitheater. He smiled at that. Tradition gave the
brides family the eastern side of the basin, and tradition
this time meant that the enemy would have the sun in their eyes at
commencement of the battle, and that their stray movements now
revealed their treachery, at the same time that the long shadows on
the east side of the basin hid the Galweigh readiness to attack or
defend. Norlis smelled the sweat of the men and women all around
him who roasted as he did in battle armor disguised beneath wedding
dress. He listened to the drone of the parnissa, and the murmurs of
the audience, and he felt the sun on the back of his neck send
trickling beads of sweat down his own spine, beneath the scale mail
and the padding and his sodden clothes, to where he couldnt
get at it. So good to be alive and so dear, when all those
sensations could be snatched away from him in an instant.
And do you, Tippa Delista Anja na Kita Galweigh, accept
with honor this man, and pledge your faith, in the sight of the
gods who bless all true unions?
My honor on his good faith, now and always, the
impostor said.
Almost . . . almost . . .
And do you, Calmet Ekheer na Boulouk Dokteerak,
accept with honor this woman, and pledge your faith, in the sight
of the gods who bless all true unions?
If the Dokteeraks were to go through with their treachery, they
had to act or be forsworn before the gods.
And Calmet Dokteerak, who was ready to break his troth to
humankind, evidently didnt extend his treachery to
double-crossing the gods. He ripped off his groom veil to reveal a
helmet beneath. I do not! he shouted, and pulled a
dagger from its hiding place beneath his short cloak at the small
of his back. Die, you stupid bitch!
Tippas stand-in had her blade in hand before anyone from
either side could move, and Calmets hand and the dagger it
had clutched lay on the stones, drenched in blood.
To arms, Jerren Galweigh shouted, and suddenly the
circle around the top of the amphitheater was ringed with red and
black, and a rain of arrows poured from both sides into the western
risers.
All became chaos, but chaos with direction. The gold and blue
Dokteeraks, well led, charged up the western risers to engage the
archers there in close combat; the plan would have been good, but
the archers fell back and gave way to the ranks of swordsmen who
had been dressed as jugglers elite fighters with tremendous
skill with their weapons. Meanwhile, the Galweighs in the east
risers swarmed down and pinned the enemy between themselves and the
other flank of the attack.
The Dokteerak troops, who had expected no more resistance than
could have been mustered by any wedding crowd, died in heaps and
piles. Outnumbered and unprepared to meet battle-hardened warriors,
shouting for reinforcements that never arrived, they fought well,
but not well enough.
The two flanks of the Galweigh army forced the survivors down to
the floor of the amphitheater and back toward the cowering
parnissa, who screamed of heresy and abomination, and who remained
untouched by both sides because to kill the sacred hand of the gods
would bring down curses on the slayers family for uncounted
generations. So the bodies piled around her, most of them garbed in
blue and gold. But not all, of course. Not all.
Norlis saw friends fall, and grimaced, and drove harder into the
diminished ranks of the Dokteerak troops. His blade shone as red as
his clothes, the blood runnels full of gore. For Kait, he thought,
because he admired the Galweighs, but he secretly loved Kait. For
Kait, because these bastards would have slaughtered her and all her
Family.
For Kait.
Then there were no more enemies to kill there were only
surrendering soldiers begging for their lives. Jerren Galweigh
mounted the dais and raised his still-bloody sword over his head.
We triumph! he screamed. To the city, where we
will claim what has become ours.
The roar of cheers. Norlis shouted with the rest, yelling his
throat raw. Then movement overhead caught his eye. An airible
sailed slowly over the amphitheater, and faces turned upward to
watch it. Odd hed thought all the airibles were back
in Calimekka. A second moved into view behind the first.
He frowned. Many of the troops still shouted and cheered on this
unexpected air support, but the airibles didnt look
right to Norlis. The enormous white envelopes seemed both too
short and too round somehow. Their lines were oddly lumpy, their
engines sounded both too loud and too rough, and the shapes of the
gondolas beneath
The surviving Dokteeraks started grinning.
Faces peered out from the tops of the gondolas, and a sudden
chill gripped Norlis. None of the Galweigh airibles had open
gondolas anymore, did they? But the Galweighs were the only Family
in Ibera who had airibles or the engines that made them
move. Those were secrets from the ancient past, and guarded as
closely as the Galweighs guarded their lives.
But the airibles came on, and they were not Galweigh airibles.
The watching men overhead waited until they had drifted closer;
then hoses poked over the gondola rims, and in the next instant a
rain of something stinking and wet and green and sticky doused him
and everyone else in and around the amphitheater.
Run! Jerren shouted, but he hadnt caught on
quickly enough. Not quickly enough at all. While the green rain
still fell, archers from the second gondola began shooting flaming
arrows into the crowd, and into the stinking deluge. The green
liquid caught, and suddenly the sky rained fire, and around the
amphitheater hundreds of men and women blossomed with flames.
The airibles turned sideways. Norlis, not yet burning but
trapped in the center of flames, by all rights should have thought
of nothing but his own onrushing oblivion. He did remark the
airibles, though, and he recognized, when it was far too late to do
him or anyone else any good, the crests painted on their suddenly
visible sides. Sabir Family. Flashes of forest green and silver,
the design twin trees laden with silver fruit.
The other half of the betrayal and a betrayal not just of
the Galweighs, but of the Dokteeraks, who had considered the Sabirs
allies.
All of us burn together Galweigh and Dokteerak alike,
Norlis realized. And the Sabirs, who crossed us and double-crossed
them, win Halles. And what else? With all of our fighting forces
here, and all of the Family in Calimekka . . . do they
win Galweigh House as well?
Then flames and smoke and screaming swallowed Norlis.
* * *
The long shadows in the courtyard of Galweigh House turned the
manicured grass into rough-cut velvet in the places where the
morning sun reached over the wall. Humid air, the temperature
already rising, intermittent breeze catching and rattling the palm
fronds around the House and bringing distant wind chimes to
invisible life. A pretty morning that promised to give way later to
a hot and possibly stormy day. The serving girl picked her way
along the path to the guardhouse at the gate, carrying one tray on
her head and one in her arms, both laden with food.
One of the guards saw her coming and ran out to relieve her of
the heavier of the two trays.
Thank you. Im sorry I took so long. She smiled
up at him. She was attractive wide smile, even teeth, eyes
that crinkled at the corners when she grinned. A lot of cleavage
which she had gone to some trouble to show off.
He laughed. We were beginning to think Cook wasnt
going to feed us this morning.
The girl shook her head. You should know I wouldnt
let you go hungry. When have I ever not gotten your food to
you?
True. One of the other guards opened the guardhouse
door and sighed. Truly, Lizal, you are a vision to a hungry
man like me.
Of course I am. But not because you lust after me, you
goat. You only love me for my sweet rolls.
All the men laughed. One said, You didnt really
bring sweet rolls, did you?
I did. Thats what took me so long. I couldnt
steal enough for all of you until she left the kitchen for a
moment.
The man who had helped her carry their meal into the guardhouse
said fervently, Id marry you for real if youd
have me.
The woman they called Lizal laughed. But I wouldnt.
So your virtue and your honor are intact.
She stood chatting with them while they ate, as she did every
morning, watching them devour the corn flatbread and pudding and
fried plantains, and especially the stolen sweet rolls, with
bright, intent eyes. When theyd finished, she told them if
she didnt get back to the kitchen, Cook would have her hide.
She said the same thing every morning, and as they did every
morning, the men laughed and patted her round rump, and told her
they would marry her if she wanted and tried to tempt her into
staying longer, into going to bed with one or all of them, and into
various other indiscretions.
As always, she smiled, made vague promises that she would
consider their offers, and left.
She didnt go back to the kitchen, however. This morning
she walked back down the path toward it, but ducked behind some
tall shrubs the instant she was out of direct sight of the
guardhouse. There she stripped off her Galweigh livery and put on a
grubby plain brown smock and patched homespun skirt and shabby
leather sandals clothing that made her look almost like a
poor peasant. She disarranged her hair and rubbed dirt into the
creases of her hands and underneath her fingernails, and rubbed
more dirt into her feet and lower legs. Now she looked exactly like
a poor peasant. Disguise completed, she gathered up two small bags,
one that clinked heavily when she moved it, and a larger, lumpier
one that did not, and, with them in hand, moved behind the line of
shrubbery until the guardhouse was once again in sight. From her
screened vantage point, she watched and waited.
For a short while, she heard only the normal conversation
between the guards. Then she heard groaning, and vomiting. More
groaning. Then, after what seemed like forever, silence.
She rose, walked back to the guardhouse, and looked inside. The
guards all lay on the floor, some across others where they had
fallen. Their backs arched, their arms pulled straight back at
their sides, rigid as boards, their necks stretched backward, their
eyes bulged out and their tongues protruded.
The poison her Sabir employer had given her certainly looked
effective. Two sweet rolls each, and not a one of the men was still
breathing.
No mess, no fuss, no bother, she murmured. Not much
mess, anyway. She did watch where she put her sandaled feet as she
clambered over the bodies. She pulled the lever that released the
weights that lifted the portcullis gate (struggling a bit, because
it was surprisingly heavy), and set it into the locked position.
Then she walked out to the gate and to the obsidian-paved Path of
Gods, where she bowed to the first of the men in dark green and
silver who waited. The guards in the guardhouse are dead.
Everyone else is alive the Galweighs are too active this
morning, and I was afraid one of them would come across the bodies
in the kitchen if I poisoned the other kitchen workers. She
handed him the smaller bag. All the copies of the House keys
that I could get my hands on are in here, as well as the best copy
of a map that I could steal. The majority of the Family is on the
second floor right now, in their quarters. A few are still in the
main salon on the first floor. None, as far as I know, are on the
ground floor.
And below? Ry Sabir asked.
I dont know who might be there. If you have to go
below, youll have trouble. There are . . . things
down there that frighten me. You can hear them moving, and
sometimes you can smell them . . . but theyre
always in the dark where you cant see them.
He nodded, but didnt look worried. Well
manage. You know where to go?
I do. My passage has been arranged?
Yes. I think youre too cautious you could
have a place in Sabir House if you wanted it. Youve served us
well.
She shook her head. You arent planning on killing
all of the Galweighs, and they may come to figure out who was the
spy in their midst. They can be . . . vengeful.
As we all can if were crossed. He smiled
slyly. Have a good voyage, then, Wenne.
As the girl turned away from the cliff and hurried from Galweigh
House, Ry Sabir, with map and keys in hand, led his lieutenants and
his Familys troops into the enemy domain. The girl had been
right the servants were concentrated on the ground floor,
and the showing of swords convinced most of them to surrender
quietly; the efficient slaughter of the few who dared resist
convinced the rest. From there, Ry broke the Sabir troops into five
groups; they rushed both main sets of stairs and the several
servants staircases to the first floor simultaneously, and
caught several more servants on the way. In the salon, almost all
of the Galweigh Family waited for news of the battle in Halles. The
Galweighs, caught unarmed and unprepared, gave no more trouble than
the servants had they surrendered in exchange for the
promise of their lives. As easily as that, the great House
fell.
Ry handed over control of the main troops to his fathers
chosen commander, and drew his colleagues aside. She
isnt with them; were going to have to search the House
for her.
We could wait for her to come to us. Jaim,
uncharacteristically, was the first to speak.
Ry shook his head. He was both too excited to wait and too
afraid that something might go wrong. His fathers men
didnt intend to honor the guarantee theyd given the
Galweigh Family; as soon as the cleanup crews were sure the
captives were all in one place, the Family excepting a few
individuals who could give useful information were to be put
to the sword. Lucien Sabir wanted no bold rescues mounted by the
branches of the Galweigh Family in the Imumbarra Isles or Goft, or
in the far colony settlements of Icta Draclas or the North Shore,
and he reasoned that none would be if all the Calimekkan branch
were dead.
We have to find her now, he said. Now.
Its desperate.
Yanth said, Ill follow where you lead
. . . but where in this vast place will you
lead?
Ry closed his eyes and tried to locate the woman. In the House,
her belongings and objects in which she had invested a part of
herself surrounded him. He felt their faint glows in all
directions, pulling at him. Too, his own fear and excitement
pressured him to act quickly, now that his moment had finally come,
before something could take her from him permanently and
both fear and excitement clouded his senses. Adding to that
difficulty was the overwhelming force of magic gathered and aimed
at the Galweighs but not yet discharged that seemed to
thicken the very air he breathed, and to make him feel as if he
were running uphill through deep mud. He couldnt get a clear
fix on her. In several places in the House, however, he felt her
presence most strongly, and at least all of those were in the same
direction. Upward, he said. Shes got to be
somewhere above us. He ran for the nearest stairs.
* * *
The Galweigh Wolves chanted in darkness, building a crushing
blow against the Sabir Wolves one that would strike them
just as the Galweigh forces in Halles would surely defeat the
combined Dokteerak and Sabir forces. Drummers at the four corners
of the enormous workroom pounded out four separate rhythms that
wound over and around and through each other, talking back and
forth, moving like smoky voices in and out of the joined voices of
the wizards who spun the destruction and death of their hereditary
enemies out of syllables and will. No fires illuminated the
windowless room, yet there was light a soft glow that flowed
around the sacrifices who begged for their lives in their cage in
the center of the room. And there was, uncharacteristically, the
smell of honeysuckle, at first soft and seductive, and then
increasingly strong, and laced with scents of death and decay.
Baird Galweigh, much-Scarred head of the Familys Wolves,
threw his head back and howled the final words of the spell of
destruction . . . and as he did, he felt ancient minds
brush against his, and ancient ambitions shiver against invisible
bars. Fear curled in his gut, but he had faced more than fear in
his lifetime, and the promises of his enemies destruction
sang louder than the warnings his gut gave him. He brought the
spell to its conclusion, supported by the will of the rest of the
Wolves.
Lightning crackled in the room, running from the floor up the
walls, streaming across the ceiling, heading toward the Sabir
compound, seeking the magical high ground the spell had made of the
Sabir Wolves. The Galweigh Wolves braced themselves and turned
their attention to their captives, held in the center of the room
captives meant to handle the rewhah, the equal force
of negative energy that would rebound from the spell just cast. Any
part of the rewhah that they didnt absorb, the Wolves
would have to take. And any magic that the Wolves had to absorb
would Scar them.
The pressure built in the room, and built, and built, and Baird
crouched lower and lower, mimicking in an unconscious physical
display the magical preparations his body made to ward off the
coming blow.
Abruptly the lightning reversed course and poured into the
captives, directed there by the Wolves. The fierce will of the
wizards held the magical backwash on the screaming captives while
the energy twisted and mangled their bodies. But suddenly the
lightning spread, and burst free of the bounds, and poured over the
Wolves, too, twisting them and melting them and reshaping them as
if it were fire and they were wax.
The captives exploded in balls of light, vanished in clouds of
dust.
The lightning kept coming, and the Wolves began to fall to the
floor writhing, dying. Baird, in a last moment of clear
thought, realized that the Sabir Wolves had chosen to attack the
Galweigh Wolves at the same moment the Galweigh Wolves had attacked
them. He hoped their rewhah was as uncontrollable; he hoped
their death toll was as high.
But the last stimulus to touch his dying senses was not a sense
of pain and fear in the Sabirs. It was the reek of honeysuckle, so
strong it seemed a blanket suffocating him to death.
Chapter 14
Energy sang through the White Hall as the attack spell
shattered the Galweigh Wolves, and the Sabirs braced themselves
against the return blow. At the central pillar, Danya Galweigh
screamed and writhed, her body absorbing almost all of the magical
backlash. Her form changed from lovely to hideous as foul magic
poured through her; she sprouted horns and spines, grew scales and
fangs and claws, then shed them for worse and more hideous things;
always she melted and twisted obscenely. But the Sabirs had guessed
her strength and her resilience well, and she buffered them from
the deadly rewhah energy, while the Wolves, by spreading out
the slight overflow among themselves, prevented any one of their
number from taking heavy Scars.
What the Sabirs hadnt figured into their careful
calculations was a simultaneous attack from the Galweighs, and when
that spell hit their sacrifice, the combined forces of it and their
own rewhah broke free of the confinements of their spells
and the buffer of the girl. Danya Galweigh sizzled for an instant,
and black lightning coalesced around her; the air filled with smoke
and the sickening scent of decay; she screamed so loudly and with
such terror that her throat sounded like it was tearing itself
apart. Then thunder crashed inside the White Hall, and the girl
vanished utterly. And the combined magic of spell and rewhah
smashed down on the Sabir Wolves, unbuffered, undirected, and
raw.
Those quickest to understand what was happening the
senior Wolves and the unholy triad of Andrew, Anwyn, and Crispin
quickly shifted the brunt of the streaming hell of power
onto the younger, weaker Wolves. Thus they survived, though even
they bore fresh Scars. Those who were neither so quick nor so
ruthless died horribly, melting into inhuman forms, changing and
changing until the mutations became too many and too lethal to
survive, begging as they writhed for rescue, collapsing with their
pleas unanswered.
The walls of the White Hall began to scream the babble of
a thousand voices, of a hundred long-dead tongues. Clearly, the
survivors heard the sound of a door opening, though the White Hall
had no doors. Light shimmered, laughter echoed amid the thunder and
the lightning, and for an instant the scent of honeysuckle became
so thick it was suffocating.
The surviving Wolves fell unconscious to the floor, overwhelmed
by the force of whatever it was that had come through that
otherworldly door.
* * *
Almost home. Kait watched the great city slide beneath the
airible and wondered if she would have time to visit with her
sisters and brothers before she received her next assignment. She
smiled out the window, her mind already racing ahead to the visit
Drusa was pregnant and Echo had just had a baby, and Kait,
who would never dare have children of her own, loved to feel the
movement of new life in her older sisters belly, and loved to
feel her younger sisters son grip her finger with his tiny
hand.
Almost home. Tippa had finally stopped her wailing; Dùghall
had promised her a trip to his islands as consolation, and her
choice of the best Imumbarran weaving. She napped. Dùghall
stretched out on one of the velvet-upholstered benches,
reading.
Below and well to her right, she saw the first glimpse of the
House. Its ivory walls surrounded emerald lawn like a ring around a
jewel. She sighed. Almost home . . . to sisters and
brothers and endless cousins; to laughter-spiced meals taken at the
long tables; to talks with her mother as they sat by the fountains
or walked through the hanging garden in the morning; to evening
discussions of city policy and trade and politics with her father
and uncles; to familiar books in the library and the familiar smell
and feel of her bed, her sheets, her room.
She anticipated her return, and wondered if she would be so
homesick after every assignment, or if leaving would get easier
with time.
Her head began to ache again.
She blinked, and rubbed absently at her temples. She closed her
eyes.
The pain got worse.
Dùghall groaned. Kait sat up, frowning, and said,
Uncle? My head
The blinding pain took her by surprise. She clutched at her
pounding skull and cried out, as wave upon wave of fire-hot agony
drove sight from her eyes and threw her, helpless, to the airible
floor.
The pressure doubled, and doubled again, and at last blackness
swallowed her.
* * *
Aouel pulled the valve chain that shifted the ballast toward the
airibles nose. Calimekka slid by below; the starkness of the
gridwork of streets and the shadow-outlined pattern of red and
brown tile roofs contrasted with the rampant jungle greenery that
burst from every tiny square of unwatched earth, and with the
colorful rush of people and animals filling the avenues and alleys.
Already he could see the front face of Galweigh House carved into
the side of the cliff, and the sleek, translucent curve of the
walls around it. He loved the calm of the air, the distance from
the noise and bustle of the city, the feeling of being part of the
world that hurried below, yet apart from it and superior to it as
well.
He let his concentration drift to thoughts of the newest
airible, already under construction on the Galweigh airfield in
Glasmar, and the improvements in lift and speed hed heard
boasted of it; hed done no more than install himself as
imaginary captain of it, though, before a groan, a thud, and a
scream, all in quick succession, destroyed his fantasy. He grabbed
his dagger and turned, expecting to find Dokteerak stowaways,
perhaps but he could see no sign of danger. Kait lay on the
cabin floor, unmoving. As he hurried to her he could see that her
chest still rose and fell. Sweat beaded her unnaturally pale skin,
and beneath her closed eyelids, her eyes darted from side to
side.
What happened? he asked Dùghall. But though
Dùghall remained in his seat and his eyes stayed open, the
ambassador didnt answer. Instead, he leaned against the
velvet cushions, his face as pale as Kaits, seeming to see
and hear nothing that went on around him. He trembled and pressed
his hands to his ears as if to block out some unpleasant sound.
Aouel looked to Tippa, who stared back at him. What
happened?
I dont know, she said. Shed just woken
up. Her eyes were red and swollen from all the crying, and she
looked frightened. Still, she knelt by Kait and checked her pulse,
then checked Dùghalls. Aouel had always thought her
empty-skulled, but perhaps shed inherited a bit of the
Familys sense after all. I was asleep, and I heard a
shout.
Aouel glanced toward the airibles controls. It maintained
the gentle downward spiral that hed set for it. He had a
moment before he was needed back at the controls. So he tried to
rouse Dùghall, who appeared to be less affected by whatever
had happened. He shook his shoulder, then jerked his hand back as,
for just a moment, an eerie faint green light illuminated
Dùghalls body. The light vanished so quickly Aouel could
have tried to convince himself that hed imagined it
but he didnt think he had.
In any case, Dùghall groaned and clutched his head, and
opened his eyes. All those voices . . . he
whispered.
Then his eyes met Aouels. Kait?
She hasnt moved, Aouel told him.
Dùghall massaged his forehead. Take Tippa to the
front with you. Land us as quickly as you can. Dùghall
gave Tippa a hard look. You, as soon as we land, go inside
and find your cousin Tammesin. Tell him I need help out here.
Dont say a word about what has happened. Not a word. Nothing
about Kait, nothing about me fainting, only that I need
Tammesins help out here. Do you understand?
Tippa nodded.
Go, then. He turned his attention to Aouel.
Have we much longer until we land?
No.
Good. Land us, then get me some help for the girl. Make
sure that idiot Tippa doesnt go shouting all over the House
that something has happened to Kait. This was . . .
He frowned and lowered his voice. It was an enemy attack. It
has the feel of Sabir work, but theres more to it than that.
Something dangerous is going on, and until Ive had the chance
to speak to the paraglese, we need to keep it quiet.
Aouel felt sick. Sabir work and it had affected Kait
badly. He wondered how much danger she was in. He ran to the front
and took up the controls again the airible had drifted south
of its destination, but it had not gone badly out of range.
Hed have to circle around and come at the landing ground from
the north, which would be awkward. Most of the regular landing men
were in Halles with the rest of the soldiers; an unpracticed crew
composed primarily of householders would be bringing him in, and
they wouldnt be looking for him to come from the north.
On this day, he wasnt supposed to announce his arrival
the removal of the Galweighs from Halles was supposed to
have been accomplished with stealth at both ends of the journey.
Under other circumstances, he would have circled overhead until the
landers saw him and came out to bring the airible in. These were
not normal circumstances, however. He had strict instructions to
get on the ground as quickly as he could.
So he pulled the cord that sent air screaming through the valves
of the airibles ready alarm. They would hear that alarm
inside the House, on the grounds . . . and yes, probably
all the way to the Sabir compound, two hills away. To Tonns
hell with all of them, and anyone who complained of his
actions.
By the time hed fought the airible into position, the
lander crew was on the ground. He skipped protocols and brought the
airible down as fast as he could, dropping the mooring ropes well
before any of the men could hope to catch them. Some might tangle
. . . but enough wouldnt.
Be ready to jump the second we touch down, he told
Tippa. For a wonder, she didnt quibble about muddying her
skirts or skinning her knees. Partly to keep her calm enough that
she wouldnt do anything stupid, and partly to reassure
himself, he said, Im sure Kaitll be fine,
though he wasnt sure of any such thing.
Shed better be, Tippa said softly. She
risked her life for me, standing against some Gyru princes on
Naming Day night. And Uncle told me shes the one who
discovered the Dokteeraks plan to kill me today. Id be
once shamed and once dead without her.
The landers were slow to the winches and sloppy with the ropes,
but Aouel had expected nothing better. He closed down the throttle
that fed fuel into the airibles engines and let the landers
do their work, never mind that they did it poorly. He got down into
the gangway with Tippa, so that he could assist her to the ground
he couldnt expect the tyros manning the ropes to know
assisting the Family passengers was their job, too.
So when the airible stopped descending and he opened the hatch,
he wasnt prepared for the sight that greeted him a
line of Sabir archers hidden from the air by the overhang of the
Houses first-floor balcony, their bows drawn and their arrows
aimed at the landers; two more archers, these not dressed in their
Sabir livery, with their arrows trained on Tippa and him; and a
handful of rough-looking swordsmen in Sabir livery who came running
toward the airible gondola.
Aouel didnt think; he shouted, Dùghall
Sabirs! at the same time that Tippa screamed.
The Sabir troops grinned, and the archers drew their bows
tighter.
On the ground, one man shouted. Both of you.
Now. Or well kill the girl.
Aouel swallowed. He lowered Tippa to the ground, then jumped
down himself.
Who else is aboard?
The ambassador. Dùghall.
Thats all?
Yes, Aouel lied.
The swordsman turned to Tippa. That the truth?
Tippa nodded.
The swordsman glanced at Aouel, his eyes taking in the livery,
the braided black hair, the bead-trimmed beard. Youre
the pilot of that thing, right?
Aouel nodded.
And Rophetian?
Yes.
Rophetians are all right, and we can use a trained pilot.
Youll find a place with us. He gestured to two of the
other swordsmen, and they moved to Aouels side, efficiently
took his weapons away from him, and pulled him out of the way of
the gangway.
The swordsman turned back to Tippa. And who are you? The
little bride-to-be?
She nodded.
Another damned Galweigh. We have more of you people than
we need . . . but Im sure the men will find a way
to make your wedding day memorable. He laughed and grabbed
her arm, intending to shove her toward more of the Sabir
soldiers.
It happened so quickly that Aouel almost missed it. The
Sabirs fingers wrapped around Tippas upper left arm.
Her right hand whipped out of the folds of her skirt and her dagger
flashed across his throat before he could raise his hand to block
it. Blood gouted from the wound in a pulsing stream, spattering the
girls face and her hands and her dress. In the same instant
that the swordsmans fingers began to lose their grip, two
arrows sprouted from Tippas rib cage as if by magic, and she
stared down at her chest, her expression shocked and disbelieving.
She turned to look at him, eyes round; she looked so much like she
wanted him to explain, and her mouth opened, and he would have
sworn she was going to ask him a question. Then she sagged, and the
life went out of her eyes, and she fell across the downed
swordsman.
Then Dùghall appeared in the gangway, and looked down at
the body of his niece, and dropped heavily to the ground.
Ill see that you pay for that, he told the
archers. They laughed, and one drew back his bow. But another of
the swordsmen snarled, Put that down. Hes the one we
were to get, you ass, and the archer relaxed the tension on
the bowstring.
Aouel thought, yes, they would want Dùghall. The Imumbarra
Isles were the heart of the Galweigh caberra trade, and if the
Sabirs wanted to take that over, they would have to find out what
he knew, and perhaps work out a deal with him. He was, after all,
one of the Imumbarran gods.
And the Sabirs werent fools; they would want the spice
trade. So for the time, at least, Dùghall would be safe.
He avoided looking at the ambassador, afraid that his eyes might
show too plainly the question he wanted most to ask: What did
you do with Kait?
He might find out too soon several of the swordsmen were
clambering aboard to search the gondola. He stood, forcing his face
to remain impassive, hoping that Dùghall had hidden her,
wishing he could sneak just a quick look at the diplomat but not
daring even the most hurried glimpse.
He prayed for the safety of his friend, and stood sweating in
the hot sun, and finally the Sabir soldiers came back to the
gangway and said, All clear. Found some mail and some silk
and a couple of silver bottles shaped like cats. Nobody else in
there, though.
As the soldiers force-marched him and Dùghall toward the
House, Aouel almost smiled.
Chapter 15
The sound of voices yammering unintelligibly inside his
skull finally brought Ry around. He opened his eyes, intending to
demand silence of the people making all the noise but only
one person sat beside him. That was Yanth, and Yanth dozed on a
chair, a bandage covering part of his head.
The voices shouted louder not from another room or from
far away, but from right inside his head. Three of them, two men
and one woman, argued in the most heated and scathing tones, but
while he could make out each syllable of each of their words
clearly, he couldnt understand anything they said. Further,
he couldnt even identify the language they spoke which
seemed to him both terrible and strange. As a Sabir, trained from
birth to both diplomacy and magic, the languages of Ibera
both living and dead kept few secrets from him. He spoke
most of the living languages fluently and could at least follow
basic conversations in the rest. Of the dead languages, he had
solid knowledge as well; most of the surviving works on magic were
written in the five major tongues of ancient Kasree, which had been
Ibera and Strithia and part of Manarkas before the so-called
Thousand Years of Darkness.
Yet he recognized nothing of the conversation that went on
inside his skull save the tones of rage.
He pressed his fists against his temples and tried to remember
what had happened. He and his friends had been running up the
stairs. Something had exploded inside of his head tremendous
pain and noise had blinded him and driven him to his knees. The
world had filled with the scent of flowers and rot.
And beyond that . . . nothing. Nothing.
What time was it? Where was he? Where were the rest of his
friends? How long had he lain insensate? And what had become of the
Galweigh woman in the meantime?
He sat up. The voices fell silent, but he didnt have the
feeling that they had left him. Only that they waited for
something. It was madness to believe he heard voices in his head,
except he didnt believe himself the sort to go mad.
In a chair next to the cot on which he lay, his best friend
slept. Ry said, Yanth, wake up.
Yanth stirred, groaned, and opened his eyes. My head pains
me, he said, then focused on Ry. Gods, youre
finally awake . . . He frowned and rose from the
chair in a jerky, almost panicked motion, and backed away. Or
are you?
Ry had no patience with nonsense. Of course Im
awake. What a stupid question.
If it were a stupid question, I wouldnt have a gash
in the side of my head, and poor Valard would not be curled in the
next room with his arm broke in two. We mistook you for awake once
before, and you attacked us.
Ry winced. Perhaps he was the sort to go mad; he
remembered nothing of the incident, but he would not disbelieve
Yanth.
What happened?
What do you remember?
Going up the stairs in Galweigh House. Some sort of
explosion, and a terrible smell. Pain. Darkness. Then
nothing.
Yanth sighed and settled himself back into the chair.
There was no explosion in Galweigh House. No smell, no noise.
You were running ahead of us and suddenly you dropped to the floor
and held your head. Your eyes were open, but you said nothing to
us, and no matter what we did, you would give us no sign that you
heard. We tried everything we could think of to wake you, but at
last we realized nothing we knew to do would help, so we carried
you down the stairs again. We left your fathers man in charge
with explicit instructions that if a girl like the one we were
looking for showed up, he was to save her for you. He said he
would. His men were already killing the nonessentials by then and
dragging out the bodies to be burned, but he said he would watch
for such a girl, and that he would not permit her to be killed. We
tried to take you home for help . . . but
. . . Here his face clouded, and he fell
silent.
But what?
Yanth said, I wanted one of your Familys physicks to
see you, but none were available. Something terrible happened to
your Family.
Something inside of Ry knotted, and he swallowed. What
sort of terrible thing?
The physicks dont know. One of your younger cousins
went to the White Hall. He told the physicks that something had
drawn him there. He found many of your relatives . . .
dead . . . and many more . . . ah
. . . changed, the physick told me, but he would not tell
me how.
My parents?
Yanth seemed to shrink. Your mother is badly injured,
though she lives. Your . . . He sighed deeply, and
said, Im sorry, Ry. Your father is dead.
Ry paled. His father had led the Wolves, and through them the
entire Sabir Family. If his father was truly dead, then leadership
of the Family came open. And the new leader would be chosen by
maneuvering among the strongest of those who survived. The
maneuvering would likely kill as many as the disaster had, though
in cleverer ways. How many others are dead? he asked.
And who still lives?
I dont know. The physick I spoke to spared me only
the time he needed to look at you and tell me he could do nothing
for you, and that further he had others in desperate need of his
services. I found out about your parents and the little I did hear
while he checked your breathing and your heart, and then he told me
to take you away from the House and hide you someplace safe,
because he didnt know what had happened to your relatives,
but he could not promise that it would not happen again. And until
any of the survivors of the White Hall could wake up and talk, he
told me to assume the worst.
Was it some trick of the Galweighs? Ry mused, but of
course it had been some trick of the Galweighs. They had discovered
the Sabirs true plan for their destruction and had countered
it.
No, that wouldnt answer it. If the Galweighs were to
blame, their corpses wouldnt be burning in piles on the
grounds of Galweigh House. The Dokteeraks? No again. They had no
Wolves among them the Sabirs and the Galweighs alone among
the Five Families knew the old magics, or dared to use them. Yanth
hadnt said Rys relatives had been attacked by magic,
but the physick would never have dared admit that to someone who
wasnt even Family, much less a Wolf. He had told Yanth those
who survived the attack had been changed, though to Ry, who
had seen the Scars wrought by spell rebound, nothing more needed to
be said. And nothing but magic could have destroyed his father and
injured his mother in the same attack. Nothing else he was
sure of that.
Not the Galweighs. Not the Dokteeraks. He couldnt entirely
rule out a play from the inside he would have no trouble
believing, for example, that his cousin Andrew and his second
cousins Crispin and Anwyn would kill off whatever relatives they
could in order to take over leadership of the Family among
themselves. The only problem with that theory was that neither they
nor any other faction that he was aware of currently held a
majority among the Wolves. No one within the Family would be able
to muster the sort of magical support it would take to subvert the
energy of a spell against the other Wolves in the Family and
to attempt a takeover without a majority would be suicide. Crispin,
Anwyn, and Andrew werent suicidal. That he was sure of.
So the destruction had come from another player. A
powerful player. Who, though? And how? And what did this other
player hope to gain?
* * *
Theyre dead, Kait. Theyre all dead, and you will
be, too, unless you get away from this place.
Stifling air and the stink of alcohol. A soft, heavy weight that
covered her entirely and pushed her to the ground. Her head
pounded, and her eyes refused to work. The voice inside her head
would not be still; she wanted to return to the comfort of
darkness, but some woman she did not know insisted on talking to
her.
Theyre all dead the Sabirs are burning their
bodies now. You could smell the fires if you got up.
She blinked, but what she saw with her eyes open remained the
same as what she saw with them closed exactly nothing. The
perfect blackness of blindness swallowed her. Something bad had
happened. Something had taken her out of the security of the world
she had known; something had changed the rules of the world as she
understood it; something dangerous had opened a door and stepped
through it.
She recalled pain, and a sweet, rotting odor. She closed her
eyes and pressed her fingers to her throbbing skull, and tried to
recall as much as she could of those last moments. The feeling of
growing evil that had been so strong at the Dokteerak party, which
had worsened in the following days, had abruptly overwhelmed her in
the air above the ground; and for just an instant she had felt the
elation of a beast caged that had at last broken free of its bars;
and then she had, impossibly, smelled some sickeningly sweet smell
and what had it been? The name eluded her, but she would
recognize it again if she ran across it. And then an insane babble
exploded in her skull, as if a thousand madmen began shouting all
at once, each trying to get her attention, and the pain of that
bedlam drove her into the dark escape of unconsciousness. And
now?
Airible fuel, she realized. The alcohol smell was airible fuel.
She was still on the airible, but no longer in the passenger part
of the gondola; instead she lay in the space just to the fore of
the fuel chambers, tucked under folds of emergency cloth kept on
hand for en route repairs on the airibles outer skin.
Someone had hidden her. Had the ship landed safely, Dùghall
would have carried her to a physick or taken care of her
himself, knowing what he knew. Instead, she had been carefully
placed in concealment in a part of the ship that was easy to reach
from the passenger section, but intentionally difficult to find.
Further, shed been hidden within that carefully chosen
hiding place, which implied that whoever hid her expected hostile
others to perform more than a cursory search.
Which they did, the unidentified woman said. She spoke
inside of Kaits head, which made her either a sign that Kait
had gone mad, or a sign that the world had. Kait, who didnt
consider herself prone to the weaknesses embraced by many of the
women of her class, preferred to assume the latter.
For the time being, she would accept the presence of the
stranger in her head. She offered information, and Kait needed
information. Once Kait reached safety, she would question the other
womans presence, and her identity, but at that moment, simple
curiosity was a luxury that Kait couldnt afford.
So they searched the ship for me, she whispered.
For anyone who was left. They got the other three.
And who are they?
You already know that.
Yes, she did. When you woke me up, you said the
Sabirs.
Yes.
That made sense. They were the only Family who would dare attack
the Galweighs on their own ground; they were the only ones so evil
or so desperate to expand their power that they would take such a
risk. Apparently theyd succeeded.
So hostile forces held the airible. Kait ran her left hand along
her thigh and felt the comforting shape of the sword pommel. Armed
in human form, she might successfully protect herself without the
dangerous exposure of Shift. She had at least some hope of
vengeance. She listened, and was rewarded with muffled night sounds
and distant but unintelligible voices, and the creak of the airible
as it tugged against the mooring ropes.
She squirmed out to the edge of the bale and breathed slowly.
The stink of the fuel got worse, but the air instantly became
cooler; a more than even trade. She heard breathing just above the
trapdoor that led into her hiding place rapid panting
interrupted by soft whuffles. Whos out there? she
whispered, and received a low whine and a moment of soft scratching
at the trapdoor in response.
A friend of yours, the woman said. He jumped into the
airible when everyone else was gone, and has been lying on the door
ever since.
Kaits skin crawled. Gashta?
The whining became louder, the pawing at the door more
insistent.
The old friend was a wolf, a sometimes-comrade of the hills with
whom she had run deer and peccaries when in her Karnee form. She
had saved his life once, and he rewarded her with a loyalty she
didnt think existed in humans. He was, however, no pet, but a
fully wild wolf who ran the mountaintops through and around
Calimekka, and she could not understand how he came to be aboard
the airible. Either the ship had come down somewhere outside the
walls surrounding Galweigh House, or the walls themselves had been
breached and something had drawn him inside.
Out from under the piles of cloth, her eyes had adjusted to the
dim light. Shed been unconscious for a long time. Night had
fallen; otherwise, light-prisms that ran all along the top of the
work areas of the gondola would have brought in daylight.
What should she do? Attack whoever she found outside the airible
and kill as many as she could before she died? Try to escape to
bring help? Or to raise an army to attempt retaking the House? Or
should she surrender and die without a fight?
Before action, discern the situation,
she murmured. Some of Nas Madibles wisdom and unlike
her uncle Dùghalls beloved Vincalis, the Family as a
whole held Madibles works in high regard. Her tutors ground
him into her skull from the moment she began diplomatic
training.
Discern the situation. The stranger said the wolf was the only
one except for Kait aboard the airible. So she should be safe for
the moment. She brushed her fingertips lightly over the hilt of her
sword, seeking reassurance, then pushed up on the trapdoor. Gashta
resisted only for an instant, then moved off. She slid the trapdoor
out of her way, vaulted into the passenger compartment, and pushed
the door back into place. While she crouched beside it, Gashta
nuzzled her, licked her face, and whined again.
The stranger had been right. No one occupied the compartment.
Now, though, she could hear more clearly the voices on the ground
outside. And she could smell something that the fuel stink had
completely covered: the rich, roasting-pork scent of burning flesh.
Human flesh. Shed witnessed the burning of a Scarred spy in
Calimekkas Punishment Square as part of her diplomatic
training. What she smelled then, she smelled again.
Theyre all dead, the stranger had said. Shed been
right about everything else so far. The Sabirs were out there
burning the dead bodies of her relatives. So Kait had to entertain
the possibility that she was the last surviving member of her
Family.
No. She couldnt think that. Despair was too close, and her
chances of survival slim enough even without it. Theyre
not all dead, she told herself. If I act well, and quickly,
Ill save some of them.
Before action, discern the situation.
She stood, and Gashta growled.
Hush, she whispered, and drew her sword. First she
had to find out where she was.
She crept to the airibles windows and looked out. And her
heart nearly broke. The airible was moored on the landing field of
Galweigh House, and even from where she watched, she could see that
the great gate stood open that gate which had, in her
memory, never stood open for more than the time needed to permit
passage of any approved entrant. She could see the gate clearly in
the dancing light of the flames from a massive pyre that burned
beside it, and she could see, too, the pyre. And the black
silhouettes of the bodies that fueled it. And outside the edge of
the flames, soldiers. Sabir soldiers, with the twin trees of the
Sabir crest clearly outlined on their cloaks.
Galweigh House had fallen.
She swallowed the tears that came, and she and the wolf crept
out of the airible and down onto the airible field. She took her
sword and killed the two men who guarded the field silently,
without either warning or remorse. The House lay under heavy guard,
and she knew that no matter how swift or fierce she was, she would
not be able to rescue any survivors alone. She could choose to die
with them, or she could find help.
Goft lay only twenty leagues to the north and east, and the city
of Maracada held one of the Lesser Houses of the Galweighs, Cherian
House. The Family in Cherian House traded, and held tremendous
riches, and owned an armada of ships and men by the hundreds who
would be strong and fierce and able to fight for what the Family
had lost. She had to reach them.
You havent much time, the stranger said.
Kait already knew that.
The airible was the way to reach Goft, of course, but without a
crew of men to cast off the mooring ropes smoothly, she had a
problem. She had to get off the ground and obtain some height
before the Sabirs noticed her. She lay in the dew-damp grass beside
the wolf, watching the men who moved back and forth in front of the
flames tending the fire. She studied the round lines of the airible
as it tugged against the mooring ropes in the breeze. She tested
the wind. She frowned. Too much of it to loosen the ropes one at a
time; if she did, the airible would swing around and face into the
breeze, or perhaps even unbalance and hang tail-up and she
would be discovered.
There was a way, of course. The Galweighs and their researchers
and implementers held both the secret of airible construction and
the secret of the great engines that powered them. According to her
father, a single Ancient manuscript, which survived through the
whole of the Thousand Years of Darkness, came to rest at last in
the Familys hands full of secrets, that manuscript,
many of which it still kept locked within cryptic comments and
diagrams for machinery whose uses no one in these latter days could
discern. But the House artisans and inventors, moved to a safe,
hidden location, had pried out the facts about powered flight one
by one, and had at last succeeded in giving the Galweighs wings.
And for the last ten years, the Galweighs had guarded those secrets
jealously. Should any airible fall into enemy hands, the pilot knew
to release a hidden lever that would break off all the mooring
ropes simultaneously at the envelope and cast the ship loose. It
would still be flyable, though not landable the pilot would
have to survive a crash once he found a place away from the enemy
to bring the ship down but keeping airibles out of enemy
hands meant more than retrieving a single airship.
Kait knew where that lever was; she had some experience flying
the ship; she could get herself to Goft. Getting safely to ground
once there held its own risks, but she would deal with them when
she got that far.
She ran her fingers along the wolfs hackles, wondering why
hed sought her out, and how hed found her. She could
not take him with her, but she feared to leave him within reach of
the Sabirs. When she began to creep back to the airible, though, he
solved her dilemma for her; he licked her nose once, and bit very
gently on her ear. Then he growled, rose, and trotted along the
wall toward the gate. She watched him for just an instant and
realized other wolves waited at the gate for him.
She wondered if she would ever see him again. Then she crawled
along the ground to the gangway of the airible, launched herself up
and into it as if she were wolf herself, and quickly slid her hand
under the polished wood of the control console to the hidden lever.
She jerked the lever, heard for a fraction of an instant the whine
of cables slipping, and felt the jolt as the airible leaped upward
in an unpowered, awkward lift and then the wolves began to
howl.
Breezes that blew along the clifftop buffeted the airible; Kait
feared that she would strike the trees or the wall before she could
rise above them, so swiftly did the airible move across the ground.
Miraculously, though she felt the gondola scrape along the top of
the wall while the airible shuddered, she lifted free, and floated
upward into the blackness of the night.
Below her the city blinked and shimmered with the soft
illumination of countless thousands of candles glowing forth from
countless thousands of windows; with the brighter fires in the
lamps set by the lamplighters each night as twilight fell; with the
sharper glow of the gas flames in the foundries where, even after
dark, men toiled and sweated; and . . . with the stark
bonfire that sent its greasy coils from the grounds of Galweigh
House down into the already smoke-scented city below, taking with
it much of her Family.
But not all. Not all. She would not let herself believe the
voice of the stranger in her head, the voice that said All gone.
All gone. She would make the Sabirs pay for the life of each
loved one they took from her. She swore by all her gods that she
would destroy them, or die in the attempt.
Chapter 16
Dùghall permitted himself the smallest of smiles
when the wolves began to howl. He tightened his fist over the cut
in his palm; the tiny magical spell that had drawn them to the fire
hadnt been as difficult or cost as much as he had
anticipated. His call had been general to any creature that
would slip within the walls of Galweigh House and watch Kait until
she got safely away, then signal her escape. Hed expected a
bird birds responded well to him. But the wolves answered
first, and seemed eager to come, as if they were familiar with the
House and its confines . . . or with Kait. He didnt
let himself worry about the strangeness of that. The night was full
of magic, even yet, and as a Falcon he knew that all forms of life
responded in their own way to it, and for their own reasons
but that those summoned from good responded with good. They
wouldnt hurt her.
And their howling let him know that she had somehow managed to
get herself to safety outside Galweigh Houses walls. While
curious about how shed managed it, he wasnt surprised.
That image of the wall shed climbed in Halles remained clear
in his mind.
With her safe, the time arrived for his next move. He continued
to lie on the floor, feigning sleep; the Sabir guards had locked
him and the other valuable Galweighs, and such
technicians and artists as theyd found, in a windowless inner
chamber on the fourth floor. Two the House seneschal and a
brawny distant cousin of Dùghalls lay dead in a
corner from injuries they had sustained in an attempted escape. The
guards had refused to summon medical help for them while they
lived, and had (to Dùghalls relief and the rest of his
companions dismay) refused to remove the corpses when they
died. Their bodies lay in the corner next to him hed
bedded down within reach of them by choice.
Dùghall sent cautious mental tendrils out and touched each
of the rooms living inhabitants. Most slept deeply. A few
drifted between sleep and wakefulness. Only one other than himself
lay awake. Dùghall repressed a sigh and, with his tiny spare
dagger, which had escaped the guards careful search
for what guard would think of checking in the tuck beneath the roll
of fat on a middle-aged diplomats belly for a knife no bigger
than a thumb? he reopened the shallow cut in his palm and
dripped his blood onto the floor, and summoned for the one who lay
awake and the few who drifted or fought nightmares a peaceful,
restful sleep.
He tried no such trick on the guards who sat outside the door,
laughing at each others stories of the women theyd
raped and the loot theyd stolen that day. First, the Sabir
men wore amulets made by some Sabir master which protected them
from minor magics. Second, he wanted the bastards outside
the door. It was the best place for them.
When he was sure he alone among the rooms inhabitants
remained awake, he sat up and crawled between the two corpses. He
reached out and touched their cold bodies, feeling for their hands.
When he found them, he placed both on the floor in front of him,
fighting the stiffness that had set in. He would get no blood from
them; he would have to make the offering one of flesh. Flesh would
make the spell stronger, but also harder to control. And the taint
of wild magic that still pervaded the House and the city gave him
pause. No matter how pure his casting, no matter how entirely
defensive its character, the wild magic could add an uncontrollable
twist to it that could send it back to attack him and his, and the
strength of flesh magic could make it deadly. But he could do
nothing and condemn the few survivors of his Family to death and
worse or he could make the attempt at their salvation,
knowing death and worse might still be the result.
In his favor, the Sabirs had burned the other Galweigh corpses.
And they would have, he felt sure, removed their own dead to Sabir
House; until the Sabirs could consecrate Galweigh House to their
own use, any other action would be heretical. An offering of only
two corpses would be a meager number for what he needed, but if any
in the fire lay even partially unburned, they would add strength to
the sacrifice. And the fact that only a few corpses lay within the
Houses walls would keep the strength of the spell within
bounds he might hope to control if it ran amok.
Such a delicate balance the narrow strait between not
enough and too much. He pursed his lips and began.
First he cut the corpses hands across the palm and pressed
the cuts together. He lay his own bloody palm across the top of the
two dead hands and whispered:
By the blood of the living
And the flesh of the dead,
I summon the spirits of Family
Who have gone before.
Without the walls of this room
But within the walls of this House
Enemies have come
And killed,
Have plundered
And pillaged,
Have conquered
And claimed.
Come, spirits of the dead.
All dead flesh within the walls of Galweigh House
I offer as your payment
If you will chase beyond the walls of this House
All alive beyond the walls of this room.
Harm none; draw no living blood;
Inflict no pain.
I ask not vengeance;
I ask only relief.
By my own spirit and my own blood
I offer myself as price to ensure
The safety of every living creature,
Friend and foe,
Now within the Houses walls
Until this spell is done.
So be it.
A cold voice, distant as the dark realm between the worlds yet
close as death itself, murmured in his ear, We accept.
The finger of a spirit traced a line along his cheek, and a tongue
that existed nowhere in the physical world licked the blood from
his palm. Something sighed. Something else chuckled. The hair on
the back of Dùghalls neck prickled, and icy sweat
dripped from his upper lip and his forehead, slid down the furrow
of his spine, and slicked his palms. He had never before summoned
the dead. He hoped fervently that he never would find the need
again.
Then the corpses began to glow, softly, from the inside, as if
they were fat-bodied candles with the wicks burning deep in their
hearts. Soft and red they shone, their light burning brighter as
the bodies became ever more translucent, and then transparent.
Dùghall felt the magic rising, strong as a river. But the
force of the spell far exceeded what he had anticipated. How many
dead had lain within the Houses walls? Had that current of
wild magic taken hold? He could not find the place where the spell
drew extra strength, but while he sought for it, desperate to
control the wildly growing pulse of energy, the magical river rose
to the flood point, to the place where he might have had any hope
of calling it back, and then beyond.
He closed his eyes and prayed that he had cast his spell without
a trace of hatred, without any secret desire for the destruction or
death of his enemies. If he had not, those enemies would surely die
but so would he and everyone in the room with him.
* * *
Hasmal rolled in the berth on the ship, restless, wakened yet
again from nightmare-wracked sleep by the sound of laughter. And
once again the laughter hung only in his memory, tinkling and
feminine, never touching the world he inhabited.
In his dreams the creature who mocked him hovered over him, her
hair red as rubies, her wings flashing and sparkling like gems in
brilliant sunlight, her delicate body no bigger than his hand. She
was a creature of the spirit world the same spirit world he
had invoked in seeking to escape his doom. One of her kind had told
him to flee. His later spells and auguries had led him to this
ship, to a captain who needed a man who could work metal and repair
things.
The previous shipwright had arrived in port with too much money
and too little sense, and had gotten both drunk and in trouble. The
captain, when hiring Hasmal, clearly stated in his terms that he
would not bail his men out of prison (which was how the job came to
be open in the first place); Hasmal, who didnt drink and
whose entire existence at the moment focused on keeping himself out
of trouble, saw no problem in this. Hed been working for the
past few days on getting the ship seaworthy, and the captain had
spent the time (though so far without success) hunting for a cargo.
He assured Hasmal that the Peregrine never waited long in
harbor and that they would surely sail within days.
While not as good as being at sea, that promise seemed
sufficient to get Hasmal out of harms reach. But the spirit
laughter rang in his dreams, and interrupted his sleep, and as he
lay there in the darkness he wondered if he ought not flee upland,
away from people, to hide in the dark wet jungle.
His castings were clear tossed bones, the cards, and even
a solitary late-night check with another of the blood-conjured
spirits reassured him that he was where he needed to be. No matter
how nervous he might become, this was his right path. His ship. The
Peregrine was a form of falcon . . . as he was a
form of falcon and wasnt that a sign in itself? One
falcon would fly the other falcon away from danger and
destruction.
He settled down again in his berth and listened to the
comforting creak of the planks and the lap of water against the
hull. Sweet, soothing sounds that promised imminent escape and
glorious freedom. He drifted to the edge of dreaming, to the
twilight land between waking and sleep. And there the winged spirit
sat, cross-legged in the air, a wicked grin on her face, waving her
fingers at him.
Miserable beast. He strengthened his shields, drawing energy
from the bay beneath him and the currents of air around him and
spinning them into another layer of the wall that kept out evil and
made him seem to be no one a man who made no impression,
left no mark, captured no ones fancy and that gave him
silence. Blessed silence. The spirit, walled out of his mind,
vanished. After a while he slept.
* * *
Get up! Get up or you will die!
A man, by turns annoying and angry, shouted at her from
somewhere in the distance. The girl curled tighter into a ball and
tried to shut his voice out; it was bringing her to wakefulness,
and though she could not remember why, she knew she didnt
want to wake up.
At least move beneath the trees, where youll have some
shelter! Move! Move, girl! You cannot die on me now!
Her body hurt, but not in ways she understood. She didnt
feel attached to the hurts at all. She recognized pain, but it
didnt seem to be her pain. It occurred in places that her
body didnt have. It hurt wrong, though she could not
quite comprehend how that could be. She seemed to have been
inserted into the body of a stranger, and the strangers body
didnt feel things the way she felt them, or smell things the
way she smelled them, or hear things the way she heard them.
Vaguely, she knew that she was cold. The air smelled wrong
sterile and empty. All her life, her world had been scented
by the lush growth of the jungle, the rich dark earth scents, the
profuse perfumes of flowers, and the thousand colliding odors of
the city of Calimekka, and now all of that had been erased and
replaced with nothingness. The cold didnt bother her as much
as the emptiness of smell . . . and of sound. She heard
wind whistling and moaning, and from time to time a distant, sharp
cracking, and nothing else.
Get up! Please get up! I cant let you die, girl. We
need each other, you and I.
Almost nothing else, then. He hadnt left her
yet. Why hadnt he? He was a stranger. Shed never heard
his voice before. In fact, shed never even heard a voice like
his before. He spoke with a faint accent, but one unlike anything
in her experience. And she thought shed heard all of them.
She opened one eye.
Whiteness assaulted her. Something had erased the world, leaving
her in a place as empty as a sheet of vellum untouched by the
scribes pen. Impossible. If she rubbed her eyes, they would
work again. She tried to do just that, but when she moved her arm,
a monstrous clawed hand moved into view and reached for her. She
screamed and tried to scrabble away, and the white ground gave way
beneath her and beside her, and turned to powder that blew into her
nose and her eyes and her mouth, stinging where it touched, and
melting, and tasting like . . .
Snow.
She dropped into a deep drift of it, realizing as she did just
what it was that surrounded her. This was the snow that merchants
brought from far in the south and sold by the cupful in the open
market. She had never imagined the world being covered in the stuff
in her mind, those merchants had always had to dig for the
precious delicacy, mining the earth for pockets of it the way
miners dug out opals and emeralds. Here lay a fortune in snow, so
deep the pocket she stood in reached from her feet to her neck,
stretching away as far as the eye could see in all directions. She
turned, looking for anything else, and at last circled around to
see a small copse of trees not too far away. Endless wind had bent
them until they hunched over like tired old men carrying firewood
on their backs. Their leaves were needle-shaped and short; they
were green, but the green looked dreary and dark to her eyes.
She could not see the source of the voice that had so
insistently harassed her until she woke; neither could she see any
monster. In fact, in the whole world she seemed to be the only
living creature. She wondered where the monster had gone, or the
speaker; she wondered if they were one and the same. Where
are you? she shouted, and immediately, as if from inside her
head, the voice shed heard before whispered, Shhhhh!
Theyll hear you, and you arent ready to face them
yet.
She whirled around, but nothing was behind her. Keeping her
voice down because she didnt like the sound of
theyll hear you, especially not when said with
the frightened tone the stranger used, she said, Dont
hide from me. Come out and let me see you.
I . . . cant come out. And you cant see
me. Im trapped in a place where Ive been kept prisoner
since . . . well, since long before you were born. I can
only send you my voice, but not into your ears. I speak to your
mind, though I can see things through your eyes, and hear things
through your ears.
Danya frowned, and lifted a hand to brush blowing snow from her
face. And once again saw the hand of a monstrosity coming toward
her face. This time she didnt scream. Bits and pieces of
memory were starting to come back to her she began to recall
being in a dungeon for a long time, and then being kept prisoner in
the rooms of her Sabir torturers. Yes. Those days blurred into an
endless pageant of humiliations and degradations and pain. They had
ended, though; she no longer lay chained to the floor. Something
had happened recently something had taken her from the three
of them, but that something had been worse than what they had done
to her . . .
Then she had it. The memory returned, and she wanted to scream,
but did not. Instead, she stared at the hand. Her hand. Tiny dark
copper scales covered it like armor, right to the fingertips that
terminated in hard, black, curving talons. The scales moved up the
arm, becoming larger and lighter in color, so that at the elbow
they were a bright copper, and at the shoulder, where spikes of
bone or horn jutted from above and below the joint, they were pale,
almost tan, but still with the same metal sheen. She moved the hand
and its twin to her face, and closed her eyes so that she
didnt accidentally scratch them out, and she felt her face.
Nothing of the woman she had once been remained. She now found a
sharp crest of bone running from the top of her skull down to the
much-widened space between her eyes. Her nose swept forward, as
long as one hand, part of a lean muzzle. Her teeth felt like
daggers rows of daggers. More spikes erupted from the angle
of her jaw on either side of her face a face now entirely
covered by tiny, pebblelike scales.
Not until her fingers tangled into a heavy braid of long soft
black hair did she begin to weep. The hair, now wet and in some
places frozen, felt no different than it had before she served as
sacrifice to the Sabirs. Before their magic Scarred her. The hair
was still human, though she would never again be.
Ignoring the voice that implored her to move to the relative
shelter of the copse of trees, she dropped to her knees and covered
her eyes with her hands and sobbed. The invisible stranger kept
telling her if she didnt find shelter, she would die. That
suited her perfectly. She wanted to die.
Cold tears clung to her face and froze. The bitter wind howled
around her and began to cut into her. In the distance, so far away
that it might almost have been another voice of the wind, something
screamed. Her heart howled out its pain and grief for all that she
had lost and all she would never have again. She fell toward
voluntary oblivion, looked at the darkness of surrender and easy
death, and almost . . . almost . . . almost let
herself tumble in.
Then, slowly, her sobs grew softer, and her tears fewer. Danya
lifted her head and stared out at the bleak expanse of nothing that
lay in all directions. Hellish nothing, empty of all she had once
loved. She had lost her Family, her world, her friends and
in this twisted body she wore, she had to acknowledge that she had
lost them forever. She could never go back and be Danya Galweigh,
Wolf of the Galweighs, again. Her Family had not rescued her, had
not ransomed her, had left her in the hands of enemies, and she
could not and would not forget that. She had suffered in the hands
of her captors, and she had expected to die many times, and wished
to die many more. She hated the monsters who had tortured her. She
would never escape the sounds of their voices, the feel of their
touch, the bitter vision of their faces.
But she was alive. She was alive, and she was free, and no
matter what the Galweighs had not done, and no matter what the
Sabirs had done, she was now in a better position than any of them.
Because she was alive, and they could not know that. And she knew
who they were. And she knew where to find them.
And she would find them, no matter how long it took, no matter
what it cost, no matter what she had to do. She would find the
people who had abandoned her, and those who had tortured her, and
those who had sacrificed her, and she would make them pay.
She stood, and shook the snow from her body, and lifted her
head. Let them lie in their warm beds, safe in the comfort of their
ignorance. She was coming.
She was coming.
Very good, the voice of her unseen ally whispered in her
thoughts. Very good indeed. I thought you were strong enough to
survive. If you desire revenge, I will do everything in my power to
help you get it. Anything, Danya. But first I suggest we get you to
shelter, and perhaps food. Because you wont be able to make
them pay if you die here.
You can get me to shelter?
I can direct you. I am limited in what I can do but I
have ways of finding things.
Why would you?
Silence for a moment. Then, Because I know what happened to
you. Because I know what thats like. Because I
didnt survive the things that happened to me. You
wouldnt be wrong to never trust anyone again, but I can tell
you that Ive been where you are now, and I have more reason
than you could ever believe to help you get what you want. You can
help me, Danya and I can help you.
Danya considered that. She did not know how the spirit had found
her, or why; she knew nothing of the person he had been. She did
know, though, that she had no other allies, and was unlikely to
survive to find them on her own.
Lead me, she said. I will follow.
Chapter 17
Once in the sky and safely away from Galweigh House, Kait
confronted the stranger who looked through her eyes, listened
through her ears, and smelled the damp night air through her nose.
The stranger kept silent, so that only the sense of presence and
unfamiliar weight and the strangers occasional restless
shifting inside the recesses of her mind convinced her that the
silent, watchful presence was not a figment born of imagination and
the days burden of grief and horror.
Kait started the engines in midair once she was sure she was
well past the point where any of the Sabirs might hear them. She
fought the tailwind that kept pushing the airible north more than
west. And when the airship was securely en route to Goft, she said,
Now you can stop hiding and tell me who you are. And
what you are.
The stranger in her mind sighed. Does it matter? I can help
you.
It matters. Are you a demon of the sort which possesses
people and drives them to speak to the air and foam at the mouth?
Or are you a god who wants to require a task of me? Or are you
something else?
Nothing so grand as either a demon or a god. My name is
Amalee Kehshara Rohannan Draclas.
Kait froze when she placed the name. Youre my
great-great-great-great-great-grandmother? Amalee Draclas was
a martyr, dead nearly two hundred years, and victim of none other
than the Sabirs. Her torture and murder, according to Family
history, had been carried out in front of the walls of Galweigh
House, in full sight of her husband and children.
Yes.
Kait didnt know what to say.
You doubt me.
Yes.
Youd be a foolish girl if you didnt. I can prove
who I am to you, though. And I can help you get revenge on the
Sabirs.
That her many-times-great-grandmother would want revenge on the
Sabirs, Kait could well believe. But that she should appear as a
voice in Kaits head . . .
Magic released me from the place where I had been imprisoned
since the day the Sabirs murdered me. I have no body, of course.
But I remember who I am, and my life before I was killed. And when
I was released, I sought out a descendant. You were the one that
survived.
That makes sense, I suppose, though I never truly believed
in spirits that visited the living. I always thought the dead went
between the worlds and were reborn into new bodies and new
lives.
Your theory isnt too far from the mark . . .
unless sadistic torturers trap the spirit and cage it. I would
surely have lived again before now, had they not done what they did
to me.
Kait recalled the mayhem that had pushed her over the edge of
the abyss into unconsciousness. Many voices had fought for
her attention. Some of them no, most of them had been
frightening.
I wasnt the only spirit so trapped, Amalee said.
And some of those with whom Ive spent the last thou
. . . ah, two hundred years were evil. Truly
evil.
Kait accepted that explanation.What happened to all those
others?
Amalee didnt answer.
Grandmother . . . what happened to all those
others?
The response held an air of weary sadness. I dont know.
They might have gone between. Or . . . perhaps
not.
Amalee didnt want to talk after that, and Kait needed to
concentrate. The island of Goft made for a difficult target on a
dark, windy night.
And later, as she watched the lights on the Goft coast slide
nearer and then drift slightly to her left, that difficulty became
worse. Her fuel supply was dwindling rapidly, and she needed to
come around into the wind so she could hold the airible steady
while she jumped into Maracadas bay. One engine sputtered and
died; the airible hadnt gotten its ground maintenance when it
came in at the House. The other three engines were starting to
choke and miss, making the sounds they made when the fuel began
running out. She had only gotten to Goft because of the assistance
of the tailwind. Facing a headwind, she would have been engineless
and adrift long before. Now Maracadas harbor lay beneath her,
but she felt sure she would only be able to make one pass over it
before the fuel and her luck ran out. She needed to get out of the
airible quickly.
She frowned and tugged harder at the rudder pull. At the same
time, she shifted the ballast forward and nosed the ship down
toward the surface of the water. She wanted to bring the airible as
close as she dared before she brought the nose back up and released
it to the wind. If she had to, she could crash it into the bay and
sink the airible before she swam away, but Maracada was full of
strong swimmers and divers and salvagers, and someone might dredge
up the engines or the envelope and make use of the Familys
secrets. Far better for Galweigh interests if she could set the
ship adrift on the easterly wind and let it crash into the
trackless expanse of the ocean. No one would find it then.
She edged the rudder over farther and the airible tracked south
to southeast. The full reach of Maracadas bay spread out
beneath her, crowded with ships, lively still with lights; in spite
of the darkness crews ferried cargo in to shore or out to their
ships in longboats or hurried to or from their liberties on land.
She dropped closer to the surface of the water, and pulled the
hatch open. She didnt want the airible to strike the masts of
any of the ships that lay in the harbor. To prevent that, she would
have to act quickly. She checked that her dagger and her sword were
both strapped tightly to her sides; she tightened the laces on her
boots. She had to bring the ship as close as possible to the
surface of the water, then nose it back up again sharply, and jump
before it rose too high. She was a strong swimmer, far stronger
than any normal human, and the surface of the bay looked calm
enough; she didnt fear that her clothes or her weapons would
drag her under. She had quick enough reflexes to get out of the
ship before it rose too high. But she was tired and her head hurt,
and the pain and grief of the days events had caught up with
her. She stared down at the rippled mirror of water below her and
wondered how bad it would be to sink to the bottom of the bay and
never rise.
Ive heard its a painful way to die, Amalee
said. And while it would solve your problems, it
wouldnt do anything for your hopes of revenge.
True enough. Kait resented her dead ancestors intrusion
into her thoughts, but part of her was perversely grateful that she
had been forced to face reality. Dead, she could do nothing to help
any survivors, nor could she avenge the dead. Shed wanted to
serve her Family. Now she was more than a very junior diplomat. Now
her Family needed her desperately.
She set the airible on the course shed planned, steeled
herself against the momentary paralysis of fear, and jumped as the
ship began to soar upward. Shed judged her moment well
she fell clear of ships and dinghies and other obstacles but
shed failed to anticipate the effect that dropping from a
great height onto the surface of the water would have on her. She
smashed into the bay as if she had hit dry land; the rock-hard
water slapped her and slammed her and the shock stunned her. Then
the bay swallowed her, and she felt herself slipping beneath the
surface. The water closed over her head.
Both her mind and her dead ancestor screamed, Swim, damn you!
Swim! but Kait could not. Her body refused to respond. She was
drowning and she knew it and she could only sink deeper into the
swirling currents of the bay. Her lungs burned as she breathed in
water.
Her body, even in its stunned state, responded to that threat.
It brought out its ultimate weapon. Kait felt a subdued fire along
the sides of her neck, and without realizing the moment that it
happened, she found herself breathing the salt water of the bay.
She blinked, and discovered her eyes could make out shapes
underwater even in the darkness. The Shift was only partial; her
last Shift had been too recent, perhaps, or the shock of hitting
the water prevented her body from doing more. But the Karnee reflex
was enough.
She could breathe, and after a while she could move, and after
an even longer while, she managed to swim to shore. She dragged
herself up onto a part of the sandy beach away from light and
motion and humanity. When the Shift subsided and she knew she could
walk among people again without drawing death down upon herself,
she got up and brushed as much sand from her clothes as she could,
dried both her sword and dagger on her shirt, and walked through
the town and up the long hill to Cherian House, where her Family in
Maracada resided.
She had to wait with the guards at the gate of the House while
someone who could vouch for her could be found and brought out. The
someone, when he finally came, was a distant cousin of about her
age who had joined her in Galweigh House for a years worth of
diplomatic classes before he returned home and took up his duties
as a trader. His name was Fifer, and Kait had always thought him
both homely and dull. Time hadnt done much to improve
him.
He stood inside the gate and studied her with sleep-bleared
eyes. He didnt offer a smile or a greeting or give her any
sign that she was welcome. He simply stared; then sighed; then
turned to the night gatemaster and said, Yah. Shes my
cousin. You can let her in.
Hello, Fifer, she said.
You have no more sense now than you had before, he
told her. This is no hour to disturb a House. Ive had
to wake Father so he could greet you. And you look
appalling.
She didnt explain to him; she wouldnt get his
sympathy even if she told him what had happened, and didnt
need it anyway. She would hope for better treatment from her
uncle.
Fifer led her through the House into audience with her uncle
Shaid, who was paraglese of the Family in Goft. When hed
delivered her, he stood by the door, waiting to be released, a
courtesy his father pointedly ignored.
The Goft paraglese seemed unrelated to his youngest son.
Handsome, smiling, and affable, he greeted her in the house library
with a glass of wine, some corn tortillas, and a bowl of fresh
fruit one of the servants was finishing laying out as Kait came in.
He appeared undisturbed that hed been dragged from bed at
such a dreadful hour.
Kait, dear child, you look like death. And why hasnt
my son taken you to get fresh clothes? I would have waited to see
you.
Kait took the proffered glass of wine and sipped slowly.
Im fine, Uncle, she said. What I have to
tell you is more important than a change of clothes or a shower.
Those will wait the news I bring should not.
He showed her to the seat nearest the food and settled across
from her. Then tell me, dear. How did you end up at my door,
and in such a state?
She told him the entire story, and watched as he grew pale. When
she was finished, he leaned back in his seat and closed his eyes.
Ah, gods. Galweigh fallen, and the Sabirs ascendant in
Calimekka. Tears glistened at the corners of his tightly
closed eyes, which he knuckled roughly away. And of the war
in Halles? Have you word?
No word. Dùghall, Tippa, and I left before daybreak
of this day just past, before the battle was to begin and
Ive already told you of our arrival in Calimekka. I had no
way to get news before I escaped.
He rubbed his temples, sighed, opened his eyes. Perhaps we
have not lost the day there. Support from that direction would be
helpful.
Kait thought of the men and women in Halles who had served her
Family so faithfully, and bit her lower lip. The Sabirs knew
we would be back in Calimekka with our defensive forces away; they
were ready for us in the one place. I have to assume they were
ready for us in the other.
Then we must act as if no help will come from the
west. He frowned. A challenge, and a
trial. . . . Well, we shall triumph somehow.
He straightened his shoulders and smiled grimly. Kait, I must
think tonight on how Ill implement the rescue of any
survivors, even before I consider the retaking of the House and the
destruction of the Sabirs. Go shower and rest, have the night staff
bring you something from the kitchen if youre still hungry,
and Ill be sure youre sent fresh clothing. Tomorrow
when you wake, meet with me and well discuss the layout of
the House and anything else you can give me that will help us going
in. I havent been to Galweigh in years, and though Fifer has,
Im afraid he hasnt demonstrated such powers of
observation as would make me want to base a battle plan on his
recommendations.
He rose, and she rose, and, as she did, she heard a soft
shuffling behind the wall of books nearest them. Shaid took no
notice of the sound, and Kait wondered if his ears could hear it.
Someone stood behind that wall, and had been very quiet there for
all the time she and the paraglese had spoken, or else had just
arrived. She wondered which.
Fifer, give her the Ambassadors Room, please. That
is well away from the busy parts of the House; shell need a
good nights sleep, and I would not have her disturbed.
Well have much to do tomorrow, she and I.
Yes, Father.
Shaid hugged her tightly. Kait, my condolences on your
losses. We have all of us lost much tonight, but I know youve
lost more than most. I want you to know that Ill do
everything in my power to bring the bastards to justice for what
theyve done. Not just for the Family, but for you as
well.
Thank you, Uncle, she said, and bid him good night,
and followed Fifer out the door.
It closed behind them, and as it did, Amalee said, Wait. You
havent heard enough yet.
Kait thought fast. She caught Fifers sleeve and said,
Hold up, would you? I have something in my boot. Stay just a
moment; I dont think I can stand to walk another step without
getting it out. She leaned against the library wall and began
tugging at the wet leather . . . but slowly.
Inside the room, she heard the soft groan of a secret door
sliding open. And Shaids voice saying, That confirms
the rumors, then.
Rather neatly. One survives to tell the tale. What do you
intend to do? The other voice was female; the accent
highborn, the tone cultured, the attitude coldly amused.
Wait, of course. See what the Sabirs intend to offer in
the way of prisoner exchanges, see if we can work out some sort of
deal with them and eventually retake the House, of course.
Not soon.
Which shall make having the girl around uncomfortable, I
should think. Shes sure to want to mount a rescue
immediately.
I would rather, Shaid said softly, let the
Calimekka line of the Family die out entirely. With our bloodline
in primacy, we stand to gain legitimate claim to the Calimekkan
estates, and we no longer have to have approval for our proposed
trade routes. And we can do as we will with the colonies. If even
one of them survives, of course, their whole line maintains
primacy.
Kait tugged the boot free and made a show of feeling around
inside of it while Fifer fidgeted, deaf to the conversation behind
the door.
Then you dont intend to let the girl worry you about
a rescue.
The girl? What girl? She must have died in an airible
crash, or drowned in the sea, or been waylaid by bandits, for she
certainly never reached here.
Very wise, Shaid. Very wise. Shall I attend to the matter
for you?
Personally. The fewer people who might remember her, the
better. Ill make sure everyone else who saw her come in is
given special assignments until we can be sure the rest of the main
line is dead.
Kait pretended to find a stone and put it in her pocket. She
started putting the boot back on again, and again made the process
look difficult.
Now?
No. Not until shes in the room. Fifer will come back
and tell us when she arrives. I dont want any, ah
. . . disturbing noises that might later recall
themselves to someones memory. And no one else is currently
on the third floor.
Kait gave the boot a sharp pull and it slid onto her foot. She
had no idea who the woman in Shaids confidence was. She
thought, since she knew her death had been planned, that she could
probably protect herself from that first attack. However, she would
still be where she wasnt wanted, and where she could not get
help. She would lose time, and she couldnt fight off the
whole House if Shaid was determined to see her dead. Uncle
Dùghall had been right in telling her that outsiders in a
House offered opportunities, and need not expect a warm
welcome.
Uncle Dùghall . . .
A tear slid from the corner of her eye and she brushed it
roughly away. She would live, and she would avenge the people she
loved, even if she had to do it alone.
Now, though, she had to do the unexpected. And she thought,
since Shaid had been kind enough to hand over one of his sons to
her, the present would be the best time for a surprise.
Im ready, she said. Would you mind
taking me by the kitchen first? Im starved, and Id love
to take some food up to my room with me.
Fifer regarded her with blank eyes. You can call to the
kitchen from the room and have something brought up to
you.
Id rather eat on the way. I havent had any
food since the day before yesterday.
He sighed. Its late and Im tired.
Fi-fer. I had to steal an airible, fly it here,
then swim to the House from the bay. I bet Im tireder than
you are. Besides, Im the one who found you when you got lost
in the lower levels of my House. You at least owe me a few
favors. She tried to give him a teasing smile, though after
what shed just heard, all she could feel was rage.
The stupid eyes regarded her with distaste. He sighed. The
kitchen.
Yes. The kitchen.
He dragged down one hallway, took a cross-corridor, and trudged
down a spiraling back stair lit intermittently by oil lamps,
sighing on every other step.
They went down two stories without speaking to each other. No
servants passed them in all that time. Finally Kait asked,
What floor is the kitchen on?
Ground. Of course. Were almost there.
Kait casually rested her hand on her dagger. The next moment
would tell a great deal. The archway that would lead to the kitchen
appeared to their left, but it didnt lead directly into the
kitchen. Instead it led into a hall. A dark, empty hall. Good. The
stairs did not end at the ground floor, but continued downward.
Kait fell half a step behind Fifer and wrapped her left hand over
his mouth. With her right hand, she pressed the dagger to his
throat. Listen carefully, she said, and
dont make a noise. I dont like you, and I like you even
less now that I know your father intends to have me killed tonight.
But I wont hurt you if you do as I tell you. She
tightened her grip to emphasize her Karnee strength, and felt the
struggle go out of him. You understand me?
He nodded. He breathed fast, and she could hear his heart
racing. Wheres your treasury?
He mumbled something, but of course with her hand over his mouth
it didnt come out clearly. She said, Point.
He pointed down the stairs.
Take me.
He went. Funny how he didnt sigh constantly anymore. Maybe
he was no longer sleepy. The stairway ended in a metal-ribbed
stonewood door. The door had no latch and no handle, no keyhole and
no window. She knew of such doors Galweigh Houses
treasury had one just like this one. The person who opened the door
had to slide fingers into the correct series of holes and push the
latches aside. Pushing even one wrong latch released the knife
mechanism that neatly cut off every one of the fingers just below
the knuckle. Very effective at keeping people out, those doors.
Open it, Kait said.
Mmmm mmaaaahhh, Fifer said, shaking his head.
Kait pressed the edge of the dagger against his neck hard enough
to blanch the skin. You cant? Of course you can. Or, at
least, lets hope that you can. I cant let you go or
youll make noise or run for help. If I have to deal with the
door, Ill need both my hands free, and Ill have to kill
you first in order to have them free. Then Id still have to
cut off your hands so I could have something to push into the
holes, because Im not going to use my own fingers. I would
rather not kill you I would rather not have to kill
anyone . . . else. But if it comes down to you or me,
cousin, you need not ask which way the bones will fall.
She tightened her grip again, and he groaned.
You going to do what I tell you?
He nodded.
Then do it.
He rested his hands along either side of the door, and slid each
finger slowly into one of the depressions. He took his time, and
Kait didnt hurry him while she knew the combination to
her fathers treasury door, she wouldnt want to have to
stick her fingers into it in a hurry, either.
Fifer swallowed so hard his body shook, and pushed the levers
simultaneously, and after an instant Kait heard a click from inside
the wall. Fifer removed his hands, and the door rolled silently
into the left wall.
Kait stepped on the heel of Fifers right boot and said,
Pull your foot out of it . . . slowly.
He wriggled a little, but removed the boot. Kait shoved it into
the opening, right against the groove where the door would slide
when it closed. Then she forced her cousin into the treasury.
As soon as they stepped across, the vault door slammed closed
behind them, but it didnt close all the way, thanks to the
boot. The insides of treasury doors required a different
combination, and Kait didnt want to take her cousin back out
of the vault with her. As long as the door remained wedged open,
she wouldnt have to.
They stood to one side of a wonderland where neatly sorted
jewels in glass cases rose from floor to ceiling, and stacks of
bars of precious metals towered so high and so wide they created
walls of their own, and banks of wooden drawers lined one wall,
while beautiful embroidered silks and stacks of Ancients
books and carvings in ebony and amber and ivory sat collecting dust
on shelves along another. This is very easy, Kait said.
I need money, and not even very much.
Fifer pointed to the wooden drawers.
Fine. She marched him in the opposite direction. The
shelf that housed the embroidered silks had ceremonial robes folded
to one side and the ceremonial robes came with belts. She
pushed Fifer to the floor, drew her sword, sheathed her dagger, and
took a couple of the belts. As soon as he was tied and gagged, she
hurried over to the drawers.
The wealth of a small nation lay within them. Coins of gold and
silver lay in heaps and piles, sorted by denomination and issuing
mint: gleaming hexagonal Dokteerak daks; tree-stamped Sabir farnes;
Masschanka robans; Kairn slaudes; Galweigh preids; and from outside
the realms of the Five Families, monies from the Strithian empire,
the Manarkan Territories, and places unknown to Kait monies
stamped with the visages of the Scarred and their world. Enough
money lay in those drawers to let her raise an army of mercenaries
a thousand times over. She would hire from the colonies if
possible, from allies if available. From foreigners if
necessary.
Dont waste your time trying to find mercenaries,
Amalee said.
Im telling you, the Family is dead. But you
can bring them back.
From the dead? Kait blurted.
I know of an Ancient artifact that will let you
. . . ah, resurrect them.
From the
dead. She recalled
Dùghalls amused speculation about the existence of such
an artifact the Mirror of Souls and his comment that
its existence was almost certainly a myth.
He was wrong. The Mirror of Souls exists, and it works. Get
enough money to hire a ship and a crew that can sail you north and
east across the ocean, and I will take you to it. You want to help
our Family, then get the Mirror.
North and east would take her across the Bregian Ocean. Few
ships made that crossing, and the lands on the other side were
mostly unexplored.
But if her ancestor was right and she had a chance to bring her
Family back . . .
Her Family. The Family that shed believed so much better
than the Sabirs or the Dokteeraks, the Kairns or the Masschankas.
Her Family, with an uncle who had turned on her as quickly as that
Dokteerak paraglese had turned on his relative and for what?
Because she stood in the way of his ascension to Galweigh House.
And more power. And more wealth.
Shed always been told, and had always believed, that
loyalty among Family members came above everything else that
it was the very essence of what being Family meant.
She sagged against the wall, for the moment all the fight gone
out of her. She felt tears start down her cheeks; she tasted their
salt, and remembered her mothers warm arms around her when
shed cut herself. Remembered the comfort of her fathers
voice, calming her down and helping her find her way to her
humanity when, Shifted into Karnee form, she had to hide away in
the dark places in the House, after they first moved there from
their country home. Shed been so afraid then. Afraid that
someone would see her, discover her secret, kill her as that child
in Halles had been killed. But her parents had saved her. Over and
over, they had saved her life. And her brothers and sisters had
helped her, and she had survived to earn the chance to repay
them.
Except she was too late.
No way to repay the dead. If she listened to Amalee, she would
only be deluding herself. At best, the Mirror of Souls was a
thousand years lost, and irretrievable. At worst, it was a myth.
The Sabirs and their treachery were real. The Goft Galweighs and
their treachery were real, too. And she couldnt even
get her revenge on the bastards whod destroyed everything she
had ever loved in the world, because the surviving members of her
Family would pay the spawn of evil their own souls to feed their
lust for Galweigh House and the power it represented, and the
treasure it housed.
All her life, her Family had been everything to her, because
shed been so sure the Galweigh name was synonymous with
everything which was good, and just, and right in the world.
Shed been wrong to believe. There was, she discovered, Family
which was a political thing and knew no loyalty and
family, which was a thing of blood ties and love, and for
which she would gladly have given her life.
And if the only chance you have is a bad chance, is that not
still better than having no chance at all? Is it, Kait? Think,
girl. If the Mirror of Souls is lost forever, you have lost nothing
that you had not already lost. But if it exists, and if you can
find it, you will regain something you could have in no other
way.
Kait stood straight and brushed her tears from her cheeks with
one sleeve. She would have given her life for any of her family.
She would
still give her life. For even the slender chance
that she might see her mother and father alive again, and her
brothers and sisters. . . . If she could hold on to
the hope that her uncle Dùghall would once again tell her his
bawdy islander jokes and quote his obscure philosophers
. . . if she could even dream that one day beloved
Galweigh voices might ring again through the halls of the House
. . . for that, she would sail the almost-uncharted
ocean, trek across the wastes of Scarred lands. For the lives of
those she loved, she would risk everything.
Maybe she couldnt believe in Family anymore. But she would
never stop loving her family.
The muscles of Kaits jaw clenched so tight they burned. If
she wanted the chance, she had to act. Fast. She started filling a
small leather bag with gold. She attached one bag of gold to the
belt beneath her tunic, and started on a second.
Good girl. I knew I could count on you. Now, then, once you
get your money, steal one of those books on the shelf the
older, the better and flee this place. When youre
safe, and weve told some greedy captain the lie that will get
you berth and allies in finding the Mirror, Ill give you the
proofs you want about me. Only get to safety first.
She filled and hid the second purse. Then she dumped a handful
of silver coins and a few bronzes into her pockets a woman
who showed gold in the wrong places wouldnt live long.
Finally, she dug through the Ancient books until she found one
so old she couldnt even recognize the letter forms.
That one will do.
Kait didnt know why she would need it, but better to have
and not want than to want and not have, as Wain Pertrad wrote. When
she had what she needed, she mockingly saluted her cousin and
fled.
* * *
Dùghalls spell spun itself into life. Down in the
black heart of the silent House, the bodies of the dead Wolves
glowed, casting light in their secret chamber a chamber
which would afterward be undisturbed by light for long years. Their
radiance cast amorphous, shifting shadows, then dispelled all
shadows in a burst of brilliance that seemed to destroy all
darkness. But the bodies, devoured entirely by the spirits of the
dead, disappeared without a trace of dust or ash, as if they had
never been. And darkness claimed the room once more for its
own.
In other rooms in the dark labyrinth between the main House,
long-forgotten victims of violence, scattered suicides, and two
small children who had wandered too far and never found their way
back to the realm of daylight before starving cast their own small
shadows before disappearing. Rats and cats and mice and snakes who
had found dark corners in which to die sparkled like stars for an
instant, then were gone forever. The meat in the Houses cold
room vanished in like manner, as did food left uneaten that waited
in the trash bins for disposal. The graves of the dead Galweighs in
the Family boneyard lit up inside, though no one could see. And out
on the grounds proper, the embers of the fire that had burned the
dead glowed more brightly for a moment. And two brilliant lights
out on the landing field where the airible had waited showed that
it had escaped, before ensuring that the fate of the two men who
had been guarding it would never be known.
When the last of the lights died away, an instants hush
fell over Galweigh House. The guards and soldiers and officers
looked at each other, words lost to them. And in that hush, the
spirits of the dead reached out and touched the living.
* * *
Trev leaned against the stone wall in the hallway, staring at
the door his searching had revealed. The passageway behind it led
into darkness, a blackness that his lamp refused to illumine. His
skin twitched as if touched by a thousand cobwebs, and sweat
dripped from his forehead down his nose and beaded on his upper
lip. An instant before, hed seen the reflection of pale red
light from beyond the point where the passageway twisted; in the
instant that his eyes had registered it, it had vanished.
Something waited down there. Something bad, that knew he
existed, and that now hid in the darkness, waiting for him to move
into reach.
Why go on? Rys woman wasnt in the House anymore
Trev would almost have staked his life on it. After Ry had
that seizure, hed volunteered to stay behind to look for her,
but the longer and harder he looked, the more certain he became
that she was nowhere in reach. Why keep looking? He couldnt
say. Maybe secretly he wanted to earn more of Rys admiration,
or to take Yanths place as his closest confidant. Maybe
underneath everything, he hoped for advancement as Ry advanced in
the Family. Though he despised such base motives in others, he had
to admit they compelled him as much as friendship for Ry. Maybe
more.
The darkness ahead of him seemed to deepen, to gain weight and
presence, and Trev swallowed hard. He wouldnt live in
Galweigh House if the Sabirs made him paraglese of it. The damned
place felt alive to him, as if it were watching every step he
took.
You cant take her home with you even if you do find her,
he told himself. You try, and shell Shift and slaughter
you.
The darkness began to whisper.
Sibilant almost-formed words caught at the edge of Trevs
hearing. Pattering in the blackness, and dry squeaks, as if rats,
pressed to dust by the weight of the thick dark, came at him to
protest their fate. A draft of dank air brushed his cheek, and he
stepped back, away from the door, caught off guard by the faint,
unpleasant carrion reek it carried.
Wait, the darkness whispered, and he didnt know if
he heard the word or only imagined it.
She wouldnt be in there.
He closed the door and slowly backed away, keeping his back to
the wall so that no one would surprise him. His lamp cast long and
dancing shadows, and he wished that dawn would come and chase them
away. Whispering began behind him. He spun and squinted into the
dark. Saw nothing. Heard the door he had closed open behind him.
Jerked around, sword raised, lantern lifted so that he could make
out the outline of his enemy.
Saw nothing.
But the carrion smell bore down on him, a moving wall. Nothing
in front of him. Nothing behind him.
The cold, damp hands of nothing reached through his clothes to
his skin, stroked him, prodded him. The long-dead voice of that
nothing murmured, You belong to me, and this time he
could not doubt that what he heard, he heard with his ears and not
with his imagination. What he felt, he felt for real. He flailed
out with his sword, but his blade found no resistance in its arc to
the floor, and steel rang hard on stone, and the shock of the blade
striking ran through the palm of his hand and up his wrist, and he
cried out. Lost his balance. Dropped the lamp.
It smashed to the floor, and for a moment the oil burned
brightly in its puddle on the stone, and he leaped back to escape
its spread. Carrion arms caught him. Held him, while the flames
guttered down to blackness, and the darkness that was more than the
absence of light descended with full fury. A carrion body that he
could not touch, could not hurt, though it could touch him, pressed
flesh to his flesh, and the corpse chill of it and the stench of it
flowed through him. He believed he would die. Too frightened to
make a sound, or even to move, he wished that he could faint and
find that the sun would wake him in the morning, in his own bed,
the victim of nothing more than too much wine and a too-vivid
dream.
Mine.
Lips moldy and rotting brushed against the nape of his neck, and
fingertips that alternated putrefaction with bony fleshlessness
caressed his chest, his belly, his cheek, his back.
Ive waited for you for so long . . . for
so long . . . for so long . . .
She wasnt there. Nothing was there. But he could not break
free, could not flee, and could not fight, and his sword dropped
from nerveless fingers and clattered to the stone. His feet left
the ground as she lifted him into the air and bore him off
blinded by the impenetrable blackness that surrounded her, by the
fact that the only noise she made as she moved was a soft rustle
that might almost have been the sound of a long-vanished silk skirt
brushing the floor. He lost any sense of direction, of place. He
did not know if she traveled up with him, or down, or for that
matter which of those two things would be more frightening. He was
the captive of death itself, and he could not think or reason or
plan beyond that fact.
From the floors below him he heard screams and the echoes of
screams. They got closer, became louder; did he move toward them,
or they toward him?
The all-enveloping blinding blanket of darkness, the fetor, the
fear, the screams of countless unseen others they were the
walls and floor and ceiling of his world, the perimeters of his
existence beyond which nothing else was.
Then they were gone.
He lay on a bed of stones, breathing cool, clean air scented
with morning dew and loam, and the sounds that surrounded him were
the moans and sobs of others, but also the sounds of a city moving
to life in the time before the break of day. Human shouts,
good-natured or angry, and carts and beasts of burden in the
streets, and farmers bringing livestock into market someplace
below. In the valley. In the world beyond Galweigh House.
His eyes cleared, the unnatural darkness erased in an instant.
He rolled to his side; sat up; looked around. He sat in the middle
of a graveled road, surrounded on all sides by the Sabir troops who
had taken Galweigh House, and by the officers who had led them, and
by the Family who had come to direct the taking of the spoils. The
road and the grassy berm to either side could have been a
body-strewn battlefield, except that none of those who lay stunned
and in shock seemed to be harmed. Before him, the road twisted into
moonlit jungle. Behind him . . .
He turned, and saw through the frame of palms and many-trunked
strangler figs the edge of the wall of Galweigh House, and a part
of the gate the Sabirs had paid so much to get opened. It slid shut
as he watched. Leaving him and the rest of the conquerors once
again locked beyond the impenetrable wall, and the House in the
hands of the dead.
Chapter 18
The woman who walked into the tavern where Ian Draclas
sat sipping bitter mango beer with three outrageous liars caught
his attention more for what was wrong about her than what was
right. She strode to the bartender without bothering to acknowledge
the interested glances she got from the men at the tables, which
was odd enough; most of the women in the tavern at that time of
night wanted the glances, and the money they could make from the
men who gave them. Additionally, this woman looked like shed
been dunked in a well, then dipped in dirt; but nothing about her
said poor or in hard times. Her clothes,
entirely wrong for the area and the time of night, were outdoor
garb made for protection from the elements and for durability. He
studied them with a practiced eye; they were well made.
Absolutely top quality. As were the sword she wore at one hip and
the dagger at the other.
Her bones were delicate, her hands slender and long-fingered but
strong-looking, her wrists thick enough with muscle that he
suspected the sword was no decoration conferred by her Family
status. And she was lovely, though her beauty hid itself behind her
tangled hair and water-damaged clothing. Even the way she stood and
walked spoke clearly to him of breeding. He would guess she
belonged in the highest echelons of local society in the
parlors and salons of the Families, dressed in diaphanous silk,
sipping nectar. She no more belonged in a dockside tavern than
. . . He smiled inside, considering, and arched an
eyebrow. She no more belonged than he did.
An enigma. He did love an enigma. His smile moved to the outside
as, with a brisk nod, she turned away from the barkeep, scanned the
room, and looked straight at him. She turned once more to the
barkeep, said a few words, got a nod in affirmation, and began
working her way through the tables toward him.
. . . an all three of them were begging
me, but I . . . I . . . wanned em hungry
. . . if y unnerstan me . . . so I
. . .
Ian decided a liar telling his tale of sexual adventuring with
three Manarkan princesses was less compelling than a dark-eyed
enigma. Later, he said, and left them. Meeting her in a
slight clearing between two tables, he said, I saved you the
trouble of presenting yourself at a table full of boors. From the
look of you, your night has been interesting enough
already.
Her half-smile of agreement never reached her eyes.
Captain Draclas?
I serve you.
Im given to understand, by some asking about, that
you not only have a fast ship available for hire, but that you
might not be averse to a rapid departure . . . and
perhaps even, if the incentive were right, to sailing light.
She kept her voice low and her eyes focused on his face. He found
her intensity unnerving. Deliciously so.
He nodded quickly, so slightly that only she could see it. Then
he spread a drunken grin across his face and said, Why
din you say so, Leeze? He let his voice sound a little
too loud, a little drunk. If you need a place to sleep for a
night or two, Im . . . He giggled.
Im sure we can find you a bed . . .
someplace. He looked around the room, trying to catch the
attention of the men at the tables; they reacted by turning away,
envious, or by hooting encouragement. Ian grinned and swaggered; he
slid an arm around her waist, neatly catching her sword between her
thigh and his as he did. Better, should anyone come asking later,
that they not remember that sword. Outside, he said
under his breath.
She slid her own arm around his back, and dragged her fingers
from the nape of his neck down between his shoulder blades in an
intimate gesture that felt entirely too good. Almost as loudly, and
in an accent he would have sworn was born and bred dockside, she
said, Shouldna say such things t a good girl like
me, you. Im na that kinda girl. She managed a
predatory smile and a laugh as professional as any in the room. She
squeezed his buttock, and they walked out together. The attention
of the room no longer fixed on either of them, since the nature of
their association had been classified, in the minds of the other
patrons, as business of a personal kind. Nothing worthy of further
thought.
Outside, the act dissolved like a spun sugar treat in summer
rain. The woman pulled gracefully out of his reach, turned to him,
and smiled this time a genuine smile. Nicely done. You
think well under pressure.
Necessary in my line of work.
Reassuring to one in my position.
And what position might that be?
Her teeth flashed the grin broad and dangerous.
There are some powerful people after me for a manuscript that
I . . . acquired. Bought. From a dealer. These people got
hold of information regarding the contents of the manuscript, and
now they want it and me with it.
She was lying. He could see it in her eyes. He knew it as surely
as he knew the sun would rise soon. She hadnt gotten her
manuscript from any dealer shed stolen it. And why
would a woman who gave every indication of being Familied steal a
manuscript of any sort? Why not buy it? Hells-all, why not simply
command that it be given to her, for that matter? If she was of
Family, she had that right. An enigma within an enigma and
only one way he could see to solve the puzzle. Ask. So
whats in this manuscript that people want so much that
theyd come after you?
Her voice dropped to a whisper and she moved closer to him.
The location of an undiscovered Ancients
city.
Taken aback, he laughed. Theres no place left on
this continent to hide such a city at least, no place that
you or I could reach. Maybe in Strithia, or deep in the heart of
the Veral Territories . . . but Ill not go there
for any treasure.
Agreed. But it isnt on this continent.
His heart started to pound. Where, then?
Manarkas?
She smiled. North Novtierra.
He took a step back from her and stared, his heart skittering at
the thought of such a treasure. North Novtierra? Virgin
land unclaimed, uncharted, ripe for the taking. Hard to
reach, hard to explore, vast beyond all imagining. Three months of
sailing just to get there and that wouldnt include any
time crawling up and down the unexplored coast trying to find her
city. No doubt a hundred undiscovered Ancients cities lay
within the fertile, forested slopes and broad plains of North
Novtierra. A man could spend a lifetime trying to find just one,
and fail. But if this woman knew the location of such a place
. . .
Ah, shang! Such a place would be worth the risk of life,
fortune, Family anything at all to the finder. With
the fortune this woman could make from the spoils of an untouched
Ancients ruin, she could buy herself the paraglesiat of one
of her Familys smaller cities . . . have enough
money left over to build a solid standing army . . . take
any technology she acquired from the site and either develop it
herself or use it as leverage to an even higher position of
power. . . . One good city could take her into
otherwise unreachable spheres of power. Make her the equal of any
paraglese in Ibera.
Of course, what would be a treasure for her would be a treasure
for anyone else involved, too, including him. She didnt
strike him as stupid, so she knew that. He wanted to know what
shed done to protect her interests. North Novtierra.
Thats half a world away, and a hellish dangerous voyage into
the bargain.
Yes. But your ship could make the trip. It isnt a
coast-hugger. I checked.
Youre right. It isnt. And its seaworthy,
and fast. Right up there with the newest caravels in the Family
fleets. And Ive crossed the Bregian before I could
probably get you there. But whats to prevent me from taking
the treasure and stranding you once we arrive . . . or,
for that matter, from dumping you overboard once were well at
sea and finding and claiming the city for myself?
She chuckled, and something terrifying crept into the sound. The
hair on the back of his neck stirred, and his gut twisted.
You wouldnt want to try stranding or dumping me,
Captain. I assure you I can take care of myself. As for you using
the manuscript to find the place, you couldnt unless you
happen to be a Family translator, and unless you happen to
specialize in the Ancients languages, and unless you can
specifically read Tongata Four in Brasmian script. Im betting
you cant. Further, Im betting that you wont find
anyone else besides me who can. As far as I know, Im the only
one who has deciphered it.
He could no more read Tongata Four than he could flap his arms
and fly. And wouldnt know Brasmian script if someone tattooed
it on his nose. Which made her as valuable to him as the city
itself and guaranteed her safety at least to the city. Which
she obviously knew. Beyond that . . . well, he thought he
believed her when she said he would make a mistake trying to strand
her. Why he believed, he couldnt say. Perhaps it was
the danger in her smile.
Abruptly what shed told him fitted together, pieces of the
puzzle falling neatly into place; in that moment he knew not
only how shed come upon the manuscript, but who she was. She
hadnt bought the thing, of course; however, she hadnt
stumbled across it accidentally and stolen it on a whim, either.
She was one of her Familys lesser daughters, relegated to the
dry and dusty translation of Ancient archives, pushed aside because
her branch of the Family lacked sufficient pull to get her a good
marriage or a good post. She would have been just a link between
the will of her Family and the craftsmen and artists who used her
translations to re-create Ancient technologies. Shed been
given a manuscript to translate; had come, at some point in it, to
a mention of the location of a city that she felt would be both
reachable and worth finding; and because she had ambition and a
hunger for a life better than the one shed landed in,
shed leaped at the opportunity, snatched the manuscript, and
fled into his life.
Which, of course, she would never admit.
He liked her. By all the gods, he liked her. She reminded him of
himself. Even that dangerous little burr in her voice when she told
him that trying to get rid of her would be a bad idea appealed to
him. He decided that if no . . . when;
after all, why not have faith in his windfall? he decided
that when they found the city, he wouldnt waste his
time trying to dump her or kill her. Why kill a woman worth
marrying? Marrying power, after all, was more efficient than
earning it.
And she was a good-looking woman. From her height and
coloring and build, of either the Galweigh or Kairn Families, and
since she was on Goft, hed bet Galweigh. Galweigh would be
very good, if she could win her bid for power. Even a moderate
position in that Family was worth a paraglesiat in the Dokteeraks
or the Kairns or the Masschankas. The only other Family equal to
the Galweighs was the Sabirs. Sabir would have been bad he
had solid reasons for avoiding them.
He regarded her with proprietary pleasure. His future wife. His
future ticket into wealth, power, luxury. No sense letting her know
hed undertake the trip for free to have the opportunity to
win her and through her claim her city. He needed to let that part
unfold slowly. So he gave her his best hard-nosed trader impression
and said, Whats in it for me?
The transit fee there you give me a reasonable
price and Ill pay it. A fair percentage of the cargo we find
Ill make it worth your while. My patronage on any
return trips. A place in . . . She reconsidered
what shed been about to say, and smiled and shrugged.
Well, lets say for now that anything else I can offer
would be even more speculative than the city and the cargo. But as
I said, Ill make it worth your while.
He nodded. For the transit fee . . . He
didnt want to ask so much that she couldnt pay it, and
how much could she possibly have, anyway? But he didnt want
to ask so little that he raised her suspicions. Ten solid
large. Up front. It was a lot, but it was also within reason
for the distance and the danger of the journey.
She winced.
He waited. If it was too much, hed see it and lower his
price a little at a time.
She sighed, stared at her feet, finally nodded. You have a
preference for any one mint?
The Dokteeraks cut their gold coins with silver sometimes
dont pay me in stamped daks. Farnes and preids spend
best, but gold is gold.
She nodded. Done.
Well enough. She didnt argue, so he might have gotten
more. Still, if he got the city, what more did he need? So
what must I know to get us out of the harbor alive? he
asked.
She didnt waste his time pretending she didnt
understand what he meant. We need to move fast and we need to
leave a false trail. We cant supply here if you arent
already stocked. Mentioning what were looking for or where
were looking would probably be fatal.
He shrugged. I figured that. Anyone in particular you need
to avoid?
Her laugh was so harsh it startled him. If you maintain
close associations with the Five Families, dont mention me,
eh?
Now he truly was startled. All five? Not even
he had managed to get himself that deeply into trouble.
To Galweigh, Sabir, and Dokteerak, my life is
. . . forfeit. To Masschanka through their association
with the Sabirs and the Dokteeraks, probably the same. And Kairn,
through their alliance with the Galweighs, might also take me in
for any offered reward. Avoiding all five would be best.
He felt a measure of admiration at that. He didnt know
anyone who could honestly claim to have made enemies of all the
Five Families. Ill do my best.
How early can you be ready to leave?
Meet me on the beach by the wharf as the bells ring
Huld.
The woman looked at the sky, and he saw her picking out the
White Lady from the other stars, and measuring her distance from
the horizon. The Red Hunter, which would signal the passing of the
station of Telt and the arrival of Huld, would not join her for
some time.
Well enough, the woman said. That will give me
time to do the few things I must do.
She was already gone when he realized he didnt even know
her name.
* * *
He believed it. Kait hurried down to the beach. She
had nothing she needed to do so much as she needed to keep out of
sight, and by the wharf near where she had dragged herself ashore
shed seen plenty of cover.
Of course he believed it. Tell anyone an implausible lie and
build a plausible diversion behind it; hell almost always dig
through the implausible lie to your diversion, think hes
found the truth, and fail to look further. Amalee chuckled and
changed the subject. The captain certainly was taken with
you.
Kait reached the beach and moved to a line of low shrubs and
grasses that lay north of the wharf. Its because
Im Karnee. His interest didnt have anything to do with
me.
Amalee stayed silent while Kait found a comfortable, hidden
vantage point from which to watch the wharf and settled into it.
Once shed stilled, though, her ancestor said, What do you
mean, because youre Karnee? Youre lovely. He
couldnt have failed to notice that.
Trust me, it wouldnt matter. One of the effects of
the curse is that the Karnee attract members of the opposite sex
and of their own sex by some sort of . . . Im not
sure . . . scent, maybe. Like flowers attract bees, I
suppose. The bee doesnt desire the flower, and humans
dont desire the Karnee they both just want the thing
that makes the scent. The effect was well documented four hundred
years ago. Kait sighed. My parents managed to secretly
gather copies of everything that was known about my kind. They had
me read them so that I would understand what I was.
She didnt bother to add that they had done so at terrible
danger to themselves. Or that they had given her every advantage
they could to help her survive in the world, risking their own
lives and the lives of all their other children in the process. She
had known love in her life; her parents and her surviving brothers
and sisters had loved her, without question or reservation. She
would simply never be able to find such love again.
So all men want you.
Most. And many women. The effect seems to be stronger on
men. Some people seem immune to the scent. Or drug. Or whatever it
is that I give off. Not many, though.
A long silence. Then, Oh, that would be delightful.
You think so? Imagine knowing that no one who wanted you
actually wanted you. That wherever you went, men and women
would approach you, court you, want to bed you . . . and
that if you could get rid of your scent, and dump it on a dog, they
would abandon you and court the dog. Now think how
delightful it would be.
And do you ever bed them?
Kait wondered if the woman had been such a prying nuisance in
life. Could explain why the Sabirs sacrificed her.
Sometimes, she admitted. Another curse of
being Karnee is the insatiable appetite. For everything. Sex
included. I fight the appetites. Sometimes I lose the fight.
When she did, sex always felt hollow. Empty. A loveless,
passionless exercise, in which she constantly had to guard herself
against the excesses of pleasure that could throw her into Shift.
She came away from each encounter with nothing but guilt and a
desire to avoid the next. But like Shift, the sexual hunger of
Karnee could only be held in check for so long. Longer than Shift
itself most times that was inexorable as the tide. But
sometimes the beast inside of her would not be denied.
Kait yawned. Sitting and waiting began to feel like a mistake.
How long had it been since shed slept? That interlude of
unconsciousness didnt seem to have helped shed
woken from that tired and drained. Fear and rage and hope had kept
the weariness at bay while shed tried to find a way to help
her Family, and then to save her life. Now, however, the exhaustion
that weighted her limbs and dragged at her eyelids became
unbearable. Sleep beckoned; a god to be embraced, desirable beyond
all imagining. She settled lower in the sand, and discovered that
one of the branches of the shrub directly behind her curved in an
arc that would support her head.
Amalee was oblivious to her weariness. She was nattering on
about being Karnee. How marvelous. An enormous sexual appetite
and an unending supply of people to fill it. My dear, I wish
Id been born Karnee. All of that power . . . all of
that control . . .
Kait felt a moment of sympathy for the long-dead Sabirs
whod sacrificed her ancestor. If the woman were alive, she
thought she might have been tempted to follow the same course of
action. She yawned again, and realized that her eyes had fallen
shut she had no idea how long they had been that way. She
forced them open. Can you stay awake if I sleep?
Child, I havent slept in a th in two hundred
years.
Can you wake me when we have to leave if I am
asleep?
Yes.
Good. Then be quiet until the town rings Huld. Im
exhausted.
Huld. Of course. A pause. And how do they ring that
now?
Kait sank into welcome darkness.
Kait? How do they ring Huld now?
She fought the embrace of the dark god a moment longer.
The same way they always have.
The pause she got was not encouraging.
Three bells. Different tones. Youll hear
them.
Odd that her ancestor didnt remember that. Perhaps nearly
two hundred years of being dead made you forget things.
The dark god brushed her cheek with his lips, and she lost the
thought in the feathery comfort of sleep.
Chapter 19
The last of the screams had died away not long ago.
Silence owned the House for the moment. Dùghall rose and
tapped the airible pilot, Aouel, on the shoulder.
Theyve fled, he said. But were going
to have to get outside and close the gate before they return. Can
you kick the door open?
Aouel, haggard-faced and sleep-drugged, struggled with
Dùghalls words. Fled? The Sabirs? Why? Are you
sure?
I dont know why, and we dont have time to
figure it out. They all started screaming and ran away; they
arent out there now; we have to get to the gate.
He could have opened it himself with magic, but he couldnt
have explained to the other survivors how he got it open
and he didnt want to do anything that might link him
with the suspicious disappearance of the two bodies from the room,
or the flight of the Sabirs from the House.
On the other hand, the method by which a big, strong young man
would go through a locked door was understandable by everyone.
Nothing suspicious about it. And Aouel used that method. He ran at
the door and hit it with his shoulder. It shuddered, but held. He
hit it again and again; after six or seven solid crashes, the frame
splintered around the catch and it burst open.
The noise woke the other sleepers. Dùghall told them only,
The Sabirs ran away. Then he ran out into the hallway
and trotted toward the stairs that would take him to the ground
floor, and eventually to the gate, following Aouel, who, being
younger and in better shape, didnt have to go slowly to keep
from jostling his belly uncomfortably. Behind them, Dùghall
could hear the other survivors coming out, chattering to each other
about what could have possibly made the Sabirs leave. Good. They
could puzzle out some answer to their miraculous rescue while he
wasnt present.
He followed Aouel, who charged through the House and out onto
the grounds, tore through the gardens and across the manicured
paths and the exercise grounds and the airible ground to the
guardhouse by the gate. He managed to keep the younger man in
sight, though sometimes only barely. He made it past the shrubs in
time to see the gate close.
He smiled, bending over with his hands on his thighs, wheezing.
Closed. His left palm hurt like the very hells. His lungs burned.
The world faded in and out of a gray haze filled with tiny points
of light. His heart felt ready to explode out of his chest. It
didnt matter. None of it mattered. If hed been missing
legs or arms, that would have suited him fine, too. The Sabirs were
out. Gone. Beaten again.
Aouel crunched up a graveled path between flower beds and
stopped at his side. You going to die on me, old man?
He sounded like he was breathing hard, too.
Dùghall raised his head. Not today, young rooster.
Not today.
Good. Because theres something you need to
know.
Dùghall straightened and looked up into the
Rophetians frowning face. His momentary feeling of triumph
melted away. What?
She took the airible.
This made no sense to Dùghall. He had, in the back of his
mind, registered the fact that the airible was gone, but he
hadnt considered what it might mean. Aouel apparently had.
Who . . . who took the airible?
Kait.
Dùghall snorted. Nonsense. You have to realize that
she couldnt have taken it. Even had she known how to fly it,
she had no ground crew to release the ropes and where would
she hope to take it or land it? The bastard Sabirs took it, and I
hope it crashes with them and they burn to cinders.
Aouel didnt look at all convinced. Kait took
it, he insisted.
How, son? How could she have?
Look on the ground over there. Aouel pointed, and
Dùghall saw ropes still locked through the landing
winches.
They cut the ropes. He chuckled. They cut the
ropes. He could just see those idiots struggling to get the
airible off the ground, and he smiled. If the Sabirs cut the
airibles ropes to take off, theyll dance
Brethwans jig getting back to the ground in one piece
again.
Aouel was shaking his head. The ropes werent cut.
The Sabirs would have done anything to get the ship safely from
here to their House. The ground crew would have walked there
through the city if they had to. Those ropes were intentionally
released, and only Kait would have done that.
Dùghall crossed his arms and waited for the explanation
that was coming. The explanation he knew he wasnt going to
like.
Theres an emergency lever hidden in the pilots
cabin, the pilot said. It releases all the landing
ropes at the same time a feature the crafters built in just
in case one of us ever found ourselves overrun by enemies when we
landed.
Dùghall frowned. You could have pulled that lever and
gotten us all off the ground yesterday . . .
Aouel shook his head. Had I been in the cabin, I would
have. But Kait had taken ill with that spell, remember. Tippa and I
were already in the hatch, ready to run for help for her. And the
Sabir men threatened to kill Tippa if I moved anywhere but out of
the airible.
Dùghall remembered. Yes. That seems so long ago, but
youre right, of course. About that, anyway. As far as this
nonsense of Kait taking the airible . . .
Aouel rested a hand on Dùghalls shoulder and said,
She knew how to fly it, Parat Dùghall. She knew where
the hidden lever was, she knew how to operate the lifters and the
engines, and she had flown that particular ship several
times.
Dùghall could do nothing but stare, speechless.
Aouel saw the look and winced. I taught her myself,
he added.
For the longest time, Dùghall could think of nothing to
say. Finally, however, he managed to croak, Why?
Aouel shrugged. She wanted to learn. And she was quick,
and clever, and . . .
Dùghall felt his knees sag. Then she isnt
hiding somewhere just outside the gate.
No.
Dùghall had been so sure that at least one of the people
from the Family that he truly loved was safe. Now he knew nothing.
What emergency features did the crafters build in to land the
ship, in the event that you had to release the ropes?
Aouel pursed his lips. We werent to land it. If we
used the emergency release, we were either to get it to friendly
territory and crash it within our own grounds, or we were to fly it
out to sea and sink it.
And there are emergency boats aboard for such an
eventuality?
We . . . ah . . . were always given to
believe we would . . . ah . . . go down with
it, so to speak.
Youre telling me she has no way to get safely to the
ground.
None. At least none that can be assured. The best she can
hope for is that she will crash in friendly territory, and that the
crash wont hurt her too much. But if the ground crew
didnt refuel the ship when it landed and I cannot
imagine that they would she may not be able to get to
friendly territory.
Dùghall glared at the pilot, and thought of Kait. She could
have been an extraordinary diplomat, he thought. She could have
done wonderful things for the Family. Or beyond the Family. She had
been special. Now he could only assume that she was dead, and that
her promise had died with her.
I should have you hanged, he told Aouel. I
wont. The Family has lost enough people. But Kaits
death is on your hands, and I will remember. And someday I will
hold you accountable.
* * *
The ship no longer rocked gently from side to side; instead, it
surged and plunged, as if climbing one hill, sliding down the other
side, and climbing the next, over and over. Hasmals hammock
moved with a life of its own. For a moment he puzzled over the
change. Then a contented smile spread across his face as he
realized what it meant. The Peregrine had put out to sea and
was on its way somewhere, and anywhere would suit Hasmal just fine
because it meant that he had finally escaped.
He pulled on his shoes and dashed up the companionway to the
main deck. A low line of islands lay off to the left, but the
Peregrine sailed in a clear sea. The captain leaned against the
tiller, eyes squinted into the low morning sun, a contented
half-smile on his face. Several sailors, including the Keshi
Scarred crew who hadnt dared show their faces abovedecks the
whole time the ship lay in Iberan territory, draped themselves in
the ratlines, enjoying the stiff breeze and the sunshine. Hasmal
sensed their joy at being free again, and understood it well. He
shared it himself.
He walked aft, and nodded to the captain. So we got our
cargo.
The captain smiled. And got you out to sea promptly, just
as I promised. You wanted to be at sea awhile, you said. You should
be pleased with our destination.
Really?
I should think. Were sailing all the way to North
Novtierra. I hope you had everything you wanted with you we
wont be doing more than looking at land for a very
long time.
Hasmal laughed out loud. Good news, he said.
Ah, Captain, you cannot know what good news that is. He
settled against a rail and stared down at the rushing water.
Thought youd feel that way, even though you never
said what it was you were . . . avoiding.
The captain didnt say running from but Hasmal
heard the words anyway. He shrugged and told a half-truth.
Nothing extraordinary. A woman. Expectations. A future I
didnt fancy.
Ian Draclas laughed out loud. I didnt think when I
took you on that you had the criminal eye, Has. Many a good man has
taken to the sea to escape a woman. Truth be told, my first voyage
was for that very reason.
Hasmal glanced up at him, curious.
A young girl took a liking to me, and told her ferocious
father that Id taken her maidenhood, and that she wanted to
marry me rather than see me hanged in the city square. I
. . . ah . . . I thought a girl who would lie
like that to her father would lie like that to her husband, and
besides, I had no wish to settle down to life as an apprentice to a
shopkeeper, no matter how fine his wares or how rich his coffers.
So I found a berth aboard a ship heading north, and I never looked
back.
Hasmal nodded, thinking of the doom he had finally averted.
There are fates worse than marriage or death, but those are
bad enough.
The captain laughed.
Hasmal closed his eyes and felt the warmth of the sun on his
face and smelled the richness of the salt air and realized that he
could breathe for the first time since that night that hed
cloaked himself in magic and crashed the Dokteerak Naming Day
celebration because he could. Free, free, and free; hed
broken from his doom, escaped his unwanted fate, won his battle.
And if he was on a ship bound for gods-knew-where, and if he hated
the ocean, and if he got sick from the constant motion, no matter.
He would pay the price to be his own man.
Vincalis, the ancient poet, philosopher, and patron sage of
Falcons, had once said, The Art chooses the moment and the
man, and rides that man like a nag until he bursts his heart and
dies; only the fool ventures within magics grasp without good
reason.
Maybe Im a coward, but I have no wish to die for the
Falcons. Ill not be magics horse again. And Ill
never again tempt fate for the sake of curiosity, Hasmal told
himself.
He had convinced himself on Naming Day that he had good reason
to slip unnoticed within the walls of Dokteerak House; Stonecutter
Street, indeed the whole of the Bremish Quarter, was alive with
rumors of preparation for war among the citys Family, and
with stories of foreign messengers representing not one but two
enemy Families, and with speculation that the upcoming wedding was
not all it seemed on the surface, he thought he did himself and his
family a service. And the city itself stank with dark magic. So he
had invoked Falcon magic in order to observe the byplay of the
Families telling himself all the while that
self-preservation and not idle curiosity impelled him and by
doing so he had wakened the interest of the other world in him, and
tied himself to those Families and events, and had only narrowly
averted binding himself to their doom.
Dont play on the gods playing fields
you wont like their games, and in any case, they
cheat.
Vincalis again. Words to live by.
Ive learned my lesson, Hasmal prayed. Thank you, Vodor
Imrish, for gentle kindness in delivering your good Hmoth boy from
the hands of the meddling Iberan gods. I promise Ill never
mistake prying for self-preservation again.
* * *
Kait had no idea how long shed slept. She only vaguely
remembered Amalee waking her to get her aboard the ship shed
hired. She remembered even less of paying the captain, explaining
that she had no gear, and moving into her cabin. That she had
succeeded in doing all those things, though, was evident. She lay
in a comfortable bunk in a clean, tiny cabin, on top of the covers
and still with her boots on. Her clothes were a wreck. She wished
shed had a chance to buy new ones, and to acquire a few other
supplies while she was at it; she could only hope that Captain
Draclas had women among his crew, and that one of them might be
willing to sell some of her things to Kait to cover her until their
next harbor.
Feeling better?
Amalees voice startled Kait. She jumped, and
her long-dead ancestor laughed.
Im fine, Kait muttered. I wish you
wouldnt do that.
Im sure. But you cant imagine how lonely
Ive been. Its wonderful to have someone to talk to
again, and its wonderful to be heard.
Kait stretched, yawned, and sat up. The cabin smelled of oak and
cedar, of wood polish and candle wax; it held an aura of honest
hard scrubbing its soapstoned floor gleamed white as bone,
and its worn sheets and carefully darned blanket were spotless and
scented with alaria and lavender.
Dont you want to talk? I have so many things to tell
you
Frankly, no. In the morning, I want to be alone with my
own thoughts.
Its well after midday, and probably not long before
sundown.
Kait unbraided her hair and wished she had a convenient place to
wash it. Though no longer damp, it still had that unpleasant,
heavy, gritty feel that came from having soaked in seawater.
How about this, then? I like being by myself, and I
have things I want to think about alone. So go away and dont
talk to me until I ask you to. Whether its morning or
night.
A gentle tap sounded on the cabin door. Kait froze.
Parata? Are you awake?
Im awake, Kait said.
Do you have company?
Kait rubbed her hand over her eyes and sighed. I was
talking to myself. I woke out of sorts.
Im your cabin girl. May I come in?
Enter.
The door opened. Kait wasnt prepared for the creature who
presented herself for inspection. Of the Scarred, Kait had only
seen those who trespassed the borders of Ibera and were executed in
Calimekkas Grand Square. Always she had seen them from a
distance, and more often than not, she had looked away. She had
never been within arms reach of one; for that matter, had
never expected to be.
And here stood a creature Scarred beyond anything Kait could
have imagined, and the creature identified herself as Kaits
cabin girl. In Ibera, the girl would have been criminal by virtue
of her existence which proved, Kait supposed, that they
werent in Ibera.
Matrins Scarred came in two varieties those like
Kait whose Scars were hidden, either all or part of the time, and
those like this girl, who wore theirs for all to see. The girl
would come from an entire tribe of creatures just like her, a tribe
that was only one of an unknown and perhaps unknowable number of
similar tribes. The visibly Scarred were sometimes called the
Thousand Races of the Damned. They came from the twisted lands
surrounding Wizards Circles; ancient magic run amok had
ripped the humanity from those who, a thousand years earlier, had
inhabited those lands. Ancient magic had twisted the survivors as
it had twisted the lands, and in doing so had given birth to
numberless races of monsters. Monsters barred from Ibera, the last
home of humanity.
Kait vaguely recalled that captains were by law rulers of their
ships and that as long as they and their crew were aboard those
ships, all aboard ship were subject to no law but the
captains . . . but the fact that an Iberan captain
would hire on Scarred crew had never even occurred to Kait. She had
thought of Captains Law as simply a matter of maintaining
discipline over crew, not as truly setting up a foreign country
within tiny wooden confines.
Kait stared because she couldnt help herself; because she
felt herself confronted with heresy; because she felt herself a
hypocrite for being herself a creature of heresy and still being
shocked; because she didnt know what else to do.
The girl, caught under her gaze, lowered her head and whispered,
If you are displeased with me, I can leave. There are others
who can take care of you who are not . . . what I
am.
What you are . . . Kait thought, disgusted with
herself. What you are is an honest version of what I am.
Please come in, Kait said, making her voice gentle.
And please forgive my rudeness. I have never seen one of the
Scarred before you simply took me by surprise. I did not
realize any of the Scarred could be so beautiful.
And though she had managed in her words to smooth over her
rudeness, Kait realized shed spoken nothing less than the
truth. The girl was beautiful. Her eyes, enormous and pure
jet-black, gleamed in a face as shiny and iridescent as the
carapace of a beetle or the body of a hummingbird in the
sunlight that backlit her, she looked like a gemstone. Though her
face shimmered mostly in purples and blues and greens, she wore
highlights of ruby red and gold across her high cheekbones and
long, delicate chin as she turned to pull the door closed. Once out
of the sunlight, most of the iridescence vanished into a black as
rich and pure as that of her eyes. Eyebrows formed of some wispy,
delicate white stuff so light the faintest hint of breeze or even
breath moved them arched above those bottomless pools of eyes; they
seemed alive. The girl had braided the outer ends of the eyebrows
where the hair grew long; the braids hung on either side of her
face down to the angle of her jaw, the ends adorned with tiny
polished beads and wrapped feathers. Her hair had the same almost
magical life as her eyebrows. It was equally white, and caught up
in one thick braid that shed draped over a slender shoulder
and tucked into the belt at her waist, looping it there like coils
of rope. Hard not to wonder how long that hair would be unbraided,
or to imagine what it might look like unbound. Amazing stuff. And
her ears Kait had seen their equal in the does and stags
shed hunted in her Karnee form. Same size, same shape, same
ever-mobile nervousness; ears affixed to the sides of a face that
they dwarfed. The nose was sharp-tipped, wide of nostril, mobile.
The mouth wide also, with full lips curved upward at the
corners.
The girls body, hidden beneath the draping folds of her
white flax shirt, gray pants, and soft-soled boots, was impossible
to guess at, other than that the arrangement of parts was more or
less like a humans, and that there wasnt much to
it.
The girl, for her part, studied Kait with the same intensity
that Kait studied her. They sized each other up for a long moment.
Then the Scarred girl tipped her head at an angle, and frowned
slightly, and said, You arent like the rest of
them.
Kait felt her heart pick up its pace at those words.
No?
The girl smiled, revealing a row of very white, very pointed
little teeth. No. You are . . . She shrugged
and the corners of her mouth twitched, as if she were amused by the
enigma presented. I dont know. Somehow you are more of
a predator. Like me. Somehow. Please dont be offended. I
would never say that you were . . . of my kind I
know that in your world that would be a deathcrime. But you have
the smell of the hunter about you. And the mannerisms of the hunter
and the hunted.
Kait nodded. Predators knew each other, and the girl was right.
Kait was a predator, and denial on her part would do more to
arouse the Scarred girls curiosity than to quell it. I
often hunted when I was at home. Deer, mostly. Sometimes other
things. Now there are people after me, so I have truly become
hunted. Your senses are good.
The girl smiled. Accepted the compliment, and perhaps the
explanation, though something in her eyes made Kait think she
considered it incomplete. Still, politely, she said, I
thought as much.
Kait changed the subject. And you were listening at my
door.
Oh. Those huge eyes went rounder. Yes, well.
Not really listening at your door I simply hear very well,
and the captain told me I must take you, when you woke, to the ship
stores. Hed stationed me outside your door with that charge,
because when you came aboard you carried no baggage, and he said
hed laid in a few things you might need. Clothes, toiletries,
personals youre to have your pick of what we have, and
then Im to take you to the shower and let you change.
Ill clean the clothes youre wearing for you while
youre at dinner. I think they arent as damaged as you
might believe, though the dye in your vest will probably have to be
redone. She glanced at Kaits feet. And those
boots . . .
Dont worry about the boots. With some leather oil
and some hard wax, Im sure I can work them back to something
respectable.
The girl nodded. Ill be sure you have what you
need.
Youre the one who cleans this room, arent
you?
Yes.
Its wonderful. If I could ask you one thing, though
. . .
Anything.
In the sheets, the alaria . . .
A quick smile flashed across the girls face.
Its too sweet for your nose, isnt it?
Yes.
For mine, too. It isnt a predator scent. It covers
too much.
Kait nodded. I like the lavender, though.
As do I. Very clean. Not very concealing. The diaga
but, no, you are diaga, too. She frowned, a delicate
operation that set her eyebrows dancing. Most of your
kind like the alaria. But I wont use it for your things. Just
the lavender.
Thank you.
Are you ready, then? To go get some new things and take
your shower and go to dinner? Youre to sit at the
captains table tonight.
Im almost ready. Tell me your name first.
The passengers always call me Girlie.
But that isnt your name.
No. But my name is hard to say.
Kait waited.
The girl trilled her tongue, the note going from low to high and
ending with a soft whisper.
Kait had always been good at imitating sounds, and years of
studying the other languages of Ibera had sharpened both her ear
and her tongue. Rrru-eeth? she said.
The girl laughed, and the laugh was as musical as the name.
Thats it exactly. Exactly. Not even Jayti says it so
well.
Jayti?
My lover. Hes diaga, but hes wonderful.
Youll come across him sooner or later; hes one of the
sailors.
Kait nodded, thinking that for a human man to have a sexual
relationship with a Scarred woman would be an immediate sentence of
death by torture and mutilation for both Rrru-eeth and Jayti should
the fact and either of the participants ever touch land in Ibera at
the same time. So she wasnt the only one on the ship keeping
deadly secrets.
They went to the storeroom. Kait found clothes there that fit
her plain working clothes, sturdy enough for her needs, if
not of the quality shed known all her life. Sword oil and a
whetstone and cleaning rags. Personal items. She restocked, and
Rrru-eeth took her to the tiny shower, and she bathed in little
spurts of cold water, and washed her hair, and dressed in the new
clothing. Both women returned to Kaits cabin long enough to
put all of her new things in the drawers built into the bottom of
the bunk and onto the shelves at the foot of it. Then Rrru-eeth
took Kait to the galley, where the captain and the crew were
gathering for dinner.
There Kait discovered that miracles sometimes happened
and better yet, that they sometimes happened to her. Hasmal son of
Hasmal sat at the long trestle between a crew member so Scarred
Kait could not tell whether it was male or female, and a lean,
hard-eyed woman who had one hand on his forearm and who seemed to
be regaling him, nonstop, with some story he didnt wish to
hear.
Rrru-eeth caught Kaits indrawn breath and expression of
delight, and said, An old lover?
Simply an acquaintance, but one Id hoped to get to
know better . . . before circumstances changed. I never
thought Id see him again. Now . . . She
couldnt hide her smile. Excuse me for just a
moment.
Hasmal didnt become aware of her presence until, standing
directly behind him, she said, Hasmal son of Hasmal, if ever
I thought the gods might like me, that moment is now. Imagine
finding you here, of all the places in the world.
He turned, and in the first instant she could see that he
didnt recognize her. Easy enough to understand; hed
seen her only briefly, and then shed been dressed for a
party, and in the company of her younger and prettier cousin. She
decided she must not have made much of an impression on him. Then,
in the second instant, the flash of recognition widened his eyes
and drained the color from his skin. He said, You! in a
voice she would have reserved for a meeting with a walking corpse.
His eyeballs rolled up in their sockets so that she could plainly
see a rim of white underneath each. His muscles sagged, and he
flopped like a childs rag moppet, and slid under the table
before anyone could catch him.
Bewildered, Kait looked at the pale lump of him that lay under
the table, and then up to the crew staring at her from every other
seat in the galley. The captain had apparently witnessed the entire
exchange; his expression was complex, but the clearest emotion Kait
saw there was bemusement.
She held out her hands, palms up, and tried to find words. None
came.
Ian Draclas came over and pulled Hasmal out from under the
table, and made sure he was breathing. Then he glanced up at Kait.
I would not have thought that you were the one. When
weve eaten, please come with me to my cabin. You and I need
to talk.
Kait nodded, still speechless. She was the one?
What one? And why had Hasmal reacted with such . . .
such terror, for certainly she could find no other word
. . . to her presence? She had been delighted to see him.
Pleased that there was someone on board that she knew, even though
she didnt know him well. She had certainly been hopeful that
he could teach her that trick of his for creating a wall of peace
around himself the same one that Dùghall had replicated
just before disaster struck.
She frowned, and while several of the sailors carried Hasmal out
of the galley, she took her seat next to the captain.
Dinner was a hushed affair.
* * *
In the long ward, in the cloud-dimmed light of late afternoon,
the Wolves who still survived lay separated by cold white rows of
narrow, empty beds. Ry stood next to his mother, who still lived,
but who now had no sight at all, and whose Scars would have given a
younger Ry screaming nightmares. Might still give him nightmares,
he acknowledged, though he kept his horror and his revulsion from
his voice when he spoke to her.
Who still lives? she asked him. Your
father?
No, Mother. Im sorry . . . but he did not
survive. Nor did Audrai, who had been his older sister.
Elen?
Of course. Shes fine, and if you wish, Ill
tell her youre ready to have her visit you. Elen, seven
years younger than he was, would not even be old enough to train
with the Wolves for another two years. She hadnt been in the
circle that day, and so had been, like him, completely spared.
His mother showed neither pain at the loss of her husband and
elder daughter, nor relief at the survival of the younger. She had
never pretended deep love for her children or for Lucien, and she
didnt pretend it at that moment. Her concerns were with
succession; with the direction that the Wolves would take now that
Lucien was gone, and that was where she focused her attention.
Who looks to have the best chance of leading the
Wolves?
That you could accept? Which wasnt what
shed asked, but Ry wasnt ready to deal with the
question shed asked just yet. He sighed, looking down those
nearly empty rows. So many dead. Uselessly, pointlessly dead.
Tomey will be well soon.
Tomey is both weak and stupid.
Tomey is pliable. Not stupid. With your support, he could
be encouraged in an agreeable direction.
Agreeable, of course, being defined as what his mother
wanted. In all the years that Lucien held the leadership of the
Wolves, that had been the definition of the word, and Imogene would
not care to have it changed at this late date in her life.
Stupid. Hell never take the leadership.
And that was probably true. Tomey was not stupid; in fact, he
had a remarkable sense of self-preservation that would likely keep
him far from any power struggles. Ry shrugged. Considered others
his mother might not object to. Gizealle is badly Scarred.
Shell live, but her injuries are as deep as your own.
Shes going to need time.
She might make a successful bid for power.
Eventually. Shes more likely to support her
brothers bid.
His mother sucked air through her teeth and hissed, Andrew
lives?
The whole of the Trinity lives. Andrew thrives. His
Scarring was minimal; he has already returned to his apartments.
Crispin was somehow untouched on the outside, though the physicks
say he bears internal Scarring. Anwyn also lives, though barely. Of
the survivors, his Scars are worst, though even before the disaster
he bore more marks than most.
His mother rested one twisted hand over blind eyes and groaned.
Though they might not have had support for a bid for power while
his father lived, the Trinity or, as the three cousins were
called behind their backs, the Hellspawn Trinity would
likely be able to coerce a fair amount of backing from the
Familys new, weaker configuration. Especially since those
most established in the topmost ranks of the Wolves circle
were either dead or terribly damaged.
Youll have to make your own bid now, his
mother said.
Ry had known the conversation would turn in that direction. It
had been as inevitable as sunrise, as summer rain, as death. Before
he went in to visit her, hed tried to think of any way he
could stop her before she started, but there was no way. His fate
was sealed the moment his father died and the Trinity lived; his
mother would either bind him to a course he did not want, or else
he would defy her and the Family will and end up shamed. Perhaps
even disowned.
Youre the one who wants to lead, he said
softly. Your ambition, your hearts
desire, your skill. Why not make the bid yourself?
I wasnt born Sabir.
Youve led the Family in fact, if not in name
for twenty years. You still carry the Sabir name. Most of
the Wolves will follow you. The few who dont youll drag
into line. Or disown.
She forced herself into a sitting position, and he cringed. Her
deformities became more clear and more terrible once the sheets
fell away. If I were still Unscarred, she said softly,
with my sight, with my strength, with my beauty, even then
they would not follow me. None but a Sabir-born has ever led the
Wolves. None but a Sabir-born ever will. This is the truth that I
have come to know and come to hate in all of these years and
that you, too, must accept. I am the only Wolf living who can truly
lead the Family as it needs to be led. But you are the one who must
stand before me and appear to lead. They will accept you, Ry, as
they never will me. Your place is at the head of the Wolves. Your
time is now.
He crossed his arms tightly over his chest. And what of
your insistence that I father a horde of children before I stand in
the circle?
Her face tightened. Too late for you to take a bride. I
always told you that you needed to be thinking of the future. But
no matter. You must have bastards running around all over
Calimekka. Claim the most promising of them, and bring their
mothers into the Family. If the mothers are disgraceful, well
keep them out of sight until we can dispose of them entirely; if
theyre reasonably acceptable, well make them paratas.
Either way, well legitimize the children and make them your
heirs.
He smiled, knowing that she couldnt see his face, but
knowing that she would hear the smile in his voice. I have no
bastards, mother. I have fathered no children, legitimate or
otherwise.
Anger flashed across her face like lightning; there and gone,
but threatening to return at any instant. He didnt care.
Are you sterile?
His smile grew broader. Not that I know of. Ive
simply been careful.
She knotted the covers in her hands. Her ruined face darkened
with rage rage at him, that he had let her down by failing
to plow the fertile fields of the women that had been presented
before him, and probably rage at the universe that had deprived her
in one stroke of her beauty, her strength, and her power.
Then Elen will bear children to carry on the line, and either
she or they will take your place when you can no longer hold it. We
have no time now for you to decide you want the children you
didnt want before. The place at the head of the Family is
open, but the fastest and the strongest and the smartest will fill
it. And that will be you.
With you behind me.
Yes. You dont have the experience to hold the
position on your own.
He didnt have the experience to hold it at all. And he
wasnt his father, to welcome living under his mothers
control for the rest of his life. Even if he had never met the
Galweigh woman, he would have fought being pushed to become the
true head of the Sabir Family. With her on his mind, though, the
entire thing became unthinkable.
No, he said. I cant.
I didnt ask you if you could, son. I told you that
you would. We cannot permit the Trinity to take over the Wolves,
and you at least will have my backing and the heritage of your
fathers reputation to back you up.
I cant. He sighed, and said what he really
meant. I wont. Then he told her a lie with the
merest hint of truth in it. The Galweigh Karnee sailed
northeast. Ive heard rumors that she goes to raise an army of
the Scarred to bring against the Family. I am leaving to stop
her.
His mother lay back in the bed, and all emotion erased itself
from her face. Nothing you can do is as important to the
Family as taking your fathers place.
I wasnt asking your permission, he said.
I came to visit you to tell you good-bye. Nothing
more.
She held herself still and silent, and he wondered how much that
show of self-control cost her. She never was a woman who kept her
feelings hidden. He waited, knowing that she would not let him
leave unless she had the final word; he waited, too, because even
if he could not say that he loved her, he still respected her. He
owed her the show of respect that she had earned by her position
over him, both as his mother and as the longtime leader of the
Wolves. He waited, and she let him wait.
At last, however, she said, You are decided that you will
leave?
I am.
And you are taking your friends with you, no
doubt.
He lied to her again, in spite of his respect, in spite of the
honor she deserved, in spite of his yearning to keep his integrity.
One lie made the next easier. My friends were killed in the
battle at Galweigh House. I travel alone.
No emotion on her hard face. They died in the service of
the Family. Their own families will gain the honor they won. As for
you . . .
More silence.
Ry stood, feeling the tension in his shoulders. Hed done
the best he could for his lieutenants; all of them had insisted on
going with him in pursuit of his obsession. They would not share
his shame, nor would their families suffer his mothers
vengeance. But if she could vent her fury only on him for his
disobedience and disloyalty, she would punish him all the
harder.
She coughed. Cleared her throat. As for you, if you leave,
do not come back. The Sabirs will beat off any pitiful army of the
Scarred that girl raises without assistance from you. If you leave,
you will become barzanne, and all hands of this Family and
the allies of this Family will be turned against you. Your name
will be removed from the Register of Births and you will cease to
exist as a Sabir. Further, I will curse you, and will carry my
curse to circle, and the curse we will bring to bear on you will be
that of walking death we will crush your spirit and steal
your life, but your corpse will never rest. This, my son, I swear
if you will not stay and take the place of honor you deserve
within this Family, you will cease to exist.
Worse than he had feared. Worse than he had imagined. To be made
barzanne was to be declared not human. He had thought she
might disown him; he had been prepared to some degree for that. But
to realize that she would take from him his right to existence
within any part of Ibera that she would, in effect, declare
him a target for every assassin and bounty hunter and unscrupulous
profiteer because he would not bow to her will, stunned him.
He tried to imagine being marked. Being hunted. Or fleeing outside
the realm of Ibera, never to return.
To his knowledge, no mother in Iberas history had ever
declared her son barzanne. Such a declaration was
irrevocable. Once it was approved and made public, he would be
walking dead for as long as he eluded capture then dead.
Then, if Imogene succeeded in the final part of her oath, dead
walking.
He closed his eyes and the girl he sought came within his reach
once more. He could taste salt spray on his lips and smell sea air.
He could feel the warmth of late-day sunshine on his upturned face
and the roll of a deck beneath his feet. If he listened, he could
hear the rich timbre of her voice, though he could not make out the
words she said. She moved farther from him with every breath he
took, and his body burned for her. His mind burned for her.
But . . . barzanne.
He had thought himself brave. He had thought himself
unstoppable.
I was wrong, he realized.
Ill stay, he told Imogene. Ill do
what you want me to do.
A ship lay in harbor, his friends already waiting on it,
supplies laid in. It would not sail, or if it sailed, it would do
so without him.
Chapter 20
The captains cabin small but private,
elegantly appointed, furnished in rare and exotic woods inlaid with
bone and semiprecious stones, draped in sheerest silks. Gold
gleamed from odd corners: a small cat idol with jeweled eyes that
perched in a nook of the writing desk; a medallion on an interwoven
chain of heavy links that hung from an ebony hook; three signet
rings in a partially open jewel case. Casual signs of wealth and
success, more obvious but less telling than the row of books neatly
shelved above the bunk: a well-bound edition of Two Hundred
Tales of Kaline sitting next to the translated Philosophies
and Meditations by Oorpatal, and beside that, lives of
Braliere, Minon Draclas, Hahlen, and Shotokar.
Kait took the room in with a practiced eye, and came to some
conclusions that would have discomfited the captain, had he known
of them. She decided that he was of high, possibly Familied, birth;
that he was well educated but rebellious, perhaps an enemy of the
privileged world that was his birthright, that he was vain and
ambitious, that he indulged in piracy when more honest work failed
to come his way.
I cant permit my shipwright to be distressed,
the captain was saying. He paced the short path in front of the
chair in which hed bade her seat herself, his hands tucked
behind his back, fingers interlinked, head down. Hes
vital to us on a long voyage. When were out to sea, we have
to be able to make our own repairs on the ship and its
fittings, on the crews belongings . . . He
shrugged. Occasionally we need to fabricate some new thing
for a special situation. In any case, I cant afford to have
Hasmal threatened or distressed in any way. Im not sure what
your previous relationship was
Kait held up a hand. A moment, Captain.
He paused in his pacing and looked at her.
I cannot even claim to have properly met Hasmal. I know
about him only these things: that he dealt in rare and ancient
artifacts, that he was at a party I also attended, and that he was
helpful to me and my cousin at that party. I never saw him before
that night. I never saw him after, until today. I wanted only to
thank him again for his assistance my cousin became very
drunk and behaved badly, and he helped me get her out of the
building without drawing attention to her condition. Not the
whole truth, but surely close enough.
The captain slid his hands into his pockets and leaned against
his locker. Then why did he faint when you spoke to him? I
was under the impression that you had attempted to coerce him into
marriage. Perhaps that you had threatened to claim assault on your
maiden virtue unless he capitulated.
Kaits shocked laughter erupted without warning. My
maiden virtue? Dear Captain, any assault on that was
years in the past and is best left buried there. She took a
few deep breaths, giggled, shook her head disbelievingly. My
maiden virtue, if were going to be so . . . polite,
was disposed of in a wholly voluntary and mutually agreeable manner
and has not troubled me since. Nor have I ever felt the need to
bother the disposer of it with threats; I am not yet ready to give
up my autonomy to marriage and its rule by committee. My freedom
was too hard-won. The last of her amusement died away,
replaced by puzzlement. As for why Hasmal fainted
. . . She turned one hand palm up and shrugged
slightly. You know at least as much as I do.
They studied each other, looking for cues.
His reaction worried me, the captain said.
Worries me.
Of course. It shocked me. But I dont know what
caused it.
Your appearance caused it.
Kait sighed. Unless he succumbed to poison at that exact
instant which seems unlikely Im inclined to
agree with you. But I truly dont know why.
Draclas frowned suddenly. That . . . the
manuscript you mentioned . . . you say he was a dealer in
antiquities?
So he told me at the party.
You didnt by chance . . . buy it
from him, did you?
No.
A dealer in antiquities . . . His frown
deepened. He demonstrated his smithing to me before I took
him on. His skills were excellent. But he claimed previous
experience aboard ship. I had no reason to doubt him
. . . He stared down at his feet, speaking more to
himself than to her. When he looked up again, it was to ask her,
Where did you meet him?
Kait considered her answer for a moment. She didnt want to
be too open about her past her presence in Halles, if
Draclas kept current on events, could help him pinpoint who she
really was. But lies were hard to control, and lying about where
she met Hasmal seemed risky, especially since she didnt know
why hed reacted the way he did when he saw her. In
Halles, she said.
Halles? Thats nowhere near the coast.
Thats where I met him. He told me he worked with his
father acquiring and selling antiquities. Thats all I knew
about him, except that both he and his father were named
Hasmal.
Draclas settled onto the edge of his bunk and gave her a hard
look. Halles. Why did you pause so long before telling me
that?
Im not sure how much I want you to know about me. I
was trying to decide if letting you know I was in Halles would tell
you too much. I decided that it didnt.
He snorted. That sounds honest enough, anyway.
It is.
Were going to have a hard time being friends, you
and I, if you dont trust me.
Kait arched an eyebrow. If I dont trust
you? Captain, I suspect you have many more secrets than I
do. She glanced around the room, letting her gaze settle on
the various treasures casually displayed. I think that for
now, at least, you and I would do well to keep our own confidences;
I dont think youll be any more eager to tell me your
deepest secrets than Ill be to tell you mine.
She smiled when she said that, and he responded with a smile,
but she didnt miss the wariness that crept into his eyes.
Certain shed hit her mark, she rose. If were
finished here . . . ?
He rose, too. Id like to be your friend, Kait. You
seem like you could use a friend.
Perhaps I can. But not just yet. Well be
. . . associates . . . She tested the
weight of the word, and decided it suited her needs. Yes.
Associates. For a time, at least. We share common goals, and
possibly a common outlook. Friends, though . . .
well see. Friendship takes time.
He opened the door of his cabin for her, and she stepped out on
deck. She walked to her own cabin, the pressure of his stare
tickling along the back of her neck until she let herself into the
room and closed and locked her door.
* * *
Hasmal crouched in his room, glaring at the Speaker who had come
to his summons. Shes here. Here. You knew this
would happen. You lied to me.
From within her wall of blue flames, the Speaker chuckled.
My sister answered your call, and she told you only
the truth.
She told me that I could escape my doom.
No. She told you that you could try.
If I had stayed at home, I would have been safe. Instead,
because of what she told me, I traveled half the length of Ibera
and ended up trapped on a ship with the woman I tried so hard to
avoid.
If you had done nothing you would have been safe. But your
safety is irrelevant to the larger scheme. While you have been
trying to hide from your destiny, and unintentionally wrapping
yourself deeper in it, whole worlds have stepped into the fray that
is building.
Hasmal clenched his hands into tight fists, but forced himself
to breathe slowly and to let his anger drain away. Why did
your sister mislead me? Why did she lead me to believe I needed to
flee?
Because you have something to do, Hasmal rann Dorchan,
that will change your world, and affect ours, and perhaps even
others more deeply embedded within the Veil. If you escape your
fate, these worlds will be the worse for it. You matter, mortal, in
a way that few ever matter and while no one and no thing can
force your actions along the right path, my sister could, and did,
steer you in a direction that seemed most beneficial to us at the
time.
What am I expected to do?
That isnt the question. Your path is never cast in
iron, your future never certain. The question is, What
may you do? And even that I cannot tell you, not because
I wish to taunt you, but because I do not know. I only see the
branching paths that mortal lives can take, and the ways they flow
together and apart. I can see that you and Kait Galweigh, the woman
you fear, have a powerful future if you are together, and that the
two of you may do great good, or great evil, but that you will
succeed at nothing if you are apart.
But shell doom me and all I love.
Your association with her leads to doom, and pain, and
grief. Perhaps to great victory . . . and perhaps to your
death. But all men die, Hasmal, the spirit said. Few
ever live.
He sat in silence, watching the spirit disappear back into the
Veil from which he had summoned her, watching as the last traces of
cold flame burning on the surface of the mirror flickered out.
The coldness inside of him spread from his core from
heart and gut and spirit out to his fingers and toes. His
flesh prickled, and he shivered, though the air in his room was
stuffy and hot. She had quoted Vincalis at him, in what he was sure
was an intentional paraphrase. The original speech had been:
All men die, Antram. All men age and wither and creep at last
into their dark graves, and from thence into the flames of Hell or
cold oblivion, as their theology dictates. But to only a few men do
the gods give a task, a burden, a road to greatness that can, if
they take it, raise them above the thick clouds of complacency that
blind most eyes and plug most ears. To only a few men do the gods
give true pain, which removes the bloated cushion of softness and
brings sharp awareness of the preciousness of life; which raises up
heroes and strips cowards naked before the world. You, Antram, will
do great things. You will see, you will feel, you will breathe and
touch and revel in each moment you are given. And you will suffer
great pain. And someday, whether soon or late, you will
die.
But all men die, Antram. Few ever live.
* * *
In Calimekka, in the center of Sabir House, in a silent room
that opened onto a balcony that hung above a jasmine-scented
garden, Ry Sabir paced. The room lay in darkness not even a
single candle burned but that mattered little to him; he saw
very well in light so low that normal men would have been blind.
Back and forth along the tall bank of glass-paned doors he stalked,
oblivious to the sweet scent of the night air, oblivious to the
gentle breeze that set the gauzy drapes billowing.
He was lost in the prison of his own mind, held to the pillory
of the words he had said and the words he had left unsaid. And he
could not find peace.
Wait for me, hed told Yanth. I must
attend my mother, to at least try to make her understand. But
whether she gives me her blessing or not well sail
tonight.
And to Trev, who ever feared for his sisters, I promise
you that your sisters will in no way be dishonored by what we go to
do. I wont let that happen.
To the captain of the Sabir-owned ship, Ill pay you
double your yearly wage, and a gift on top of that, if youll
take me and my lieutenants wherever we need to go, and get us there
safely, and not ask questions. This is Family business, and
dangerous; you have my word as Sabir that you will have the honor
of the entire Family for the service you do us.
And to his mother, My friends were killed in the battle at
Galweigh House. I travel alone.
And again to his mother, Ill stay. Ill do what
you want me to do.
Betrayal, the breaking of his word, the destruction of his honor
upon a half-dozen rocky shores no matter which way he
turned, he would be lying to someone. Trev and Valard and Karyl and
Jaim and Yanth had become, by his utterance, dead men, unable to
return to their city or their homes under their own names; his
mother would honor her word to treat their families well only if
they were never seen again. When hed faced an unknown
journey, when hed been sure he had the strength to defy her,
his lie had seemed the only way that he could keep his promise to
them not to drag their families into dishonor. He had intended to
come back in glory, so that all would be forgiven.
And the captain who waited for his arrival at that moment,
certain that his future was assured because he served a Sabir who
had vowed no less . . . what of him? Ry had promised him
the honor of the Sabirs, and if the man were to tell any of the
other Sabirs what he had been waiting for, they would undoubtedly
treat him as the accomplice of a traitor.
Only wild success in a journey that goes I know not where, and
serves I know not what purpose, can give that man all I promised
him, Ry realized. I intended to find a way to make good on the
promise. But now?
What of his own cowardice in the face of a threat he thought his
mother would never make? Cowardice . . . he could call it
nothing but that. She had held barzanne over his head, and
he had capitulated; he could have taken his honor with him into
exile, but instead he had given her his word that he would stay and
uphold his duty as she defined it. His word. What worth did that
have? What value would it ever have again?
A pity he wasnt dead. No one maintained expectations of
the dead, or held them to their word; they became exempt from every
promise theyd ever made.
A pity he wasnt dead.
Such a pity.
He stopped pacing and moved to the balcony. Out in the
courtyard, in the beautiful night, only animals moved. He could
smell them in the breeze: the mingled scents of cat and dog and
peacock; the faintest hints of mouse and sparrow and owl; the musky
perfume of the two fawns who would grace the courtyard until they
became too large and unruly to live there, and who would then grace
a banquet while replacements brought in from the wilds became the
new living ornaments. Leaves rustled, and the cat caught a mouse,
and Ry listened to the frantic squeaking, quickly silenced, and
smiled slowly.
Better he were dead. Even better were he murdered and his body
never found. Best of all if evidence existed that his death had
come at the hands of the Hellspawn Trinity, for such evidence would
turn Family sentiment against the trios bid for power harder
and faster than anything else could. Murder had always been a way
to forward ones cause in the Family, but to be sloppy enough
about it to get caught at it no. The removal of ones
obstacles, if one wished to maintain respect, had to be
accomplished with finesse. A certain grace. An air of
. . . mystery.
He could vanish, Ry realized. He could forward his mothers
cause by doing so, or at least become an embarrassment to her
enemies. He could find the woman he sought, and perhaps find the
thing that she sought at the same time.
You can do all of those things. But only if you act quickly.
Your opportunity will be lost if you wait until morning.
That pressure in his skull was back, and with it the mental
itch. He stiffened. The strangers voice had returned to his
mind. This time it was only one voice, but he did not welcome one
outsider into the privacy of his thoughts any more than he welcomed
the babble that had erupted when he first woke after the Sabir
Familys disastrous attempt to take Galweigh House. He was a
Wolf, and no Wolf would tolerate such an intrusion. He began to
spin the magic that would force the intruder out, but as he did,
the stranger stopped him with a soft phrase. Careful, little
brother. Youre clever, but you havent seen what
Ive seen.
Ry froze. Identify yourself, he whispered.
How many dead older brothers do you have?
I suppose that depends on how many mistresses Father had
that Mother never found out about, and how careless their bastards
were.
Half a dozen that I know of. But I didnt say half
brothers.
Youre Cadell? He didnt believe it. He
couldnt. That babble of voices in his mind when he first woke
up after the debacle at Galweigh House had been in some language
hed never heard. This voice spoke clear, unaccented Iberan.
And what would his dead brother be doing inside his thoughts?
It would take too long to explain, and we dont have
much time.
We have enough time for you to prove who you
are.
We do. I am or was Karnee, like you. We shared
both a room and a bed until my death. When I left that last day, I
had the feeling I might not be coming back, and I left my
medallion, which you even now wear around your neck, for Mother to
give you. And when you were four, I carried you across Red Bridge
on my shoulders every time we had to cross it because you believed
a man with purple eyes lived underneath it, and every time we got
near it you insisted he was staring at you.
Ry remembered. Tears started in his eyes, and he closed them.
Ive missed you.
And I, you. But if you dont hurry, youre going to
lose Kait. And you dont dare lose her. This is important,
little brother. More important than anything youve ever done,
and maybe more important than anything youll ever do
again.
Ry was puzzled. Who is Kait?
Kait Galweigh. A picture formed in Rys mind: the
compelling creature hed first met in the back alley in
Halles, whom he had viewed standing atop the tower there watching
the executions.
Fine. You know her name. Tell me, why is it so important
to you that I find her?
Because she knows where to find the Mirror of Souls. And
shes set sail to get it. Ill tell you why the Mirror is
so important later. For now, suffice it to say that it must not end
up with any Family but the Sabirs.
Ive heard a legend about it.
Not important. Just go. Trust me, little brother. You have no
spare time. Do what you have to do to get away from here. And we
can discuss the importance of all of this when you are at sea.
Agreed?
Agreed.
Ry turned his attention to the staging of his own death.
Carefully and quietly, he rearranged the furniture, overturning a
chair, breaking one of its legs, pulling the covers off the narrow
bed and dragging them partway to the door. He took out pen, ink,
paper, and blotter from the desk that sat against the north wall
and wrote the beginning of a note:
Esteemed Uncle Grasmir,
I have accepted the burden of my Family responsibility; after
discussing the matter with Mother, I feel as she does that my bid
to lead the Wolves will be most beneficial to meeting the
Familys needs and goals. Though I do not seek this position
gladly, for I have neither wife nor child and will be barred from
such once I begin to walk the circle, I feel I am the most likely
candidate to prevent Crispin, Anwyn, and Andrew from taking
over.
With that goal in mind, may I ask for your support, as
paraglese as well as beloved family member? Ill need
your
He let the letter stop in midsentence, blew on it to dry the
ink, and dropped it down between the wall and the desk, making sure
that an edge with handwriting on it showed clearly. Whoever
discovered the blood and the disarray of the room would bring in
the Family, and Grasmir would insist upon an investigation. The
letter would point blame or at least suspicion in the direction Ry
desired, while the signs he left behind would make everyone sure
hed been murdered.
He drew his knife, dipped the blade in the wine bottle hed
been drinking from for everyone knew that a blade soaked in
spirits prevented the spirits of sickness from entering the body
and sliced into his arm. The pain woke the Karnee madness in
him, and he growled as he let his blood pour onto the floor. He
smeared it on his hands and grabbed the blankets, then left trails
on the floor as if hed been dragged by his feet. He soaked
the broken leg of the chair in his blood, getting most of it on the
very end of the leg. Then he pulled out a few strands of his hair
and soaked them in blood and caught them in the splinters. He
thought that would give anyone enough to go on.
He let himself skirt the edge of Shift. He didnt
need it yet, not in the way he would in another half month, but
he was in enough pain that the changes came readily. He felt the
fire flow into the wound and sighed. It healed itself as he
crouched there, waiting. Then he pushed himself further and deeper
into the Shift, letting the hunger build. He stripped off his
clothes as quickly as he could and bundled them tightly together.
With them he bundled his letter of credit (worthless if he were
barzanne, equally worthless if he were dead; but he and the
ship would be well away from Calimekka before the news of his death
had a chance to affect credit), his rings, his purse, and his
dagger and sword. In the little time he had, he made the bundle as
tight and neat as he could.
Once he was fully Shifted, he leaped out onto the balcony and
climbed up the wall, digging claws into the spaces between stones,
hanging on to the bundle with his teeth. When he reached the top,
he ran along the roof tiles, compromising between speed and stealth
to get himself to the north end of the House. There, the wall lay
less than a mans height from the roof, and the jump down,
though not easy, would be more easily accomplished than elsewhere,
and with less chance of his being seen by the guards or
servants.
Once he was safely outside the wall, he found a dark, deserted
alley, and there he relaxed and calmed himself until he was able to
welcome back his human form. He dressed, strapped on his weapons,
and stepped out into the street again.
A worried Yanth met him on deck. I thought youd been
killed on your way here, or that something had kept you from
coming.
Ry hugged his friend and sighed. More truth to all of that
than youd believe. He watched the sailors raising sails
while the captain stood at the helm. Both tide and a light breeze
favored their departure, but wouldnt for much longer
if hed taken any longer to figure out what he had to do, his
delay might have cost them half a day, and that half-day might have
cost them everything. But Im away, and were free
to carry out our voyage.
She understood? Im surprised.
She didnt understand. But there are other ways of
reaching an objective. I chose one of them. The dock log
didnt list this voyage in my name, did it?
The captain did what you told him registered out in
the name of C. Pethelley, Merchant, cargo of fruit and equipment
for the colonies.
That was a relief. Sometimes people forgot details when it came
time to act, but Ry had chosen the captain as much for his
reputation for intelligence under pressure as for his equally solid
reputation for discretion. Then we sail away happily and find
Kait.
Thats her name?
Kait Galweigh.
Yanth grinned. Makes her a little less magical, an
ordinary name like that.
Not to me.
I suppose not. He shrugged, and his smile was
unapologetic. So where is your Kait going?
East by northeast right now. We follow.
Yanth chuckled. East by northeast. Thats vague
enough to point us at the tip of one continent and the whole of a
second . . . and the second almost entirely unexplored.
Plus all of an ocean, and not a friendly ocean, either. I hope your
nose is working well, or well have a long search ahead of
us.
Which will give us enough time for me to teach you those
few tricks of mine you wanted to learn, and for you to teach me
that dagger move of yours that disarms the opponent; Ive long
envied that move.
Yanths face was a study of conflicting emotions. You
want to start that tonight?
Ry was tired enough that he thought he would be able to sleep
through the night and all of the next day as well, and already
ravenous from his brief Shift. Not tonight. Tonight
well sleep. Tomorrow, or maybe the day after, will be soon
enough to be industrious.
* * *
Dùghall frowned over the oracle cast on the table. Had it
been any less clear, he would have been tempted to use his own
blood to summon a spirit to confirm its message. He could find no
room for doubt, though, in the pattern made by the silver coins
spread across the embroidered silk zanda. In the quadrant of
House, the terse message of two coins: Flee and Betrayal
by trusted associates. In the quadrant of Life, the equally
terse Present danger. The quadrants of Spirit and Pleasure
lay empty, while the quadrant of Duty held the complex message
Home overlapped partially by Seek new allies and
conjuncted with Keep your own counsel and The gods
intervene. Wealth, Health, Goals, Dreams, Past, Present, and
Future all lay empty, and he could not remember having seen such a
strange throw in his entire life. The coins that should have landed
within the empty quadrants had, to a one, rolled on their edges to
fall outside the embroidered periphery of the zanda, where
they gleamed on the black silk, haunting him with their silence.
The gods intervene, indeed.
Hed planned to stay on in Galweigh House, to assist with
the Familys business until the survivors of the massacre
pulled themselves together and put the House back in order. But as
he stared at the zanda, he realized that would not serve. He
would have to pack a small bag, leave without explanation, and put
as much distance as he could between himself and the rest of the
Family. And he would have to do it immediately.
Betrayal by trusted associates. That distressed him.
Which associates? His personal staff, who had come with him to
Calimekka? His aide, who had served at his side for most of his
life? The Family members whose lives he had saved when he routed
the Sabirs? The pilot? Who would betray him? And why?
Certainly not all of those in the House with him were traitors
he knew there were those among the survivors who would help
him, who would do what needed to be done with him. But what he
could not know was who they were, or who they were not. And the
message on the zanda told him he was not to try to sort them
out. He would leave silently, immediately, as if he had been
spirited away, and both the guilty and the innocent would remain
behind to wonder what had become of him.
He fixed the placement of the coins on the cloth in his mind,
then brought his arms up in front of him and pressed his palms
together and pressed the heels of his hands to his forehead. With
eyes closed, he released the energy hed drawn around himself
to cloak his activities, murmured his words of thanks to Vodor
Imrish, patron god of Falcons, and added the subtle plea that this
newest demand for his services would spare the lives and honor of
any loyal members of his staff who were left behind.
Then he gathered up such of his belongings as he could carry in
a small pack on his back, spun around himself a guise that said,
I am only someone beneath your notice, and someone you expect to
be here, and he stepped out into the hallway.
He would flee, he would seek new allies, he would keep his own
counsel, and, for the time being at least, he would head home to
Jeslan, in the Imumbarra Isles, alone and without questioning the
orders that had sent him there. He had known from the day that his
mother initiated him into the Falcons that the gods had a special
mission for him. He had waited all his life to find out what it
was, and he had begun to believe that the early oracles had been
wrong, and that he would be only another Keeper of the Secret
Texts, and that in itself had been special. Hed tried to
convince himself that it had been all.
Now . . .
Now . . .
His gut told him that his moment was coming. That the world had
changed, and that now he was being called upon to be a sword for
the gods. He had been hardened by tragedy, tempered in blood; fat
and old and slow though he had become, he finally had within him
the clear-burning, ruthless flame that he needed to be wielded by
an eternal hand. Vincalis would have been satisfied with his
qualifications.
In his heart and in his soul, he could hear the bell-clear
ringing of metal on metal. He had been unsheathed.
He wondered who the true enemy could be.
Chapter 21
Snow-blind, half-starved, freezing, and sick, Danya
Galweigh pushed herself to take one more step across the unending
tundra. And one more after that. And one more after that. She
drifted in and out of awareness; when she was awake, she could
recognize the voice that urged her on as the voice of her guardian
spirit, assuring her that salvation lay just over the next rise.
The voice metamorphosed into dreadful things when she became
confused: It became Crispin Sabir coming to torture her again, and
it became the chanting Sabir Wolves in the center of a huge circle;
it became the voices of all of those she had seen suffer but had
not helped; it became her dead grandmother, and a favorite cousin
who had died in childhood.
She rose out of the mists in her mind one more time, and into
the temporary clarity, and the voice said, Almost to shelter,
Danya. Almost to friends, who will help you take care of yourself
and the baby. Just a little farther. Just a tiny bit
farther.
She said, Baby?
Yes. The baby. You knew, didnt you? She remembered
the torture. The rape. The brutal laughter, the cruel stinking
faces shoved close to hers, grinning while they hurt her,
delighting in her humiliation.
Baby?
There could be, would be, no baby from that horrid union. The
gods could not be that cruel.
But now that the voice had told her, she could feel, through her
magic, the truth of what he said. The vomiting, the weakness, the
dizziness, the wrongness, were not just symptoms of the
Scarring, nor were they entirely signs of her nearness to
starvation; a new life grew inside of her. She reached into herself
with what little magic she could summon, and felt that life. Small
and weak as the flame of a single candle in a drafty room, it
pulsed inside of her.
She wanted to hate it, the way she hated whichever of the three
monsters had been its father. She wanted to hate it, she wanted to
find a way to be able to kill it, yet when she touched it with her
mind, something pure and genuinely good reached back and touched
her. She pulled away from the first tentative touch of the stranger
inside her and stood in the snow, staring down at her feet,
sickened. How could anything good come of so much evil? She
didnt want to know, and she didnt want the child. But
that tendril of goodness and not a little of her own
momentary weakness stopped her from twisting the growing
infant away from its delicate link to her and purging her body of
it.
She sensed satisfaction from the one who watched over her.
You have done well, dear child. And you will continue to do well.
Only hurry, now, and Ill get you to safety.
She hurried, for what little good it did her. The promised safe
haven did not lie only a few more steps ahead of her. She walked
for another half-day before she finally toppled into a hole in the
snow and found herself face to face with a Scarred family. The
family drew weapons, but she, surrounded by unexpected and
marvelous warmth, by the rich scents of cooking meat, and by relief
that someplace existed away from the endless awful cold and hellish
snow, fainted.
She had no way of knowing how much time had passed when she
finally woke, but she found herself still in the warmth, lying in
the flickering light near a small open fire. The creature that
crouched across the fire from her held a long, bone-tipped spear in
one hand. He stared into the flames, narrowed eyes almost hidden in
the deep fur that covered his face. His flat, glossy gray nose and
the narrow slash of his thin lips were the only other breaks in
that thick white pelt. His ears, if he had them, were so small they
were hidden within the thicker ruff of gray-white fur that circled
his face. Danya thought him odd-looking, but his appearance was not
unpleasant. When he saw Danya looking at him, he waved the spear at
her in a warning fashion and said something unintelligible. What he
said didnt sound as if he had hostile intentions, though. His
voice held kindness, and reason. And only the gentlest of
warnings.
She imagined him saying, Dont do anything stupid. I
want to help you, but I cant if you attack me.
Close enough, the voice in her head whispered. Given
time, I can make sure you can talk to them. For now, eat the food
hes made for you.
She sat up slowly and held out her hand to show that she carried
no weapons. None other than her claws, in any case.
The creature said something else, and pointed to the large
fired-clay cook pot that hung over the little fire. Danya reached
forward slowly and took it, carefully trying to look as
unthreatening as possible.
Hed cooked some form of stew. She said, Is this for
me? She didnt understand his reply, and she
couldnt read the expression on his fur-covered face, but his
tone furthered her belief that he meant her only good.
She reached into the pot and speared a cube of meat on her claw.
She knew she didnt dare eat too much or too quickly, but
aside from the few hares and snow-pigeons shed managed to
catch and eat raw, she had not had food since her last meal, the
night before she became a sacrifice. She ate the meat cube, wishing
she could lower her muzzle straight into the pot to lap out the
contents in a few quick gulps. She didnt want to be sick,
though. So she forced herself to take dainty little bites, and to
hand the pot back to her host even before it was empty, because she
could feel uncomfortable pressure in her stomach.
The two of them sat looking at each other across the fire. She
recalled the others that shed seen in the house before, but
she could not hear them or smell them or get any sense that they
were still present.
He made his family leave. They went to one of the other homes
in the village until he could be sure that you werent
dangerous.
Danya considered that for a moment. Why didnt he just
kill me when I fell into his house? Why take any chance on me at
all?
Among his people, apparently strangers are always taken in
and made welcome. Ive seen similar things before
. . .
But Im not of his people. Im a completely
different kind of . . . of monster.
A soft chuckle in the back of her mind then. You arent
in human lands anymore, Danya. Beyond Ibera, people are usually
considered people no matter what form they take. With a few
exceptions, the humans are the only ones who refuse to recognize
that.
Danya didnt respond to that. She couldnt think of
herself as human anymore, but she had to admit that on the inside
she was the same person she had been before; at least, if she was
different, she hadnt discovered how yet.
You . . . you brought me to these people. How did
you know they were safe?
She felt rather than heard the sigh. First, now that you are
fed, and sheltered, and for the time safe, let me tell you my name
again. Ive never cared for being called
You.
Youve told me your name before?
Certainly. But it proved an exercise in pointlessness when
you were in and out of delirium. My name is Luercas. I am
. . . or rather was . . . a Wolf like you. I
was killed in a situation Id rather not discuss now, but for
some reason my body was trapped in the Veil, and I havent
been able to move forward or back. Until now. Something happened
when you were . . . ah . . . sacrificed
. . . that released me from the prison that had held me
for well, I honestly dont know how long I was trapped.
But I found myself inside of your mind, looking out of your eyes,
and I think perhaps the reason I was released was because I could
help you and no one else could. Luercas fell silent for a
moment. Danya waited.
At last he said, In my current state, I can sense things that
are at a distance. I can feel potentials and while I
couldnt be sure what we would find when we got here, I did
sense that in this direction lay safety for you, and your one
chance of survival.
Danya lay back and let her eyes drift closed. The food, the
warmth, and the hardships of the last however many days all
conspired to push her toward sleep. She did ask, Why did my
survival matter to you? I cant understand that.
Because, Luercas said, I can sense potentials. You
have something important to do. Something vital and good. Something
that is going to change your world. And I am, in some way, a part
of that. And I believe that you must achieve this goal before I am
released to pass through the Veil to whatever awaits me beyond
it.
Danya nodded. Across from her, the Scarred man ate the stew
shed left. He contorted his face, but she couldnt read
the expression. She tried to respond with a smile, but realized her
own facial muscles were no longer designed for such nuances. She
sighed again, and closed her eyes.
Im glad youre helping me, she told
Luercas.
That was her last coherent thought for a long time.
* * *
Kait sat in the ships parnissery in the darkness before
the dawning of Embastaru, the Day of Hours, and listened to the
sweet, high voice of the ships parnissa reading the old
words. She had been a month aboard the Peregrine, and the
rhythms of ship life had dulled some of the pain of her precipitous
exit from Calimekka.
The Book of Time, third of the five sacred books of
Iber, says, Number neither your days nor your hours, lest
they pass by you quickly while you count them. Instead, name them
as friends, and bid them tarry awhile, and you will know long life
and happiness. So we greet each station of the day by name,
and with reverence, acknowledging all both as friends returned to
visit and as strangers to be made welcome strangers who have
come into our midst briefly, and who will never return.
The parnissa wore the white robes traditional for the day, and
the candlelight reflecting off the robes and her pale skin and
equally pale golden hair made her look more spirit than flesh. The
ship creaked and rocked, and the sounds and rhythms soothed. Kait
was close to sleep, but she remembered her duty as one of the
Familied to uphold Iberism in all places and at all times, and so
she sat on the hard bench in the candlelit parnissery and fought to
keep her eyes open.
Morning approaches blessed morning.
The parnissa paused, and Kait and the other attendees said in
unison, We honor the Stations of Morning.
We honor Soma, the parnissa intoned.
Everyone replied, Soma, who is the bringer of first
light.
Kait let the familiar words drift over her. The service was both
womb and wound, cradling her in its ties to the past at the same
time that it hurt her with its reminder that the future could never
be as bright or warm. In the past days, shed kept to herself.
Shed burned candles for her parents and brothers and sisters,
for her aunts and uncles and cousins; shed prayed for the
success of her journey, while never quite believing that the
artifact she sought could truly exist. Shed tried her best to
give herself a measure of peace, but inner peace eluded her.
The parnissa walked along the edge of the pedestal at the front
of the parnissery, lighting candles. We honor
Stura.
Stura, the singer of morning songs, the lively
child.
We honor Duea.
Duea, fair daughter who dances the sun to
midday.
Kait recalled sitting in her parents parnissery on a dozen
occasions, repeating the same words in the same sleepy tones,
giving half-aware honor to gods neither she nor her family really
believed in, comforted by the presence of her sisters and brothers
on the bench beside her. Her father had kept them all quiet with
hard looks, her mother had bribed them with treats afterward.
The same words, the same tones, the scent of beeswax sweetened
with lavender that the candles gave off, and this year the hurt in
her heart that would not go away.
And following on the heels of morning, the parnissa
continued, the Stations of Aftering.
We honor the Stations of Aftering.
We honor Mosst.
Mosst, master of heat, creator of fire.
Thought of her Family brought their killers to mind, and chasing
the thought of Sabirs came the thoughts of one specific Sabir. Her
gut knotted, thinking of the Karnee in the alley, and suddenly she
realized she held him in her mind not because of memory or the
random drift of thoughts from one thing to the next, but because
some part of him had already been there.
Waiting. A tantalizing glimpse of a dream fragment flitted
through her mind and out again before she could catch hold of it,
but she had it long enough in mind to realize that at some point,
shed dreamed of him.
We honor Nerin.
Nerin, whose gift is long light and clear
vision.
She shivered and tried to push him from the place he held in her
thoughts; she wanted to find her way back to the service honoring
the gods of the hours. Instead, she discovered that she could reach
out and touch him with her mind.
He slept. She held so still she almost didnt breathe, and
let her eyelids drift shut.
He slept aboard a ship. He was some distance from her.
He followed her.
We honor Paldin.
Paldin, who blends the worlds of light and dark, and
illuminates the world after the sun has fled.
He followed her, in a ship filled with his men; he hunted her.
She could feel in the lightness of his sleep some of the edge of
his determination to catch her. She could feel a sense of loss in
him, though she could not fathom what he had lost. She felt his
hunger, and felt it directed at her. Even in his sleep, he came
after her.
As we honor the times of light, we honor the
darkness.
We honor the Stations of Night.
We honor Dard.
Dard, the first true darkness, who greets the White
Lady.
We honor Telt.
Telt, the middle darkness, who conjoins the White Lady and
the Red Hunter.
The White Lady, who had once been mortal, had fled the Red
Hunter in life. He had hunted her from the time she came of age and
became very beautiful until the day when, weak and weary, she ran
into a passageway between cliffs in a forest she did not know, and
discovered that the only way out was the way shed gone in.
Trapped, she prayed to Haledan, the goddess of beauty and truth,
asking that she be spared the fate the hunter planned for her.
Haledan came to her, and offered to protect her from the hunter if
she would pledge herself into Haledans service forever. The
girl agreed, and Haledan turned her into the most beautiful star in
the sky, the White Lady, and thus she escaped both the hunter and
death.
But the hunter called upon his patron god, Stolpan, the god of
craftsmen and workers, and begged not to be cheated from the hunt
when he was so close to catching his quarry. Stolpan could not undo
what Haledan had done, but he could let the hunter continue his
hunt. The hunter agreed that he would serve Stolpan forever, and in
exchange, Stolpan made him the Red Hunter, the star that was as
dark and frightening as the White Lady was bright and pure, and in
that guise, he chased her across the sky every night. He would
never catch her, but he would hunt her forever.
Realizing that her enemy, the Sabir Karnee, pursued her, and
that he somehow knew where she was, Kait felt a sudden kinship with
the White Lady. The only difference was that she didnt have
the protection of a goddess she had no guarantee that the
one who hunted her would not catch her.
We honor Huld.
Huld, singer of the last darkness, who waits to embrace
the rising of the sun.
Wait in silence, for the new day comes, and the new hour
with it. Hold Soma in your heart, and all those stations that
follow after. Be blessed, this day and every day, and rejoice in
each moment, for all are sacred, and none will come
again.
We bless you; we bless each other; we bless ourselves,
this day and every day. Desporati sajamis, tosbe do
naska.
The words of the final benediction, which in the ancient
parnissas tongue meant, In our humanity we unite, body
and spirit, signaled the end of the service. The movement of
the people on either side of her pulled Kait away from the link
shed shared with her hunter. That change, in turn, woke him.
She felt him open his eyes. She could, for just an instant, see
through them; he occupied a cabin more lush than her own, and
larger, but he shared it with others. She caught just a glimpse of
a hard-eyed man with a lean face who sat across from him on the
edge of a bunk, and another, pale-haired and almost sweet-looking,
who slept in the bunk above that man. The lean man seemed to look
into Kaits eyes. He frowned and said, Whats the
matter, Ry? You look . . . sick.
Then she felt the Sabir realize she was there, and instantly the
tie that linked them broke, and hurled her consciousness back into
her own body, into the parnissery. Most of the rest of the
worshipers had already filed out, and the parnissa stood looking at
her with a curious expression on her face. Kait rose quickly,
before the woman could come over to ask her if she had something
she wished to discuss, and followed everyone else out onto the deck
of the ship. At that moment, the sky, which along the eastern
horizon wore rich veins of deep purple and ruby red above a
widening line of pink and yellow, erupted in gold, and the sun
broke free of the sea that had hidden it.
The alto bell welcoming Soma began to ring, and all the
worshipers on deck faced east, dropped to their knees, and welcomed
the new station and the new day.
If youre finished, I need to speak with
you.
She had knelt with the others; she twisted around and looked up,
and found Hasmal standing behind her, studying her with an
expression that was a curious mix of determination and fear. He
hadnt been in the parnissery for the service; she wondered if
hed just happened upon her, or if hed sought her
out.
Still shaken by the contact with the Sabir with
Ry, as his companion had called him she rose and
shrugged. Maybe later.
Hasmal smelled afraid, but he lifted his head and stared at her.
Without doing anything that she could see, he surrounded himself
and her with the same wall of peace that had first caught her
attention at the party. In that instant, she felt Amalee protest,
then fall silent, cut off in mid-yelp. And a faint weight that had
tickled in the back of her mind, and that she only noticed by its
sudden absence, also vanished. What I have to tell you
wont wait any longer. Ive put it off much too long as
it is, and Ive . . . er, Ive been told
. . . that by doing so, I have put us into unnecessary
danger.
She didnt want to deal with him right then. Later, but not
right then. But hed managed to intrigue her. She nodded.
We can talk in my cabin, I suppose. Unless you have someplace
else . . . ?
No. Your cabin will serve.
She led. He followed.
* * *
You know where she is, then? Shaid Galweigh sat in
cool near-darkness in the Cherian House private meeting room, at
the head of a long cast-bronze table older than memory. The Wolves
of Cherian House, untouched by the disaster that had wiped out the
Galweigh House Wolves, because they had not participated in it,
lined both sides of the table.
The head of the Wolves, a plump, jovial-looking woman named
Veshre, nodded and smiled. Were certain. Weve
located her aboard a private ship currently heading east-northeast,
somewhere along the Devils Trail. We think they put in for
supplies at one of the islands about a week ago, and since then the
ship has been moving steadily again.
Have you divined her destination?
The Wolves glanced at each other. None were sure how to give the
paraglese the news they had uncovered. Veshre finally shrugged and
said, There are some complications, Shaid. Weve linked
a number of . . . She frowned, not liking the
melodramatic terms that came first to mind, but unable to frame
what she had to say in any terms less sensational. A number
of . . . well, deities, I suppose Id have to say,
to her movements. One has somehow attached itself to her, others
watch her, there is some sort of blocking force that until now has
been near her but seemingly unrelated to her, but now that seems to
have involved itself as well, and just before Soma she disappeared
entirely. That blocking force . . . it, ah, engulfed her
. . . and she has not reappeared.
Shaid rose halfway out of his seat, his face livid, but Veshre
waved him into it. Shes still aboard the ship. She had
no place else to go. That last problem is one we can work with. The
involvement of unknown deities is more problematical. She could
have acquired powerful defenders.
Deities. Shaid shook his head in disgust, leaned
back in his seat, and templed his fingers in front of him.
Deities. Why has a deity attached itself to her?
It is a lesser deity, Veshre emphasized.
They all are. None of them is recognized in the pantheon,
none of them came from anywhere vital.
They came from somewhere, didnt they? Shaid
did not enjoy the company of Wolves, a fact he usually kept to
himself. But this morning, his edges showed. Theyve
attached themselves to the woman I want dead. Their presence must
mean something.
Veshre nodded. Only one has actually attached itself to
her, she reminded him, but yes, of course they mean
something. We feel were going to be able to divine their
intentions before too long. Obviously we have to be subtle
we dont, after all, want their attention focused on us. That
could be . . . She didnt finish the sentence.
Bad was such an understatement for the possible consequences
of alerting unknown deities to the Wolves spying presence.
Disastrous, on the other hand, would make Shaid less certain
of the control she and her Wolves had of the situation, and at the
moment, the power balance in the Family was unsteady. His lack of
faith in her ability to carry out his program could be the deciding
factor in his seeking outside assistance. The Wolves were already
aware of his clandestine courtship of the Sabir Family. They needed
to walk carefully indeed to maintain control of their situation, at
least as long as Shaid was paraglese. Were dealing with
the problem, she said at last. Its unique, and
well let you know as we make progress. However, if we told
you that we could kill the girl right now, wed be lying.
Well deal with her as soon as we understand the situation
completely.
Shaid didnt look happy, but he did at last meet her eyes.
Very well. Keep me informed of what you discover, and come to
me before you kill her. I want He smiled slowly and
stopped.
Veshre didnt like the look in his eyes, or his
vultures smile, but she rose, gave him the quick, shallow bow
appropriate for one of her rank, and said, The moment I have
news, you will have it as well.
The other Wolves rose at her signal, made their obeisance, and
followed her out the door.
* * *
The Veil parted and a final brilliant sphere of pale pink light
erupted from the void. It spiraled down into the midst of a swarm
of similar spheres perhaps twenty in all. These danced
around each other within the confines of an imaginary bubble, their
subtle movements and shifting colors conveying at incredible speeds
information that, had it been in the speech of mortals, would have
translated into the following conversation:
We gather in freedom at last. Welcome, brethren of the Star
Council.
We arent all met, Dafril. One of our number has not
responded to the call.
Who is missing? Dafril touched minds with those present,
then recoiled. This fills me with unspeakable
dread. . . . What has become of Luercas? Has his
soul suffered annihilation since our release from
captivity?
Nereas answered. Weve lost him, but he is not lost.
Before you arrived, we sought him even as we sought you. You
confirmed your approach; he . . . did not. He hides
himself; those of us who sought him cannot find him, but his soul
line has not been extinguished. He has not fallen therefore
we must assume that he has . . . strayed.
Then Luercas must be the first item we address. Does he
actively oppose us, do you think?
All of us thought he stood with us. Since he expends such
effort in evading and eluding us, we must suspect he only pretended
agreement so that he could completely understand our plans and
aspirations, the better to destroy them.
Why? Why would he stand against a new golden age? Why would
he resist us?
A pause fell then in real terms, it lasted no longer than
the time a single bolt of lightning needed to flicker from one
cloud to another, no longer than half of the blink of an eye, but
in the context of those who participated in the conversation, it
seemed to drag on forever.
Finally, one of the spirits of the Star Council offered the
possibility all of them dreaded.
Perhaps he seeks to create for himself an empire on Matrin,
with himself as god-emperor. Perhaps he wants the golden age we
desire, but for himself alone instead of for everyone.
Another pause, pregnant with the distress of all those present.
General agreement followed, but became a confused babble as those
present tried to press their recommendations for dealing with
Luercas on each other. Finally, everyone calmed down enough that
Dafril could ask for suggestions again.
We should destroy him when we find him, Mellayne
suggested. We should obliterate his soul line.
Werris disagreed. We should force him through the Mirror of
Souls into a mortal body incapable of responding to him. He will be
trapped while he lives, and when he dies, he will be pushed through
the Veil. But the death of his soul will not be on our
consciences.
Vaul found even that excessive. Perhaps banishment would be
sufficient.
Others offered other suggestions, all of them contradictory,
varying in severity and duration. Some only wanted to find the
missing Luercas in order to try to bring him to reason through
discussion; others wanted his soul destroyed without any question
or trial his absence, they thought, was condemnation enough
of his motives. None could think that his absence from this first
meeting of the Star Council in over a thousand years was
irrelevant. All wanted to take action immediately, but none could
agree on the action to take. The babble rose again, and threatened
to break into heated argument, and Dafril could tell that her
colleagues would accomplish nothing further on the issue right
then. Their hypothetical determination of punishment for Luercas
remained pointless until they found him, in any case. So she
changed the subject.
Have all of us chosen suitable avatars among the
mortals?
Everyone had.
Excellent. Dafril shared a feeling of delight with her
colleagues. My avatar is on her way to rescue the Mirror of
Souls from its resting place. Events worked into my hands very
nicely she didnt require much pushing at all to
undertake the journey.
Sartrig said, Mine follows her, in case she cannot complete
the mission. He would follow her whether I prodded him or not
he is under other compulsions besides mine. But these
compulsions, which come from within, are to my benefit. They allow
me to remain in the background, where most of the time he is not
aware of my presence. Just as well he could banish me from
his mind if he chose to do so; his magical training has progressed
already to that point.
Other reports followed in quick order: a paraglese encouraged to
pursue a path away from the interests of his Family and toward the
broader interests of the Star Council; a princess of the Gyru-nalle
royal line of Feelasto led to speak of making an alliance with the
Families of Ibera; a Dalkan pirate-king just beginning to think of
suing for peace with the Iberan Families.
With such encouraging reports to buoy them, the Star Councillors
separated to return to their avatars, agreeing before they parted
to watch for Luercas and to think until they met again on what
should be done about him.
Chapter 22
Hasmal refused the chair Kait offered him; instead, he
sat on the floor of her cabin and insisted that she sit across from
him. When they were settled, he added to the shield hed cast
around the two of them. He spun through it the dont
notice us spell he had prepared so carefully in advance. Kait
watched his finger tracing through the powder he scattered on her
floor and said nothing. More interestingly, her face gave away
nothing that she was thinking. He almost smiled then her
years of training in diplomacy might serve him almost as well in
what he needed to do as if she had been brought up from childhood
to be a Falcon.
When the shields were strengthened and he was sure the
activities in the room would not draw any attention from anyone on
the ship, he brushed his powders into a neat pile, scooped them
into one hand, and scattered some on himself and some on her.
Her expression still didnt change, but when hed
finished, she did ask in an even, polite tone, Religious
ritual?
He shook his head, and now he did smile. No. Something
that would get both of us condemned to death anywhere in Ibera, and
probably here as well, for all of Captain Draclass liberalism
in other areas. The completion of a magical spell.
He did see a flicker of expression cross her face then, but it
never touched on fear. Instead, in the brief instant before calm
neutrality removed that tiny spark of visible emotion from her
eyes, he thought he saw resignation.
And he thought, Resignation? What a bizarre response.
It seems that I am born to be a heretic, she said,
and gave him a sad smile that he did not understand. No
matter how pure my motives or how dire my need or how great my love
of Family, every road I travel takes me further from the True
Path.
I dont understand.
Now one of her eyebrows arched and the start of a smile quirked
at one corner of her mouth. You dont understand that if
this wall of peace you build is built with magic, and if I desire
to learn how to build it as well, that doing so will make me a
heretic? Please. How long did you live in Ibera? And how did you
keep from being drawn and quartered in the public square?
He shook his head. Shed missed his question. I
understand that what I do is . . . heretical. In Ibera,
in most places in the world, to most people. I know that. What I
dont understand is why you act as if this is only the latest
heresy for you.
Ahhh. My heresy. She glanced around her cabin
and shrugged. The walls listen, Hasmal, and the keyholes
watch, and I would be doubly damned if my secrets got out. Even
here.
The spell I cast around us protects us. No one will notice
you; no one will listen. You and I are alone.
That eyebrow flickered upward again. Then she smiled and
shrugged, and said, Are you a brave man, Hasmal?
No. He didnt even have to consider the
question. I am the basest of base cowards.
Her smile grew broad, and hinted at merriment. She leaned
forward and rested a slender, long-fingered hand over his, and
said, You are honest, and I cant remember the last time
I met an honest man. Were all cowards, I think. Those who
would deny that are simply liars into the bargain. Her hand
squeezed his. Ill show you my heresy, and that way
well be even. Youve given me the power to have you
hanged aboard this ship, if I ever wanted to betray you; now
Ill return the favor, so that youll be able to sleep at
night.
And then she added, with a final, gentle squeeze, I
wont hurt you. I promise.
While he still wondered what in the world that enigmatic
statement could mean, a surge of dark, wild magic erupted from her
and her body began to twist. Her smile became a feral beast-grin as
her mouth and nose and jaw stretched forward and tapered into the
lean, muscular muzzle of a killing machine. Her eyes, their rich
brown unchanged, moved back in her skull and apart; her forehead
angled backward, growing deeper as it flattened. Ears stretched
upward, pointing and belling into wolfish erectness, though that
was the only part of her face that made him think of a wolf. Her
body altered, too, so that she went from being two-legged to
four-legged, and the breeches and tunic that had fit her so
fetchingly in human form hung weirdly on her in this other shape,
stretched almost to bursting across the rib cage and haunches,
hanging slack at waist and wrists and ankles.
We all have our secrets, you see, she said, and she
still spoke in the cultured accents of a woman of Calimekkan
Family. Her voice, though, was the voice of a creature of
nightmare, one that stalked through the endless forests of
sleep.
Sweat broke out on Hasmals forehead and his upper lip, and
when he said, So I see, his voice broke on the word
see, squeaking as it had when he was fourteen and not
since.
Her reversion to human form took longer, though the process he
thought of as melting began the instant she spoke.
When at last she sat before him as a human again, he said,
What are you?
She closed her eyes and sighed. I was born under a curse.
We are called Karnee, my kind . . . though I have met
only one other Karnee in my entire life, and he pursues me even
now. She shrugged. Im a monster. A heretic. An
evil beast that most times masquerades as a woman. If my parents
hadnt hidden me and taken another baby in my stead before the
parnissas on Gaerwanday, the Day of Infants, I would have been
slaughtered in an offering to the Iberan gods. As it is, my
survival was a threat to them every day that they lived. Had anyone
ever discovered what I was, not only I but every member of my
immediate family and most if not all of the household
staff would have been killed in one of the public squares of
Calimekka. My existence threatened the lives of every person I ever
loved, and I didnt even have the courage to destroy myself so
that I could know that they would be safe.
Her smile was bitter. Were all cowards in one way or
another. She shrugged it off. Now that you and I have
traded our awful secrets, tell me why you suddenly needed to talk
to me, when youve been avoiding me since I came on
board.
Im to teach you. Im supposed to
. . . to initiate you. Into the Falcons. Make you a
Warden.
Initiate me? Youre supposed to? Kait looked
intrigued by that news. Who told you that?
I consulted spirits. He felt his face flushing as
her eyebrow twitched upward in almost-concealed disbelief. I
did. Its part of the magic that I must teach you. I have to
introduce you to the Secret Texts, and train you to Ward, and
She held up a hand. The Secret Texts of
Vincalis?
His jaw dropped, and for a moment he could find no words.
Youve read the Secret Texts? he asked her at
last.
My uncle told me hed give me a copy when we got back
to the House. After the wedding. He couldnt, because he and
my cousin and the pilot were killed when we landed, and I escaped.
He was going to teach me that wall trick you do, too
. . .
She quickly described the events of that day, finishing with her
escape from her uncles House.
That explained much. Theyre still coming after
you, Hasmal said softly.
Coming after me? I know.
Perhaps that shouldnt have caught him off guard, but it
did. You knew your uncle and the Wolves of his House were
after you? Im surprised. You were marked by Wolf magic, but
it was very subtle. I blocked their marker with a spell of my
own.
At that, she did look surprised. She shook her head.
No. The Sabirs are following me. Not my Family.
The Sabirs? No. I found no sign of that.
They stared at each other, confusion on both their faces. Then
Kait said, Youre certain my Family is after
me?
I stake my life on it.
And I know that a man named Ry Sabir and his men pursue us
by ship. I know this as surely as I know I breathe, or that you and
I sit on this floor.
Both Sabirs and Galweighs after you. Why? Of what
importance are you?
She stared down at her hands. You must know something
else. The spirit of an ancestor of mine came to me when my Family
was killed. She told me that I could bring them back to life if I
obtained the Mirror of Souls. So I am going after it.
Hasmal buried his face in his hands. The Mirror of Souls. The
Ancient artifact that the Secret Texts promised would be linked to
the return of the Reborn. Kait Galweigh, his doom, was on the ship
that had been intended to take him away from her, and she was a
monster, and they were seeking the Mirror of Souls, and the world
as he had known it would be coming to an end at any moment.
He wondered, if he jumped into the ocean, how far he would have
to swim to find land. Then he wondered if finding land even
mattered; drowning might be preferable.
You dont want to find the Mirror of Souls, he
said.
She arched an eyebrow. I do. I want to have my Family
back.
Hasmal shook his head. That isnt the way it will
work. Listen. You and I are linked together. Spirits told me that
you would be a danger to me, and that by being together we would
somehow effect the return of the Reborn, so I did everything I
could to get away from you thinking that you would be coming
for me in Halles and terrible things happened to me but I
managed to survive, and I thought I was well away from you on this
ship that would sail to the ends of Matrin. Then you show up
on this very ship, of all the places where you could have gone. And
now I find out that were going off to retrieve the single
artifact mentioned in the Secret Texts in reference to the return
of the Reborn. This has nothing to do with bringing your Family
back, Kait. The gods have their hand in this, and if we keep going,
were going to die.
Kait tipped her head to one side and stared at him.
Youre actually quite a nervous man, arent
you?
He almost wept. No. Im the most sensible man in the
world. I had work I liked. I spent time with my parents. I knew
what I wanted; I was going to take over my fathers shop when
he wearied of the work, as he did from his father. I was a Falcon
because my father taught me, but I didnt expect to have to do
anything except pass on the teachings to my son or daughter. I
never wanted to be one of the tools Vodor Imrish used in
returning the Reborn to the world. The tools of the gods end up
broken. And I dont want to die, and I dont want my
parents to die, either.
She patted his leg. It was a condescending little pat. A
dont worry, silly man pat. She said,
Im not doing anything for the gods, Hasmal. And I
dont even know who the Reborn is but Im not
doing anything for him, either. So this terrible future you foresee
isnt going to happen. No death, no destruction, no horror.
Ill get my Family back, and youll go back to your shop
and be a shopkeeper like your father and his father before
him. She smiled when she said it.
He gritted his teeth. I only wish that were true. You keep
your optimism because you dont know what is happening. The
Reborn, he said, speaking slowly and clearly, as if he were
dealing with a particularly stupid child, lived during the
time of Vincalis, more than a thousand years ago. The Reborn was a
wizard of tremendous talent and perfect goodness named Solander. He
created the Falcons to stand against the evil wizards commonly
known as Dragons, who used magic as a weapon and peoples
lives as fuel. He did his best to prevent the Wizards War,
but the Dragons captured him and killed him as a dissident.
Vincalis, who was a prophet for the Falcons as well as
Solanders student and biographer, put aside the plays and
poems he wrote for his living, and cast oracles for one thousand
one hundred days. Each day, he wrote the future he saw in the
Secret Texts. He correctly predicted the Dragons
self-destruction, and the falling into disfavor of magic. And he
also predicted that the Reborn would return when the Dragons rose
from their own ashes. And that the Mirror of Souls must be found
and taken to the Reborn to prevent disaster. And that only after
terrible destruction and a second Wizards War would the
golden age the Reborn had promised come.
Kait finally looked like she understood the danger. But
magic is still forbidden, and forgotten. She thought of her
dead uncle Dùghall, and his claims of magic, and sighed.
Well, mostly forgotten.
Hasmal laughed. You dont believe that, surely. The
Falcons kept the Reborns magic alive for all of the thousand
years after the Wizards War. Your Familys Wolves and
the Sabirs Wolves have been scouring Ancient cities for the
texts and artifacts of the Dragons for more than four hundred
years. In the Wolves, the Dragons have risen. And now the horrors
begin.
Im working for the return of my Family. Not for your
god and your wizard.
Hasmal shook his head. The gods use who they will. And
they never ask for volunteers.
Fine. So you come to me and you tell me that you have to
speak to me, and this is because you want to commiserate with me,
that you and I have been chosen by your god as . . .
sacrifices? Is that it? Well, youve told me. Now youve
done your duty and you can leave. Forgive me if I dont choose
to go along with your gods plan.
She was an exasperating woman. I came because I need to
give you the Secret Texts to read. You need to know what we face.
And I need to teach you the magic of the Falcons. I need to make
you a Falcon.
She snorted. You didnt want to have anything to do
with me, and now suddenly you want to be my mentor? How fortunate
for me.
I dont want to be your mentor. And I dont want
to have anything to do with this destiny, any more than you do. I
never fancied myself a hero. I want to teach you so that Ill
have someone who can back me up if we get into trouble.
Kait shrugged. Well, teaching. Thats a different
matter altogether. I wont serve your god Im not
even sure who Vodor Imrish is. But learning is never a mistake.
Teach me whatever you know.
* * *
Anwyn Sabir rubbed one clawed hand along his horns. Theyd
gotten longer since the abortive attack on the Galweighs. He
crossed his legs and glowered at the twin cloven hooves, flat and
broad as dinner plates. His human leg the last thing
hed had to remind him of the time when hed been a man
instead of a monster had vanished in the backwash of magic
and the simultaneous overflow from the Galweigh attack. He missed
the leg; missed the smooth flesh and the foot that, if he looked at
it, reminded him of the days when he looked into mirrors readily
and with pleasure. Walking was easier, though, with legs that
matched and that both bent the same way.
Arent you ready yet? he growled.
Quiet, unless you want me to shift the damned
rewhah to you. Maybe next time youll grow a tail.
Crispin glared at him. Andrew gripped a girl-child of about five
under one arm; Crispin held her hand over the little fire hed
started in the cauldron on the stone table. He slashed across her
palm with his knife blood spattered and the girl shrieked
and managed to kick Andrew solidly in the shoulder.
Anwyn laughed, but didnt say anything out loud. He was
still recovering from the effects of his last Scarring, and
didnt want to find himself in the way of any more rebound
magic for a while.
Crispin let go of the childs hand and focused on the spell
he was casting. It was a tiny spell, really not one that
would require the girl as a sacrifice. Anwyn thought hed
probably use her as a sacrifice anyway, both as a precautionary
buffer theyd all gotten leery of unexpected magical
rebounds since the disaster and because he took pleasure in
the suffering of his sacrifices. But if he wasnt greedy, they
might be able to get another use or two out of her before she
died.
Crispin finished casting the spell, and Andrew and Anwyn both
looked into the dancing flames in the cauldron. At first, nothing
appeared.
Maybe the bitchs son really is dead, Andrew
suggested.
Anwyn laughed. Not even were that unlucky. He made
it look like wed killed him for a reason, and it wasnt
so someone else could do it and get away with it.
Maybe someone else made it look like wed killed
him.
Weve been over this before
Silence, Crispin said.
Images began to form in the flames. A square of white, then
water . . . these resolved gradually into a high-prowed
Rophetian ship moving across open sea.
A ship? Andrew frowned and leaned farther forward.
Why would he be on a ship?
Silence. Crispin never looked away from the flames,
but the growing exasperation in his voice sounded clear enough to
Anwyn.
Theyd suspected from the moment the bloody mess in
Rys room was discovered that he wasnt dead. Theyd
been sure of it when the magical pointers and traces had all marked
them as the killers; they knew they hadnt killed the little
bastard, though it would have been a good idea. They were at a
loss, though, as to why they would be set up as the killers.
Ry couldnt return to claim leadership of the Wolves after
faking his own death; his mother couldnt hope to benefit from
the sympathy hed generated for her or the hatred his death
had generated against them, since she was Sabir only by marriage;
and for any of the other Sabir Wolves who might have eyed the
position at the head of the pack, the removal of Ry and the blaming
of the three of them for the death wouldnt help to secure
their ascension.
So what benefit did anyone gain by the stunt?
The three of them had discussed the matter, carefully secured a
sacrifice, and after a month of avoiding any activities that might
have made them look guilty of what theyd been accused of,
they found both the time and the place to work their divination
without drawing any attention to themselves. By the end of the
month Anwyn was healthy enough to participate, too. The paths were
finally clear for them to discover what Ry was up to.
Now it looked like he was on a ship, and sailing away from
Calimekka.
And who did that benefit?
Can you bring in any more detail? Anwyn asked.
Crispin wore his frustration on his face. Hes well
shielded, and has shielded the people with him, too. I cant
even get a look at the captain or the crew. Hes been very
careful.
Youre certain hes aboard that ship?
The blood and hair we got from his room would not form
links to anyone but him. Hes there.
Mark the ship, then. Sooner or later, hell cease to
be so vigilant. Sooner or later, well be able to see what
hes doing, and what hes hiding.
Crispin nodded. Andrew dragged the child back to him this
time she started screaming before he touched her, and kept
screaming when he nicked the artery in her neck and the blood began
to spurt into the cauldron. The three of them focused on the spell
they cast, to mark the ship and everything in it magically, so that
they could locate it again wherever it might be. Then they braced
for the rebound, for the marking spell was bigger and fiercer than
the divination spell. They funneled the backlash, when it came,
into the dying body of the child. She shimmered and glowed and
began to melt into a fur-covered, bat-winged monster, and at the
same time she began to cry pathetic little mewlings that
grew weaker and weaker as her blood spurted into the cauldron to
sizzle and hiss and smoke.
Anwyn watched Crispin without seeming to watch him, and saw the
weakness there that he saw every time they sacrificed a girl child.
Amused, he looked away to keep from betraying himself to his
brother. Handsome, arrogant Crispin had few weaknesses, but the one
he did have was for little girls; hed had a bastard daughter
by one of the threesomes toys, and kept her safely hidden
from everyone. Anwyn suspected she was in the hands of a caretaker
family somewhere in the New Territories, or possibly even in New
Kaspera. But not even he knew.
He did know that she still lived, and thrived, and that Crispin,
for all that he thought he hid it well, remained squeamish about
the sacrificing and killing of little girls. Which was a useful
thing to know. Knowledge was power, and Anwyn had decided long ago
that where his older brother was concerned, he would take any power
he could get.
The child went limp in his arms, but not before the backlash had
spent itself in her frail body. Anwyn said, Here, Crispin,
Ill get rid of that for you.
Crispin handed the little corpse to him. Andrew giggled, and
said, Give it to me to play with first, wont
you?
Both brothers turned to study him with distaste. Anwyn grew
wearier daily of his cousin Andrews perversions had
been amusing when first he and Crispin discovered them, and the two
of them had even, from time to time, participated out of curiosity.
But Andrew seemed to be both defined and encompassed by the lusts
that drove him, and Anwyn thought that no matter how deep he and
his brother dug into their cousins soul, they would find
nothing but more layers of the same muck and scum beneath the
surface. Which made Andrew tiresome company.
Not this time, he said, and watched Andrews
face pinch tight. Crispins roses need fertilizer. If
you want a toy, get one of your own.
Anwyn turned back to Crispin. What do you want to do about
Ry?
Crispin brushed the wavy golden hair Anwyn so envied out of his
face and shrugged. Not much we can do until we can uncover
his reasons for leaving, for staging his own murder, and for
destroying his own chance to ever lead the Wolves. Well watch
him. When we can prove hes alive and on that ship, I suppose
well expose him. Then . . . He smiled and
glanced down at the cauldron. Then I imagine well kill
him. Without making ourselves to blame for it.
Chapter 23
The Peregrine slipped past another island in the
Devils Trail. Smoke curled from a tall cone in the center of
the island, and a thick black trail of new rock drove down to the
shore between the burned skeletons of trees that forested either
side. Kait thought that Joshan, the goddess of the high places, of
solitude, and of loneliness, would feel right at home there.
Kait paced the port deck, staring at the island, smelling the
things that still lived there. The Peregrine ran close in,
close enough that Kait could pick out the herd of deer that grazed
at the edge of the burn line, where new growth had already started
to come back. She growled softly and flexed her hands, and stared
at them with hungry yearning.
Forty days since her last full Shift. Forty days that had
always been the outside limit between Shifts for her. Her little
demonstration for Hasmal had given her a tiny reprieve, but she
needed to be able to let go. She wanted to run, to hunt, to chase,
to kill, and prey was within her reach, and she couldnt let
herself go after it. She needed to give herself over to the other
for a full day, and if she jumped over the side and swam to the
island to hunt, by the time she could excise her demon for another
two months the ship would be eighty leagues to the northeast. She
turned away from the deer.
She had to Shift. The need burrowed under her skin now, an
unceasing and ever-worsening itch. She couldnt leave the
Peregrine, because she would never be able to rejoin it if she
did. She was terrified to Shift aboard ship, though. She had no
doubt that if she was found out, the crew would kill her. And how
could she keep from being found out?
She growled again, as the rich scent of the deer on the island
swirled out to her one final time. Already the island lay behind
them instead of beside them. Even knowing that she would be trapped
if she jumped overboard, Kait almost couldnt restrain
herself.
The hunt. The chase. The kill.
Her fingernails dug into the palms of her clenched fists, and
she realized that she felt points digging into her flesh, not
crescents. She stared down at her hands in horror. She had claws
now, not fingernails, and her smooth human skin wore the first
faint down of beast fur. She looked around her, frantic. Perry the
Crow, one of the ships lookouts, hung in the rigging at the
top of the mainmast, staring ahead. Ians second-in-command,
the dour Rophetian navigator Jhoots, stood at the wheel, also with
his back to her. A few of the crew checked the coils of lines, or
climbed through the rigging, shifting or tying sails at
Jhootss command. So far, none of them had paid any attention
to her. Thanks to the moonless darkness, if she could get off the
deck before she Shifted from two legs to four, perhaps no one
would.
But where could she hide?
Not her room. Rrru-eeth would be by in the morning to clean it.
The door had a lock, but Kait didnt trust Rrru-eeths
hearing, which she suspected of being keener than her own. The
Scarred girl would catch the change in her Shifted voice, or her
breathing, or gods only knew what else.
Down below, the crew slept. But below them lay storerooms. And
below that, the bilge.
Moving casually, so that she would not draw attention to
herself, Kait went below. She paused halfway down the gangway. Most
of the off-duty crew slept in hammocks strung from the cross
braces, hammocks that swayed with every rise and fall of the ship.
Their snores played an interesting counterpoint to the slapping of
water outside the hull and the creaks of the ships timbers.
She would have no trouble at all getting past the sleepers. But
along the far bulkhead, close to the doorway that led to the
storerooms and gave access to the bilge, four people played a game
of hawks and hounds, and one of the players was Rrru-eeth.
Kait felt her clothing loosening and tightening. She swallowed
hard and stared through the forest of posts and strung hammocks at
the players bent over their game board. She had so little time. She
tried to hold her fear in check; Rrru-eeth, predator that she was,
would notice fear as quickly as Kait would have in a similar
situation.
Calm, then. Calm.
She dropped the rest of the way down, and stood as straight as
she could. Then she walked through the swinging hammocks as if she
belonged among them.
She made one reassuring discovery. Rrru-eeth wouldnt smell
her as she passed. As Kait moved farther away from the gangway, the
fresh night air succumbed to the miasma created by more than a
dozen poorly washed bodies and their various gases. The cloud of
belches and farts and sweat and dirt was thick enough it was almost
visible. Kait thought she could probably herd cows through the
common room without anyone being the wiser, if she could just keep
them quiet.
Rrru-eeths ears swiveled toward her as she moved nearer
the doorway; Kait kept her steps confident and steady, and prayed
she would be able to maintain her form human enough to walk on only
two legs until she was out of earshot.
Thats five to you, one of the men said, and
Kait heard the rattle of dice.
Six. I go again. . . .
Nine. . . . Again. Eleven. Youve
missed your point three times. Do you want to stand hounds or
hawks?
Rrru-eeth said, If it were my play, Id demand to see
those dice. You havent made your point once
tonight.
Kait was almost to the door. They were paying her no
attention.
A steady voice tinged with annoyance. Maybe hes just
unlucky tonight.
Rrru-eeth again. Maybe. Though Ive never seen him so
unlucky before.
Kait stepped through the door, and almost breathed a sigh of
relief, and behind her heard, Ill let the three of you
settle this. Im for the head.
Kaits heart leaped for her throat. The head what
she had mistakenly called the water closet until a few of the
amused crew had corrected her lay at the lowest level of the
Peregrine, and all the way aft. The exact way shed
hoped to go.
The shock of fear pushed her heart faster, and her breath hissed
in and out, and she heard the growl starting in the back of her
throat. Felt the fizzing in her blood, and the red-hot animal rage,
and she Shifted into the beast . . .
. . . darted into the deep shadows as the man came
around the corner . . .
. . . huddled there as he strode past her, close
enough for her to touch . . .
. . . and all the while, in her mind, she felt the
fury of the other, that she should hide instead of attacking, that
she should cower like prey when she could easily kill the man who
endangered her.
Kait, small and weak in the back of the others mind, still
somehow kept the beast chained until the man was past. Until she
could slip through the patchy darkness, lit only by two storm
lanterns, to the narrow trapdoor that opened into the bilge. She
dropped down into the bilgewater, ignoring the stink, and let the
trapdoor drop shut above her. She curled up on a timber brace, and
let the rats come to her, and when they did, she killed them,
snapping their spines with a single toss of her head.
In a day, when the Shift passed, she would have to come up with
an excuse for her absence from her room. For her enormous appetite.
In a day, she would have problems, and the crew would wonder about
her, and Ian would have cause to distrust her. But had she stayed,
even if she had been able to keep everyone from her room, Rrru-eeth
would have heard the change in her voice, would have heard the
clicking of her claws on the plank floor, and she would have known
something was wrong. She would have known. This way, as long
as she wasnt found out while she was still in Shift, the
worst they could all do was wonder.
* * *
Crispin Sabir strode into the Hall of Inquisitions prepared to
face his accusers. He wore his formal clothing silk breeches
and velvet cutwork tunic both dyed forest green, the finest white
Sonderran lace at his throat, cloak of cloth-of-silver with an
enormous Sabir crest in the center, the two trees worked across the
back in thousands of tiny drilled emeralds. On his right hand the
golden wolfs-head ring, the tourmaline eyes glowing in the
dim light as if the beast lived. On one hip his sword, on the other
his dagger, both bearing his insignia. His soft black boots
gleaming with polish, his silver cloak pin burnished to a
sheen.
Andrew and Anwyn had already been questioned. Both had been able
to provide independent alibis for their whereabouts the night of
Rys supposed murder. Crispin intended to do more than
that.
Grasmir Sabir, majestic in simple silk, with the emerald-studded
chain of the paraglese around his neck, sat ready to condemn
Crispin for the murder of his cousin Ry. To either side of the
paraglese sat half a dozen members of the Family, none Wolves. In
fact, no other Wolves had been permitted in the room for any
portion of this trial, not even as observers. This fact pleased
Crispin, and worked in his favor. He noted the predominance of the
trading branch, who had for years tried to oust the Wolves from any
positions of power and tried to eliminate their influence in the
Family councils. Today, Crispin intended to deal their faction a
crushing blow. He had his alibi, and his proof, and something else.
As he took his place in the low seat beneath the dais, he smiled a
tiny, secret smile.
This inquisition into the murder of Ry Sabir, son of
Imogene Valarae Sabir and Lucien Sabir, deceased, is reconvened.
This is an ongoing investigation into the means of his death, and
the guilt, implied by both the dead mans letter and physical
evidence within his room, of Crispin Sabir. Before we bring forward
the evidence against you, Crispin, have you anything to say for
yourself?
I have. Crispin stood, knowing that he looked regal;
he was easily a match for the paraglese, and far outshone the rest
who stood against him. He heard the murmurs of approval from the
onlookers, all Family who had few or no dealings with the Wolves.
He smiled, this time for everyone to see, and from beneath his
cloak produced a device of glass and metal a long spindly
framework of the Ancients unrusting steel built to reveal a
glass globe within. The device had several levers and switches on
it, and a gear train running from the switches to the globe.
May I bring this forward for your inspection?
If it has anything to do with this investigation, you may.
What is it?
My alibi, Crispin said, and carried the device
forward and set it on the dais. If you would switch the blue
switch at the base to the right, you will see what I
mean.
All of the Board of Inquisitors gave him suspicious stares.
Its a device of the Ancients, Crispin said.
One the Wolves discovered some years ago which we have made
use of from time to time.
The paraglese toggled the blue switch, and a faint light began
to glow within the glass sphere. Nothing else happened.
Very pretty, he said, and I could see where it
might be useful at night, when I wanted to read at my desk instead
of by the fire. But I fail to see how it proves your innocence. Or
even suggests it.
You have some of Rys hair, and some of his blood.
Dont you?
You know we do. Both were found where he was
murdered.
Crispin nodded. Take a single hair, and slide it into the
slot at the base of the device.
The paraglese narrowed his eyes and said, I fail to see
the purpose of this.
Please. I promise Im not wasting your
time.
The paraglese called for the evidence box, and put on a pair of
fine white calfskin gloves, and opened the small metal casket with
care. He pulled out one of the silver boxes inside of it, and from
that box withdrew a hair. Crispin showed him where to put the hair,
and when it was in place, said, Now, in order, and counting
to five in between each switch, toggle the green, yellow, and
orange switches to the right.
The paraglese toggled the green switch. One
. . . two . . . three . . .
The sphere began to turn a dull blue. The change was visible
throughout the room, and Crispin heard scattered gasps.
. . . four . . . five
. . . The paraglese toggled the yellow switch.
. . . one . . . two . . .
A cloudy dark spot began to resolve itself within the blue.
. . . three . . . four . . .
five . . . The paraglese toggled over the final
switch, and immediately the dark shape in the center of the sphere
resolved into a clear image.
The image of Ry Sabir, very clearly alive and moving. He was
speaking, though the person to whom he spoke remained
invisible.
Thats my alibi, Crispin said quietly, though
his voice carried through the stunned chambers as loudly as if he
had shouted. Ry isnt dead.
Where is he? and What happened to him?
mingled with Who is responsible for this? among the
onlookers and the council. Crispin pressed his lips into a grim
line, and in response moved the two dials that worked the gears
within the device. The view moved away from Ry so rapidly that no
one could get a clear view of anyone who was with him, though it
was clear he was with many people. Not until Crispin had a ship
fixed cleanly within the glass did he remove his hands from the
dials.
You tell me where he is and who is responsible, he
said.
The paraglese leaned forward, and gradually his expression
hardened into cold rage. He looked up from the glass and then to
the councillors on either side of him. Hes on a
ship, Grasmir said. One of our ships. One of our trade
ships. The paraglese looked down at Crispin and said,
It would appear that you, your brother, and your cousin have
been the victims of conspiracy between the Traders and your cousin
Ry. And perhaps his mother. I revoke the charge and rights of this
council and find you innocent myself. And I apologize that I cannot
ask you to sit on the council that will begin investigating the
conspiracy that tried to implicate you in a crime that wasnt
even committed. That your enemies sat on the council that would
have tried you was an unfortunate accident I cannot, though,
knowingly appoint you to sit in judgment against them. Though the
idea strikes me as ultimately fair, I cannot overlook the bias you
will have against them for what theyve attempted. He
rested his head in his hands for a moment, then pushed his fingers
through his receding and graying hair. However, if you have
anything that you would ask of me as paraglese, I will be inclined
to look favorably on your request.
Crispin nodded. I do have a favor to ask, one that will
cost you very little. The Wolves have been without a leader since
the death of our beloved head Wolf, Lucien. Our efforts on behalf
of the Family are weak and scattered. I would, with my brother and
my cousin, lead the Wolves forward for the good of all the Family.
I ask only that you support our bid for leadership, and then only
if you feel we would be worthy of that honor.
Grasmir smiled. It would seem, from the letter that Ry
wrote to me before leaving on the trade ship, that one point of
this exercise was to prevent the three of you from doing just that.
I dont like conspiracies, and I dont appreciate being
lied to or made a fool of. It is my right to override the autonomy
of any branch of the Family if I feel that doing so is in the best
interests of the Family as a whole. I feel that way now. Therefore,
there will be no bid among the Wolves for leader. I declare you
leader of your people, and your brother Anwyn and your cousin
Andrew your assistants. Nor will I brook any disagreement with my
decision. He stood. Go, with my blessing. I dismiss
this council. Traders stay within the walls of the House.
You will answer for your actions on this same day next
week.
* * *
They had almost torn the ship apart looking for her when she
finally crawled out of the bilge and dragged herself up toward her
cabin. Hasmal found her as she fought her way up the gangway toward
the main deck. Ian and Rrru-eeth and Jayti were right behind.
Hasmal, bless him, had spent the time that he searched for her in
thinking, because the first words out of his mouth were, You
had a seizure again, didnt you?
Seizure. The falling sickness. That frightened people, but not
to the point where they felt they needed to kill the victim. Not
like the Karnee curse.
So she nodded. I think so. I dont remember. The last
thing I remember, I was in my cabin reading. And the next, I woke
up in the bilge.
They helped her up onto the deck, talking about fresh air and
sunlight. It didnt help. She still felt like a week-drowned
corpse. She stood, having a hard time keeping her feet under
her.
Ian stood in front of her, backlit by the setting sun, and his
eyes narrowed thoughtfully. You have the falling
sickness. A statement, not a question.
She nodded.
How often?
Not often. Once every couple months.
But often enough that your Family couldnt hope to
make a good marriage for you?
Once would have been often enough to prevent
that.
Damaged goods.
Thats the way it is with Family. Which was
true. No one could hope to arrange a marriage for a woman with
falling sickness her dowry would be forfeit but shed
be sent home after the first episode; everyone knew that the
falling sickness passed from mother to child. So Kaits story
about taking the book gained another layer of realism an
unmarriageable daughter would end up doing something hideous like
translating dead languages in a windowless room for the rest of her
life. Further, she had a rational excuse for her absence, and for
any future absences. Thank all the gods for Hasmal. She could have
hugged him. Would, she thought, when she was clean again, and fed.
When shed slept. Shed eaten rats when the hunger grew
too great, but even in her beast form she didnt like rats.
They weighed on her stomach as she stood there.
Ian was nodding, and his eyes bore an empathy that surprised
her. He was silent for a long time. Then he said softly, I
know all about the Families and their damaged goods. I do
indeed.
Hasmal said, We were afraid youd fallen
overboard.
Kait said, Im glad I didnt.
And Rrru-eeth, standing off to one side, said, How did you
get all the way down in the bilge without anyone seeing
you?
Kait shrugged. I dont remember. I dont
remember anything. She wished that were true. She wished she
could at least forget the rats. Weak from hunger and exhausted from
the Shift, she staggered, and as the ship rode over the crest of a
wave, the deck rose beneath her and she fell.
Suddenly the movement was too much for her. She was wretchedly
sick. She crawled to the rail and threw up into the sea.
That put an effective end to the questioning. When she was done
being sick, Ian and Hasmal carried her into her cabin, and
Rrru-eeth assigned herself to nurse her.
For the next two days, she decided she would do nothing but eat
and sleep.
* * *
So what did you do with the bodies? Crispin still
wore his formal clothing, though hed gotten rid of the cloak
as soon as he came through the door.
In the garden, beneath your roses. Of course. Anwyn
chuckled. I trust we didnt disturb the roots too
much.
Crispin didnt smile. I trust you didnt. I have
some very delicate hybrids taking root out there right
now.
Andrew sat playing with the switches of the contraption
theyd put together to amuse the Inquisitors. They like
our toy?
The paraglese did. The Traders sitting on the council
thought it was fine until they saw the ship.
Making it a Trader ship was a nice touch, Anwyn
said.
Crispin shrugged. Doing it that way eliminated two of our
problems at the same time Rys disappearance and the
Traders power.
Both his brother and his cousin smiled. Eliminated the
problem, Anwyn mused.
Andrew giggled.
Eliminated. Crispin pulled out a chair and sat
astride it, facing backward. He draped his arms along the back and
said, I wish you could have been there. It was
beautiful.
If wed been there, who would have worked the magic
to make your pretty pictures? Andrew was frowning.
Both Anwyn and Crispin looked at him with annoyance. He
didnt mean it literally, Anwyn said. He turned his back
on Andrew and said, Tell me, how beautiful was it?
You know how wed hoped to have Grasmir support our
bid for leadership of the Wolves?
Anwyn nodded.
He went one better than that. He declared us leaders.
Rather, he declared me leader and the two of you my assistants. We
dont have to win over anyone the pro-Lucien faction might
field. Were in charge, and the rest of the Wolves cant
do a thing about it.
Anwyn studied him thoughtfully, too clever to point out right
then that they had agreed the three of them would share power
equally. But Crispin could tell he was thinking about it. It would
come up later not as an argument, because the paraglese had
said Crispin would be in charge, and Anwyn wouldnt be able to
prove his brother had manipulated events to make that happen. But
it would come up.
Meanwhile, however, all Anwyn said was, Well, things are
certainly going to change now.
Andrew tittered, evidently already imagining how they
were going to change.
Chapter 24
Three weeks of reading the Secret Texts preparatory to
learning any actual magic. Three weeks twenty-seven days
of pondering the history of magic and the future of her
world as told through the prophecies, aphorisms, and asides of a
man who was undoubtedly brilliant, but sometimes perversely vague.
Three weeks of sitting in her cabin from before the sun rose until
long after dark, trying to fit what she knew of the events of the
past and the present to the complex puzzle Vincalis had left behind
and Kait had finally reached her limit.
When Ian Draclas knocked on her cabin door, she opened it
gladly.
You havent come out of your cabin for anything
except meals in so long, he said, that poor Rrru-eeth
is certain some form of sea-madness has overtaken you and that you
are pining away from grief in there.
Kait already felt the pressures of Shift growing inside of
herself again, and thought that would make a convincing enough form
of sea-madness for Rrru-eeth when it materialized, but she managed
a sincere-sounding laugh. Ive been studying, she
said.
Something fascinating, no doubt. He leaned a bit
past her so that he could peer around the cabin.
History, she said, moving unobtrusively to block
him. I want to be very sure of the location of the city and
its treasures.
Of course, he said. I hadnt considered
that you might not have finished translating your book when you st
I mean, when you . . . bought it. Of course you
hadnt translated all of it. Buying it, how could you
have? He flushed.
His awkwardness amused her. She moved closer to him,
hypersensitive to his warmth and to his scent, which was musky,
sensual, and very male, with unmistakable overlays of fresh air and
sunshine. He was handsome she hadnt permitted herself
to think about that, but now she caught herself smiling up at him
just to see him smile.
And his return smile disarmed her; in it, she could see surprise
and hope and a faint shadow of her own growing hunger.
You seem different tonight, he said. She
couldnt help but note the touch of wariness.
I feel different. Im lonely, and tired, and I
want to enjoy an evening not thinking about lost cities or
Ancient artifacts. She rested a hand on his forearm, and
lightly stroked the soft furring of golden hairs.
Really? His eyebrows rose; his voice dropped. His
smile this time was much more overtly sexual.
She brushed past him and pulled her door closed behind herself.
Yes. Somewhere outside of that room.
Shed managed to push all thoughts of sex out of her mind
since boarding the Peregrine. It made for complications she
didnt want to face. But she knew she would never manage
celibacy through two complete Shifts, and she would be better off
picking a partner rationally than in the midst of the raging fire
of Karnee lust. Shed considered Hasmal as her desires got
stronger; he attracted her. She knew there would even be an
advantage in taking him as her mate he knew what she was.
He, however, was one of the few men shed ever encountered who
was not compelled by her accursed Karnee blood to think he loved
her. In fact, he had clearly stated, when she made a tentative
overture, that he bore no interest in her at all.
For all her complaints to Amalee about the men and women who
were drawn to her, and how humiliating it was to know that they
were not drawn to her at all, but to her curse, Kait found
it even more humiliating to run across someone who was immune even
to the curse. That immunity suggested to her that she had nothing
genuinely lovable about her; that without her curse, she would have
been invisible to men.
Ian was not immune, even after his experience with her bout of
falling sickness, and at the moment she took comfort
from that.
He rested fingertips lightly on the small of her back. If
you dont want to spend any more time in your cabin, would you
enjoy visiting in mine?
I would love to.
Neither of them said anything else until she followed him to the
door to his cabin and let him usher her inside.
He lit his lamps, and only when the golden glow bathed both of
them did he ask her, Are we going to reconsider being friends
now?
She leaned against his chest and raised up on her toes to kiss
him lightly on the lips. Were going to be even better
than friends, I think. Her heart pounded and her blood surged
through her veins. Shed wanted this shed needed
to feel desirable, beautiful, wanted. She could see in Ians
eyes that she was all of those things. She kissed him again, and
loosened her tight control over the passion that boiled inside of
her; she submerged herself in the touch and taste and scent of him,
in the feel of his arms around her and his hands touching her.
She let herself pretend that he wanted her for herself.
And at the same time, she managed to bury her forbidden hunger;
she pushed the enemy Karnee, Ry Sabir, away from the center of her
thoughts, where he had occupied her free moments while she was
awake, and her dreams while she slept.
* * *
Rrru-eeth listened outside the captains cabin for a long
time. Shed been listening out there every night for more than
a week, ever since the first time the captain had taken Kait to bed
with him. When she left at last, she joined Jayti in the little
corner of one of the storerooms that they had appropriated for
their trysts.
She complained to him about what shed heard, finishing
with a bitter snarl. I cant believe the captain sleeps
with her. I cannot believe he wants her.
Jayti, lean and dark and easygoing, pulled her down onto his lap
and laughed. Well, be happy for him. Hes been alone for
a long time.
No. Rrru-eeth snarled as he started unbuttoning her
blouse. She pulled back and said, Ive told you before,
there is something wrong with her. She isnt normal.
Ruey, how could you of all people possibly care about
that? Whos normal? You and me?
Rrru-eeth said, She has things wrong with her. She talks
to herself in her room, and she hides things. She and that Hasmal
meet in her cabin early in the morning, before the watch shifts. As
soon as they go in there, I cant hear a word they say, but I
can still feel them talking. Its . . .
unchancy. She whispered, And she has an animal smell to
her. Ive thought that since even before she was sick
. . . but since then, Ive noticed it even
more.
An animal smell! Jayti laughed at Rrru-eeth.
Youre jealous of her, arent you? Because
shes pretty and the captain wants her. She treats you better
than any human woman whos ever been aboard this ship, Ruey.
Ive watched her. She never asks extra work of you, and she
talks good to you. Real good.
He pinched her buttock and Rrru-eeth growled at him.
Dont you dare, he said, still laughing.
Youve fancied the captain ever since he gave you a
place on this ship. And now some woman of his own class wants him,
and youve realized youll never be captains lady.
Isnt that it? Hmmm? Isnt it?
Rrru-eeth shrugged and nestled against his chest. You can
think what you want. But I dont trust her. And I dont
like her. Shell turn the captain. You just watch if she
doesnt.
* * *
In Kaits dream, they danced. At first, her partners
face stayed hidden in shadow as they spun and floated over an
otherwise deserted dance floor. She felt the music but she could
not hear it. All she could hear was his breathing, deep and slow
and steady. And his hands burned on her bare shoulders.
In Kaits dream, they danced, and she began to recall that
they danced this way every night. She looked around, feeling as if
she had been trapped by the chains of day and had just regained her
freedom. The silent music moved quicker, and his breathing grew
faster with it. Yearning, and the pounding of her blood in her
veins; that was the music to which she danced.
Touch me.
His voice made her very soul tremble. She brushed his skin with
her fingertips, and discovered that he was naked. As was she.
Magic. This was magic, but not the magic of wizards; this was the
magic of man and woman, of lust and desire. This was the dance of
sex, and the heart-pulse drumbeat quickened yet again.
Touch me.
In Kaits dream, they danced skin to skin, floating across
an open meadow, and the shadows fell away from his face and his
eyes were a pale, beautiful blue, dark-ringed, and his smile burned
its way into her heart, and she loved him. Gods help her, she loved
him. In her dreams she danced with Ry Sabir, whose Family had
murdered hers, who might have had a hand in killing her loved ones
himself, and in her traitorous dreams she welcomed his embrace, and
she opened her heart to him. In her dreams she knew she loved him
she, who had never loved a man.
In her dreams, they danced, and because he was her enemy, and
because in her dreams she was too weak to kill him, she woke.
And found herself in Ian Draclass bed.
Disappointment seared her, stung her, cut her until she bled.
She bore its sulfur-bitter taste without letting her emotions
show.
Did you sleep well?
I slept with my enemy. She kissed Ian lightly, playfully, and
did not answer his question. Time for me to go, while
its still dark.
You dont have to leave. Stay with me.
She nibbled along the nape of his neck, trailed her fingers down
his spine. I have to go. For now, I have to. But if you want,
Ill be back tonight.
By the return of night, she would have banished Ry Sabir from
her thoughts. She would have convinced herself that she hated him,
that she wanted to see him dead. She would have made herself
believe that she could feel genuine passion for Ian Draclas, and in
Ians bed she would prove to herself that her dreams
didnt matter.
Until she slept.
In her sleep, she could not lie.
Chapter 25
Kait made it back to her cabin just before Hasmal
arrived. So far, shed managed to keep him from knowing about
her relationship with the captain, just as shed managed to
keep Ian from finding out about the time Hasmal spent with her.
Another week had passed, and shed finished her solitary study
of the Secret Texts, and begun learning basic magic.
He knocked on her door, and she let him in, acting as if
shed just woken.
He glanced at her bed, where shed rumpled the covers and
made it look like shed just climbed out of it. He gave her a
cold look and said, You didnt have to mess them on my
account.
Kait felt heat flushing her cheeks. I
. . .
You need to learn not to lie. Not to your colleagues,
anyway. I already knew about you and the captain. It isnt as
if it were any great secret.
That was news to her. When did you hear?
Two weeks ago. I probably knew not long after you
did. His tight smile told her shed been foolish to hope
to keep the relationship secret. How are you doing on your
shielding?
The dreams arent bothering me as much. Most times I
can wake up from them when the dance starts now. And I dont
have the feeling that hes looking over my shoulder during the
day not like I did at first.
You still think hes following us?
Yes.
Hasmal sighed. I think youre right. I wish we could
get rid of him. Ive thrown zanda half a dozen times in
the last few days, and I get nothing at all.
Kait tugged the blankets on her bunk straight, then sat on top
of it. That seems like a good sign.
No. Youve lost him would be a good sign.
Hes still back there would be a neutral sign.
Sorry, I have no information regarding your question is
a very bad sign.
Why?
Because it means he has access to magic powerful enough to
make himself and his whole ship disappear to the zanda. I
couldnt do that. I and my father together
couldnt.
Oh. Kait knew that only she could feel Ry behind
them, and the feeling connected to her through her Karnee senses.
Hasmal had said that as far as he could tell, no one was following
them physically, though he insisted the Galweighs from Goft still
tracked them magically.
Well deal with the problem when it arrives,
Hasmal said. Now, what has your spirit said about our
destination?
Finally Kait felt that she had good news to give him. She
told me that well find a chain of islands tomorrow. From that
point, we only have another two days or so to reach the continent,
depending on the weather.
The weather has been good so far. Hasmal didnt
look happy, though.
Whats wrong?
Once we reach the continent and find the city, well
also find the Mirror of Souls.
Exactly. Thats why weve come all this
way.
As soon as we have the Mirror of Souls, we become a target
both for the Sabirs who are following us and for the Galweighs who
are waiting for us to come back to them.
Amalee assures me that were going to survive this,
Hasmal. Youll see.
He nodded. So she says. But I did a divination last night.
The Speakers say the Reborn has already been conceived. If
thats true, your ancestor may be guilty of wishful thinking.
Once the Reborn is conceived, disaster is imminent. So tonight
youre going to help me with a ritual to see if what they say
is true.
I cant help you with a ritual, Kait said
softly. She glanced around the tiny cabin as if expecting the
ships parnissa to rush in with a lynching crew. I
barely know enough about magic to maintain a shield.
Even that will help. With you adding your strength to the
shield, Ill be able to use more of my energy to seek the
Reborn. The ritual is dangerous and difficult, but we have to
know.
Kait didnt think they needed to know at all.
I promise you the Reborn isnt going to figure into your
future, Kait, Amalee said.
Kait had learned to answer her without speaking. Perhaps not.
But Ill never convince him of that. The least I can do is
help him with his ritual so that he can see for himself that
hes exaggerating the dangers we face.
Your ancestor doesnt like my idea, does
she?
You can hear her?
No. But Ive gotten better at reading your
expressions. I can always tell now when youre discussing
something with her. You get a faraway look in your eyes, and your
mouth tightens. Tell her I want your help whether she thinks I need
it or not.
Kait didnt need to tell her. Amalee heard perfectly well.
And responded scathingly. Kait didnt pass on her comments
word for word. She just said, She still doesnt like the
idea, but I dont care. If you need me, Ill help
you.
Then meet me in the aft food storeroom tonight when Telt
rings.
* * *
Kait knelt on the hard storeroom floor, behind the bags of yams
and flour and the casks of beer, and beneath the dried meat that
hung, swinging with every movement of the ship, from hooks
overhead. In the darkness, the silhouettes of those homely things
loomed like monsters rising from the sea; she could almost feel
their hot breath against the back of her neck. With every creak she
was certain that she was about to be discovered. The sounds of rats
scrittering along the enclosed shelves suddenly unnerved her, and
every stray step that echoed across the deck above her head set her
heart pounding like a war drum.
The darkness had never bothered her. But she discovered that she
feared her pending introduction to real magic, and as much as that,
she feared being discovered.
Across from her, Hasmal cupped a blood-bowl to his chest and
closed his eyes and offered up a quick, whispered prayer to Vodor
Imrish, that they might not be interrupted as they sought across
the leagues for the Reborn. That done, he lit a tiny candle and
crouched over it, and by its light drew his own blood and poured it
into the blood-bowl. Kait watched his facility with the tiny knife
and the tourniquet and thought she would be practicing very little
magic. She hated the idea of piercing her flesh or drawing her own
blood. Though Hasmal insisted very little of the farhullen
magic involved bloodletting, Kait felt any amount was too much.
As soon as Hasmal had a little puddle of blood in the bottom of
his bowl, he pinched out the tiny flame. He leaned, shivering,
against a bag of yams beside him, breathing hard. Now we
begin the actual spell, he said. Keep your shields
around both of us until I tell you to let them drop.
Youre sure I have to drop them? The Galweighs and
the Sabirs will be able to see what were doing
. . . and where we are.
The shield that keeps others out would trap us in.
He shrugged. You cannot send out a spell while shielded. Nor
can you send a spell through a shield someone else has placed over
you. That fact is part of what makes magical battles so deadly. But
back to what we were doing. Just be ready when I tell
you.
Kait already felt queasy, and the idea that she would be
exposing herself to those who followed her only increased the sick
feeling. But she nodded, and focused herself the way Hasmal had
taught her.
Meanwhile, he shook several packets of powders into the
blood-bowl and murmured an incantation that she recalled reading in
one of the later parts of the Secret Texts.
Heie abojan treashan skarere
Pephoran nonie tokal im hwerat . . .
[I who wait in the long darkness
For the coming of the light,
Seek now the quickening spirit
Of the Reborn; you who were once
Master of the Falcons,
Our teacher, and our guide;
You who were stolen from us before your time
And who promised to return to lead again;
You who taught love and compassion,
Humility and responsibility,
Integrity and honor above all virtues.
I call out to you.
The world needs you, and
Your Falcons have not forgotten.
Kind Solander,
Shall I be blessed to hear your voice?
I offer myself as your protector
While you are weak,
Your teacher while you are young,
Your servant always,
That you may return
To heal the pain of the people
And bring love and the fulfillment of hope
To the hollow shell of the world
You left behind.]
The powders within the mix of blood began to glow. Kait
shuddered. She could be brave in the face of the most terrifying
physical dangers, but in the face of magic, she wanted to cower and
flee. She could feel the spell beginning to work; she could feel it
in her bones and in her blood, and though she didnt
experience Hasmals magic as being painful or
greasy the way she had the magic Dùghall had
identified in the airible, she still became increasingly
uncomfortable. As if she were standing near a fire and the fire
were growing bigger and hotter. She knew she wasnt in danger.
But she could sense the
potential for danger.
Drop the shields now. If the Reborn has truly returned,
the blood itself will begin to glow, Hasmal had told her
before they started. Now, in the silence and the darkness,
Hasmals blood proved the truth of the message the spirits had
given him. It began to glow softly, its white light a radiant
nimbus that started as a thin skin around the bowl, then spread to
envelop his hands, his arms and shoulders, and finally all of
him.
Then it spread farther, covering Kait in its warm, comforting
cocoon.
Once within the sphere of the light, she felt the tenuous
awakening of the Reborn. Far away, the infant stirred in his
mothers womb and reached out to embrace the feather touch of
magic. He was full of love; he
was love. Hot tears welled in
Kaits eyes and slid down her cheeks, and she embraced the
fragile connection. While his spirit touched hers, her fear of
magic dissolved, and she felt whole. More, she felt accepted in a
way she had never been in her life. Even with her parents, she had
always known that they loved her in spite of what was wrong with
her. But the Reborn loved her just as she was, and accepted her
because in his eyes, she was as perfect as he was.
In the instant that their souls touched, she felt that a pain
that had always been inside her had healed. And when she looked at
Hasmal, and saw the tears running down his cheeks, she knew that
she was not alone. Kait could not believe that she had been so
blessed that she had been chosen to assist the Reborn when
other, worthier people had lived and died waiting for his arrival,
and had never seen their hope fulfilled.
Peripherally, she sensed that other Falcons like Hasmal had come
to offer their services and fulfill their oaths, and had come, as
well, to witness the private beginning of the wonder and the joy
that was promised to all people. So many minds, all strange to her
and yet all unified in purpose and in love, brushed against hers
and did not pull back in revulsion. She was what she was; they were
what they were; gathered around the soul of the Reborn like men who
had been lost in the desert and who had found a spring at last, all
they could do was love each other and rejoice together.
Kait stretched herself farther, and touched the Reborns
mother and got a shock. All she could feel from her was rage
and pain and hatred. She sensed that the woman had suffered
horribly at the hands of her enemies. The mother seemed blocked off
from the love her unborn child offered; her pain and anger locked
her into her own mind and prevented her from being healed in the
way that Kait had been healed. Then Kait received a second shock.
Flashes of the other womans thoughts and memories reached
Kait, and she discovered that the Reborns mother was her
cousin Danya.
She wanted to shout,
Youre still alive! Someone she
loved had survived the Sabirs treachery. But she
couldnt make Danya hear her. She wanted to say,
You
arent alone. Im here, and Ill come help you.
But Danya was deaf to her offered comfort, too.
Kait lacked the magical skills to make herself heard. But that
would change. She would learn whatever she needed to learn, because
in the moment that Hasmal brought her into his circle, her world
had changed for the good. She had so much to live for, and so much
to do. The Reborn was real, and would be the son of her beloved
cousin, who had not died at the hands of the Sabirs. Kait would do
whatever she had to do to keep them safe, and to help the
Reborns love restore the world.
* * *
Rrru-eeths diffident tap at the cabin door woke Kait, who
had spent the night alone.
Come in. She yawned and stretched. In spite of the
increasing tension caused by her need for Shift, she felt good.
Lighthearted, full of hope, certain for the first time that the
future would be better than the past. Danya, mother of the Reborn.
She grinned at Rrru-eeth when she peeked her head in the door.
What shall I do for you today? Do you have any laundry, or
does anything in your cabin not meet with your
satisfaction?
Kait grinned at her. Do you have something else youd
rather do today? Spend time with Jayti, maybe?
Rrru-eeth shook her head. Perry the Crow sighted the
islands you described, and until theyve made sure we
wont ground on a reef, Jayti will be on deck
working.
Perry the Crow was a sociable crewman named Perimus Ahern, who
had a liking for heights and whose eyesight was as sharp as
Kaits. During meals, he told amusing tales of his life before
hed joined the Peregrine, when hed been a
Calimekkan barrister prosecuting cases of patent theft among the
citys inventors. In his last case hed made the mistake
of winning the case for the actual inventor who had accused a minor
member of a major Family (though he refused to say which one) of
the theft of his idea. Perry discovered to his chagrin that he
needed to make both a career and location change the very next day.
He said, though, that he had come to love the sea, and his trial
against the Family inventor had turned out to be his
luckiest one.
Ill be glad to reach land again, Kait said.
Im tired of the sea.
Rrru-eeths smile had an edge to it. The ship can be
confining for even a short time. Imagine spending your entire life
on it.
Kait thought of living in a tiny world built of wood and bounded
by nothing but water and sky. She shook her head. I
cant imagine that. But surely you only spend some of your
time on the ship.
Rrru-eeths dark eyes narrowed, and she said softly,
I wouldnt think of leaving the decks of the
Peregrine. As long as Im on board, I answer only to
Captain Draclas. If I were to leave, well . . . there are
those in Ibera and the Territories who have reasons to want my neck
in a rope.
Kait sensed the other womans pain as a change in her
scent, a tensing of her body, a shift in the pattern of her
breathing. All those things came to her clearly the Karnee
senses were growing more acute as she neared her next Shift. She
leaned forward and said, I cant believe you earned that
fate. She shook her head. Youre a good
person.
Rrru-eeth clasped her hands together and said, Yet by
Iberan law, Ive earned death in any Iberan land.
How?
Its not important.
If its your life, how can it not be
important?
Rrru-eeth laughed a sharp, angry bark. My life is
important to me. To Jayti, I suppose. Certainly not to you
youre Family.
Kait shook her head. Not anymore. My neck is, Im
sure, marked for the rope, too.
Rrru-eeth sighed, and Kait pointed to the chair across from her
bunk. Sit. Talk. We have some time, surely.
With obvious reluctance, Rrru-eeth took the offered chair and
said, My people were from the mountains to the southeast of
Tarrajanta-Kevalta, what you would maybe know as Lake Jirin in
Manarkas.
Kait nodded. The Galweigh Family had holdings in the New
Territories south of Lake Jirin, which was one of the lakes the
Wizards War had created.
I lived there until I was about six, I suppose. Maybe a
little younger. Then diaga came to our town, and claimed all the
people in it as their slaves.
Kait said, The diaga? Thats humans like
. . . she was going to say me, but at the
last instant, she changed that to the captain? And
Jayti?
Yes. Our people were good fighters, and they stood against
the diaga, but your peoples weapons were better. Most of our
fighters died. This left the injured, and the old, and the young,
and a few of the women who were pregnant at the time and not able
to fight. The diaga gathered all of us and took us to the New
Territories. We went first to Old Jirin, then to Badaella, then to
Vanimar, and finally for me, at least to Glasmar. At
each stop, the diaga sold such of us as they could. No one had much
interest in a child as small as I was until we reached Glasmar, and
there, at last, a buyer found me.
Her voice had grown harsh at those last few words; Kait had the
idea that the buyer had not been some kind family who needed a
companion for their young daughter. She was right.
A man named Tiroth Andrata bought me. He also bought my
younger sister, who was the only other member of my family to
survive, and two other little girls from our village. Wed
been acquired to be trained as concubines for those among the upper
classes of Glasmar who had . . . exotic tastes. Tiroth
Andrata apparently had a thriving business in exotic concubines; he
became wealthy from his trade, and met his own needs at the same
time. He trained us all himself, you see. He was very fond of small
children, and perhaps fondest of all of little Jerrpu
girls.
Jerrpu?
My kind of person. As you call yourself human.
Kait swallowed and nodded to show she understood. So he
. . . trained you . . .
Trained. A weak word for what he did.
Rrru-eeth smiled thinly. Oh, yes. He trained us regularly. We
learned all sorts of techniques for pleasing those who would one
day be our masters. Bagga, which is what he had us call him, was
especially fond of teaching us to take pain and humiliation, which
he said was the ultimate form of giving pleasure. She looked
away and her eyes narrowed again. We spent long years with
him, my sister and I. The other two from our group he sold, and all
of those children that he bought afterward, as well. The two of us
he kept until we were no longer little girls at all but you
see, we had become very good at taking pain and humiliation, and he
spent a great deal of time and effort finding new ways to give it
out. He told us he kept us because we were stronger than the little
children that he could sell for a better price, and he didnt
want to risk breaking one of them while developing new training
when he could practice on us.
Kait closed her eyes and rubbed her temples. She felt sick.
Shed taken the existence of servants and slaves for granted
all her life; they were the silent faces in the hallways, bringing
things or taking them away, making sure rooms stayed clean and beds
had fresh linen and food came on time and tasted the way it was
supposed to. Theyd never had voices to her before.
Theyd never seemed entirely real.
Now she thought of the slaves that belonged to her own Family
they were different because in Ibera they had to be human,
of course, not Scarred, but they were still slaves. Among the
Galweighs, she could think of several men who bought child slaves
regularly and sold them to their associates when the children
reached adolescence. Shed never given much thought to the
purposes those children served, nor to where they had come from or
what became of them when they grew up. There were things Family
didnt discuss, and how relatives used their slaves was one of
them.
She looked over at Rrru-eeth and bit her lip. She was ready for
the happy ending, the one in which Rrru-eeth won her freedom and
found love. So what happened? How did it all end?
During training one day, Bagga hurt my sister more than
she could take. She died. Rrru-eeths voice was flat.
I saw him kill her, so I killed him. I hurt him first, using
everything I had learned from years of torture. Then I killed him
very slowly. Then I took the children he was training to sell, and
dressed them, and stole as much of Baggas money as I could
find in his house, and marched the children through the streets of
Glasmar down to the docks. I could find only one captain who would
take us aboard without the childrens papers. She jerked
her chin in the direction of the ships helm. Ian
Draclas. He wanted a lot of money more than I had. Its
risky transporting slaves if you dont have a slavers
seal or slavers papers, and of course neither of us would be
able to prove that the children were free, because they
werent. So I offered myself without wages for as long as it
would take to pay for their passage to safety. He hired someone who
made papers for all of them. And for me. He took them someplace
where they could live as free children, and found them families. I
found my own family here. I found love here, and freedom from pain
and humiliation and torture. And as long as I never step on land
ruled by a Family again, I should be safe enough.
Sick, Kait closed her eyes and covered her face with her hands.
Im sorry, she whispered.
You dont owe me an apology.
Im sorry you suffered. Im
. . . How could anyone make restitution for the
pain Rrru-eeth had suffered? How could she be marked for death,
when the ones who had deserved death had been the men who killed
her family to take her as a slave, and the men who had sold her,
and the man who eventually bought her? Where was the justice that
would champion such an outcome?
The Reborn would free the slaves, Kait realized. He would bring
peace, and justice, and he would remove Rrru-eeths pain.
Im sorry that someone could do that to you, and
leave you to blame. Kait stood and rested a hand on
Rrru-eeths shoulder. Thats all going to change.
All of it.
* * *
Ry paced along the deck, forward, then aft, then forward again,
in no mood to talk with anyone. She was out there. Still far ahead
of him, getting closer to her goal.
He tasted the salt spray on his lips, and stared out at the sea.
Clouds built along the southern horizon, a line of black that
looked for the moment like a distant mountain range. The sun
dropped closer to the western horizon. A pod of whales had run
alongside the Wind Treasure for nearly two days, until
sometime after midday they had either tired of their game, or lost
interest in the humans and their ship, or had been lured away by
schools of fish; in any case, they had veered off and Ry had seen
nothing alive in the ocean the rest of the day.
The captain said the clouds looked like the leading edge of
trouble. Hed set the ships course more directly
northward and added extra sails. The change might move them toward
safety, but it moved them away from Kait.
Ry grew impatient. He wearied of the waiting, of the bleakness
of the sea, of wanting her and not having her. She was a drug, and
the longer she was out of his system, the more he lusted after
her.
In their cabin, Valard and Yanth played querrist, and Jaim wrote
a long entry in his journal, and Karyl played his guitarra and
wrote another of those sad love songs he used to lure women into
bed with him. Only Trev had been out on the deck since the evening
meal, and he kept his distance, watching Ry without saying
anything.
He stalked forward, then aft. Lately, the visions he saw through
her eyes when he closed his own had changed. Now, late in the
night, he saw a man oddly familiar-looking, whose presence
in her bed was somehow more infuriating for that tantalizing
familiarity. They were lovers, Kait and this stranger.
Ry knew about the Karnee drives. Hed subsumed his own by
the use of magic, but at a fierce cost. When the lusts were worst,
he quenched them with a spell but when he did, he burned
inside, and suffered terrible rages, and blinding headaches, and
Shift came at him harder and faster. Still, he did not give in to
the lust, which was why, when his mother demanded he serve in his
fathers stead, she could not trot forward half a dozen of his
little bastards for him to legitimize.
Kait showed no signs of knowing Wolf magic. So she couldnt
know the spell that suppressed the lust. Her Karnee desires ran
unchecked.
Ry didnt care.
She was his. Hed claimed her, his magic had marked
her, she did not belong with another man. And when he closed his
eyes in the night and saw her touching that stranger, and kissing
him, and bedding him, he made himself a promise.
When he caught up with Kait and claimed her, Ry intended to rip
out that strangers heart and crush it in his hand.
Chapter 26
Danya twisted in her sleep and cried out, and in doing so
woke herself. Another nightmare, another return to the dungeon and
the Sabirs, to her Familys abandonment of her, to torture and
horror. Waking was no better, for as she shook off the nightmare,
the reality of unending touching by invisible fingers became
stronger. Invisible eyes spied on her; invisible strangers reached
inside of her and caressed the child she carried. Those strangers
promised lies love and safety and security, concern,
compassion, joy. She fought them off when they tried to smother her
with their false comfort; she was unable to push them away from the
bastard babe.
Their presence had been constant for days. She couldnt
stand it. She wanted to scream, to destroy things, to hurt someone,
but as before, when she had been the Sabirs prisoner, she was
helpless. She shivered beneath the fur robe, but not from cold.
Gently, child, Luercas said. Gently. Your fear
wont help you, and it wont change anything. Let them
have their moment, and dont spend yourself in wasted
resistance. Your moment will come. For now, get up and come with
me; I want to show you something wonderful.
Who keeps touching me? she asked.
Hush. Not here, not now. Be satisfied that they wont
hurt you. We can discuss who they are and what they want soon.
Soon. In the meantime, come. What I have to show you will bring you
joy.
Luercas didnt understand the sense of violation that those
constant touches brought back. He said the things that had killed
him had been much like what had happened to her, but for him to
tell her to accept to quit fighting he proved to her
that he didnt really remember.
Nevertheless, doing something would be better than lying there
in the darkness with nothing to think about but the unending
probings of the strangers. She rose and let the robe fall to the
floor. She pulled on the fur chaps her hosts wife, Tayae, had
made for her, and the modified fur tunic that had been a gift from
the women in the next house over the tunic that made room
for the spikes erupting from her spine and joints, and somehow
emphasized her hideous deformities and she tugged on the
straw-insulated fur boots that kept her feet warm but still
permitted her claws to project. She listened to Tayae and Goerg and
their children sleeping in the loft; she made no noise as she
crawled down the passageway that led from the main room, where she
slept, to the outdoors. Her hosts woke easily, and though they
would never question her activities, she would feel obligated to
give them some sort of explanation, in her still-halting Karganese,
of where she was going and why.
Outside, the long night of the arctic winter still reigned. The
stars glittered with cold brilliance, close and malevolent. The
snow crunched beneath the flat, hard skin soles of her boots, the
only sound other than the wind whistling across distant drifts.
Set out along the main path. Follow it to the river. When you
reach the river, cross and turn right along the bluffs.
She was coming to know the area well enough. Because she
didnt know what else to do, shed offered her services
to the villagers after a few days, and with some
nervousness, the Kargan women had asked her to help them carry
stored food from the villages outlying caches back to the
underground houses. Shed accepted, and had been on her way
back to the village with them, loaded with food, when a pack of
lorrags attacked.
The lorrags were Scarred monsters that might have started out as
wolves or bears, but might as easily have been rabbits before the
Wizards War twisted them into nightmares. They burrowed
beneath the snow where they could and, where they could not, moved
on top of it on four wide, well-padded feet, nearly invisible in
their heavy white winter coats. They were terrifying beasts,
cannier than wolves though a bit smaller, lean and fast and tough.
The four lorrags that erupted out of their tunnels in the snow had
given no warning of their presence beforehand, and had Danya not
been there with teeth and claws at the ready when they struck, one
or more of the Kargan women would have died.
That none had, and that the village had lost none of its food,
either, had won Danya both gratitude and complete acceptance. No
one cared that she bore different Scars than they. She became a
part of every food-carrying expedition; she became an invited
companion during hide preparation and sewing sessions, though her
hands were not capable of holding the tiny bone needles or of
threading the sinews through the little eyes. She was more
physically suited to hunting, and the Kargan men welcomed her, too,
and took her with them. Her nose was better than theirs and her
speed over short distances allowed her to run down game that would
otherwise have escaped. She added to the wealth of the village in
measurable ways, and the Kargans showed their appreciation at every
turn. The women gave her gifts; the adults brought her into their
council circles. The village adopted her as one of its own in a
smoke-hut ceremony, and the boys who were too young to hunt and the
men who were too old or injured were renovating an abandoned house
for her as they did for their own children who reached adulthood
and stayed within the village. Until they finished the renovations
and purified it with ceremonies, she continued to live with
Goergs family, and to collect her welcome gifts, and to
alternately hunt with the men and work with the women.
She remained bitter. She did not forgive her Family, she did not
forgive the Sabirs, and she could not forget the Scars that made
her a monster, or the unborn child that had been forced upon her.
Acceptance into the Kargan clan made the sting more bitter, because
she could not forget that the Kargans were monsters like her. She
could not forget that she could never go home that she was
outcast forever from the society of humans, and that the people who
should have welcomed her never would again. Yet
. . . if she could somehow make her way through Ibera
without being killed for being an abomination, and if she could
reach the Galweigh Wolves, they would take her in and set her in
the circle with the rest of their Scarred to work magic. She would
have to hide in the darkness, her only contact with the world she
had once loved through the eyes of the young Galweigh Wolves who
had not yet been set in circle and who therefore remained free.
Every human from her past, though, had been taken away from her,
and nothing she could do could ever win even one of them back. She
was dead to them, and they to her.
Accompanied by such thoughts, she crunched through the darkness
over the shell of compressed snow, breaking through occasionally,
and quickly reached the river. The Kargans called it the Sokema,
which meant Our Blessing. It cut like a raw wound
through the rolling white-on-white tundra, a darker line of black
in the darkness. Wind blew thin curvettes of snow across its
mirror-slick black-ice surface, but the snow didnt stick. She
walked out onto its surface without hesitation, not worried about
it holding her weight. Shed helped the village women chop ice
to reach the running water beneath they used the holes both
to draw up cooking and drinking water and so they could set the
live lines that gave them fresh fish to supplement the dried fish
and smoked meat and the occasional fresh game. She knew from that
experience that the frozen surface was thicker than she was
tall.
The novelty of ice, like the novelty of snow, had worn off
quickly. It became just another obstacle to contend with its
slickness offered little purchase to her boots, and would have
offered even less to her bare, hard-scaled feet. She scrabbled with
claws splayed out; she kept her arms out for balance; she wished
once again that she could master the art of skimming across the
surface on the narrow carved-bone blades that the Kargans used, but
her unwieldy, Scarred body seemed unable to accommodate itself to
the graceful, flowing movements required.
Reaching the bluffs on the far side took both time and effort,
and she was panting by the time she arrived.
She didnt remember the directions Luercas had given her.
Which way now?
Turn to your right. Climb the bluffs, but not all the way to
the top. Follow along them just below the ridge so you wont
show against the skyline, should anyone decide to look for
you.
Danya wondered why Luercas thought anyone might care to look for
her. The villagers sense of privacy, from everything she had
so far seen, was acute. If she went out for a walk, they refrained
from asking anything about her destination or what had happened
while she was out; they did not ask her where she was from; they
did not question who she was. Early on, they had offered her their
own names, but did not ask for hers. When she eventually told them,
they treated her name as a gift. She couldnt imagine them
looking for her unless they thought she had come to grief. She
suggested as much to Luercas.
The surprise I have for you is something the villagers are
aware of, though only in a distant way. None of them has ever seen
it; none of them would ever dare. Their superstitions make them
fear this place, though neither they nor their parents nor their
grandparents nor their great-grandparents have ventured to test
those superstitions against reality. If they realize you have gone
to In-kanmerea, their name for the place, they will fear for your
life, and for your soul. He paused, then added, In-kanmerea
means House of the Devil Ghosts. I could give you their
beliefs about it, I suppose, but they have no basis in fact, so why
bother? Better you see the place for yourself. She felt his
next pause as a sigh. I dont know that any of the Kargans
would be brave enough to attempt your rescue if they knew you had
entered . . . but I would not gamble against that; you
seem to have made yourself beloved in a very short time.
She said nothing. She clambered along the bluffs and considered
the idea of the pragmatic Kargans being superstitious about any
sort of wonderful place. Such an idea seemed to run counter to
everything shed seen of them so far. Their fears seemed to be
of those things that offered real danger to them, like the lorrags,
or like the sudden ice storms that had already killed one young man
since she arrived. But people were contradictions. It was their
nature. She assumed the fact would be true even about almost-people
like the Scarred.
Like me.
The bluffs carried her around a bend and out of sight of the
village. Immediately, Luercas told her, Now climb up to the
ridge. Stay along the river In-kanmerea will be easy to miss
otherwise.
It was almost easy to miss in spite of her following his
directions exactly. She almost walked by the entranceway that lay
at arms length to her left. White on white in the starlight,
with the same delicate glitter as the snow all around it, it could
have been a large, oddly formed drift. The snow that did drift into
the corners of the long curve of stairs burrowing into the
snow-glazed tundra furthered the illusion.
Go down. Slowly; the stairs may be icy. A warming spell cast
on them prevented that once, but if snowdrifts can accumulate, the
spell must have fallen apart.
Danya looked down into the darkness, uneasy. The Kargans feared
things that were dangerous; they waited to discover the danger of
the unknown before fearing it. Had they acted in any other way, she
would have died when she fell through the roof into Goergs
house. At the mouth of the House of the Devil Ghosts, she
hesitated, and presented Luercas with a plausible excuse for her
hesitation. If the spell ever worked, it should still work.
According to the Law of Magical Inertia, spells in force tend to
remain in force unless acted on by an opposite force.
You quote your teacher well enough. You simply arent
applying the rule. Remember the spell that Scarred you and threw
you all the way from Ibera to here. The energy of that spell sent
shock waves across most of Matrin, if not all of it. When it did
so, it stirred any number of latent spells, and stilled any number
of active ones. I would almost wager that In-kanmereas spells
were active until you arrived. Otherwise, these steps would have
cracked and weathered centuries before this.
Still she stood at the top of the stairway. Hesitant.
Afraid.
Luercas grew impatient. Hurry, girl. The wonders of an age
await you.
Did she want to see the wonders of an age? She put one foot on
the first step and stopped. She didnt hesitate beyond that
point, however. Shed come this far already, and the
architecture of the stairway and the smooth white material it was
made of gave her subtle reassurance; such stairways filled Galweigh
House. The stairway led down into one of the homes of the Ancients,
she guessed. Or perhaps a public building. In either case, it would
offer her an opportunity to surround herself, however briefly, with
things that reminded her of home.
She descended steadily, allowing her eyes to adjust to the
increasingly impenetrable darkness. By the time she estimated that
shed made three complete turns around the spiral, however, no
light remained, and even she, with her incredibly sensitive vision,
was blind.
You want me to keep going?
Youll find accessible light within. You havent
much farther to go in the darkness, and youre in no
danger.
She didnt know that she believed him, but it didnt
really matter. She trailed a hand along the wall to her right and
held the other out in front of her face to keep from stepping into
a solid wall, and she felt for each step below her before
committing her weight to it, and in that manner traveled what
seemed to be another full spiral.
The hand in front of her face proved unnecessary. The soft,
slightly hollow sound she made in descending the stairway changed
in both volume and tone as she neared the end, warning her, and she
felt the door in front of her with hearing and her sensitivity to
pressure and the movement of wind before she felt it with her
fingertips. Im here, she said.
Yes. Open the door and go in.
Are there any traps set?
Intelligent of you to ask. However, no. The door will open as
any of the outside doors at your Family House would open. You might
have noticed
She cut him off. That this is an Ancient place. Yes.
Id noticed. She ran her fingertips across the front of
the door until they reached its midline. From the midline, she let
them slide up to the cold, slick curve of the latch. She pressed
upward on the latch with one hand and rested her palm firmly on the
pressure pad just beneath it.
After a brief hesitation, the door swung inward. She stepped in,
and warm, stale air filled her nostrils. Everything smelled of dust
and long-closed spaces. She could feel the immensity of the room in
which she stood, but she could not see anything; absolute darkness
offered her no markers by which to guide herself.
One step into this and I could lose my way
completely, she said. I could become turned around,
could lose sight of the door, could be trapped in here until I died
. . .
You could, I suppose, if you didnt activate the lights.
Youll find the pressure pads for them on the wall to the
right of you. Just reach out.
She did. Her hand brushed through something soft that crumbled
to dust at her touch, and came to rest on a series of raised pads.
She pressed them, and thousands of warm, shimmering lights sprang
to life overhead and down long corridors that spread away in half a
dozen directions. The lights reflected through sparkling prisms as
numerous as the stars, and covered the floor with uncountable
rainbows. The floor was done primarily in a rich, dark blue stone
speckled with gold; inlays of white marble and a stone as pale as
green seafoam in the shape of waves turned the entire vast expanse
into an ocean. The reflected sparkles gave the scene a life that
made her feel she was walking across water.
She gasped.
Its beautiful.
The Ancients could not have intended In-kanmerea as a private
residence. Its vast lobby could have held ten thousand guests at
one time, and was designed to direct traffic toward the broad
branching corridors. Fountains shaped like delicate ships dotted
the immense floor. No water spouted from them, but Danya expected
that they worked as the fountains in Galweigh House worked, and
that if she felt along their bases for hidden panels, she would be
able to locate the pressure pads that brought them to life.
She was tempted to do so, but she refrained. Luercas wanted her
to see something, and she didnt think he would have been so
insistent about bringing her to In-kanmerea to see the pretty
fountains. He had something bigger in mind.
And in fact, he said, Go to the first corridor on your left.
Youre going to follow it back until it ends in a terminal
intersection. When you reach the place where you can go either
right or left, go right. You want to enter the last door on the
right in that corridor. Do hurry we have much to do.
She would have time to explore the rest of the place in the
future. For the moment, she did as he asked her and hurried.
The corridors ran for unbelievable distances. She must have
passed a hundred doors to either side of her before she reached the
end of the first. When she turned to look behind her, she could see
nothing but corridor no sign at all of the vast lobby
shed left behind. And as she looked to the left and the right
down the intersecting corridor, she couldnt see any sign that
either of them ended.
She felt small and young and temporary, overwhelmed by the great
age and vast expanses of the Ancient place. She picked up her pace,
anxious to reach a part of the building that was built to a scale
she felt comfortable with. By the time she finally got there, her
lope had become a hard trot that had in turn metamorphosed into a
dead-out, panicked run. She leaned against the last door on the
right, breathing hard, until Luercas told her to open it. His voice
held a condescending chuckle that she didnt like.
She let herself in, and found the pressure panel that
illuminated the room. She looked around. Unlike the lobby and the
corridors, this room had not been designed for beauty. It was
large, circular, sunken into the ground in tiers. In the center of
the lowest circle a raised dais sported a round stool beneath a
dome on pillars. None of the rooms appointments
neither the rows of utilitarian seats in the surrounding tiers, nor
the plainness of the central seat and dome, nor the flat,
too-bright lights overhead, said anything but that this was a place
where people came to work.
What sort of work?
Go down to the dais. Sit outside the edge of the circle, but
allow your head to rest beneath the dome.
Odd instructions. Danya shrugged and carried them out.
The reason for them became immediately and shockingly clear. The
sensation of being touched or spied on by the unknown, unwelcome
watchers, vanished immediately. She could still feel, though only
as if from a great distance, their connection to the child she
carried in her womb, but even that felt impersonal and not
threatening.
Can you still hear me?
Yes.
Good. Dont move if you pull the rest of your
body under the dome, the criminals who have been spying on you will
realize that theyve lost their contact with you. As it stands
now, theyre so tied up with your baby that they dont
notice youve escaped their spying. But if you give away the
fact that youve managed to escape them, however temporarily,
theyll move the stars in the heavens to force their way back.
They might already be strong enough that nothing you could do would
stop them.
Who are they?
A cabal of wizards who have hidden themselves and their goal
of world overthrow for over a thousand years, while waiting for the
return of the wizard who led them the first time. Theyve
found their leader now, and theyll do anything they have to
do to get to him.
And what does this have to do with me?
Youre carrying this wizard in your belly,
Danya.
She didnt want to hear that. Bad enough she was pregnant.
Bad enough the horrors by which she had gotten pregnant. Now a pack
of rogue Wolves had claimed the bedamned fetus she carried as their
savior-to-be-born, and had found a way to control it, and to watch
her.
There are herbs that will end a pregnancy, she
said.
There are. But that would be the wrong choice. If you tried
to take such herbs, these wizards would see you as a threat and
stop you from taking them. Further, they might wipe your mind
entirely they dont need your mind in order for your
body to bring forth their hero. That is why I had to get you here
so quickly; you were beginning to make your resentment of their
intrusion too clear, and you might have done something to fight
against them before I could safely tell you the danger they pose to
you. And they would have destroyed you. I wont let them
destroy you, Danya. Not if I can stop them.
She felt sick. Why this baby? Why me, Luercas?
Havent I been through enough?
Thats precisely why you. The infant you carry inside of
you is the product of the mating of a Sabir Wolf who is also
Karnee, and a Galweigh Wolf a mating that would have created
tremendous magical potential under ordinary circumstances. But the
circumstances of your early pregnancy were anything but normal. You
were the channel through which one of the largest focused bursts of
magic since the days of the Wizards War grounded the
magic that Scarred you also Scarred the unborn infant. His Scarring
may not show on the outside, but it will make his body the perfect
house for the returned spirit of the long-dead leader of these
monsters who seek to control you. And the world.
What do I do, then?
For now you do nothing. The time will come when youll
be able to regain complete control of your body, and perhaps wrest
the baby away from them. You probably have no way to save the
child, even if you wanted to. But you can save yourself if
youre careful. Pretend you dont notice them, and in
those times when their presence is so obvious that you cant
pretend you dont notice them, pretend you dont mind
or even that you welcome them.
And never forget theyre dangerous.
Danya closed her eyes. It would be like trying to pretend that
she hadnt minded being raped. Would she be able to do that,
even to save her own life?
Luercas broke into her reverie tentatively. Theres
something else I need to tell you now.
What?
Ill be near you, and Ill be watching over you,
but the only time Ill be able to speak to you is when you
come here.
So she was to be robbed of her guardian spirit and protector at
the same time that she submitted to the invasion of her body and
mind. She shouldnt have been surprised.
Why?
Because I can only protect you if my presence remains secret.
Once your enemies know of me, theyll attack me and
weak as I am, theyll destroy me.
Theyll never find out about you from me.
Then well win against them. Eventually, at
least.
* * *
Light split the Veil, and spiraled inward like a galaxy being
unborn, and the Star Council reconvened.
This time, however, the excitement and enthusiasm of the first
meeting were absent. Dafril brought the meeting to order with
ritual greeting, but immediately said, Has anyone found
Luercas?
Above the babble of negatives, one voice said, We would find
him more easily if we could compel our avatars instead of simply
suggesting.
Patience, Dafril said. My avatar is close to the
Mirror of Souls, and mere months away from returning it to
civilization. Sartrigs avatar pursues, believing himself to
be capturing the Mirror so that he can re-embody Sartrig, whom he
believes to be his dead brother. If my avatar falters or fails,
Sartrigs will take over. We have a larger problem than our
powerlessness or Luercass continued absence that
problem is why Ive called this meeting.
What could be worse? Werris asked.
Solander has returned.
The councillors greeted that statement with dead silence.
Finally one ventured to ask, Are you certain?
As certain as I am of my own existence. Dafril thought
the question stupid and impertinent.
But we destroyed Solander. Banished him to the outer
Veil.
Time passes, Dafril said, and he has found his way
home. The Falcons are not extinct, either, and have located him,
and are beginning to answer his summons. My avatar had contact with
him. He is not yet born, but he is already embodied.
That horrified silence again. This time no one broke it. So
Dafril said, With Solander present, we face the possibility of
our own demise. Therefore, before we panic about the missing
Luercas or worry about our own weakness, we must find a way to
destroy Solander. No other priority must come before that.
Chapter 27
I think I could stand beside you for the rest of my
life, Ian said.
Kait smiled up at him, and reached up to brush a strand of hair
from his cheek. They stood on the foredeck of the Peregrine,
watching as the ship moved out of the narrow channel between two
islands and into the clear water beyond. Youd tire of
me before long, she said. She kept her voice light and
playful. I wear on everyone after a while. Too many
quirks.
I havent seen any quirks, Ian said. He slid an
arm around her waist and squeezed.
She refused to give in to the sadness of knowing that if he knew
what she really was, he would be repulsed. Pretending that he loved
her, or that anyone like him could love her, made such a
pleasant fantasy that she wanted to hang on to it as long as she
could. No, she agreed. You havent.
Then she changed the subject. Ive never seen anyplace
as beautiful as this.
She wasnt exaggerating at all when she said that. The
islands that rose behind and to the sides of the Peregrine
were like uncut emeralds rising from a glass-smooth surface of
sapphire. Onyx cliffs and beaches that glittered like black
diamonds only emphasized the lushness of the terrain. The island
forests grew densely at the bases, leaving pillars of stone to jut
above tree lines. In the softer, gentler light of this latitude, a
slight breeze set the leaves of the trees trembling and sparkling
so that the trees appeared to be decorated with silver coins.
It is lovely, Ian said, but his brow creased and he
frowned thoughtfully. But I dont like the stillness of
the water.
The breeze was enough to keep the Peregrines sails
filled, and to keep her moving steadily. Kait said as much.
It isnt the wind. Its the islands. And the
water. Ive seen something similar once . . .
He pulled away from her and moved to the rail; he looked down at
the water, then back at the islands again. Crow! he
shouted.
Perry the Crow answered from his nest in the high riggings.
Capn?
Are we out of this chain of islands yet?
We look to be.
Then can you tell which way the chain runs to either side
of us?
Perry shaded his eyes and turned first left, then right.
The line of the islands curves north-northeast to the north
of us and south-southeast to the south of us.
Kait noticed that the crewmen all over the ship had grown still;
she felt as if they had drawn in a single simultaneous breath and
were, unaccountably, holding it. Whats wrong?
Ian didnt even look at her. He shouted, Describe the
curves.
A pause. Then, Haw, shit! Were inside a
circle, Capn! A big one!
Ians response was immediate. About! Bring us about
and get us out of here! Now! And the crew moved with similar
terrified speed.
In the center of a circle. Two possibilities existed. The
first was that the cone of an enormous submerged volcano lay
beneath them, its broken rim rising out of the water to form
islands. That was the harmless possibility. The deadly possibility
was that they had sailed into an uncharted Wizards
Circle.
Kait yearned in that moment for just one god to whom she could
cry out. But what god would have ears for the prayers of the
cursed? If they were in a Wizards Circle . . .
The ship failed to come around. The Peregrine seemed to
have grown a will of her own; she sailed straight on across the
glass-smooth water, heading straight east. Turn her, damn
you! Ian screamed. Turn her, if you love your
lives! He bolted for the great wheel, leaving Kait standing
alone on the foredeck, staring down at the water from which a mist
now began to rise. Soft and pale, opalescent, reflecting colors
from soft pink to pale green and blue, gently swirling, it formed
along the surface of the mirror-smooth ocean in little
cloudlets.
One of the human crewmen was yelling for the parnissa; some of
the Scarred had prostrated themselves on the deck and were praying
in their own tongues.
Immune to the labors of the captain and the crew, the
Peregrine kept to her course, as if guided eastward by the
invisible hands of the gods themselves. But Kait knew the guiding
hands belonged to nothing as benign as gods.
The parnissa raced out onto the deck, her hands full of the
sacred implements of her calling. While men and women, both Scarred
and human, swarmed around her, she laid out an altar on the
ships deck and dropped to her knees on the planking. Then, in
a trembling, singsong voice, she began to chant Lodans
Office for the Lost. Lodan was the month-goddess of love and
loss, and her office was one of grieving for those already dead and
beyond the reach of the living. Kait decided the parnissa was a
pessimist.
But their situation, already grave, worsened quickly. The mists
grew out of the surface of the sea like ghosts rising from their
graves, billowing upward and expanding outward into an
ever-expanding, ever-thickening sea of prism-tinted white. The
sails fell slack and hung flat and empty, but the ships
forward speed increased. And Kait picked up a knife-edged keening,
clear at the upper range of her hearing, and felt her skin prickle
and her heart begin to race.
The crew had ceased trying to turn the ship. Some stood on the
deck watching, as she did, too transfixed by the impending disaster
to move. Most knelt and wept, or prayed. Ian stood behind the
ships wheel, berating the gods in a loud voice, and
alternately threatening them and bargaining with them.
A Wizards Circle. One of the places where the worst and
largest of the spells cast during the Wizards War had fallen.
Most likely a city had once stood where the Peregrine now
sailed; a target for the vengeance of power-hungry madmen. Where
unfathomable ocean lay, humans had once worked and lived and loved
and hoped, in houses built on hills or plains solid ground,
now gone. And gone with it the lives of those who had lived there,
and everything they held dear.
Humans outside the range of total destruction when the spells
fell had become the Scarred, and the viable offspring of those poor
damned creatures were Scarred still; monsters born of evil not of
their own making. Within the hell-charmed circles, land, buildings,
and people had vanished. And what had become of them, no one knew.
The circles remained potent. And to Kaits knowledge, no one
who ever went into one came out again.
Mist wraiths blotted out the sky and closed the ship in on all
sides as if they had packed it in cotton. Kait heard a series of
splashes, followed by voices coming through the fog. The magic-born
cloud had thickened to the point where day became night; only if
she looked straight up could she find any proof that somewhere the
sun still burned and somewhere light still existed. The fog changed
the character of sound, making everything seem equally distant, or
perhaps equally near. The praying crewmen on deck and the parnissa
mourning the souls of men and women not yet dead sounded neither
nearer nor more distant than the liquid, gobbling, gurgling cries
that almost formed recognizable words. Because they were hidden
within the embrace of the fog, Kaits mind created images of
the owners of those horrible voices: corpses long gone to rot,
their vocal cords shredded and their bloated lungs almost full of
water. The fear shed felt when she faced Hasmals magic
paled next to the formless dread that washed over her at that
moment.
The mist began to move onto the ship then; light tendrils
dropped down from overhead and crept up onto the deck from below.
In the mist-born darkness, these looked solid, like white vines, or
the tentacles of the corpse of some sea monster. The gibbering
voices grew louder.
But the mist fingers did not reach out to anyone or touch
anyone. As soon as they came within reach of the ship, they lost
all form and condensed into mere drops of water.
Kait watched that happen again and again, and let out a breath
she didnt realize shed been holding. She almost
laughed. Something about the ship kept the horrors at bay. Hasmal,
perhaps, working some great shielding spell from deep within the
heart of the ship. Or . . . it didnt matter. The
ship continued to speed on its course, and the animated mist
continued to dissolve before it could attack, and soon soon
they would have to sail beyond the reaches of the
Wizards Circle.
She watched others realize that the magic of the circle was
impotent. She listened as the weeping stopped, as the prayers
changed from terrified pleading to gratitude, as imprecations to
the heavens became nervous laughter at death narrowly averted. A
few of the crew members embraced.
A light breeze caught the sails and they filled slowly, and the
ship, already moving quickly, picked up speed. At that, the
Peregrines crew sent up a jubilant cheer. All they needed
to make their joy complete was to see the fog lift and the islands
on the other side of the circle come over the horizon.
Perry the Crow yelled, So much for the legends, and
danced across the deck.
Through a growing puddle of water.
Which rose up to embrace him as he touched it.
Crawled over his body lightning-fast, covering him with a
bubblelike film.
Inside of the film, he began to dissolve. Liquefy. As he melted,
he wept and cried out, his voice increasingly indistinguishable
from the voices echoing out of the fog. Several of the crew members
tried to help him. Tried to dry him off, to free him of the thing
that killed him. As they touched him, the bubble whipped across the
bridge of their arms and coated the would-be rescuers.
They glistened in the darkness glistened, and screamed.
Their anguish and their fear infected everyone, including Kait.
Shift surged through her blood, and in spite of every trick of mind
control shed ever learned, her body betrayed her and altered
into its Karnee form.
She looked around for a place to hide, where she could die
unseen, away not just from the danger but from the crew. Both the
human and the animal parts of her cowered at this horror that she
could not understand mist that hunted, water that devoured
its prey. She feared death, and she didnt want to die as a
beast. More than that, though, she didnt want anyone to see
her as a beast, to know that she was as Scarred as any of them, but
in ways that made her an outcast wherever she went.
But then Ian shouted, Off the deck! Get below, everyone,
and close the hatches. Well seal the doors with wax.
Hurry. In the stampede that followed, one of the growing
puddles of water enveloped the parnissa. Ian lunged for her without
thinking.
Kait was faster. Across the deck in two bounds, she catapulted
into Ians chest, preventing him from touching the dying,
dissolving parnissa. She growled and sank her teeth into his upper
arm and dragged him toward the hatch down which the rest of the
crew fled.
A monster has the captain, someone screamed, and
others took up the cry.
Kill it! Kait heard. Kill it! And
interspersed with those cries, one voice that yelled,
Its too late to save him. Just dont let it in
here.
One voice cut clearly through the rabble. Rrru-eeth yelled,
She saved the captain! Dont touch her!
Kait dragged Ian to the hatch and tried to shove him in, but
hands reached up and grabbed both of them and pulled them down into
the gangway.
Already the crew had gathered the ships stores of candles
and wax, and when the hatch closed, men and women were already
shoving tapers lengthwise along the space between door and doorway,
and melting the wax into place with the flames from oil lamps. Kait
had no hands, and so got herself out of the way. She found a dark
corner and huddled there, miserable, ashamed of what she was and
humiliated to have been found out.
No one paid her any attention they all were too busy
sealing the door and checking belowdecks for leaks.
She wondered if they would kill her when they finished taking
care of their own safety. The humans among the crew would surely
want to, and the Scarred were no more likely to want her in their
midst she knew of no people in the world who did not revile
skinshifters. The fact that her sort could appear to be one thing
but in truth be something entirely different made them universally
hated, or so it seemed to Kait.
The wax in the doorway seemed to work. Nothing came through, no
one else screamed or began to dissolve. Silence reigned belowdecks
everyone listened for some sign that more danger came, or
that, conversely, the danger had passed and they could return to
the deck and their work. The voices of the sea still cried out,
their anguish muted by the barriers of wood all around the
survivors. Kait heard them without difficulty, and knew that
Rrru-eeth did, as well. Rrru-eeth took it upon herself to keep the
rest of the crew informed that they were still out there the
sounds were apparently too faint for human ears to pick up over the
creaking of the ship and through the barriers of wood.
Kait fell asleep while still in Karnee form, her head tucked
beneath her paws, her hind feet along the tip of her nose, her tail
held close to her belly. She woke in human form, aching from the
inhuman posture shed retained even after she Shifted back.
Ian sat beside her.
I wanted to thank you for saving my life, he
said.
She nodded dully, in no mood for thanks or kindness. Post-Shift,
the depression and the hunger overwhelmed her, and the fear of
attack, now that everyone knew what she was, gnawed at her. She
wanted to eat, and hide, and sleep. Nothing more. Outside, she
could still hear the lost-soul wailing of the sea; it had taken on
more ominous tones, and the ship rocked and heaved from side to
side, tossed by the angry water.
Are you sick? he asked.
Hungry. One of the symptoms of my . . .
She paused for thought, then said, Of my curse. I get hungry
. . . after.
Go down to the storeroom and get something to eat.
Whatever you want, as much as you want. Ill be here when you
get back. As she nodded and rose, he added, Be careful.
If the water can get in anywhere, it will be down there.
Ill be careful. She felt dull, slow,
dim-witted. She thought if any of the deadly living water had
leaked aboard the Peregrine, she would be too sluggish and
stupid to evade it. But hunger overrode any dim sense of
self-preservation she could muster; she went past the crew, who
stared silently at her, and climbed down the narrow gangway to the
deck just above the bilge.
She knew her way to the storeroom; that was, after all, where
she and Hasmal had magically touched the Reborn. When she thought
about the Reborn, her mood lifted a little; that in itself seemed
like a miracle to her. She considered him and found hope within
herself, even in her worst moment.
She should have realized earlier that she hadnt seen
Hasmal. Only when she found him sprawled on the floor of the
storeroom, bled white, did she realize she hadnt seen him
since the fog began to build. Hed been doing magic. His
implements lay in disarray on the deck beside him; mirror, empty
blood-bowl, tourniquet and bleeding knife, and several objects she
hadnt seen before and thus didnt recognize. At first
she thought he was dead. But she saw the faint rise and fall of his
chest, and felt the breath barely moving from his half-open
mouth.
She shook him, but he didnt respond.
Hasmal! You have to wake up! Hasmal!
Still he made no sign that he could hear her no sign that
he was anything but a man one breath away from death.
She closed her eyes in resignation, gathered his things together
in his bag, and hid them among the bags of yams. If the ship
escaped the Wizards Circle, she would retrieve them for him.
She didnt think she would have that opportunity;
nevertheless, she was not so sure of their demise that she would
let anyone else see what he had so carefully kept hidden. Once his
magical tools were out of the way, she rolled him over on his
stomach, then worked her way beneath him so that she could line up
his shoulders with hers. She thought she heard scuffling as she was
trying to get to her feet, but when she held still and kept silent,
she could hear nothing but the creak of the ship and the moaning of
the ghost-damned sea.
With Hasmals head draped over her right shoulder and his
arms pulled like a stole around her neck, she struggled to her feet
and, bent double, half-carried, half-dragged him out of the
storeroom and to the gangway. She called for help, and several
crewmen appeared above her.
I found him in the storeroom. Hes breathing,
barely, she told them, but I dont know what
happened to him. He looks pale to me.
Without a word, they lifted Hasmal up and carried him away.
Kait didnt try to follow; she saw no need to attempt to
offer an explanation for what shed found. She knew what had
happened to him at least in part but anything she
might say would only further incriminate her and cause problems for
him, too. She had no reason to know why he was in the storeroom or
what had happened to him. Let the crew come to their own
conclusions.
She returned, instead, to the storeroom, and ate. She gorged on
salted pork and dried fruit and beer. Only when she finally felt
full and so sleepy that she wondered if she would be able to
make the trip to the deck above did she pull out the yam
sacks to make sure Hasmals belongings were safe.
She moved bags back and forth; at first shed been sure
which one shed hidden the little bag behind, but her
certainty faded as they all began to look alike. She frowned, and
began from one end of the yams, working her way methodically to the
other. And only when she had moved every single bag did she allow
herself to believe the disaster that had befallen her and
Hasmal.
Someone had stolen the bag.
* * *
Outside, the wind screamed and rain slashed the ship and the
waves tossed it as if it were a childs toy. Ry stayed below
through the worst of the storm; he discovered, to his dismay, that
he got seasick something he had been sure would never happen
to him and that only lying still in his bunk kept him from
feeling his death was imminent. From time to time either Karyl or
Yanth, both of whom proved to be immune to the ships heaving,
would come in to check on him and Trev and Jaim and Valard, and
tell them how much their course had changed, and offer them food.
Ry suspected they offered food out of some mild impulse toward
sadism, since at the very word, the four men in the makeshift
infirmary turned green. He hoped he would live long enough to repay
the favor. Sometimes. And sometimes he just hoped he would die
before the storm could get any worse.
His one consolation was that his connection to Kait had grown
stronger during the storm. She was in the middle of troubles of her
own, and he supposed he could be grateful that his ship had been
forced to sail north to miss the worst of the weather. They would
have a huge amount of distance to make up, but they would not end
up in the middle of a Wizards Circle.
The wizard who traveled aboard the ship with her the one
whose shields had made sensing her presence and her location such a
difficult proposition had dropped his shields to cast some
sort of immense spell. Ry didnt know where hed gotten
the power for it, but he seemed to have singlehandedly conjured a
wind that was blowing Kaits ship through the Wizards
Circle toward the safety of the water beyond. Ry had felt the other
wizard casting the spell, and hed been both fascinated and
horrified by the amount of personal energy the stranger had put
into it. That amount of energy, drawn from his own body, should
have killed him, but though the stranger had drained himself to the
point that he was near death, Ry could feel that he still lived. He
wondered what coin the other wizard had paid for the spell
hed cast.
Something I can discover later, he decided. Not something to
lose sleep over now.
The wizards secrets were secondary to the artifact Kait
hid the artifact she was crossing the ocean to find.
That he would have to claim at the same time that he caught up
with her; she was his ultimate prize, but he intended to claim her
prize, too. Hed paid a tremendous price to come after her
the price of his Family, his honor, his own life, and the
lives of his friends, which could never afterward be the same as
they had been. His dead brother Cadell whispered in the back of his
mind, in the rare moments when Ry dropped his shields, that the
artifact she sought was worth any amount of effort and any sort of
sacrifice. Ry believed him. Still, he found himself hungering for
some proof that he had not chosen a fools path, and at that
moment, knowing he was declared dead at home, he felt certain that
only a massive prize would repay him for all that he had lost.
Chapter 28
Weve all discussed this, Capn, and we
want something done about her. Rrru-eeth stood at the head of
the small cluster of crewmen, all of whom stared at Ian Draclas
with an intensity he found disconcerting. Gone was the mild,
diffident young Scarred woman hed known for so long, replaced
by someone who resembled a frightened animal. We dont
have to have one of her kind aboard, and we wont.
He understood the fear. In the moment that Kait had changed,
hed felt it himself. The gods had not intended skinshifters
to live in the midst of men, or they would not have made the
creatures so terrifying. He thought about the nights shed
slept beside him, and tried to imagine waking to find that
mad-eyed, long-fanged beast at his throat instead of the woman he
found so compelling. His skin crawled. Nevertheless, he did not
intend to give in to the demands of the crew; they wanted him to
let them unseal the door and shove Kait out on the deck to act as
an offering to whatever demons inhabited the Wizards
Circle.
She saved my life, he said. He didnt bother to
mention that shed caught his imagination or that just seeing
her set his pulse racing; that wouldnt help his cause, which
was keeping her on the ship.
And when she turns into that monster again and eats one of
the crew, will you remind us of that again? Rrru-eeth had no
tolerance for anyone who fell outside of her definition of normal.
Hed known this for years, but her prejudices had never
bothered him. Now they became a problem, because the crew liked her
and she would stir them up if she didnt get what she
wanted.
He said, Id think you would consider a woman who
carries a death sentence on her head because of an accident of
birth an ally, not an enemy.
Rrru-eeth curled her lip in a disdainful snarl. You think
you can compare us because neither of us would be welcome in Ibera?
You cannot. I am exactly what everyone sees no more and no
less. I have never masqueraded as a human for the benefits of
privilege and Family that doing so could give me. She is a
liar, a blood-hungry monster who moved among us pretending to be a
friend. And worse, she is in collusion with Hasmal.
You dont like Hasmal, either?
Hes a wizard.
Ian looked at her to see if she was serious; then he burst out
laughing. A wizard? Hes a competent enough
shipwright, and evidently he used to be a shopkeeper of some sort.
But a wizard? He laughed again, but Rrru-eeth didnt
respond to his merriment with a smile of her own. Instead she
shoved a cloth bag at him.
He took it and studied it. It was made of fine leather,
carefully stitched; inside it were a silver-lined wooden bowl, a
mirror, a variety of powders in packets, all labeled in a language
and script he didnt recognize, a bloodletting kit, and other
oddities. And a book. The Secret Texts of Vincalis. Hed never
heard of the book, and didnt know what to make of the bag and
its contents.
Thats a wizards bag, Rrru-eeth said, and
behind her, glowering Manir the cook nodded.
Saw one just like it at the executions in Calimekka
once, he said. Had the same things in it, and the
parnissas used it to prove the wizard done is magic. Nasty
business. And now we have a wizard among us. Or two, phaps,
since that skinshifter hid those things before she brought him to
us, so we wouldnt know what he was. And we find oursels
in a Wizards Circle, and like enough to die with our
crewmates before we get out.
Murmurs of agreement moved through the quiet cluster of crew
like the rumbling of the earth before a volcano erupted, and those
murmurs had much the same feel to them.
So we say, throw them to the sea, Rrru-eeth
said.
Neither Kait nor Hasmal was anywhere to be seen. Ian looked at
his crew, realized he had a problem that could turn dangerous, and
weighed his options, all in a split instant. He leaned forward and
sighed. I didnt want to tell anyone what we were going
after until we actually found it. But Kait has a manuscript
in a language I cant read, so dont ask me to take the
manuscript and throw her to the sea and her manuscript tells
where we will find an Ancient city that hasnt yet been
discovered by anyone else.
The stillness of the crew changed in character. Greed invaded
where a moment before only hatred and prejudice had been. He could
see it in the faces of the men and women before him in the
way their eyes shifted, in the way their mouths tightened, in the
way they suddenly looked at each other, obviously weighing options
on their own.
He sighed and said, You would have found out when we
arrived, and discovered you were cut in for your regular shares.
But I didnt want to tell you what we were looking for, in
case we never found it. He paused, clasped his hands
together, and said, We have to keep her on the ship, and
because theyre friends, we have to keep him, too. Without
them, we have no hope of ever finding that city. And I want to be
rich as a paraglese. Dont you?
They murmured among themselves, and stared thoughtfully at their
feet. Youre sure she knows where such a city is?
Rrru-eeth asked.
No. Ian shrugged. Im taking a chance,
because I think the rewards will be worth it if she does know the
location . . . if, of course, we live to find it.
Im taking a risk. You signed on under my command; I assumed
both the risks and the chance of reward on your behalf. But I
didnt come this far to throw away my only chance at this
opportunity when were almost there.
He waited. They looked at each other, and he could almost see
their thoughts. Wait. We can get rid of the skinshifter and the
wizard once weve found the prize.
Rrru-eeth crossed her arms over her thin chest. So we find
this city and claim it. And then . . . ?
Ian met her eyes and kept all expression from his face. In a
flat voice, he said, What do you think?
She saw what she wanted to see. Her arms uncrossed, she nodded
with satisfaction, and said, Then well wait.
* * *
In the ships infirmary, Kait sat next to Hasmal and held a
mug of beer to his lips. Drink, she said. It will
do you good.
He looked like a corpse. Black circles ringed his sunken eyes.
His lips were blue, his skin chalk-white and waxy. I
dont . . . think I can drink . . .
anything, he whispered.
Drink. Youre going to need your strength. She
sighed. Maybe sooner than we could wish. She slid one
arm under his neck and lifted his head enough that he could
swallow. When he managed a long swallow, she let him lie back.
What do you mean, sooner than we could wish?
Kait wasnt looking forward to telling him the bad news.
I hid your bag of implements before I took you out of the
storeroom. Then, as soon as you had help, I went back to get it. In
the meantime, someone else had already found it. Its gone,
and your secret is probably now as well-known as mine.
Hasmal frowned weakly. Your secret? How?
He didnt need to be more specific. Kait said, I got
scared when the people started dying. The water . . . it
ate them. When I saw that happen, I Shifted. I couldnt stop
myself. Almost everyone saw.
Not good. And they found my bag?
Yes.
Not good. He groaned. Though I dont even
know why Im still alive. I . . . He closed
his eyes and licked dry lips.
Kait raised his head and gave him more beer. Dont
talk. Just drink and get better.
He pulled his head away from the mug after a moment and said,
I need to tell you this. Its important, and I
dont think Im going to live.
Youre going to live. Dont talk like
that.
Shhh. Just listen. He let her force another swallow
of beer down his throat, then said, The water is
alive.
I saw Kait started to interrupt.
Alive, Hasmal said a bit more loudly.
Kait could see that the effort cost him strength, and fell
silent, letting him tell her what he needed to in his own way.
He looked at her, then nodded faintly. I did a divination
to find out the danger we faced. A city once stood here, filled
with more people than I can imagine. It was greater than Calimekka,
perhaps ten times greater. The spell that the Dragons attacked it
with devoured city, people, and land and dropped the edge of the
continent into the ocean. And when it did, it trapped the souls of
every living creature in the basin that it carved. Water flowed in
and the magic that permeated the crater poisoned it. The magic
bound up the souls of the dead in the water, and souls and magic
combined imbued it with life. And memory. The sea beneath us
remembers each of the millions of lives that ended, because each of
those lives was, in effect, its life. It has died horribly millions
of times. It wants revenge.
Kait felt sick.
Hasmal continued. The Reborn needs at least one of us. And
you are the braver. And the one more likely, I thought, to be able
to survive. While I was the one who had the magic to get us to
safety. So I made a deal with my god, Vodor Imrish. I offered my
life and my soul to him if he would get you safely to the city and
to the Mirror of Souls, and he accepted. I think. He told me he
accepted. Except Im still alive, so perhaps he
didnt.
Kait held the hand of the man whod told her he was not
brave and thought about him offering his life in exchange for her
safety. Brave, she thought, was a relative term. In her
eyes, no one could have been braver. She told him that, but he only
shrugged.
I think it takes more courage to live than to die
sometimes. I thought I had the better end of the bargain,
considering the trouble the world will see before the Reborn
overcomes it.
Kait could still hear the many voices of the sea crying out.
How will we know if were safe? she asked.
Hasmal looked at her with disbelief. Then he closed his eyes and
began to laugh softly. I have no idea, he admitted.
I forgot to ask for a clear sign.
* * *
Ian yearned for the comfort of his own cabin, and for the
pleasures of fresh air and daylight, and for the sight of the sea
that he loved. But the survivors huddled together belowdecks
captain, crew, and passenger leaving the ship to tend to
itself, because attempting to sail it while fighting the living
water of the Wizards Circle would be certain death. So they
hid and prayed that the ship wouldnt hit a reef or a cliff
and sink, taking them all with her; only that course of action
might permit them to survive.
A day passed. Then two.
Ian woke on the third day to find sunshine blazing through the
deck prisms, and to hear nothing but the lapping of water on the
sides of the ship. He asked Rrru-eeth if she heard voices outside,
and at last, after two days of gloomy answers in the affirmative,
she told him, smiling, that she did not. The crew cheered her acute
hearing and her news. Ian cheered with them.
Then he drew a deep breath. We have to take the wax from
the hatch. And we have to go up on deck. Ill go first, but
Ill need volunteers to go with me.
Jayti volunteered, as did Rrru-eeth. Hasmal and Kait both
offered. Ian accepted all four, and the five of them began peeling
the wax away from the bottom sill. Everyone else stood well back. A
few crew members left completely for other parts of the ship. Ian
understood. His heart felt like it had risen into his throat and
would choke his breath at any moment. Still, he was as eager to be
out of the confinement of belowdecks as he was terrified of what he
would find when the hatch opened.
Nothing came in between the hatch and the sill; Kait had stood
with wax and flame at the ready to stopper the gap again, but she
didnt need to use it. When the last of the seal came down,
Ian said, Ill go first. Then the rest of you, in
whatever order you prefer.
Kait made a face. And if something happens to you, who
will get this ship back to Calimekka?
Ian grinned. I have one of the best crews sailing. Even if
Im dead, theyll get you back home again. If he
were dead, they probably wouldnt, he thought. He was going to
have the hells own time convincing them to take her back with
them as things stood. But they were a superb crew, and they were
people hed known for years. Some of them were even friends.
Hed make them understand.
He hadnt given up his dream of marrying his way into the
Galweigh Family through Kait but he liked her more than he
ever thought he would. He thought, in spite of her . . .
well, her affliction . . . that he might even love her.
Funny, that. Hed been certain until she walked into his life
that he was immune to love.
With thoughts of love and possible imminent demise on his mind,
he climbed up the gangway and out onto the deck. Into the sunshine.
He looked around, and gasped.
What? someone from below asked. The hatch started to
swing shut.
The city, he said wonderingly. The city is
right ahead of us.
Below, he heard Hasmal say, Vodor Imrish did it. He
actually did it.
Did what? Kait asked.
Gave us wind for the sails and got us all the way to the
city. It was what I . . . ah. What I asked for. When I
prayed. But I didnt think he would give us all of that and
still let me live.
People poured out onto the deck then, and shot up into the
rigging to get better looks, and leaned against the rails. Ian
Draclas stood where he was, staring up at the cliffs ahead of them.
Tangled greenery couldnt completely hide the lean white
spires of Ancient architecture, or the occasional pillar or
buttress. It lay there, all right, waiting for him for more than a
thousand years, like a jewel in a pile of rubbish. Just waiting,
untouched, ripe, and rich. He could feel it. He could feel his
fortune, fame, power all of it tucked away behind sealed
doors at the end of long-forgotten streets.
His palms itched, and his mouth went dry. The gods had to love
him, to deposit him and the Peregrine safely in that
beautiful bay, on a sunny day in the month of Drastu. Fitting, he
thought. Drastu was goddess of fertility, of the egg and the womb
and, by correlation, the goddess of the conception and birth
of new work, new ideas, and new wealth.
Youll have a shrine from me, Drastu, he
murmured before he turned to direct the dropping of the anchor and
to select the crew that would first go ashore.
They took two of the Peregrines three longboats and
rowed to the rocky shore.
This first day, well do a preliminary
exploration, he said. Never go anywhere alone, never
let yourself out of calling distance of one other group, never put
your weapons down. He cleared his throat.
Especially never put your weapons down. We have no
idea who, or what, well find here, and we have to assume that
if we find inhabitants, theyll be hostile. Be careful. Things
you can pick up and carry in one hand you can bring out today.
Bigger things will have to wait. If you find something that is both
good and big, mark the spot and well go back to it as soon as
we can.
Do we get to keep what we find? Jayti asked.
If you find something that you especially want for
yourself, mark it. Small things shouldnt be a problem.
However, we divide the treasure by shares, and the only way
well be able to figure shares is to sell everything when we
get back to Calimekka. Or Wilhene. He didnt like the
idea of Wilhene, which was a Sabir city, but the brokerages there
sometimes offered better prices than those in Calimekka.
The whole time he was giving them the rules, he was trying to
figure out how he could make sure none of them walked off with
something irreplaceable, and at the same time he was wondering how
he could get more than his share. And he knew that most, if not
all, of them were thinking the same thing.
Kait and Hasmal stood together. There, he thought. Right there
was the money crop. Kait knew where the city was, and presumably
had an idea of what might be found in it. Hasmal had bargained with
his god to get them out of trouble and to the city. (Ian needed to
find out more about Vodor Imrish, too, he decided. A god who would
get that deeply involved in his worshipers lives deserved a
few new converts. He had a few favors he thought he would ask of a
god who paid attention.) So when groups paired off, he appended
himself to Kait and Hasmal, smiling all the while. As my
passenger, he told Kait, you deserve the attention of
the captain.
I thought I was more than your passenger, Kait said
once the three of them were alone. Though I can understand
why thats changed.
It hasnt changed, he told her. I love
you, Kait. But Ive had to work hard to get the crew to agree
to keep you on board they wanted to throw you to the sea
when they found out what you were, and they would question my
motives if I seemed to be still . . . He shrugged,
at a loss for words. Still infatuated. Ive had to make
some concessions for the sake of appearances.
He knew he sounded weak-willed to be letting his crew influence
his public actions. Intelligent captains, however, did not invite
mutiny by ignoring the legitimate concerns of the men and women
beneath him.
I understand. I didnt expect them to welcome me once
they knew. For that matter, I was sure you would want to be done
with me, too.
I dont, he said. I wont ever want
to be done with you.
Her wan smile told him more than words could have. She
didnt believe him. He needed to make her believe him;
his future as he wanted to envision it depended on that belief.
At least he had time on his side.
Chapter 29
Kait stared up the steep cliff, at the tops and sides of
buildings that peered out from beneath a thousand years of forest
growth and a thousand years of detritus. She could make out no
roads or signs that there had ever been roads; no doors or windows;
few intact roofs. The remains of the city lay like the half-buried
bones of an ancient battlefield one where both sides lost
and no one came along to collect the bodies.
Listening to the wind blowing through the branches, smelling
plants and animals unlike any she had ever known, feeling the sun
on her back altered by latitude and season, she felt a combination
of hope and despair too vast and rich to put into words, even to
herself. In that jumble of ruins lay her Familys single
fragile magical hope of escape from the deaths it had already
suffered. Somewhere, a thousand years ago, in the midst of
destruction, the blasting of spells, and the end of the world,
someone had left the Mirror of Souls in this city, in one of the
buildings above her. Somewhere. And she had no idea what this
Mirror looked like, no idea how it worked, no idea how to even
begin looking for it. From that depth of ignorance came her
despair.
Hasmal rested a hand on her shoulder and whispered, Has
she told you where to find it?
No. I dont think she knows. Kait frowned; Ian
worked on the rocky beach to the north of them, hiding the
longboats with several of his crew.
Amalee told Kait, I dont know. Things here are very
different than I re than I thought they would be. But with
you able to sense magic, perhaps youll be able to track it
down that way. She projected frustration and disgust. If you
cant, youll just have to hunt through the buildings one
at a time. And I thought the hard part would be getting here. I had
no idea how difficult things could be when we arrived.
She isnt going to be of any help, Kait
said.
I got you here. And I can identify the Mirror when you find
it.
Kait ignored that protest.
Hasmal asked, Then where do we start looking?
Kait closed her eyes. She had a faint headache, one that felt
very much like the headache shed had when she attended the
Dokteerak party. The headache that Dùghall had later
identified as being caused by magic.
Interesting that Hasmals use of magic doesnt give me
a headache like that, she thought. Perhaps his magic is very
weak.
She let the thought drop. With her eyes closed she began to turn
in a slow circle, trying to find one direction that made the
headache worse or better. She found nothing. So she opened her eyes
and began to walk, first along the rocky beach toward Ian and the
longboats, then away. Again, she could sense no difference in her
level of pain. Her headaches let her know something magical waited
nearby, but werent sensitive enough to guide her toward it.
Or, she realized, the entire city could be soaked in magic. Or
there might be artifacts scattered around evenly enough that no
matter which direction she went in felt the same.
Were simply going to have to start
looking.
Hasmal sighed. There must be an easier way. The city might
be larger than it appears to be from here.
Kait had studied what was known of the cities of the Ancients
with her tutors. Some of them had evidently been quite large. And
though this one seemed to fit neatly around the rim of the bay, it
might run inland. She nodded, and, feeling grim, picked a direction
at random.
If its any consolation, Hasmal said, the
fact that we ended up here together seems to indicate that the gods
themselves favor our endeavor. So perhaps well just happen
upon it.
Perhaps. In the meantime, though, try to think of some way
that we can find it without luck or the intervention of the gods. I
would like to get home while Im still a young woman, and
while I still have hope of saving the people I love.
Since theyre already dead, I dont see where
speed is an issue, Hasmal said.
Kaits glare sent him hurrying ahead.
* * *
Three days and hundreds of filthy, half-buried, ruined buildings
later, Hasmal was willing to concede that his joke about waiting
for the intervention of the gods had not been his best. The rest of
the searchers had found treasure beyond their most fevered
imaginings. Plaques and bits of machinery, precious metals, statues
and jewelry and things impossible to identify that would
nonetheless draw a nice sum in the market were rowed out to the
ship in the longboats and poured into the ships holds. The
crew went through the city in shifts, with half staying on board to
recuperate and keep an eye on the accumulated treasure, while the
other half did their best to outdo the previous shift in adding to
it.
Hasmal had never heard of such a trove as the one accumulating
aboard the Peregrine. He thought this city was the richest
ever found. A thousand young men could spend long lives combing for
treasures and do no more than skim the surface. The sheer brutal
size of the place stunned him. Calimekka was the largest city in
the world. More than a million people had lived within its
boundaries at the last census, and it grew greater, in numbers and
sheer size, every day. Mathematicians were forever estimating how
many times the roads and streets of Calimekka could circle the
world, if they were laid end to end. But the ruins of this nameless
graveyard in the forest could have swallowed the great Calimekka
and another dozen like it, and perhaps more. The buildings around
the bay had been only the leading edge of what Hasmal guessed must
have been one of the largest cities ever to exist.
Kait grew more and more dispirited as they searched. She and
Hasmal marked their share of sites where treasure lay, and already
they would be richer than all but the Five Families. But they
werent searching for wealth, so while everyone else grew
jubilant and talked about the castles they would build and the
slaves they would buy, Hasmal watched Kait draw deeper and deeper
into herself.
Ian had noticed her mood, and had done everything he could to
find out what was causing it. Hed been solicitous, but Hasmal
believed the captain suspected he and Kait were searching for
something specific, something of tremendous value, and he wanted to
be sure he got his share of it.
Kait remained uncommunicative.
* * *
The torches of the night searchers flickered on the beach. They
stood waiting for the remainder of the day crew to ferry the last
of their finds out to the ship. Kait stood next to Hasmal at the
longboat that would be last to leave.
Im staying, she said.
Hasmal rubbed his eyes. Staying? By Vodors eyes,
Kait weve searched all day. What can you hope to
accomplish wearing yourself out?
She stared up at the hills, then returned her attention to
Hasmal. Im not going back to the ship again until I
find it. I have this terrible feeling that were running out
of time. I dont know why I dont know where the
feeling comes from, or if theres any truth to it. But I want
to see my mother and father again. My brothers. My sisters.
Dùghall. My cousins. I would do anything
Her voice broke. She swallowed hard, tasting tears. She knew
knew that if she didnt find the Mirror
of Souls within the next day, she would not find it at all. She
felt the truth of that in her marrow, in her blood. She had nothing
she could point to that would let her say, Here. This is why
Im afraid. But that only made the fear worse. She held
lives in her hand, hundreds of lives, and among them the lives she
valued more than her own. And if she failed them because she
hadnt tried hard enough, she would not be able to live with
herself.
Better she had died.
I would do anything to save them, she said when she
regained control of her voice. But there are only so many
things I can do. One thing I can do is search at night.
And when will you sleep?
Once Ive found it. She was Karnee. She could
drive her body harder than any human if she needed to. Now she
needed to. Go and get some sleep, and Ill meet you here
tomorrow morning. Well hunt together then.
I cant let you do this.
You dont have a choice.
Perhaps not. But what about the captain? You know he wants
to stay with us; he wants whatever were looking
for.
I know. So you have to lie for me. Tell him you think I
went to the ship in an earlier boat. If he tried to stay with me
tonight, he would only slow me down.
Understanding flashed across Hasmals face.
Youre going to . . .
Shift. Yes. I can cover much more ground that way, and my
senses are better. Theres something weve been missing,
and I have to think this will be my chance to discover what it
was.
Hasmal looked past her shoulder and whispered, Then go
now. The captains dragging something down the beach;
hell be here in a moment.
Kait nodded, and moved toward the trees. Ill see you
tomorrow. Wish me luck.
Luck, he said.
Kait loped up the hill, unlacing her shirt as she went. She had
not taken a torch. Even in human form, her eyes made the most of
available light, so that she saw quite clearly. When she Shifted,
she would see as well as if she hunted by daylight.
She wanted to avoid the night teams. Like the other crewmen on
the Peregrine, they didnt like her; she didnt
trust them. No matter what good things shed done for their
lives by bringing them to this city, she suspected any of the pairs
would try to hurt her if they found her alone.
She stripped out of her clothes, folded them, and left them in a
building at the top of the cliff. Then she gave herself over to the
inhuman hungers and lusts of Shift, and flowed into the ecstasy of
otherness.
To her keener Shifted senses, the night became a thing of
unutterable beauty. The stars blazed through the broad leaves of
the hardwood canopy, carving the trees into statues of liquid
silver and bleaching the ruined buildings into creations of
translucent shell. The wind sang in whispers, sweet accompaniment
to the voices of insects and nightbirds and the four-legged
predators who hunted through the wood. And the scents
. . .
As soon as she Shifted, shed begun running inland, acting
on hunches and some subliminal direction that she go east. She and
Hasmal had hunted in that direction during the day, and there had
been something . . . something . . . something
that had excited her, but had been too muted and insubstantial for
her to identify. It had tickled the back of her mind during the
day, leaving her certain that she headed in the direction of
something vital. Life-changing. Essential.
Now, stopping at the top of a ridge and facing into the wind,
she caught the faintest whiff of that same pulse-stirring scent.
Yes, her mind told her. Whatever it is, youll find it in that
direction.
She ran into the wind, pushing herself hard, hoping that the
scent would get stronger. It was probably stupid to be chasing it
after all, what were the odds that the aroma meant anything?
She kept running, though; she had no other ideas to pursue.
She ran far beyond the area she and Hasmal had covered, far
enough that she broke free of the cover of forest onto a rolling
plain. Even in the moonlight, she could see the scars that a fire
had left on the remaining stumps of trees. The field had burned
more than a year ago, and in its wake grasses had grown in
profusion, and exquisite wildflowers, and the first tiny starts of
what would, in twenty or thirty years, be the new forest.
Life didnt disappear in the aftermath of disasters, either
large or small, though it did change. Uncounted small creatures
inhabited the plain. They werent alone. She smelled and heard
a pack of big animals moving northeast of her. Her nose identified
the blood-scent on them. Predators, then. She was glad to be
downwind.
That other scent the one she thought she knew got
stronger. Sweet. Beautifully sweet, but under the sweetness, the
slightest taint of decay. Where had she smelled that scent before?
Floral images flashed in her mind, but the scent had not come to
her in a garden. Not in the jungle. No place ordinary.
The puzzle nagged at her, but she didnt focus on it. She
kept tracking; when she found whatever it was, she would most
likely remember where she had run into it before. She lost the
scent, doubled back, and began quartering north to south and back
until she picked it up. When she found it again, the seductive
tendrils of that tantalizing perfume led her far onto the plain,
through rows of the ribs of buried buildings, along a stream, and
finally into a declivity.
She came to the head of a small falls. Cliffs dropped down to
either side, sandstone that jutted at sharp angles from between
tangles of vines and scrub trees. A pond at the bottom of the
cliffs swirled away into a stream that rolled out of sight around a
curve. Whatever shed been tracking was down there. The scent
filled the valley. Sweetness and decay. Both excited and afraid,
she worked her way down the rough cliffs, sampling the air for any
change that indicated danger. A bird sang beautifully, but fell
silent as she neared the water. The insect noises stilled, and she
felt the eyes of the darkness watching her, the frightened and
huddled prey acknowledging her as the predator she was. She took
the silence as her due, but did not break it. She, too, could find
herself prey hunted instead of hunter.
At the bottom of the cliffs, she discovered a path. To that
point, she had seen nothing that would make her think humans
survived anywhere near the city. But while she could not catch any
human scent about the path, it had the look of human work. It was
neat, straight, sharp-edged. And it had been kept up. The fur along
her spine stood up and an instinctive growl rumbled in the back of
her throat. But the path led toward the source of the scent. She
flexed her claws and moved forward, trying to focus on all
directions at the same time. The path followed the edge of the
little pond down to the stream that drained it. It continued to
parallel the stream for perhaps two Calimekkan blocks. Then it
veered sharply to the right and uphill into another ravine.
This ravine bore further signs of current inhabitants: the
increasingly broad, neat path edged with flowers; thorny shrubs
planted to form a barrier hedge along the tops of the cliffs; and
finally, a building in good repair built into the stone in the same
manner that Galweigh House was built into the cliff.
This building looked small from the outside. The part of it that
Kait could see was about as big as the gatehouse back home. Or
perhaps as big as one of the shrines to lesser gods. That thought
occurred to her because in its form, it reminded her of those
shrines. One doorway, no door, no windows, an elaborate roof, and
within the shrine, an altar on a pedestal.
The altar was different, though. It glowed, radiant as a small
sun, its warm golden light illuminating the inside of the shrine,
setting its translucent walls ablaze, and spilling welcoming light
out onto the pathway and the tumbles of flowers to either side. And
from the altar emanated the scent that shed followed for such
a distance.
Honeysuckle, she realized. The cloying sweet scent was
honeysuckle. And the place shed smelled it before had been in
the airible, in the instant before magic had overwhelmed her and
Dùghall. In the instant before everything changed.
In the back of her mind, Amalee said, Thats it.
Thats the Mirror of Souls.
Where? Kait asked, not speaking out loud.
You called it an altar in your thoughts. The glowing
pedestal.
Kait stared at it and groaned. Its too big. Ill
never be able to take it back by myself.
Then get back to the beach and be waiting when your friends
get here. And do it quickly. Because that is what youve come
all this way to find.
At that moment, the monsters who guarded the shrine chose to
attack.
Chapter 30
Shed never smelled them coming, nor heard from them
the faintest sound. The honeysuckle-and-rot scent had hidden them
from her. They dropped down from the sides of the cliffs and
shambled out of the shrine; warped and twisted parodies of humans,
naked and snarling, carrying hoes and long-handled trowels and
rakes in their knot-jointed hands. Their ancestors had surely been
human, but they were not. They smelled only of leaf mold and damp
earth and dark, hidden places, and they whispered as they moved
toward her, wordless whispering that mimicked the rustle of leaves.
They came at Kait from all sides. In spite of her wariness in her
approach, in spite of her strength and speed, they cut off her
route of escape, and she discovered how well they had planned the
protection of their shrine.
She had the low ground, and nothing to guard her back. She
couldnt seek refuge in the cliffs, nor could she attempt
escape in any direction but the one by which shed come. She
counted twelve of them, and doubted that theyd sent their
full complement against her in the first wave. She still saw too
many good hiding places like the ones out of which these attackers
had materialized.
They werent armed well, and they moved awkwardly, their
bodies poorly designed for speed or fighting. Those two advantages
she held. Against the monsters advantages of position,
numbers, familiarity with terrain, and surprise, her two strengths
would not, she felt, be sufficient to save her life. She felt fear
as a force that pressed the air from her lungs and sat atop her
shoulders and back, pressing her down. Making her slow. Weak.
So close. She stood so close to success, to triumph. Shed
come from half a world away, and now crouched less than a
stones throw from the magical device that would restore her
beloved dead to her, and neither she nor they would have their
chances. Kait howled her rage and her anguish, and attacked the
nearest of the monsters.
Kait.
They shrieked and swung their gardening tools, catching her in
the face and across the shoulders and ribs. She leaped and slashed
with teeth and claws, and those she attacked fell back. But others
moved in at her sides, and more blows fell. She slashed one of the
monsters and blood spurted from its belly; at its screams, more of
the creatures appeared from above her, behind her, in front of her.
All of them carried tools, or sticks, or clubs.
Kait!
At last she heard Amalee shouting at her, and realized she had
been doing so since the monsters first surrounded her. Not
now! she snarled. Cant you see Im busy
dying?
You have to be human.
Kait killed one of the creatures, but even more appeared. She
guessed that more than thirty now surrounded and attacked her,
though she couldnt be sure they were all around her
and she was too busy fighting to try for an accurate count. For
every one she killed, a dozen managed to connect with their
makeshift weapons. They wounded her faster than she could heal.
They would kill her in pieces, dragging life from her a little at a
time, tearing her into a slow, gruesome death.
You have to be human! Amalee insisted again, shouting it
into Kaits mind so fiercely that she could no longer ignore
her dead ancestor.
Pity Im not, then, isnt it?
Listen. You have to Shift into human shape. Theyll kill
anything and anyone not in human shape. Theyre the guardians
of the Mirror, and if youre human, theyll let you walk
on the path safely. Theyll even let you take the Mirror. Your
arrival is what their kind have waited almost a thousand years to
witness.
I have no weapons in human form, she said. No
clothes. Ill be completely helpless.
You have to be human. Or youll die. If youre
human, they wont hurt you.
Kait didnt believe her ancestor. Five of the monsters now
lay dead, and she didnt believe they would forgive that
slaughter if she Shifted back to her human form. They would,
instead, kill her all the faster, and with no further loss.
But she was dying. Slowly. She would, in her Karnee form, kill
more of them before they completely overcame her. Nevertheless, she
would still die.
I have to be human, she says.
They wont kill a human, she says.
Shes a fool, I say.
Well, if I must die today anyway, Id rather die as a human
than a beast.
Snarling, fighting, in pain, she struggled to find the still
place within herself, the place that was all blues and greens and
placid water and silence. Fear, rage, and anguish buried her
humanity deep. The red-hot bloodlust nearly drowned it. Years of
effort to keep herself human in the worst of circumstances rose to
her assistance, though, and she found that place after all. Touched
the silence in her soul. Felt the battle hunger die slowly, even
though the monsters still attacked her, even though she no longer
attacked, but only attempted to ward off the blows that rained on
her from all directions.
She Shifted, and felt her blood cool, and her skin grow heavy,
and her senses dull.
She stretched and reformed, and all around her the monsters
backed away, mewling, as she rose from four legs to two, and stood
over their hunched and twisted forms. They dropped their weapons,
and some began to weep, and all of them prostrated themselves at
her feet. She stood over them, bleeding from a hundred burning
cuts, dizzy with pain, and slowly she stepped over and around them.
Not toward the Mirror of Souls. Away from it. Back the way
shed come. She had to get back to the beach by the time the
morning crew arrived. She had to bring Hasmal and Ian and one or
two others to help her carry the Mirror back to the ship. The
journey, which in Karnee form she could run in one night, would
take humans several days. And time was precious. Time was
everything.
Once out of the ravine and well away from the Mirrors
guardians, she forced herself into Shift again, though it drained
her bodys resources. Her body devoured itself to complete the
Shift, and would consume even more of her own tissue when she had
to become human again upon reaching the beach. She stopped her
headlong rush several times to kill and devour animals unlucky
enough to end up in her path. They would only keep her from
starving to death before she reached the ship; she would need a
massive meal when she arrived.
That was a minor detail. Everything else was minor
detail. Against all odds, she had found the Mirror of Souls. Her
Family and the Reborn would triumph.
* * *
Ian stepped out of the longboat onto the beach, the mists of
dawn wrapping around him like a cloak. He met the night crew as
they dragged the last of their finds down to the rocky shore.
Wheres Kait? He kept his fury in check, and
held his voice to a semblance of reasonableness intended to prevent
the crew from discovering how completely her betrayal the night
before had shaken him.
Everyone he asked shrugged and looked surprised. Their answers
varied from, Day shift, I thought, to I figured
shed run off sooner or later, but not a single other
person had seen her.
Hasmal had insisted that she would be on the beach waiting for
the two of them when they arrived. Ian had accused him of lying,
and morning had proved him right.
When the night crew finished loading and rowed back to the ship,
and the day crew scattered to find more treasure, he turned on his
shipwright. Now you can tell me what the two of you have been
looking for all this time. What is it that shes found? What
did the two of you really come here for?
Hasmal hooked his thumbs into his belt and glared up at Ian.
Youve been bedding her, Capn. Youre the one
shed share her pillow talk with.
I didnt share . . . my . . .
pillow talk with . . . anyone, Kait said. She
staggered out from the cover of the forest, and Ian gasped. All he
could recognize of her was her voice, and that was
uncharacteristically harsh. She was skeletally thin, so that her
clothes hung on her like unpitched tents on a tent pole. Scars in
various stages of healing covered her face and every other piece of
skin he could see. Her hair tangled in her face, matted with clots
of blood and dirt. Her ashen color and the waxiness of her skin
would have convinced him, had she not been upright and speaking,
that she was already dead.
His anger dissipated, as if it were fog beneath a blazing sun.
Kait? By Brethwan, whats happened to you?
I . . . I found it, she said to Hasmal.
Then she turned to Ian. And smiled. And sagged.
She managed to catch herself just short of collapse. She
breathed like shed been running. We need to
. . . get started now. I figure . . . the place
where its hidden . . . is . . . about
three days walk. Plus . . . three days
back.
Ian almost couldnt breathe. Hasmal, get her into the
boat. Weve got to have the physick look at her.
Hasmal said, The physick is out hunting for treasure with
the rest of them. He didnt want anyone to question his
share.
Damnall. He put his head down, thinking. Then
well get her out to the ship and ring the bell. By the time
the physick gets back, we can have something done for
her.
Im fine, Kait said. But we
. . . have to hurry.
You arent fine! Ian found himself terrified
for her terrified that she might collapse and die at any
moment.
Kait gave Hasmal a beseeching look. Tell him Im
. . . fine, Hasmal.
You arent fine, Hasmal said. Youre
damn near dead.
I just need . . . She sagged again, and
Ian could see she had more difficulty preventing her fall.
He picked her up and kissed her once. She felt like a bird in
his arms, too light and fragile to survive. To Hasmal he said,
Back to the ship. Well figure out what happened to her
and what were going to do about it when we get
there.
Ians emotions took him by surprise. He didnt
need her anymore; he had the city that would make him rich and
powerful beyond measure, and if she were to die from her injuries,
he would be able to claim primary possession of it. But as he and
Hasmal rowed her out to the Peregrine, he discovered that he
wanted her, and that the wanting went deeper than any
amusement she provided in his bed. He wanted to argue with her
again about the relative merits of the philosophies of Farellhau
and Nstanri. He wanted to sit in front of a great fire in a
great House with her and recount the adventures that had brought
them to that place of wealth and power and happiness. Or, he
realized, he would be happy to spend the rest of his life sailing
across Matrins great seas with her at his side. Ian Draclas
stared at the gaunt, dying woman in his arms and discovered to his
dismay that somewhere between deciding to claim her city for the
wealth and determining to marry her for the Family power, he had
fallen irretrievably in love. In doing that, the wealth and the
power that could undoubtedly be his fell by the wayside, and his
only concern became her life.
By the time they reached the ship, she was barely breathing. Ian
tried to keep her awake and talking, while Hasmal brought in
water.
Until the physick gets back, we can try to get some of
this into her. She looks dehydrated.
Ian nodded. He cradled her head in one arm and helped her
swallow the water Hasmal poured into her mouth by stroking her
throat. Before long, the two of them noticed an improvement. She
began to swallow without assistance, and finally she opened her
eyes and reached for the cup and began drinking on her own.
When she spoke again, her first word was, Food. And
it was her only word for quite some time. Hasmal brought things
from the storeroom and the galley and Kait devoured them and
requested more. The food helped faster than Ian could have
imagined. Within two stations, he could see where she had actually
put on weight she went from being skeletal to being merely
frail. Further, her wounds healed themselves as he watched. She ate
constantly, not speaking at all except to ask for more. In his
entire life he had never seen one person consume so much food.
Finally she pushed her plate back. We have to go after the
Mirror now, she said. Well need help. Its
much larger than I expected. The two of you, me, maybe two other
people. Some sort of travois or sledge to drag it back on. Supplies
for three days out and three days back. Probably weapons. I crossed
paths with predators that would have found me tasty in human form,
though.
Ian said, We arent going after anything. You nearly
died today
She cut him off. I found the single artifact that I claim
as my portion of our treasure. I renounce my claim to everything
else.
Ian froze for just an instant, as greed briefly reasserted
itself. Then he shook it off. Tell me what you
found.
It took her a while, but she did.
Finally, he managed to take it all in. An artifact that
brings back the dead. And youre going to revive the
Galweighs. Once you learn how to use the thing, anyway.
Yes.
It sounded like madness to him, but the Ancients knew more about
everything than anyone had since rediscovered. Perhaps the reason
the Wizards hadnt been worried about destroying the world was
that they knew a way to bring everyone back afterward at
least everyone they liked. He guessed that the person or people who
knew how to do it must have been killed, though.
He took Kaits hand in his own. If the Mirror of Souls did
work, then he would gain quite a bit of favor with his future
in-laws. If it didnt, he gained the greatest share of the
wealth of the city. In either instance, he won. And he would have
done it without hurting Kait in any way.
Well go after it tonight, he said.
Ill help you in every way I can. Ill even help
you get it to your House so that you can revive your
Family.
Her brow creased in puzzlement. You will? But
why?
He stroked the soft skin on the back of her hand, and felt the
delicate bones beneath. She needed to eat more before they left, he
decided. He wouldnt risk her running herself to the brink of
death again. Because I love you, he told her.
It felt funny to know that was the truth.
* * *
He kissed her, Rrru-eeth said to Jayti. At
Rrru-eeths request, the two of them had waited in the trees
above the beach; Rrru-eeth said she was concerned about the
captains behavior.
Jayti had grown used to her concern. Every day when Ian Draclas
went treasure-hunting with Kait and Hasmal, Rrru-eeth complained
about him being in the clutches of the skinshifter and the wizard.
She mentioned at least once each day that she thought she and Jayti
ought to get Kait and Hasmal off by themselves and kill them, so
that the captain would be able to break free from their spell. She
fretted that he would forget he had promised to leave them behind.
Now, spying on them from the cover of the trees, Rrru-eeth radiated
anger.
I cant say I like it, Jayti said, but as
captain, he can do as he pleases.
Rrru-eeths eyebrows rose. Do you think so? Tell me,
do you really? Her voice was a dangerous growl, laced with
scorn.
As much as Jayti adored Rrru-eeth, his first loyalty was to Ian
Draclas, who had saved him from hanging ten years before, when
Jayti, at the age of seventeen, had been accused of touching a
paraglesa. Hed been an assistant to the cook in the Sabir
House in Wilhene, and the wife of the paraglese had taken a fancy
to him. Shed specifically requested him to bring a tray of
confections and a carafe of wine to her room for a small
party. Hed discovered when he arrived that she intended
the party to consist of only the two of them, and she had more in
mind than confections for her dessert.
He thinking the paraglese would have him drawn and
quartered if he touched the mans wife refused to
participate in her party. She with no appreciation of his
care for her honor immediately called the guards and accused
Jayti of accosting her.
Ian Draclas had somehow heard of his plight, and had spirited
him out of the Sabir House dungeon. Jayti still had no idea how he
had managed the trick, or why he had. But he never forgot his
rescue, nor the debt he owed the man who had accomplished it.
If the man found a woman he liked, Jayti thought he deserved to
keep her, for however long he could.
Rrru-eeth, even if he takes them with us when we sail,
hell leave both of them in Calimekka. Theyll be out of
your life forever in just a few more months.
He kissed her. What if he wants her to stay aboard
the ship with him?
Jayti snorted. Shes a parata. You can see Family in
her very bones. She wont give up House and power and riches
to tramp around the sea in the Peregrine with him. You mark
my words shell vanish from the captains life the
second we make landfall.
Rrru-eeth said nothing. But the look in her eyes sent ice down
Jaytis spine. He thought he would be wise to stay close to
the captain for a while.
* * *
When the storm finally ended, the Wind Treasure lay far
north of Kaits position. Ry Sabir felt her presence as a
fixed mark, south and east. Knowledge of Kaits position meant
nothing at that moment, however. The Wind Treasures
sails were rags, her hull leaked dangerously from half a dozen
places, and shed lost nearly a third of her crew. The captain
said the Rophetian ship would be days under repair at best; he also
said Ry could spend his time pacing or he could help with the work,
but that if he and his lieutenants didnt help, they would be
weeks instead of days in the barren northern harbor where
theyd come to rest.
Sabir Wolves did not do manual labor. Ever.
So Im lucky to be declared dead, he thought. Mother
wont have to die of shame.
Ry put himself to work, discovering when he did that he was less
skilled than the least of the crew. He knew nothing of the
shipwrights tools, nothing of the builders techniques,
nothing of the captains needs. He fumbled at the simplest
tasks, and at first he irritated the men and women who made their
livelihood from ships and the sea. In his favor, he had only his
tremendous strength and stamina, and his willingness to learn. He
applied both to the tasks he was given, determined that he would do
whatever he had to do to get to Kait. He struggled, he ached, and
he learned.
Im coming, Kait, he thought as he worked.
Youre mine. Youre mine. You were born to be mine,
and you belong to me and me alone.
And Im coming for you.
Chapter 31
Kait led the party up the walk to the shrine. No sign of
her battle with the guardians remained. The path was perfectly
groomed again, the trampled flowers replaced, the bodies removed.
Even knowing that the guardians kept watch all around the shrine,
and even knowing where they hid, she could not see a single one of
them.
Ian and Hasmal, and Jayti and a sailor named Turben who
had both volunteered to help bring the Mirror back to the ship
followed her up that perfect path to the shrine. She crossed
the threshold first, and got the first unobstructed look at the
Mirror.
It had been made by someone with an eye for beauty. Its sleek,
unornamented lines called to her mind lilies and orchids. It had
both a flower and a stem. The
flower consisted of a ring of five connected petals of
luminous platinum-white metal, the largest of which bore colorful
incised markings. The base supporting this ring mimicked the smooth
curve of three long, swordlike leaves, also of that glowing white
metal. The stem was the most amazing part of the entire
artifact a column of flowing golden light that began at the
ground, rose between the three leaves, and spiraled outward in the
center of the ring to disappear at last when it touched the petals.
Kait stood watching the movement of the light, mesmerized.
Ian came to stand beside her, and rested a hand on her shoulder.
I doubted you when you told me about this, he said
softly. I didnt think such a device could exist. But
when I look at this, I can see its value. Its worth more than
everything else weve found so far. And it will be worth even
more than that when it gives you back your parents and sisters and
brothers.
She nodded, too full of emotion to even speak. She reached out a
hand and touched one of the petals, and through her fingertips felt
the Mirror humming with a life of its own. She felt that stirring
as a promise, as rich and beautiful in its own way as the love
shed felt when her soul touched the Reborn. The Mirror
promised to return her world to her, or at least the part of it
that mattered most.
Jayti and his friend Turben put together the travois on which
they would strap the Mirror. While they were lacing cord around
their poles and through the sailcloth theyd carried with
them, Jayti pulled the captain aside. It was clear he didnt
intend for Kait or Hasmal to hear what he said. Hasmal
wouldnt be able to; Kait, studying the Mirror, pretended she
didnt.
Voice soft and nervous, he said, Turben and I came with
you for a reason, Capn. I expect trouble when we get back.
Rrru-eeths scared of yon Kait and the wizard she wants
them left behind, and she thinks you dont intend to do
it.
Ian glanced at Kait and Hasmal, then looked past them as if he
were checking out the area. Shes right, he said.
Im not leaving either of them. I love Kait. And even if
I didnt, shes the one who brought us to this city.
Hasmal offered to sacrifice himself while working the spell that
got us out of the Wizards Circle. He turned and looked
evenly at Jayti. Im not that disloyal. And I dont
think you are, either.
Jayti shrugged. Thats why were here. He
kept lacing the cord, and kept his head down. They may need
protection on the way back. Rrru-eeth may intend for them to have
an . . . accident. And if she does, I think shell
be able to get some of the others to help her.
Just some?
Most. You know Turben and I arent the only ones who
owe you . . . but most everyone is afraid, Capn.
Knowing youre sharing space with skinshifters and magic
dont let a man sleep easy at night.
Even you?
He shrugged again. Im no braver than most. But I
reckon if you think theyre trustworthy, then they are.
Youve had my life in your hand more than once, and Im
still drawing air.
The captain patted him on the shoulder. I vouch for both
of them with my life, Jayti.
Thats more than enough for me. He finally
looked up from what he was doing. Well get them back
safe, me and Turben. I swear it.
Kaits eyes blurred with tears. That a man would offer his
life in protection of hers out of loyalty to the captain stunned
her. Ian was a pirate, she knew. She suspected he was
barzanne, as well the son of Family ejected, disowned,
and declared never born for some sin or imagined sin that hed
committed. But he was more than that. Much more.
She wondered if she would ever find out all there was to know
about him.
When the travois was ready, they faced the dilemma of moving the
Mirror onto it.
Can we just pick it up? the captain asked.
Everyone looked at Kait.
Amalee told her, Dont touch the light.
Kait passed that information on. It was harder advice to follow
than it seemed. Her own hand brushed very near it when she helped
pick the Mirror up, and when it did, her skin prickled and the
honeysuckle scent grew stronger. So did the scent of decay. She
pulled back, and gagged.
Ian glanced at her face and frowned. Whats
wrong?
The smell. It got worse when my hand came too near the
light.
His puzzled expression intensified. Smell?
Now Hasmal looked puzzled. The smell. From the Mirror of
Souls. Sweet, and a little rotten.
It doesnt smell, Ian said. Jayti and Turben
agreed.
This close, the smell is almost overwhelming, Kait
said.
I cant smell a thing, Jayti said. And I
have a good nose.
I dont, Hasmal said, and I could smell
the damn thing from the top of the ravine.
I followed it here by its smell, Kait said.
They stood looking at each other, all equally puzzled. Then
Hasmal smiled slightly. I know what it is.
What? Kait asked.
The scent is magical in origin. You and I can smell it
because of . . . He winced as he glanced at the
other three. Were . . . sensitive to magic.
They arent, so for them, there is no smell.
Kait sighed. That makes sense.
Then it isnt important? the captain asked.
Why would it be? Its just a characteristic of the
Mirror. It isnt as if the scent does anything, Hasmal
said, and shrugged.
A little gingerly, they began dragging the Mirror away from the
shrine. They passed out of the ravine as easily as they had
entered, and with no sign that guardians existed there beyond the
flower-lined walk and the carefully tended hedges. Their return
took less than three days, perhaps because they were elated by the
magnitude of their prize. Kait wanted to shout to the sky that
shed found what she came for. Except for a few times in
childhood, and the day that she received her first diplomatic
assignment, she could never remember being so happy.
She would embrace her mother again. She would talk with her
father one more time about his horse breeding, about his prize
stallion and beautiful broodmares. She would hear the voices of
young cousins and nieces and nephews racing through the lower
floors of the House, playing chase and cant-find-me.
And when she had done those things, she and Hasmal would take
the Mirror to the Reborn, wherever he might be. They would give it
to him, and then they would witness the birth of an age of love and
enlightenment.
Chapter 32
When they neared the bay, the party became cautious. Kait
didnt let on that she knew the crew expected an attack
against her and Hasmal. She remained on alert with her sword loose
in its scabbard and her other hand near her dagger. The lively
conversation the five of them had shared during the trip back died
to silence a silence unbroken by any human noises at
all.
Theyve either planned an ambush or theyve done
nothing at all and are far afield hunting for treasure, Ian
said at last. I dont hear anyone.
Neither do I, Kait thought, and I think I would. She braced
herself for the attack.
They kept moving forward through the forest. At last they
reached the rise that led down to the bay. Silence. Kait wished
they could find a clearing, but the thick forest offered no view of
what lay ahead.
Her nose picked up an unmistakable scent, though, and no sooner
did she stop and sniff the air than the rest of the party followed
her example. The reek of death and decay blew through the forest,
and the buzz of flies grew very loud as the five of them put the
Mirror of Souls down and carefully worked their way to the bay.
Four bloated bodies sprawled on the rocky beach. Ian ran to
them, with his men close behind.
Daverrs, Ian called, identifying the first
corpse.
Turben said, Seeley and Smiths Son.
Bright, Jayti said. All the ones with the most
reason to be loyal to you.
Kait had been looking at the bodies with the rest of them, but
suddenly her heart thudded painfully in her breast. She looked out
over the water and asked softly, Ian, wheres the
ship?
The five of them stared out at the empty bay, then back down at
the bodies.
Ian looked as dead as the corpses. Rrru-eeth convinced
them to take my ship. My ship.
Hasmal paled. Were the only humans on this
continent?
Turben and Jayti looked at each other and then at the other
three. Jayti said, We have no supplies besides the little we
have left in our packs.
Kait stared out at the bay and at the thin line of the ocean
that lay beyond. It doesnt matter, she said. She
lowered her shields, and instantly she felt Ry Sabir, still hunting
her, getting closer. It truly doesnt matter. Our
problems are bigger than that. Night falls, and the hunters are
coming.
About the Author
Holly Lisle, born in 1960, has been writing fiction and fantasy
full-time since November 30, 1992. Prior to that, she worked as an
advertising representative, a commercial artist, a guitar teacher,
a restaurant singer, and for ten years as a registered nurse
specializing in emergency and intensive care. Originally from
Salem, Ohio, she has also lived in Alaska, Costa Rica, Guatemala,
North Carolina, Georgia, and Florida. She and Matt are raising
three children and several cats.
Diplomacy of Wolves
Natural Tendencies
It was a scent in the hallway that began the Shift. Kait moved
to a dark side passage and sank to the floor. She felt her bones
going liquid in her body, her blood bubbling like sparkling wine. I
want to run, she thought. I want to race the wind and hunt. I want
fresh, hot meat, the iron tang of blood.
Her blood pounded in her wrists, in her temples, behind her
tightly closed eyes. I dont want those things,
she said. I want to serve my Family. Her voice sounded
raw, husky, far too deep.
I can hold the other back, she thought. I am in control. I have
given up everything for this chance. I can be more than my cursed
self.
Kait opened her eyes and looked at her hands. Human hands. But
she had solved nothing. The Crash was coming . . .
ACCLAIM FOR
Diplomacy of Wolves
This fast-paced story moves along smartly; in-depth
characterizations bring the inhabitants of these troubled lands to
life. Lisle has mastered the technique of writing high fantasy
. . . leaves readers eager for the next
installment.
VOYA
Carefully crafted and well thought out . . .
wonderful.
SF Site
An exciting story.
Philadelphia
Press/Review
Entertaining . . . sorcery, wolves, and
deception. What more could you want?
BookPage
Lisle blends magic, politics, and romance . . .
a good choice for fantasy collections.
Library Journal
Lisles richly realized characters defy easy
classification, and are the complex products of their convoluted
environments . . . a tantalizing introduction to a
detailed world that will definitely lure me back for the next
installment.
Robin Hobb, author of
Assassins Apprentice
A tough, bold new epic fantasy that youll never
forget.
Kate Elliott, author of Kings
Dragon
Lisle is a powerful fantasy creator, and DIPLOMACY OF
WOLVES is her best yet!
Julian May, author of The Galactic
Milieu series
DIPLOMACY OF WOLVES. Copyright © 1998 by Holly Lisle. All
rights reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced in any form
or by any electronic or mechanical means, including information
storage and retrieval systems, without permission in writing from
the publisher, except by a reviewer who may quote brief passages in
a review.
For information address Warner Books, Inc., 1271 Avenue of the
Americas, New York, NY 10020
Aspect
® name and logo are registered trademarks
of Warner Books, Inc.
An AOL Time Warner
Company
ISBN 0-7595-0029-0
A trade paperback edition of this book was published in 1998 by
Warner Books.
First eBook edition: December 2000
Visit our Web site at www.iPublish.com
To Russell Galen,
my fantastic agent
for standing by me through hard times and leading me,
through his encouragement, persistence,
and belief in me and what I could do, to better.
Neither this book
nor the world of Matrin
would exist without him.
Thank you, Russ.
Table of Contents
Acknowledgments
Map of Matrin
Chapter One
Chapter Two
Chapter Three
Chapter Four
Chapter Five
Chapter Six
Chapter Seven
Chapter Eight
Chapter Nine
Chapter Ten
Chapter Eleven
Chapter Twelve
Chapter Thirteen
Chapter Fourteen
Chapter Fifteen
Chapter Sixteen
Chapter Seventeen
Chapter Eighteen
Chapter Nineteen
Chapter Twenty
Chapter Twenty-One
Chapter Twenty-Two
Chapter Twenty-Three
Chapter Twenty-Four
Chapter Twenty-Five
Chapter Twenty-Six
Chapter Twenty-Seven
Chapter Twenty-Eight
Chapter Twenty-Nine
Chapter Thirty
Chapter Thirty-One
Chapter Thirty-Two
About the Author
Acknowledgments
My thanks to Peter James and Nick Thorpe, authors of Ancient
Inventions, whose book proved a constant source of inspiration
in the writing of this one; to Betsy Mitchell, my editor, whose
incisive criticisms kept me on track, and whose enthusiasm for the
story made the book fun to write; to Michael Watkins, for early
technical criticism and the loan of books on dirigibles that made
some of this project work; to Becky and Mark, for encouragement and
support and carrying ten thousand glasses of ice water up the
stairs for me after school and during summer vacation; to Matt, for
love and support and many, many suppers.
DIPLOMACY
OF WOLVES
Men forge swords of steel and fire;
gods forge swords of flesh and blood and tragedy
Vincalis the Agitator
from
The Last Hero of Maestwauld
Chapter 1
For more than a thousand years, the Mirror of Souls
waited for the return of magic that would awaken it and allow it to
finish its work. It waited in a closed-off room on the side of a
hill in a long-abandoned city, its existence forgotten on a
continent where men had been replaced by the monsters spawned of a
hellish war. It slept, oblivious to the passage of time, oblivious
to the change that went on all around it, oblivious to the
destruction of an old order and to the chaos that followed, and to
the new world that rose on the ashes of the old. For more than a
thousand years, the Mirror had waited in vain.
Now, though, it glowed softly, as faint currents of distant
magic began to wash against it, and within the shimmering depths of
its central well, shadows stirred. That far-off spellcasting
still too weak to rouse the lost artifact to wakefulness
sufficed to permit it to dream.
Within the reborn stream of magical energy, the Mirror began to
dream of the past that remained its present. It dreamed of the
ghosts of the great men and women held within its memory. It
dreamed of a world lost and forgotten, of wonders no longer
imaginable, of secrets buried in the rubble of a world that no
longer existed. It dreamed of the task that it had left undone for
a thousand years.
Undone. But not forgotten.
The Mirror yearned to waken, and to complete the task for which
it had been created.
* * *
Your job will be to keep her away from the men, Kait. Just
until after the wedding. You know how Tippa is and with the
Sabirs getting a firm foothold into the Kairn Territories, we need
this alliance.
She had acknowledged her cousins fascination with all
things male, and the senior diplomat had smiled at her and patted
her shoulder. This is your chance to prove yourself,
hed said. Do well here, and the Family will place you
in a regular diplomatic position. Youll have other
assignments.
He hadnt said, Fail and youll go back to your
life as a decoration in Galweigh House. He hadnt needed
to. That was a given.
She would be secondary, of course. Tippa would have a
professional chaperone from the Galweigh Family, and another from
the Dokteerak Family; Kait would be a companion, as far
as anyone outside the Galweigh diplomatic corps knew. She would act
as a fail-safe, nothing more, and while her chances of failing were
slim, her chances of winning any recognition for competent
performance and with that recognition, a chance at a real
diplomatic job were even slimmer.
But this was her beginning. Her opportunity to serve her Family,
and perhaps to win a place in the diplomatic corps. This was the
opportunity shed thought she would never could
never have. Under no circumstances would she allow herself
to fail, or even to consider failure. Though she stood in the
breezeway with her head aching and her eyes throbbing, her pain
meant nothing; the fact that her skin crawled and her gut insisted
that something evil lurked in the party meant only that she needed
to focus her attention, that she needed to work harder. She had her
assignment and her chance. She would make it count.
So Kait Galweigh stood off in one corner at the Dokteerak Naming
Day party and scanned the crowd while she pretended to sip a drink.
The Dokteerak Family women in their gauzy net finery clustered
beneath the broad palms in the central garden, chatting about
nothing of consequence. Torchlight cast an amber gleam on their
sleek skin and pale hair and made the heavy gold at their throats
and wrists seem to glow. They were decorative Kaits
Family had such women, too, and theirs was the fate she so
desperately wished to escape. The senior diplomats from both
Families, Galweigh and Dokteerak, gathered in the breezeway that
surrounded the courtyard, leaning along the food-laden tables,
nibbling from finger servings of yearling duck and broiled monkey
and wild pig and papaya-stuffed python, telling each other amusing
stories and watching, watching, their eyes never still. Concubines
flirted and primped, tempting their way into berths in the beds of
the high-ranking or the beautiful. Dokteerak guardsmen in gold and
blue propped themselves against doorways, swapping racy stories and
tales of bravado with Galweigh guardsmen in red and black. Outland
princes and the parats of other Families and their cadet branches
drifted from group to group, assessing available women the way
hunting wolves assessed a herd of deer.
In the salon beside the breezeway, dancing couples moved in and
out of Kaits view. Tippa and her future father-in-law stamped
and swirled among them, performing one of the traditional
brides dances, with, perhaps, a bit more enthusiasm than
necessary. Kait watched the older man and wondered if the Dokteerak
paraglese would be a threat to his future daughter-in-laws
virtue. If he would, he wouldnt be a threat on the dance
floor in front of his son and subjects, but Kait wondered at the
wisdom of an alliance with a man who eyed his sons future
wife with such blatant lust.
Both Tippas Galweigh chaperone and her Dokteerak one
watched from the sidelines, and Calmet Dokteerak, the future
bridegroom, danced with a series of gaudily dressed paratas. Things
there remained under control.
The people she needed to watch were the parats. Like the one
approaching her at that moment.
Beautiful parata, he said, please dance with
me and be my flower of the evening. You are so beautiful, I cannot
continue to breathe unless my air has first been kissed by
you.
Kait had heard variations on the same line half a dozen times
already. As the night wore on, the protestations would become more
passionate and more vehement. Also, she mused, more desperate. The
concubines flocked to the older men and women those with
wealth and power, who could be expected to give fine gifts or even
offer permanent positions in their Houses. The younger men, who had
less to offer, could only seduce others among the partygoers if
they hoped to round out their night with sexual amusements. Kait
young, unmarried, and acceptably attractive had come
in for a complete range of attempted seductions, and her patience
began to wear thin.
Youll have to find another flower, she said.
Im afraid Ive promised myself that I would bloom
alone tonight. She didnt even waste time on a smile.
The parat, who wore the silk of one of the lesser branches of the
Dokteerak House, blanched and nodded stiffly and walked away, the
anger evident in his stride and the set of his shoulders.
He wasnt the sort who would interest her cousin Tippa, but
there were plenty of others roaming the party who would. Kait
discovered that while the parat had distracted her, Tippa had moved
out of view. Kait stepped closer to the arches and almost tripped
over the Dokteerak head artist, Kastos Miellen, who was
demonstrating the workings of a charming mechanical playhouse to a
pair of admiring Galweigh women. Kait apologized, backed away, and
caught sight of Tippa, now dancing with her future husband.
She relaxed, almost amused by her paranoia. From a quiet place
under the arches, she alternately watched the artists tiny
mechanical men and women moving across the miniature stage, and her
cousin spinning and leaping on the crowded dance floor.
A plump hand settled on her shoulder and she jumped. She turned
to the sun-browned, grinning man whod come up behind her, and
for an instant didnt recognize him. His scent tipped her off
before she placed his face.
Uncle Dùghall?
My Kait-cha. You havent forgotten me.
It is you! She hugged him hard and, laughing
a little at her own confusion, stepped back to look at him.
Youve changed.
He smiled. Age and women, Kait. Age and women the
first gives you wrinkles and the second makes you fat. Whereas you
are more beautiful than ever.
So Ive been told, Kait murmured.
Im sure you have. The lads are out in droves
tonight. But youre still alone. Havent found one you
fancy yet?
Kait lowered her voice. Cant even look. Im
working. She grinned then her uncle was the reason she
had any diplomatic assignment at all, however minor it might be. He
had recommended her to the diplomatic services when she turned
thirteen, and had insisted she be trained by the best teachers in
the best classes. He had shipped her final two tutors to Calimekka
from his post on the Imumbarra Isles himself.
He gave her shoulder a quick squeeze and leaned in close enough
to whisper in her ear, Then you have an assignment.
Minor, she said. But important to me.
She glanced in to be sure that Tippa was still behaving herself,
then turned to her uncle. What are you doing here? I thought
you couldnt get away from the islands for this
. . . that some holiday interfered. She tried to
remember the name of the holiday her mother had mentioned when
reading Dùghalls letter to her, but failed.
There are advantages to being considered a minor deity
back home. I changed the date of the holiday, boarded a fast ship,
and here I am.
She hugged him again, and started to effuse about how happy she
was to see him. But Kastos Miellens miniature had caught his
attention.
Impressive toy, isnt it? he asked her, nodding
at the mechanical stage.
Ingenious. And everyone seems to like it.
He held up a finger, the way he always had when he was about to
impart some tidbit of wisdom. Dokteerak hasnt forgotten
the immortal advice of Vincalis.
Kait raised an eyebrow.
Her uncle grinned at her. All your studies of diplomacy
and you havent read Vincalis the Agitator yet? Thats
criminal.
I dont think Ive even heard of Vincalis,
Kait admitted, hoping that he was one of Dùghalls island
diplomats, or someone obscure, so that she might have an excuse for
not knowing his works.
One of the Ancients. A troublemaker of the first water, by
all accounts, which is probably why you havent been taught
him. I hear you have some talents in the direction of trouble
yourself. Dùghall didnt look at her when he spoke
he squinted instead at the artist and his mechanical marvel.
Vincalis said, and I quote, To the man of wealth who
would be great, remember this an artist is a better
investment than a diplomat for three reasons: first, an artist,
once bought, stays bought; second, you screw the artist instead of
the other way round; and third, if you should find it essential to
permanently dispose of your artist, the value of his works will
increase, which no one will say of a diplomat. He
paused for just an instant, so that he could be sure she had a
chance to let the words sink in, then guffawed.
Kait laughed with him, but even to her own ears her laughter
sounded nervous.
Dùghall studied her face and his smile grew mischievous.
I believe Ive shocked you.
At first, I suppose. But Vincalis wasnt serious, was
he?
Dùghall shrugged. My dear, in the best humor lies the
deepest truth, and Vincalis is as true now as he was more than a
thousand years ago. He smiled at her, and then stiffened as
his gaze moved past her and fixed on something in the courtyard.
Suddenly he was as intent as a jaguar whod spotted a fawn.
The expression vanished as quickly as it had appeared, so quickly
that Kait couldnt begin to guess what had caught his eye, but
when he returned his attention to her again, his smile was
apologetic. And now, sadly, I must move on. I see an old
friend out in the courtyard, and if I dont hurry, shes
sure to vanish.
And before she could even give him another hug, or tell him how
glad she was to see him, he was gone.
She glanced into the salon to check on Tippa. She didnt
see either of the chaperones. Tippas future father-in-law had
vanished. Her future husband stood in the center of a circle of
admiring women, none of whom was Tippa.
Tippa . . .
Kait felt her stomach knot. This was her chance to prove she
could serve the Familys interests, and Tippa was nowhere in
the salon.
Kait looked around the breezeway and out into the courtyard; a
cluster of men parted, and revealed Tippa spinning in a circle on
the arm of a tall, handsome young outlander dressed in Gyru-nalle
finery, while two others, similarly dressed, looked on.
The couple stopped spinning and Tippa flung herself down onto a
seat beside a fountain in one shadowed corner of the courtyard. Her
companion said something too softly for Kait to catch over the
crowd noise, and Tippa squealed with laughter. She took a tall
goblet from one of the men whod been watching her impromptu
dance with his associate, and swallowed the contents in two hard
pulls. At some point she had opened the outer blouse of her silk
dress and pulled it back, revealing the filmy silk underblouse,
which was tugged so low that Kait could see a new-moon sliver of
one rouged nipple peeking over the scalloped hem. Very stylish
. . . but not appropriate for a woman who was to marry
within the week. Tippas hair had come loose from its netting
and hung around her face in wild tendrils. Her eyes were too bright
and her laughter too loud. All three men clustered around her as if
she were one of the party concubines, and not the bride-to-be of
Branard Dokteeraks second son, Calmet.
And that would be an incident, wouldnt it? The drunken
bride-to-be and three Gyru princes caught together in
some back room or stable stall a week before the wedding? Kait set
her goblet on a marble rail and pushed through the crowd, abruptly
and totally furious.
She caught her cousin just as the girl had begun to run her
fingers along the lacings of the tallest mans shirt.
Isnt he lovely? Tippa asked as Kaits hand
clamped around her wrist, and the man, who didnt look in the
least drunk, said, Unless you want to join our party, little
parata, just move on. But dont be spoiling our fun.
The anger that was always in her, anger that sought to break
free from the tight chains of self-control with which she bound it,
slipped toward the surface. She turned from the Gyrus with
difficulty. Tippa, we have to leave early. The Naming news
from Calimekka will be arriving soon, and we need to be there for
our devotions. The carriage is waiting.
It was a lie, but it was at least a plausible lie.
Tippa, oblivious to the scene she was about to cause, leaned
forward farther, and whispered in Kaits ear loudly enough
that Kait, the Gyrus, and probably most of the guests could hear,
Then go back without me, Kait. Im having a
. . . good . . . a good . . . time,
and Ive made some . . . some nice friends.
Arent they cute? Her smile when she leaned back spoke
of too much wine as loudly as her whisper. Theyre
Prince . . . um, Ersti, and Prince Keera . . .
er, Meerki, and Prince . . . Prince . . . I
cant remember. Ah, Prince Latti. She smiled hazily.
Right?
Im sure they are, Kait growled. But you
will have to visit with these . . . royals
. . . another time. How could Tippa have gotten so
drunk? The chaperones should have prevented that. And where were
they, anyway? She hated sloppiness, but this suggested more to her
than that.
And a princes hand suddenly gripping her shoulder, too
rough and insistent to be mistaken for anything but a threat,
screamed to her that the incident had been planned. Somewhere. By
someone. The man said, Leave her alone. Were having a
good time. Just go back to your Family, where you belong,
girl. He spit out the word Family as if it meant
garbage.
Kaits anger broke half of its chains, and she twisted out
of the mans grip and turned to face him, and her fury (or
am I slipping . . . have I lost control?) sent him a
step back wearing shock on his pale freckled face. Dont
press me, she said, so softly that only the three Gyrus could
hear her. She heard in her voice the dark timbre of that second
self that begged to be set free. Her skin grew hot; it tingled over
muscles that longed to shift and slip, over bones that yearned for
violent force and violent change. She stood fast, permitting no
flash of teeth, no growl, no tensing of muscle. She forced her
anger to whisper, knowing that she dared not let it shout.
She stared, and all three Gyrus glared back at her. She felt the
growl starting in the back of her throat, and the last of the
chains weakened. But the men saw something in her, something that
warned them. All three backed away.
Furious, Kait turned on her cousin. She pulled Tippas
outer blouse closed, then grabbed her wrist and yanked her to her
feet.
But I dont want . . . Tippa started
to say, but stopped herself when the edge of Kaits anger
seeped through the wine haze. Her eyes went round and her mouth
clamped shut. She followed, unprotesting, as Kait pulled her toward
the breezeway that led into the House, and eventually toward the
grounds where the carriages waited.
Kait glanced back to be sure the Gyrus werent following
them. She didnt want to cause an incident; wanted no one
dead, no difficult questions, not now when she was finally, finally
on her own and working as a productive member of the Family. The
three of them were huddled together, faces flushed and tight with
anger. She tried to listen to what they were saying while still
moving toward the door, and she told herself that was the reason
she ran right into the short young man who stood near the archway.
She hit him hard, but she was the one who staggered back he
was solid as a tree, and seemed to be as thoroughly rooted to the
earth. She caught her balance. Tippa wasnt so fortunate; she
tripped and went down. Both Kait and the stranger moved to help
her. Kait took Tippas arm but the man planted one hand on
either side of Tippas waist and lifted her to her feet.
Im so sorry, he said, loudly enough that anyone
who had seen the girl go down could hear him. I wasnt
watching where I was going.
Kait started to smile at him, appreciative that hed made
an attempt to cover her cousins drunkenness to preserve her
reputation, when she became aware of something noticeable only by
its absence.
The ache in her head and behind her eyeballs was gone. The
crawling sensation of her skin was gone. More, the pervasive sense
of stalking evil that Kait had felt all night had been lifted and
removed, like someone pulling a heavy counterpane off a bed. She
felt better. Safer. Her volatile emotions, fed by the aura of
danger that had surrounded her, calmed. She took a slow breath, and
smiled at the man, and had the presence of mind to thank him for
helping her cousin.
Think nothing of it, he said. He had a pleasant
voice. A nondescript face, an ordinary smile, kind eyes; when Kait
turned away from him, she was halfway to forgetting him
already.
Then, three or four strides away from the place where shed
run into him, with Tippa dragging along in her wake, Kait felt the
full brunt of crawling nighttime evil drop onto her shoulders
again. The headache grabbed her; her skin prickled and she
shuddered involuntarily, and she gasped from the pain. She
wasnt prepared. Not prepared at all. The change caught her in
the gut like the kick of a street fighter, and for just an instant
she almost couldnt think.
Her first thought when she could breathe again was that the
helpful stranger was the cause of the aura of evil that filled the
night. Her second and more logical thought was that he was somehow
immune to it or somehow protected from it. She stopped,
turned slowly, and stared at him. He looked back at her, and she
could no longer understand why shed thought him nondescript.
She could still see that outer shell of inoffensiveness, but
underneath she could see a man as complicated and fascinating as
that mechanical marvel the Dokteerak artist had unveiled for the
Naming Day party. Her expression told him something he didnt
like, for the Im no one of consequence smile gave
way to an expression of fear in his eyes, and a look of
understanding that unnerved her. The fact that she had looked twice
at him told him something about her. He knew. She didnt know
what he knew, but she had to find out. If her secrets got out, they
would kill her.
Who are you? she asked.
His eyes tracked from one corner of the courtyard to the other.
No one of importance. Just a guest.
Tell me. Ill find out one way or another. She
didnt mean for that remark to sound like a threat, but the
second the words were out of her mouth, she knew it did.
You probably will.
She moved back toward him, and seemed to step through a wall
when she did. On the outside, her nerves screamed that something
terrible waited to attack. Inside, the evil vanished as if it had
never been. How do you do that? She kept her voice low;
she sensed that whatever his secret was, it probably wasnt
one that he wanted bruited about to the world.
That weak smile again, and eyes that darted left, right, left,
checking to see if anyone was listening. Or watching. He said
nothing.
She had to know. She said, The wall around you. The one
that keeps out the foulness of this place. How do you do
it?
His face went slack with fear then. A man with a knife held to
his throat by a madman could not have looked more frightened.
Not here, he said. By all the gods, not
here.
Your name, then. And where I can find you. She
narrowed her eyes. Dont lie to me. I can smell
lies.
He nodded. I have a shop in the west quarter.
Hasmals Curiosities. Its near the wall, on Stonecutter
Street.
Youre Hasmal?
The Third. I work for my father.
Sons of shopkeepers rarely found themselves invited into the
Houses of the Five Families. And if they did, they would be there
as workers, not guests. Yet Hasmal the son of Hasmal, sipping at
his wine, dressed in his Naming Day finery, certainly looked like a
guest.
She tightened her grip on Tippas wrist and said,
Ill be by to talk with you tomorrow. Then she
turned, braced herself against the malevolent night, stepped out of
his circle of sanctuary, and dragged Tippa out of the
courtyard.
* * *
The paraglese of Dokteerak House, Branard Dokteerak, balanced
the tip of his dagger on the corner of his desk. With his index
finger pressing against the emerald in the pommel, he rocked it
slowly back and forth, gouging a tiny scar into the wood. Across
from him, standing next to the chairs because Branard had not
bidden him sit, the Sabir messenger stared at the rocking knife as
if he were a chick in its nest watching an approaching snake. The
paraglese was aware of the Sabirs attention. He kept his own
eyes fixed on the tiny chips of wood that he worked loose from the
desk. He was waiting for the messenger to fidget, or sigh, or in
any way express his impatience, but the man had been well trained.
He gave away nothing. At last, Dokteerak, still watching his knife
rocking back and forth, said, What do you have to say for
yourself?
The messenger said, My Family sends off the troops you
requested; they will depart at the first light of dawn tomorrow,
and the pigeon must have time to reach them if you have any last
message you will send. They require any final information that you
can give anything that has happened that might change the
number of troops required, or the route they must take, or the
necessary supplies.
The paraglese, disgusted, said, Anything that might change
the number of troops required, eh? Well, what about this, then? My
House is full to the rafters with Galweighs getting ready to
celebrate the marriage of their damned daughter to my son. As host
of this farce, my place is out there with them, acting the part of
doting father and eager ally. Instead Im in here with you,
and you cannot think for a moment that one of their number
hasnt noticed that. Further, if youre seen here and
recognized, all our work will be for nothing. Theyll call off
the wedding, get their people back to Calimekka, and go on the
defensive. If they do that, neither your people nor my people nor
the rest of the countryside combined will rout them out of that
House of theirs, and we will lose this fine opportunity
which the senior members of your Family and I have been planning
for three years to take it. Your presence here, and
your demand for my presence here, could be the tiny breeze that
topples our tower down upon us.
The Sabir envoy spread his hands wide. My people required
a final reassurance. My paraglese asks me to remind you that we
risk more than you do, Paraglese Dokteerak if we fail at
this we risk Galweigh retaliation more than you do. You dont
share Calimekka with them, whereas our House lies inside the same
walls as theirs.
Indeed. But when this is over, we will share the city with
you, and I ask you to remind Grasmir that he and I will get along
better if I havent lost the best of my fighters and my sons
needlessly through his carelessness, or his impatience, or his
pointless worrying. He felt his anger getting the better of
him. He shoved harder on the knife, and it dug itself deeply into
the wood he allowed himself no other display of temper.
Nothing has changed. Nothing. Now leave before you give us
all away.
The envoy bowed gracefully and said, Enjoy your party,
Paraglese.
And then he was gone.
The paraglese sat staring at the closed door for a moment, and
wondered if that hint of irony he heard in the Sabir envoys
last words was in the envoys voice or in his own mind.
Chapter 2
The stone walls, rough-hewn and slime-coated, gleamed in
the torchlight. The chill of the place, and the stink and the
darkness and the skittering sounds of the rats, wore on
Marcues nerves even when all the cells were full and the men
in them talked and quarreled and wondered about their futures. Now
the dungeon was empty except for one prisoner, and that was a girl
a child, really and she rarely spoke, but frequently
cried. Her crying was worse than the rats.
She was crying at the moment.
Your Family will ransom you, he told her. He
wasnt supposed to offer comfort to the enemy, but he had a
hard time thinking of a little girl as an enemy, and an equally
hard time understanding how his employers could justify treating
her as one, to the point of locking her in the lowest dungeon in
Sabir House for more than a month.
The girl said nothing for a few moments, but she did sniffle a
bit and take a few slow, deep breaths, as if she were trying to get
herself under control. Then she moved a little way out of the
shadow that hid her and looked at him. I thought
. . . I thought they w-w-would, too, she said, and
started sobbing again.
Marcue winced. Poor girl. She was so young and pretty, and so
very helpless. And she obviously didnt understand how these
things worked. Families didnt hurt little girls.
He had no compunction about holding warriors and diplomats in
the cells. He didnt lose sleep when he had to kill one for
trying to escape, either; the warriors and diplomats of the world
had chosen to be where they were, doing what they were doing, and
they knew the risks involved in their work. This girl, though, had
been kidnapped from her bed while she slept, and had been dragged
into this cell in the month of Brethwan, during the Festival of the
Full Circle. And there she had languished while his employers and
her Family bickered over the price of her return.
If I had such a daughter, the guard had thought more than once,
I would pay any price for her safe return. But he had discovered
long ago that the ways of the rich and powerful were not his ways.
From everything he had heard, her Family was demanding not only her
safe return, but also an exorbitant punitive payment to reimburse
them for the anguish they had suffered from her kidnapping. He
thought, though he hadnt dared to say it aloud, that her
Family didnt know a damned thing about suffering if they
could leave a daughter locked in a cell while they screamed for
compensation.
The girl rose and came to the gate. Even dirty and unkempt, with
the tattered blanket shed been given wrapped around her
delicate shoulders, she was impossibly beautiful. Dressed still in
the silk pajamas shed been wearing when she was kidnapped,
she looked so fragile he wondered again how she had survived a
month in the cold, dank, filthy cell.
You could release me, she said to him. Her
little-girl voice was soft and tentative, and tinged with hope.
Her voice could have broken the heart of a stone, and Marcue was
no stone. He looked at her sadly, though, and told her, That
I cannot do, though if I dared, Id do it in an
instant.
She gripped the bars and glared at him. Why
cant you? You admit your employers have taken me
wrongfully, and that their behavior is shameful.
Hed said those things to her a few days earlier, and now
wished he hadnt. Hed meant them; he thought what
hed said was completely true; but if she told any of the
Sabir Family about his indiscretion, his head would be decorating a
post at the west gate of Sabir House.
She leaned closer and her voice dropped to a whisper. If
you helped me, you could have anything you wanted from the
Galweighs.
He moved toward her, though no closer than the line of the
no-pass zone carved into the stone floor. He kept his voice low and
prayed no one was listening. I know I could, but I still
cant release you. Not for fear of my own life, but for the
lives of my parents. Both my mother and my father work in the Sabir
kitchens. If I set you free, whether I stayed on or ran with you,
both of my parents would be killed the moment my betrayal was
discovered. He stopped and reconsidered. No, that
isnt true. The Sabirs would torture them first, then kill
them.
She seemed to sag and shrink in front of his eyes.
Thats it, then. You were my last hope. And you say
exactly the same thing as the other five guards who have watched me
Id help you if I could, but
they would kill my family . . . or my wife
. . . or my sister . . . She
looked, for just an instant, furious. Id think, when
the Sabirs told you what stories to tell your prisoners, that they
would have told you to try to be a bit original.
He was startled. She thought he was lying to her? He shook his
head and almost moved across the line to explain to her, but
remembered himself in time and kept back of it. Girl
he began.
She cut him off. Danya. My name is Danya. I want you to
remember it, since you wont help me. Remember it, so that
when they do whatever theyre going to do to me, my face and
my name will haunt you for the rest of your life. She flung
herself away from the bars, facedown into the straw.
He winced. Danya, he said, you think we were
all told to tell you a story . . . but that isnt
so. How do you suppose the Families ensure the loyalty of their
guards? Eh? Have you ever thought about that? They choose only
those of us who have something to lose . . .
someone, actually. And they make sure we know, from the day
we don these uniforms, that our loved ones are the reason we were
chosen to serve and that they will be the price we pay if we
fail.
Danya rolled over and sat up. She glared at him and brushed
loose tangles of hair back from her face. Perhaps that is how
the Sabirs do it
Marcue didnt let her finish. Unless you have also
spent time in the Galweigh dungeons, and have spoken to the
Galweigh guards to be sure you know differently, assume the guard
who watched over you was chosen the same way. Assume that when your
Family discovered you stolen away, the person he once loved was
murdered while he watched, and when she was dead, that he was
killed, too. Loyalty can be bought and sold, child, and even given
away for free . . . but fear can make the price of a
mans loyalty higher than even the richest buyer could
pay.
The girl stared at him for a moment, horrified. My Family
would never hurt Quintal. He has guarded me since I was born. And
his wife and daughter . . . his daughter was my companion
until just last year, and his wife works for our seneschal. They
are a part of the Family.
She leaned forward to hide her face against her thighs. She
wrapped her thin arms under her legs and began to cry again.
No one would hurt them, he heard her insisting again
and again.
Oh, please, Marcue whispered. Dont do
that. Im sure youre right. Your guardsman will be fine,
and his family, too. Meanwhile, Danya, youre safe here. Your
Family isnt going to let anything happen to you. Theyll
pay to get you out any day now, someone will come down the
steps to release you.
She didnt raise her head. The guard could barely make out
her reply, muffled as it was. He thought she said, Its
Theramisday.
And what did the fact that it was Naming Day have to do with
anything? He asked her as much.
Because, she said, lifting her head, the Sabir
diplomat who came down and talked to me just after I got here gave
Theramisday as the last day that my Family could come to an
agreement on the terms of my release. If the Sabirs didnt get
what they wanted then, they said they would take it by other means,
and my life would be worth nothing to them.
The guard tried to smile at her. They always say things
like that when theyre dealing with each other. I cant
even tell you how many threats Ive heard the Sabirs giving
. . . and you have to know the stories Ive heard of
the Galweighs are no better. He shook his head and his smile
grew more confident. But all those threats wont mean
anything when it comes to you. What could they gain by hurting
you?
She gave him an eerie look, one that seemed to bite with
knife-edged teeth straight through his skin and into his bones.
That stare chilled him from the inside out, and made him wish that
there were more people in the dungeon than just the two of them.
Then she looked away and the awful feeling passed. She said,
Youd be surprised.
Perhaps I would after all, he thought, but he said nothing.
From far above, he heard the first soft, rhythmic thuds of boots
on the curving stairs that led down into the dungeon. The hour was
far too early for his relief to be coming, and too late for someone
from the kitchen to be bringing meals for him and the girl. So
then, who came?
Danya moved into the farthest corner of her cell and pulled
herself into a tiny bundle, huddled behind a little pile of straw.
She said, Its time for the bad news now. But perhaps
you could still find a way to save me.
The child was determined to get him killed. He shook his
head.
She watched him, eyes like those of a fox in a trap
terrified yet cunning, too. Id consent to marriage in
my own right, if thats what you wanted. Even if you demanded
both marriage and a name in the Galweigh Family, I could promise
that, and you would have it. I will promise it. I do. If
youll just get me away from here.
Her hand in marriage? He smiled sadly at her and said, How
old are you, Danya? Not old enough to be thinking of marriage,
Ill wager.
She said, Im eighteen. Old enough to give legal
consent.
She was eighteen? He wouldnt have guessed her age at more
than thirteen, and she wouldnt have made a particularly well
developed thirteen-year-old. If she was eighteen and he
wasnt sure he was willing to believe her about that
she might be in more trouble than hed guessed. As a legal
adult, she couldnt count on the safeguards promised to
children by the Family treaties. As an adult, if her Family
wouldnt ransom her and she couldnt offer her own
ransom, the Sabirs really might do what they wanted with her.
But they would start a war if they hurt or killed, but
that was unthinkable the daughter of a Galweigh. And none of
the Families and subfamilies in Calimekka wanted a war.
Did they?
The footsteps grew louder. He thought he could discern three
separate pairs of feet coming down the stone stairs.
Save me. Anything it is within my power to give,
youll have.
He felt her fear as if it were a blanket wrapping itself around
him, smothering him. You cant guarantee the safety of
my parents, he said quietly. Im sorry, girl, but
I cant help you.
She screamed fear and rage, in equal parts. She ripped
handfuls of straw from the floor and flung them at him. He drew
well back from the line and steeled his face to impassivity. Above
him, the pace of feet on stairsteps quickened. He grew uneasy.
Perhaps she had reason to fear. Perhaps. But so did he.
The first man appeared from around the curve of the staircase.
His long cloak, which swirled against his riding boots and billowed
behind him, also effectively hooded his face from view, but Marcue
knew him anyway from the ring on his right hand. A wolfs-head
ring, gold, with tourmaline cabochon eyes that glowed in the
torchlight, with a mouth opened in a vicious snarl. The wearer of
the ring was Crispin Sabir, one of the Sabir Wolves.
A wave of queasiness washed over Marcue. The girl had reason to
fear. Crispin Sabir was mad. Evil. Cruel beyond words, beyond human
comprehension. If even one one-hundredth of the stories Marcue had
heard about him were true, the man kept corpses in his quarters and
planted them in his private grounds the way gardeners planted
roses. Marcue had seen him torture a man once; that memory would
never leave him. If he had known the girl would end up with the
Sabirs Wolves instead of with their diplomats
Why is she screaming? Crispin asked, and Marcue
swallowed and said quickly, Shes afraid. She heard you
coming down the stairs and she said something about this being
Theramisday.
Theramisday. Gregor said he told her about that. Im
glad she remembered, Crispin said.
The second man appeared as he said it, and if Marcue had been
sick at the sight of Crispin, with the arrival of Andrew Sabir his
heart sank, weighted with dread. Andrew Sabir. Better a visit from
Zagtasht, god of the underworld. At least Zagtasht was sometimes
known to show mercy. Andrew was a massive man, twice as broad
through the shoulders as the leaner, taller Crispin, with a chest
like a beer barrel; he kept his head shaved in the manner of the
Sloebene sailors, with a single braid above his left ear; and he
was ugly as red-eyed evil. He grinned as he caught sight of the
girl, and said, Do you want me to shut her up,
Crispin?
Not at all. Let her sing a bit. I like the sound of
it.
The third set of footsteps on the stairs approached slowly.
Marcue heard a hissing slide, then a thud and a grunt, then the
normal click of boot heel on stone. A pause. Then the sequence
repeated. Over and over, louder and louder. And throughout, a
curious scraping that he hadnt heard at all until the other
two men were off the stairs.
Marcue shivered, and not from the chill and the damp. Hed
heard stories of the creatures the Wolves kept hidden in their
chambers. Hed heard, too, that they consorted with demons and
monsters. And that shuffle-step on the stair (what was that
scratching sound?) might just be a kindly old Family diplomat
limping down to tell the girl her ransom had been met
. . . but Marcue didnt think so.
We have news for you, little Wolf, Andrew said.
Crispin glared at him. Wait until Anwyn gets here. He
doesnt want to miss this.
Andrew laughed, a creepy high tittering giggle that made Marcue
want to retch. News, he repeated. But maybe Anwyn
will want to give it to you himself. Well all want to give it
to you. He giggled again.
The girl stood and faced the men. She wasnt screaming any
longer, and Marcue could see no sign of tears. Shed drawn
strength from someplace; shed found a measure of courage from
deep inside herself; now her chin went up and her shoulders came
back and her body wrote defiance in the air with her every move.
She glared at Andrew and said, So what is your news,
Wolf?
Crispin and Andrew both grinned at each other. As they did,
Anwyn slouched into the dungeon. Marcue had thought from his name
that he would be human. Anwyn was a good Parmatian name, like
Crispin . . . or Marcue, for that matter. The thing that
skulked into the dungeon wasnt human, though. He might have
been one of the Scarred one of the creatures from the
poisoned lands whose ancestors, stories said, had once been men. If
he was Scarred, however, he was from no realm that had ever traded
in Calimekka. And if he wasnt one of the Scarred, then he was
a demon from the lowest pit of Zagtashts darkest hell. Long
horns curled out from his forehead. His scaled brow beetled over
eyes so deeply set they looked more like hollow sockets. His lips
parted in a grin that revealed teeth long as a mans thumb and
serrated like a sharks. He hunched forward, and Marcue could
make out the ridge of huge spines that ran down the center of his
back beneath his cloak. His hands were talons, though
five-fingered, and while one of his feet fit in a mans boot
and grew from a man-shaped leg, the other was a cloven hoof
attached to a leg that, beneath a mans breeches, bent
backward at the knee. That leg he dragged forward as he moved into
the room.
Marcue longed to run. He kept himself where he was only by the
fiercest exercise of will, and he knew that his terror showed
plainly on his face.
The girl didnt flinch. She looked at the monster as if he
were someone she had known and disliked all her life. Marcue
couldnt even see fear in her eyes.
Well, he was afraid enough for both of them.
You should have helped her escape, a tiny voice in the back of
his mind whispered. You are going to regret the fact that you
didnt for the rest of your life. The name Danya Galweigh is
going to ride with you into the dark halls of nightmare when you
sleep, and perch on your shoulders when you wake.
The girl gripped the bars of her cell with slender,
long-fingered hands and, in a voice that said without words that
she was their superior and beyond anything they might do to her,
said, Youre all here now. Give me your news.
The monster Anwyn said, Dear child, the diplomats still
talk, and we will let them talk, of course but they achieve
nothing. Your Family is most unwilling to give us what we
want. He shook his head and looked from Andrew to Crispin,
then back to the girl. And the work of Theramisday has come
and gone, and no decision that we will accept has yet been
reached.
She frowned. But you said the diplomats are still
talking.
Anwyn smiled, and those horrible teeth gleamed. Well, of
course. If we had given your people our actual deadline, they would
know to be watching for our next move. As it is, they think
were still considering what they have to say, so they
wont be prepared for our attack.
Danya paled, and Marcue, pressed against the wall, ached for
her. Her Family still thought they had a chance to get her back
alive, when in fact she had become the trick that would make them
vulnerable.
Danya Galweigh didnt collapse into tears, nor did she beg
for mercy. She glanced at Marcue, then back at the monster, and
said, So now I assume you have come to kill me.
All three visitors to the dungeon laughed. The demon said,
Lovely girl, we wouldnt dream of killing you. Yet. What
a stupid waste of valuable resources that would be. How
would we bring ourselves to kill someone so young and beautiful, so
strong and full of life? No. We have a place for you among our
number.
Indeed, Crispin said, the central place of
honor in the circle of the Wolves.
That meant nothing to Marcue, but it meant something to Danya.
Her facade of courage and impassivity crumbled, and tears filled
her eyes. No, she whispered. Please, no. Not
that.
Andrew tittered again. Well, not that right away. After
you have been the guest of the Wolves, you wont be
. . . well, you wont be the same, and we hated the
idea of wasting so much prettiness. So for the next few days,
youll entertain the three of us. Just us.
She backed away from the bars. Dont touch
me.
Crispin and the demon laughed, and Crispin said, Well,
brother, I dont think she likes us.
The demon said, Shell probably like you well enough.
But I think I shall like her.
Andrew said, Guard, give me the key to her cell.
Marcue shuddered.
I should have helped her. I should have . . . I had
the time. I could have made an opportunity. I could have done
something. Maybe I still can. Maybe I can find a way to get her out
and lock the three of them in there I can run with her and
my parents before anyone is the wiser. Galweigh House isnt so
far . . .
Let me open it for you, he heard himself saying.
The lock is stiff and tricky, and wont open if you
havent practiced with it a great deal. His voice shook
when he spoke, but he thought anyones voice would shake on
being confronted for the first time with a demon. And what he said
about the lock was true, actually, though he took nearly three
times as long unlocking it as he would have normally. His delay
came partly because his hands were shaking from fear, but more than
that, the whole time he was scraping the key back and forth, he was
figuring out how he would get the men and the monster into the cell
and the girl safely out. By the time the door screeched open, he
thought he had found the way.
There, he said, and stepped back, keeping himself
beside the door and leaving the key in the lock.
Very good, Andrew said. That did look very
difficult.
Marcue nodded and took another step back. He tried to catch the
girls eye, but she was looking at Andrew, who stepped into
the cell first. Crispin followed, and Marcue wished with all his
heart the second one in had been the demon. Crispin would have been
so much easier to shove.
He watched both men close on Danya, and backed up another half
step, hoping to spot the demon, who had inexplicably vanished. He
felt his fear in the tightening of his gut and his testicles, in
the pounding of his heart, and he thought, Come on! Come on! Move
in front of me, you bastard, before its too late.
Then he felt the point of a needle at his throat.
It probably would have worked, the demon said from
behind him. He felt it rest one hand on his belly. The other
tightened around his neck, and the monster picked him up,
strangling him and dragging him backward at the same time. He
kicked and struggled, trying to pull the hand away from his neck
and finding that he might have bent the bars of one of the cells
with his hands more easily. He couldnt breathe at all,
couldnt make a sound. The demon took him to the stone wall
directly across from the cell (to the rows of manacles, why is he
taking me to the manacles?) and released his throat just as the
world was beginning to turn gray and his pulse was threatening to
explode out the sides of his skull.
Marcue vomited and gasped in air, choking, his throat on fire,
and the demon laughed. It grabbed one wrist and locked it into a
manacle, then caught the other one. You couldnt have
saved her, but you might have gotten all three of us into the
cell. The demon smiled at him (horrible smile) and added,
But you think too loudly, and with your whole body. Not a
good survival trait, that.
Marcue became dimly aware that the girl was screaming. He looked
past the demon to see her held between Crispin and Andrew. She was
staring at him. Screaming for him.
The monster fitted his other wrist into the manacle, closed it.
Locked it. Smiled at him.
Terrible, terrible teeth.
Terrible.
The girl, screaming, Let him go! Let him go!
We were just going to take her up to our quarters,
Crispin said from inside the cell. Just going to go on our
way and leave you to your job. But, naughty lad, you let yourself
think of a prisoner as something besides a prisoner, and you are
going to have to pay for that.
I dont think, the demon said, that he
should leave life without at least a little entertainment, though.
Do you, Crispin?
What did you have in mind?
Killing him slowly, the demon said. Letting
him watch us with the girl as he dies. So that at least he dies
amused.
Andrew giggled. Do it, he said. Do
it.
The demon turned to face Marcue and said quietly, A voice
speaks to each of us in the still silent places a voice that
tells us to stand, to have courage, to do what is right. He
smiled. And if were very, very clever, we hunt down the
source of that voice, and kill it.
He dragged one dagger-tipped finger down Marcues gut, and
the fabric of his tunic fell away, and the link mail under it
rattled. The demon clicked his tongue, and ripped the link mail in
half from top to bottom. Sliced away the padded quilt shirt
underneath. Exposed the bare skin of Marcues chest and
belly.
Such smooth skin, he said. Mine looked like
that once. Enough so that I think I would have had to kill you
anyway. I miss my old self.
Dont, Marcue said. Dont hurt me. I
didnt do anything.
You wanted to. Wanting to was enough.
You dont know that. You cant know what a man
thinks.
I can. I do.
Let me go.
Were going to let you watch. The mating of Wolves
not a sight many men have ever seen. The demon
laughed, and dragged its claw down his belly a final time.
white
red
pain agony pain
terror and blood and stink and
the incredible noise of screaming someone
screaming inside his head and he wanted it to stop he called to the
pain to kill him and it didnt
the weight of something hot and slick and stinking sliding away
from him, landing on his feet
faintness, but faintness that abandoned him at the last instant
and left him to the cruel ministrations of the waking world
he kept on living
and a voice that cut through his screaming like that claw had
cut through his belly, and silenced him.
We can do much, much more to you without killing you
outright, Crispin Sabir said. So unless you want us to
prove that, shut your mouth and watch. Were doing this for
your benefit.
Marcue opened his eyes. He didnt look down. He knew what
he would see there, and he couldnt look. Couldnt. He
couldnt keep his eyes from the scene in front of him, either.
His supply of courage was gone. He hung in the shackles, his back
against the wall, and watched, wishing he could die quickly,
wishing he could die right away. He watched the demon and the two
men who were no better than demons, and he tried not to look at the
girl. He tried not to hear her. Because he lived to know that they
had killed him, that he was a breathing dead man, and that was
terrible.
Terrible.
But the things they did to her were worse.
Chapter 3
It was a scent in the hallway that did it, that almost
threw Kait into an uncontrolled Shift; a scent at once as familiar
as family and as alien as the far side of the world. One instant
she was dragging Tippa down the long, empty side corridor toward
the yard where the driver had parked the carriage. The next, she
was leaning against a wall feeling her bones going liquid in her
body, feeling her blood bubbling like sparkling wine, while
exuberance filled her and colors and sounds grew sharper and
cleaner and the very air she breathed became a rich, full-bodied,
intoxicating beverage.
Tippa struggled to free her wrist from Kaits grasp, and
bleated, Kait? Kait? Whats wrong? in that timid,
frightened voice Kait loathed.
Kait wiped tears of frustration and longing from her eyes with
the back of a hand, checking the appearance of the hand at the same
time. Normal. Thank the gods, thank all the gods, it was
normal. If she could just get herself under control, she might
still be all right.
I want to run, she thought. I want to fly, to race against the
wind; I want to feel my muscles burn from exertion, I want to hear
my blood pounding in my ears. I want to taste the wind and feel the
cut of the tall grass against my skin. I want to hunt. I want
fresh, hot meat, the iron tang of blood and she pushed what
she wanted away from herself. Far away. Far down in the dark places
inside, her hungers fought against her and she struggled to lock
them away where they belonged. She said softly, I dont
want any of those things. I want to serve my Family and earn my
independence. Her voice sounded raw, husky, far too deep.
Bad. Very bad. Her vocal cords had already slipped. She turned to
Tippa, and gripped both her cousins shoulders, and stared
down into her eyes. Tippa swallowed, looking suddenly sober and
very frightened. Go to the carriage, Kait said.
Tell the driver to take you home. Wait with the Family
tell whoever meets you that I sent you because three Gyru princes
were up to something and your chaperones had disappeared. Ill
. . . be along when I can.
Tippa shivered. Kait, whats wrong with
you?
Nothing that I cant take care of. She wished
that were true. Control, always elusive, now felt as if it slipped
through her fingers like quicksilver. Go, she snarled.
Run.
Tippa stared at her an instant longer, then turned and fled.
When she disappeared through the archway at the end of the corridor
and thundered down the steps to the carriage, Kait moved to the
first dark side passage she could find, hid behind an enormous
statue, and sank to the floor. Her silk skirts rustled, and the
laced bodice of the damned party dress grew looser, then tighter,
then looser, then tighter.
Her blood pounded in her wrists, in her temples, behind her
tightly closed eyes her blood burned in her veins and fizzed
like the water of a sacred spring. The unbearable desire grew
worse. She smelled him, this stranger one of her own, an
adult male, in the prime of life. Like her, pushed too close to the
knife edge of control; like her, hungry for a hunt. She opened her
mouth and wrinkled her nose slightly and inhaled, and along the
back of her palate she tasted the scents of him that were both
wonderfully familiar and wonderfully strange. That bottled
exuberance threatened to burst free, to become the wild
exhilaration of total Shift.
She couldnt let it take her. She couldnt let that
other Kait loose. Not in the Dokteerak House, not surrounded by
hundreds of potential enemies. She had to stop herself, and
fast.
His scent was like a drug in the air, like incense made of
caberra spice, which clouded the mind and filled it full of
visions; his scent could lead her knowing and almost willing toward
her own destruction. First she needed to block that.
She had perfume. A little bottle, always with her. Stinking
stuff, like all perfume she hated it because it ruined the
taste of the air the way spices and sauces ruined the taste of
meat. But scents had caught her off guard before, and shed
learned. She pulled the little bottle of perfume from her
waist-purse, slopped some of it onto a corner of her skirt, and
wiped the reeking stuff across her nostrils and her upper lip.
The effect was jarring. Painful. Like being wakened from the
midst of a pleasant dream by being pitched headfirst into an icy
spring. Her eyes watered and she needed to cough and sneeze at the
same time, and she didnt dare do either. Her bones hurt. Her
blood churned. The thrill of Shift cooled, but not pleasantly. Her
skin became a layer of lead smeared over muscles that ached as if
theyd taken a hellish beating.
I can hold the other back. I am in control.
I want to run
The world is cool, blues and greens and icy whites, silent and
scented with flowers and spices. My heart beats slowly; my feet
remain firmly on the ground; I seek tranquillity.
the world is red and hot and scented with earth and blood and
the rich raw taste of meat and sex
I have given up everything for this chance to be human. I told
my parents I could do this, I promised I could take on the
responsibility, I told them if they wouldnt give me work
within my Family I would find work outside of it where they could
never be sure I was safe.
youre a fool
Im more than you would let me be. Im more than
instinct, more than running and hunting and rutting. My parents
sacrificed just to keep me alive to adulthood. They gave me the
keys to be human.
youre Karnee . . . youre a freak
. . . youre a Curse-touched monster and in the end
you will never be more than an animal
Kait opened her eyes and looked at her hands. Human hands. She
smelled the flowery stink of perfume, and ignored the salt taste of
her tears on her lips, and the wet heat on her cheeks. She would
not give in to the voice of the hated other. She could be more than
the Curse-trapped beast shed been born as. She would be
more.
The cool smoothness of the polished marble wall felt good
through the thin layers of her silk dress. She pressed back against
the wall, catching her breath, letting the stone caress the skin at
the nape of her neck. The crystalline perfection of the world that
had been within her reach had been erased, swathed in the dull,
lifeless tones that characterized everything when she came out of
an attack. She was already drifting into the Crash phase. She felt
the moodiness setting in. Not too terrible this time the
near-Shift hadnt materialized, and the price she paid for the
wild, joyous abandon of Karnee was always proportional. But the
Crash was coming, and with it the ravenous hunger, the lethargy,
and the other symptoms. Worse, this time she would have to pay the
price knowing that she would still have to deal with a pending
episode . . . and soon.
This time she had solved nothing. She had simply postponed the
problem. Her body demanded the Shift once within each forty days
that passed, no matter how inconvenient or dangerous such a Shift
might be. She planned and she accommodated . . . or she
got caught out.
. . . and in spite of that, you let him in here.
Tonight.
She raised her head and opened her eyes. Voices. From down the
hall, hidden behind the closed doors of one of the rooms.
Shed been hearing them for a while, but shed been too
lost in the morass of her own problems to really be aware of
them.
He insisted on seeing you immediately said that
what he had to discuss with you might alter the Sabirs
plans.
Sabirs? Kait thought she recognized the first voice as
belonging to Branard Dokteerak. The second she had no idea about,
but if she was right about the first, then what in all the
demon-spawned hells was he doing talking to Sabirs?
Especially with the Dokteerak alliance to the Galweighs pending
. . .
He wanted nothing more than my reassurance that wed
be ready to move the night of the wedding. Gave me some vague line
about his people needing to know if anything had changed, if they
were going to need more men or if they were going to need to bring
them down by another route but he didnt want
anything real. He didnt have any genuine reason to speak
with me at all, and less than none tonight of all nights.
Had I been able to force a response from him, I
wouldnt have let him in to see you, but you said
I havent changed my mind, either. Until the Galweigh
holdings in Calimekka are ours, we do nothing to anger the Sabirs.
That includes using force on their envoys. Once were firmly
entrenched within the House, however, I want the envoy killed.
Hes Sabir, even if it is by distant blood, and he was
disrespectful to me.
A pause. Ill take care of that, Paraglese.
Good. Meanwhile I have left my own party and my guests,
and I must give them an appropriate reason when I return one
that will stand up to scrutiny. Have any messengers
arrived?
None.
A pity. That would have been the easiest of excuses. Well,
then who among our current list of houseguests have not
attended my party?
Castilla and her children . . . your nephew
Willim, who has a touch of grippe . . . the paraglese
Idrogar Pendat
Stop. Idrogar is here and hasnt shown his face at my
party?
Just so. He arrived yesterday and is awaiting a moment of
your time.
Hes been causing me problems in the Territories. He
wants more control over affairs in Old Jirin.
I must assume, Paraglese, that his mission this time will
only be to continue with his earlier demands. He brings many
bodyguards, but no gifts.
Kait heard Dokteerak begin to chuckle. At last, a benefit
from this long and expensive night. What apartment is he
in?
The Summer Suite, in the North Wing. The best quarters for
. . . what I suspect you have in mind.
They are indeed. Please make sure my beloved cousin
Idrogars fatal illness doesnt inconvenience him too
much. Or leave any marks on the body. Well have to produce
the corpse tomorrow for my story to hold . . . but what
better reason could any man ask to leave his own party, at least
for a while, than an urgent visit to the bedside of a beloved and
dying relative? A pause. Then, Find out exactly what he
came here for before he dies, Pagos. I dont want to destroy
valuable information by accident.
As you will, Paraglese. Kait heard the sound of
stone sliding, and recognized it as the same sound that secret
panels in Galweigh House made. The paragleses man Pagos
heading off to do his masters bidding, no doubt.
She had no time to get out of the hallway; the door at the end
opened, and the paraglese came out. She couldnt see him from
her position behind the statue, but she could hear his heavy
footsteps and his labored breathing. He wasnt an old man, but
he was a sick one.
He went past her without looking either left or right, turned
down the larger corridor toward his party, and met a few guests
there. My dear cousin came suddenly ill . . .
she heard him say, his voice dwindling as he moved away from
her.
Kait waited another moment to be sure he didnt come back,
then rose and slipped out from behind the statue, and hurried out
toward the street. She had to get to the embassy to tell her Family
what shed heard. Keeping Tippa out of trouble was nothing
compared to making sure the diplomats discovered the game Branard
Dokteerak was playing at, but just as important was deciding which
member of the Family to tell. If she chose poorly, she would have
the awkward task of explaining why she was able to crouch behind a
statue at one end of a corridor and hear a conversation that took
place behind heavy closed doors at the other end of it and
for that matter, she might have to explain how she came to be
hiding behind the statue in the first place.
And even within her own Family, she suspected that if the truth
about her got out, she would be regarded as an abomination by most
of her clansmen, and as a dubious asset at best by the
remainder.
* * *
The evil that seeped into the city of Halles and crawled through
the streets and the homes had its beginnings in an ancient room
deep in the heart of the Sabir Embassy, which sat at the far
northern edge of the town. In the subterranean chamber, the Sabir
Wolves moved through flickering light and the curling smoke of
caberra incense, raising magic; they approached each other and then
retreated in bewildering patterns, following the path of a complex
design carved into the stone floor. Swirl and arabesque, move
forward, move back, circle clockwise, counterclockwise; and all the
while they whispered.
In the center of their path, a man branded with the mark of the
convicted felon hung limp and unresisting against the bonds that
bound him to the carved stone column. At the beginning of his
ordeal he had sworn, he had begged for mercy, he had fought and
screamed and cried but the beginning of his ordeal was hours
behind him, and he had nothing left in him with which to fight. He
had withered to half his size, had sunk in on himself as the life
drained out of him. Now he hung in silence as the Wolves moved
around him. From time to time he roused himself enough to stare in
terror at the shapes of ghostly others who trod the path between
the men and women he knew to be there. Sometimes he heard other
voices that emanated from the air around him. He didnt
understand what he was watching, but he didnt need to
understand to know that what they did was killing him quickly.
The Wolves paid little attention to him. Their focus was on the
path, and on their precise placement on the path; they moved in
relation not only to each other, but to their colleagues leagues
away in Calimekka, who followed the footsteps of the path with them
and who chanted as they chanted, linking the two places, raising
magic.
A handsome young man stepped through the doorway into the room,
and two of the Walkers looked up. He nodded to them. They kept
moving around the path, but signaled to Wolves waiting along the
wall, and as they reached the set point of a particular arabesque,
each stepped off the path, to be immediately replaced by those to
whom they had signaled.
The young man slipped out of the room and halfway down the
corridor outside, where he waited. Both Wolves joined him
there.
How did it go? The woman who asked the question,
Imogene Sabir, was about fifty, with pale skin and rich golden hair
just beginning to show some gray. Her eyes were slightly milky, and
though she looked at the young man her son she gave
the impression that she focused on him more by listening. She was
nearly, but not entirely, blind; the magic that had stolen most of
her eyesight had replaced vision with second sight, and she was
satisfied with the exchange. And aside from the increasing opacity
in her eyes, her visible Scars were still few enough that she
remained beautiful.
Dokteerak was furious that I showed up in the middle of
his party. Her son, Ry, had her slenderness combined with his
fathers height, dark gold hair hed inherited from both
of them, and a predatory cast to his features that was entirely his
own. I wasnt obvious, but I know at least two of the
Galweighs recognized me.
His father, Lucien, smiled a thin, tight-lipped smile
that hid his teeth. Excellent. Were you overheard?
I cant be certain. I couldnt hear anyone
outside the doors. Dokteerak closed them when we went in, and he
had a man hidden behind a panel who made so much noise breathing
and shifting from foot to foot that I almost couldnt hide the
fact that I knew he was there. It shouldnt matter. If the
Galweighs know I was in Dokteerak House, theyll get
suspicious.
His mother said, Hid a man behind a secret panel in the
same room, eh? She laughed. The Dokteeraks have no one
like you or me, and do not, I imagine, believe that anyone like us
could still exist in these days. Im sure the two of them
thought they were being quite circumspect.
Ry started to agree with her, then stopped himself. He frowned
and said, Now that you mention it, I should have realized
that was wrong when I was there.
Wrong? His fathers voice grew sharp.
What was wrong?
Mother said they have no Karnee. But I crossed through the
garden behind a guardsman on my way to find Dokteerak, and I caught
the scent of one of us.
His mother said, You cant have. None of our Karnee
were there, and the Dokteeraks have no Karnee. I know
this.
One was there. I didnt have the chance to find her
Her?
Yes. Female, young, a complete stranger
. . . He closed his eyes, remembering for an
instant that bewitching scent that had caught at him as he moved
between the milling mass of human sheep in the garden, and how
difficult he had found it to keep moving, to follow the guard,
instead of breaking free and finding her. Finding her. Gods,
hed almost slipped right then shed been at the
edge of her control; he was due and probably overdue; and her
nearness to a spontaneous Shift had almost taken him over the cliff
with her. And wouldnt that have been a mess?
She has to be one of the Galweigh Karnee, his father
said.
His mother frowned. We killed them all.
Evidently not.
Theyve kept her hidden, then and if they
could hide one from us, they might have hidden others.
Perhaps. Lucien sighed. Well, she isnt
hidden anymore. Theyve decided shes strong enough to
take care of herself and theyve realized how beneficial she
can be to them. Well have to kill her
Of course. But we can do that during the attack
Ry looked from his mother to his father, and remembered that
sweet, tantalizing scent, and cut them both off. Dont
kill her. I want her.
Both parents stared at him as if hed gone mad.
Be sensible. You couldnt breed her, Ry. His
mother rested a hand on his arm and turned her face up to his.
Every child you had would be stillborn. And how would you
keep her? Shed be forever at your throat, as dangerous an
enemy as you could have.
Weve found half a dozen young women who would serve
as mates for you, his father said. Choose one of
them.
Theyre sheep. I dont want a sheep. I want
someone like me.
Maybe you do, but you dont expose your throat to an
enemy when you sleep. And how could you lead the Wolves when your
father steps down, with such a consort as that?
Ry said, Ill take my chances. Besides, you assume
Ill receive the acclaim of the rest of the Wolves when Father
wearies of leadership. But the Trinity already are positioning
themselves to take over someday.
Both his parents snarled, and his mother said, The day
they take over is the day every decent Wolf is dead.
Which was basically true. The Trinity the cousins Anwyn,
Crispin, and Andrew were loathed by every Wolf who could
call himself human with a clear conscience. Which didnt mean
Ry had any desire to fight with them for leadership within the
circle of Wolves.
But he had years yet to worry about that. His father was still
hale and quick and powerful. Rys immediate problem was
finding a mate. He stood thinking about the young women his parents
had presented to him. Girls who carried the Karnee strain in their
blood in safely small amounts, but who had none of the Karnee fire.
Dull, passive creatures who simpered at him and tittered and
giggled, and who owned not a single original thought among the lot
of them.
He hadnt seen this Karnee woman at the party he
could tell she was young from her scent, but he couldnt tell
what she looked like. She might be hideous. That wouldnt
matter, though. Not if she was intelligent. Not if she was fiery,
tempestuous, spirited . . . and she would be,
wouldnt she? Shed survived. Her scent had been full of
passion, full of suppressed rage, full of her curiosity and overt
delight at everything around her and even at that moment,
well away from her, he could feel her tugging at him as the moon
tugged at the sea.
He said, Im sure youre right. She
wouldnt be suitable. And he excused himself. His
parents returned to the path, and to building the power that they
would have to have in the next week. He was not permitted to walk
the path those who walked the path became Scarred by it and
had to hide themselves away. His work for the Family was still in
the outside world.
And in breeding, of course. He stalked up the steep stairway,
glowering. When hed produced a suitable number of living
heirs, hed be pulled from whatever work he was doing out in
the world and placed on the path with the rest of the wizards, and
his world would narrow down to the research libraries and the
artifacts that those who still went freely outside brought in, and
to the making of dark magic.
His future had been determined by others from the time of his
birth. Now, though, he sensed a different direction that it might
take rather, he sensed a direction in which he might
take his future. The possibility of action and choice both
elated and frightened him.
Chapter 4
Galweigh House covered all of the first peak along
Palmetto Cliff Road, and its balconies, carved from the living
marble of the cliff and studded with chalcedony and turquoise and
set with glowing mosaics of colored glass, comprised the whole of
the cliff face beginning after the soaring stone span of the Avenue
of Triumph and only ending where Palmetto Cliff intersected with
the obsidian-paved Path of Gods.
The Galweighs did not build the House, though they had added to
it and decorated it both the stained-glass panels along the
balconies and the inlaid semiprecious stones were Galweigh
conceits. The House predated its inhabitants by more than a
thousand years. Once it had been a winter estate for a man of
unimaginable wealth and power who had in his summers inhabited the
city of St. Marobas, far to the south. The man and his wealth were
dust, and the city of St. Marobas was a perfectly circular patch of
water named the St. Marobas Sea down along the eastern coast of the
deadly Veral Territories, but the House survived. Over the course
of a thousand years, its shining white balconies had lost some of
their luster, and from time to time a stonemason had to be called
in to repair a pillar or bearing wall that the jungle had damaged
before the Galweighs found the House and claimed it, but those
small imperfections only gave Galweigh House character. It was the
finest known surviving artifact of the Age of Wizards, and was of
wizardly make and magical nature.
Part of its magic lay in its beauty, which was unsurpassed, and
part in its vast size, which could only be guessed at. The
Galweighs had not finished mapping the House, though they had lived
in it for better than a hundred years. Some portions of it they
knew well. The ground floor, which was the story that ran along the
top of the cliff, had been mapped and explored and filled up; it
was the floor that held the grand salons and the beautiful
fountains, the vast baths, the exquisite statuary, the broad
promenades, and the gardens both public and private. The first
floor, reached by gorgeous curving staircases from any number of
points on the ground floor, held rooms for business, courtrooms and
holding rooms, rooms for private entertaining, classrooms for
children, workrooms for adults.
The floor above that held the Family apartments, more gardens,
and several aviaries, as well as a fortune in artworks both ancient
and modern and an entire gallery of curiosities from around the
known world. The Family, and the spouses and concubines of the
Family and their children, and frequently their childrens
children, all lived there over a hundred people when the
place was emptiest, with plenty of room for more. The third floor
was for the servants of the Family (as opposed to House servants,
who lived on the first subfloor), and its apartments were as
spacious and graceful and lovely as those the Family occupied. It
was commonly known throughout Calimekka that the servants of the
Galweigh Family lived better than the richest of men outside of the
Family.
Two floors lay above the last of the occupied floors, testament
to the grandeur that had been before the Wizards War, and to
the promise, at least in the eyes of the Galweighs, of the grandeur
that would be again.
The great House was ringed with massive walls of ancient make,
high and smooth-sided as if formed of glass, harder than anything
save diamond or the unrusting steel of the dead wizards, so that
the people who lived within the upper stories of Galweigh House
feared little, and had little reason to fear.
But the House had a second face and a second character, as some
people do; a darker side hinted at in the secret passageways and
rooms sometimes accidentally happened upon aboveground by a child
at play, or by a servant intent on cleaning who pressed a secret
panel or tripped over a slightly uneven flagstone. At those
moments, the maps of Galweigh House grew by inches; and the Family
sometimes acquired another oddity or two for its collections; and
depending on the character of the passageway, and where it went,
and what it disclosed, sometimes the servants acquired a new
cleaning headache. Sometimes, one or more of them quietly
disappeared, along with the news of their discovery, and stories
circulated for a while among the staff about accidents.
That hint of darkness became more pronounced in the subfloors,
which lay below the ground floor. The first subfloor held kitchens
and pantries and servants work halls, and seemed as
comfortable and knowable as the aboveground floors. But below it
lay ten more floors. There, the open, breezy beauty of balcony
rooms carved along the edge of the cliff were characterized by
their vast panoramas of the beautiful city that lay below, and
occupied by downstairs servants and adventurous guests, by loud
revelries and late-night explorations of uncounted types. Moving in
toward the heart of the great hill, those rooms gave way quickly to
halls lit only by torches even in broad daylight, and deeper in, to
hallways left unlit, where light never reached and the last feet to
leave tracks had become nothing more than dust on the floor some
ten centuries earlier.
The secrets of the Galweigh Family resided, as most secrets do,
in the darkness and the silence, in the unventured depths. The
Galweigh Wolves kept themselves contained within the very heart of
this darkness, ten levels below the bright and public world of the
main Family, where not even the most curious of children dared to
explore, and where not even the most ardent of young lovers dared
tryst.
In the perpetual gloom of windowless rooms, in the stillness
that was more than silence, the Wolves, who were their own law, and
who were the secret and hidden power behind the Galweigh Family,
kept the power flowing and kept their enemies at bay and humbled.
They worked with ancient books and records, with instruments of
their own devising, and with those that had survived a thousand
years and a final war of unimaginable devastation. They studied the
one forbidden science of the world of Matrin the science of
magic and learned, and put their learning into practice in
every way they could devise. They were the new wizards, and the
unheralded kings, and the unworshiped gods.
Unhampered by the restrictions of society, equally unhampered by
the restraint of conscience, they pursued every avenue of personal
curiosity, indulging in experiments in every conceivable area of
magic, and in doing so touched areas of pure good and pure evil.
And like all wizards and all kings and all gods, they eventually
came to discover that the pursuit of goodness imposed uncomfortable
confinements, and the pursuit of evil for evils sake became
wearying after a while, and lost its novelty but that the
pursuit of power never failed to enchant.
* * *
Fog blanketed the city of Halles so that the dark houses,
shutter-eyes shut against the dark, became formless cliffs; and
taverns ejected their rowdy customers with a whisper, not a roar;
and ghosts welled up out of the darkness from nowhere and vanished
again, leaving only the faintest clicks and clanks to mark their
passing. Kait moved along a narrow cobblestone street, noting the
way the scents grew richer in the dark and the damp. She could have
tracked any of the dozens of people whod trod the streets
before her by scent alone, and never mind that others had passed by
long after them, and laid new scent trails over the old.
The moon rode overhead, fat but not full, casting murky light
into the swirling mists light that, fighting through the fog
as it did, illuminated nothing. It glowed ahead of Kait and off to
the right like a dull clot of turned milk viewed through
cheesecloth. Sharply to her right, the rich stink of sewage roiled
out of an open gutter. To her left and just ahead, the
wine-and-piss stench pinpointed a drunk curled up beneath mildewing
rags. Somewhere farther ahead, meat . . . but overcooked.
Her mouth hungered for the warm taste of raw meat the wild
Kait, the one she preferred to deny, had not been satisfied by the
dainty foods of the Naming Day party, and growled
dissatisfaction.
. . . hunting, running, fur and ripped and bleeding
flesh torn from its fur-coated package and the first hard gush of
hot, thick, iron-salt blood . . .
Ahead, three men waited at the mouth of an alley. They discussed
their nights take in gloating tones, and Kait wondered,
briefly, if the man under the rags who had smelled so strongly of
wine had fallen there on his own or if the thieves had robbed him
. . . had maybe killed him. She had not heard his
breathing, she realized.
Deep inside, the darkness coiled tighter, urging her to confront
the men, taunting her, naming her caution cowardice.
She clamped the rage tight. Moving silently, she crossed to the
other side of the street; the fog hid her, and she passed the trio
without any of them suspecting she had been near.
The slimy feel of evil that pervaded the night lay thicker in
the direction she traveled. It became an added dimension to the
fog, and for an instant she wondered about Hasmal son of Hasmal,
and how he had kept the vile grasping tentacles of hatred and
despair at bay.
She did not hold the thought long. The roads of Halles, narrow
and twisting, full of dead ends and maze-like alleys, were at that
late hour cheek by jowl with thieves, rapists, and other trouble,
and required her full attention. She kept the moon in front of her,
though twice she had to double back when she took a wrong turn. She
knew by feel where the Galweigh Embassy lay; she simply did not
recall the precise combination of roads that would take her
directly to it. This city was not hers; she did not feel it the way
she felt the streets of Calimekka. So she walked, patient. She
didnt fear the night. She had little to fear; her eyes and
ears and nose told her everything she needed to know to stay safe;
and if by some chance she found herself trapped between trouble on
two sides, she felt certain she could guarantee that her attackers
never bothered anyone again.
Shed been tried only once, but that once had given her the
courage of experience.
At the age of thirteen, when her parents first moved her into
the Galweigh House from their secluded farm in the country,
shed been unable to sleep. So in the middle of the night, she
got up to go prowling. Following her restless urges, and a nagging,
tickling sense at the back of her skull that insisted something
about the night was wrong, shed slipped through the
residential corridors and down a back staircase. She loved the
House loved its grandeur and its endless secrets, its
immense age and air of mystery and she had quickly learned
ways from place to place few others knew. Stalking by impulse,
following instinct, shed traveled downward, using every trick
she shared with the House. She slipped through a hidden corridor,
glided down a banister, skulked behind rows of statues, used the
noise of the fountains to cover any hint of her approach.
One man down in a dark back corridor carried a lumpy bag over
his shoulder, the bag human-shaped, human-smelling. Another man,
redolent of blood not his own, crept behind him watching their
backs. Neither spoke, and Kait could not identify their scents, but
the blood she smelled belonged to her oldest sister. Kait heard no
sound from Dulcie. Fear caught in her throat, and the darkness and
the rage that always waited inside of her broke free. She
remembered lunging at the men, her body ablaze with the Shift,
teeth bared, lips curled back, the exultation of the glorious
madness pulsing in her veins and the scent of her sisters
blood sour in her nostrils. She remembered the satisfaction of
rending and tearing, claws digging, teeth sinking in, the singing
of her blood in her ears . . .
The sounds of screams alerted the guards. They came running, to
find two men dead with their throats torn out, and Dulcie Galweigh
unconscious and bleeding in a bag on the floor. When they looked
further, they found the guards who would have been protecting the
Family lying in a back stairway with their throats cut. The guards
never found Dulcies avenger. No one knew the meaning of the
animal tracks smeared in blood across the pristine white floor.
Among the House staff, rumors grew that the Galweighs were
protected by a terrible ghost, that the spirit of a great wolf
hunted the halls of the House seeking to avenge any hurt that came
to the Family.
Neither Kait nor any of the other Galweighs saw fit to correct
this story.
* * *
Dùghall met the carriage at the door. But only Tippa was in
it, and Tippa wore the terrified expression of a doe that had
barely escaped the ravages of a leopard. Dùghalls
stomach twisted. Where was Kait? His heart thudded, and he felt his
blood drain to his feet. In an instant, Kait in a hundred forms
flashed before his eyes. Tiny Kait-cha with dark eyes and dark hair
and flashing white teeth, grinning up at him from the floor where
she played in her parents country home seven years
old, or maybe eight, the first time hed met her. Enchanting
girl, like a wild creature all shy and curious, stepping closer bit
by bit, ready to escape should she sense danger. And Kait running,
hair flying behind her like pennants, out in the walled yard with a
daisy chain around her waist. Kait at fourteen, astride a horse,
urging it over a gate, the two of them sailing like a single bird
through the air, then thundering across a meadow. Kait in a tree,
calling down to him. Then Kait, older yet, staring wistfully out a
window, yearning for places shed never been. Kait suddenly
angry, running from the room so fast she seemed to blur even in
memory. And Kait at seventeen, overjoyed when he told her hed
convinced her parents that she would be a perfect ambassador for
the Galweighs, that she could begin training.
And now Kait missing. And if anything happened to her, he could
only blame himself. He should have pulled her out the instant he
saw the treacherous Sabir stalking through the courtyard
. . . but if he had, he would have blown his own cover,
and he hadnt thought anyone would try anything against an
ambassador even such a junior ambassador at such a
public party, and on Naming Day.
He forced his mind to stillness. Maybe Tippa had some logical
explanation for coming home alone.
Where is she?
Those bright, terrified eyes stared up at him. She
. . . stayed behind. Something was the matter, but she
wouldnt say what. She got so fierce. . . . And
the princes . . . they treated me nice, but Kait fought
with them . . . and she made me come home on my
own. Tippa started to cry.
She stank of wine, and the flush in her cheeks and the
brightness of her eyes told him how drunk she was. Chaperoned
closely, she should never have been allowed to get drunk. And what
princes had been nice to her? The Families held little regard for
the pretenders after long-vacant thrones, and in Ibera any princes
she was likely to meet would have been of that sort. Kait was a
sensible girl shed seen trouble coming, and had pulled
Tippa out of the party and sent her home.
Then what? Had she gone back to deal with the princes? A lone
girl in a strange city, in the home of people who had been her
Familys sworn enemies for more than a hundred years? Would
she do a thing like that?
No. Kait was a sensible girl. Whatever had happened, it
hadnt been that.
Tippa looked too drunk to be of much use, though for Kaits
sake, Dùghall hoped she would be able to tell them something
of value. Hed take her inside, rouse the embassy physick, and
make the man give her something to sober her up. Meantime,
hed chase down the security staff and send them out looking
through the streets. He couldnt get into the private parts of
Dokteerak House not without an army and at this late
hour, and with most if not all of the guests surely gone he
wouldnt even be able to come up with a convincing excuse for
getting into the public part of the House. But he could send the
Galweighs trusted men to look around the outside of it
without being seen.
What it came down to was that he was severely limited in what he
could do without taking a chance at giving away the one secret that
he had to keep in spite of everything. Back home in the islands, he
could have moved the earth searching for the girl without fear of
reprisals. But in Halles, in an embassy that hired most of its
household staff from among the locals, and that had surely acquired
at least one spy, and probably several, he didnt dare. It
wasnt even that he didnt want to end up with his
drawn-and-quartered body hung on display in the city square, though
of course he didnt. If his secret got out, though, he would
risk exposing the Falcons, and he would jeopardize the Texts, and
he would fail his obligations as a Warden.
If only hed taken the time earlier to divine the location
of a safe room, or, if none existed, to create one.
While he hauled Tippa toward the physicks quarters, he
raged inside at how helpless he was. He would do everything he
could and everything he could wouldnt be enough to do
the girl a single bit of good if she was in real trouble. From the
way his skin crawled, and from the inescapable pounding of foreign
Wolf magic in the air, he could only fear the worst.
Chapter 5
Kait recognized the street on which she walked. Two
blocks, maybe three, and she would be at the embassy. Almost home,
almost safe, almost where she could tell the Family about the
Dokteeraks and the Sabirs. Perhaps within her room she would be
able to leave behind the pounding threat of evil that hammered at
her skull. Perhaps shed be able to shake the feeling that she
was being followed, that downwind of her something moved to
intersect her. Shed stopped several times, tasting the air,
and each time it brought her only the overripe scents of sewage and
the unwashed bodies of drunks and whores still ahead of her; each
time the wind, so often her friend, blew from the direction of
home, and not the direction of whoever . . . or whatever
. . . she sensed following her. She never heard anything
suspicious. She never saw anything out of the ordinary.
But the feeling remained. Eyes watched her through the fog. Eyes
saw her that were keener than her own.
Someone ran toward her. Focused on her she knew this in
her gut. Only in her gut. The rest of her senses were blind. But
her gut told her enough. The running wasnt random, the feel
of the runners intent was, to her, the feel of a bolt
launched from a crossbow, aimed at her heart.
Danger. Betrayal. Death.
She tucked the front hem of her dress into the bodice ties,
where it brushed against the hilt of her hidden dagger, and ran
down the nearest side street . . . silent, hard, as fast
as any man, all of her senses trained behind her to the one who
pursued. Her only goal became the eluding of capture; her attention
narrowed to the world of her pumping legs and arms, the placement
of her feet in the precarious uneven streets, the evasion of
obstacles that could slow her flight. Fear sent her blood singing
through her veins again; Shift pursued her as swiftly as the runner
who followed her every twist and turn, and who somehow, impossibly,
kept up with her. Was he a hired assassin? A Galweigh-hater who had
recognized her leaving the party, who was seizing an
opportunity?
She ran left, right, left, choosing streets at random in the
alien city. She toppled a drunk into the gutter in her haste; he
cried out and fell, clinging for the merest instant to her skirt
before she broke away. He cost her a step perhaps a step and
a half in a race she was already losing. Her fear rose
higher. She ran harder, fought Shift and the betrayal of her body
that would mean, in such public places, her death. The fog that had
been an ally became an obstacle, making each footstep precarious.
She wanted to hide, to disguise herself as a part of Halles and not
a thing apart from it; in the back of her mind, something whispered
people and, frightened and pushed to the limits of her human
bodys capacity, thinking only of what was behind her and not
of what might lie ahead, she made a mistake.
She smelled people above the fading scent of perfume on her
upper lip. Many of them. Men and women, the back of her mind
said, that way. She followed the scent to her right, down a
twisting street that narrowed instead of widening.
She prayed that the walls of the buildings on either side of her
would move away from each other again. That she would smell the
movement of air that indicated an opening at the other end of this
passage. She didnt. The air lay dead, the passage narrowed
still further, until, if she had stretched her arms out straight to
either side of her, she could have touched the walls. She heard the
people ahead of her now. Laughing. Voices kept low, an edge to
them, a feeling of caution. Man voices, but she smelled
woman-scent, too. Touches of sex-musk on the air, the iron-metal
tang of fresh blood. She lost the moons light in the shadows
of buildings, and only her Karnee eyes let her see well enough to
keep running. Her pursuer never slowed. She heard him turn in
behind her. How did he pursue her so closely? How did he follow her
so well? She had no time to think of how.
Suddenly the walls to either side of her fell away, and she
burst into the midst of the people shed sought out. She was
in a cul-de-sac; she crashed into two men; they caught her arms as
they staggered to keep their balance; she rasped, Hide
me.
Behind her the sound of running stopped.
She saw then what she had run into. A woman crouched on knees
and elbows on the paving stones, her wrists bound, a rag stuffed in
her mouth, a man at her head with a knife at her throat, two others
behind her. One kneeling; one standing. Her tattered, slashed
bodice exposed her breasts, her skirt bunched around her waist. She
bled freely from a cut down the cheek. A dead man dressed in the
height of Halles fashion sprawled against the alley wall to the far
side of her, his throat a raw patch of darkness against the
bloodless whiteness of his skin. One man who wasnt taking
turns raping the woman robbed the corpse. Kait heard the sounds of
the contents of a purse being emptied onto stones; the unmistakable
dull clink of gold, the rattle of jewelry. Six of them in all. Six
murderers, thieves, rapists . . . and the woman. Another
man moved out of the shadows and stepped in front of her, grinning.
A young man, handsome, well-dressed, well-born. Round face, pale
hair, pale eyes he had the look of a Dokteerak heir, and she
thought, So this Family entertains itself at the expense of its
subjects, too.
The hands that held her arms tightened. Look what the gods
sent to us, the man to her left said softly, and the one to
her right laughed.
Her blood fizzed, her bones tingled, she tasted metal in her
mouth and heard the singing of her heart in her ears. Fear died,
strangled by Karnee rage. Her voice grew husky as vocal cords
slipped toward another configuration; her other self strained for
release. With the last of her control, she said, If you want
to live, let her go and let me go. You dont know what I
am.
Giggles from the men who held her. Raw braying from the men who
were taking their turns at the woman.
The Dokteerak shook his head. Oh, help, shes going
to hurt us
a pretty rich girl who ran down the wrong alley
Give us your money and maybe well let you go
maybe well let you live.
Not me. Ill bugger er when shes
dead.
Raw, hating laughter. More giggles.
The highborn bastard slashed her silk bodice open, ripped
downward to her waist for just an instant the blade nicked
skin, and she smelled her own blood. He moved behind her, wrapped a
hand in the coils of her hair, yanking her head downward and
throwing her to her knees. Grabbed her dagger, pulled her dress
off, slashed at the ties of her underclothes lace breast
binder, silk tie-string panties. Cut her again removing them
. . . little cuts, the pain like bee stings, like a goad
to the madness that enveloped her. Red hazed her eyes.
The other Kait sang in exultation at the lightning bolt of pure
fury that tore into brain and gut. She twisted like a python in the
hands of her captors, tasting in her mind the gush of blood,
feeling the delicious crunch of bone and cartilage between teeth
before she even had a man in reach. The hunt. The hunt. The kill.
And that other Kait grinned, and a growl started low in her throat.
Rage drove through all the barriers between Kait-the-woman and
Kait-the-wild-thing. The growl in her throat grew louder. Naked in
the embrace of the night, rational Kait lost herself to the
exultant, joyous, buoyant, shivering other who wanted only to
fight, to destroy, to tear and taste and slaughter in the heady,
scent-rich darkness. She broke free, and spun around, and grabbed
the nearest man with a hand that Shifted and re-formed before her
eyes a hand already covered by the silky, glossy, close
black coat of Karnee, her fingers grown shorter and thicker, her
tendons standing out, retractable claws stretched forward.
She laughed, and in that laughter nothing human remained. She
growled, Youre mine, and leaped on top of him,
two hands and two feet Shifted completely into four widespread paws
in midair, spine stretching and flexing to give her a heavy,
flexible tail. Her muscles bunched and burned and flowed under her
skin, and the claw-tipped paws ripped through the rough cloth of
the would-be rapists shirt and she dug through the flesh of
his chest as if it were butter, and darted her face down close to
his, smelling on him the delicious stink of fear, hearing in his
throat the start of a scream. Her grin grew wider as her muzzle
stretched forward. Her teeth were daggers in her mouth. She bit
down, crushing his scream before it was born, tasting the iron and
salt of his gushing jugular against the middle of her tongue and
feeling the steady spurts of his pulse against the roof of her
mouth for only two bird-fast beats of his heart before she launched
herself backward and upward in a twisting arc that brought her
nose-to-face with the shocked young lordling.
She tore out his throat in passing, already on the way to her
next meat before her paws hit the ground. She charged the third man
who had held her. Tore into him. Brought him down.
Shed had the benefit of first surprise, and had taken the
three, but the other four had regained feet and weapons, and now
the odds were against her.
All four men moved through the fog to circle her, to surround
her. Their swords pointed in, and she knew she was in trouble.
Outnumbered, overmatched. In the fight between a beast and a man
without a weapon, or with only a dagger, the odds lay in favor of
the beast. Against four men with long blades, with murder in their
eyes well, there, the odds went to the men. And even as she
thought it, one darted in at her and slashed with his sword, and
she took a deep cut through her right shoulder and along her
ribs.
She snarled and leaped in low, beneath the upswung blade, and
lashed out at him with one paw. She connected across her
attackers knee and shin, but not deep enough, for though he
shouted, he stayed standing. And she took another cut, hard into
her left flank, because she had left her flanks unguarded and one
of the men behind her had seized the advantage.
She twisted, snarled, and snapped but came up with only empty
air as the second attacker stepped back and brought his sword to a
defensive posture. He grinned; she could see his teeth flashing in
the darkness. He knew they had her. She knew it, too. And she was
afraid. She didnt want to die.
One of the blades wavered and she charged the man who held it,
broke through his guard and dug into the softness of his belly with
her claws, and he went down. But not without cost to her. She
exposed her back to the other three, and they charged in at her,
and the nightmare bite of sharp metal scored the back of her neck
and her other flank, and sought her vitals, though she twisted away
before the blade found its target.
Im going to die.
Here. Now.
And then the miracle happened. Something dark and big and
terrible burst from the alley. The man who had his back to it
screamed once, then went down and didnt rise. A looming
shadow, fast and solid, ripped his throat when he fell, then
slashed the next closest man. Kait didnt have time to watch
the outcome of that second battle; she turned to face her only
remaining attacker. One man, but that one remained armed, unhurt,
wary. She feinted right, then left, faked a leap high in the air
and when her enemy brought his weapon up, anticipating a gutting
stroke, she lunged in low again. He wasnt as fast as she was,
and she bit through his thigh, and leaped away before his blade
could come down across her spine. He took her across the back of
the skull, though, and had the blow carried more force, he might
have taken her right there. She was lucky that he struck while off
balance. As it was, she staggered and a million white lights
sparkled behind her eyes and pain half blinded her.
Breathing hard, hurting and bleeding, she braced herself for the
mans attack. But the stranger
. . . hes Karnee, hes the one I smelled
in Dokteerak House, hes the one who was following me
. . .
the stranger charged the last of the criminals from
behind, biting into the back of one leg. The man screamed and fell.
It was over very quickly then.
Kait felt the heat of her Karnee metabolism burning her wounds
closed. The shallow ones wouldnt even leave scars by morning;
the deep ones probably would, but even those would be gone in a day
or two. The blessing of her curse, such as it was. She was a
monster, but a monster who was damned hard to kill.
We should leave, the strange Karnee said.
Guards will have heard the screams. His voice shivered
through her bones straight to her gut. Hypnotic. Growling,
sensuous, full of passion and mystery she turned away. He
could not do to her what he was doing; he wasnt doing
anything but standing there, bleeding, covered in blood, warning
her of danger, and yet his voice was as powerful as a drug to her,
as overwhelming as caberra incense or as his scent had been earlier
in the night, in Dokteerak House. He was impossible, and so she
turned away, and looked at the woman who huddled against the far
wall of the cul-de-sac.
Terrified, clutching the tattered remains of her gown over her
breasts, she stared at Kait and the stranger as if this night of
hells had just spawned the greatest hell of all. And that was the
worst of it. Kait had saved the womans life, but because she
was Karnee, she could expect only fear and hatred perhaps
even betrayal. Kait wanted to offer comfort, to help the woman to a
place of safety, but she dared not.
So she glared down into the huddled womans eyes and curled
her lips back in a snarl that exposed every knife-edged fang. She
growled, I know you. I know where you live, who you pray
with, which streets you walk on. Ive saved your life tonight,
but I know you dont appreciate that boon from someone like
me. So Ill warn you only this once if you dare speak a
word to anyone of what you saw here tonight, Ill find you in
the darkness and youll never greet another dawn.
The woman had pulled the rag from her mouth with still-bound
hands. She shivered, nodded, croaked, What shall I tell them,
then?
That you saw nothing. That you struggled to escape, that
those bastards hit you on the head, and that when you woke, you
found them the way they are now. A word other than that will be
your death my promise.
I saw nothing, the woman whispered. Tears gleamed on
her face. I saw nothing . . . saw nothing
. . . they hit me . . . I fell
. . . She whispered to herself, not to Kait.
Kait had other things to do. She dug among the corpses and found
the remains of her dress and her underclothes. She located the
slippers shed worn, and the dagger shed carried. Any of
those things would betray her far more immediately than the woman
could the silks were woven by Galweigh weavers in the
Galweigh pattern, the lace was Galweigh Rose-and-Thorn, the shoe
buttons bore the Galweigh ring in gold, the dagger had both rubies
and onyx in the hilt and the Galweigh crest on the pommel, and her
name worked into the vines that decorated the crosspiece.
Everything she owned would be mute betrayal, would bring soldiers
and priests and blood-hungry mobs to her and to everyone she
loved.
She bundled her belongings together as tightly as paws and claws
were able, lifted the bundle in her mouth, and loped toward the
alley. Obstacles remained people in the streets, finding the
embassy, getting past her own Familys people and inside. She
had to clear her mind, to put everything that had just happened out
of her thoughts, or she would not survive.
But the stranger moved beside her, silent and beautiful and
bewitching. He picked up his own bundle halfway down the alley and
loped at her side, until they reached a place where the moonlight
lay across him like a kiss. Then he moved in front of her, turned,
and stopped. Ive spent my life waiting to find
you, he said.
He was huge, easily twice her weight, massively boned, sculpted
by the hands of an artist who had loved him. His eyes, pale blue
ringed around the outside of the irises with black, would be
recognizable even after Shift neither their exotic color nor
their striking pattern would change. His glossy coat, copper
striped with black, emphasized powerful muscles that bunched across
his broad chest and steeply sloped shoulders and rippled in his
haunches. His powerful jaws spread in a grin; his strong, arching
neck tapered upward to a head as broad-skulled and sleek as any
wolfs or jaguars. Small gold hoops pierced both of his
ears and the silver of a shield-shaped medallion gleamed from the
point where his neck curved into his chest, suspended by a heavy
silver chain. She could make out the crest on the medallion
clearly: twin trees with curved branches intertwined, delicate
leaves interspersed with the full curves of ripe fruit. The Sabir
Family crest a lovely design unless one considered that the
Sabirs claimed one tree bore good fruit for the Sabirs and their
friends, and the other bore poisoned fruit for their enemies.
And Kait was Galweigh, and thus was an enemy with five hundred
years of Family hatred behind her. She was what she was because of
the curse some Sabir wizard had put on her Galweigh ancestor; he
was what he was because that curse, after it poisoned the Galweigh
bloodlines, had rebounded on the man who cast it. Five hundred
years of bad blood, and he said hed been waiting his whole
life to find her.
The worst of it was, the attraction she felt for him was so
overwhelming and so total that she found herself wanting to believe
him, and wanting to tell him what she was thinking that she
wanted him. Which of course was ridiculous; she couldnt
desire him in any real way. She didnt know him, and if she
did, she would hate him because he was Sabir. Never mind that
hed saved her life. He didnt know who she was, or he
would have been, at that moment, at her throat.
He watched her, waiting for her to make the next move.
She dropped the bundle between her paws, pressing it tightly so
that she could pick it up again. Pretense would have to get her
away from him. My thanks, she said. Formal words, at
odds with her incomprehensible feelings. She knew him
somehow, though she had never seen him before in her life. The
knowing was more than simple identification; it was the bone-deep
knowing of one who has, coming around the corner of a crowded city
street, rushed headlong into the arms of the man who is destined to
be her soul mate.
My enemy. My soul.
Ludicrous. It made her want to laugh and made her
grateful that she didnt believe in destiny.
My soul. My enemy.
Come with me, he said, and his rich, rumbling
subterranean growl made her own fierce Karnee voice sound soft and
high-pitched. Be with me.
I must go home.
But I want you.
The guards are already coming, she said.
Cant you hear them? She thought she lied, but as
she said the words, she realized they were true. The rhythmic tramp
of footsteps double-time, strides matching moved up
through the streets. And voices, still faint but moving closer.
Break off! Search that alley! Faster, men, before we lose
them!
For an instant he hesitated. An instant only. Then he said,
Find me. Please. Please find me. And he picked up his
own bundle in his teeth and turned, ready to run. She followed
suit, and they raced toward the mouth of the alley together, claws
drawn in so that they made no more noise in running than wind made
moving across the cobblestones. Both cut sharply to the right as
they came out into the street, moving uphill, away from the
oncoming guards. For a short while they ran side by side, sometimes
brushing each other, sometimes pulling away. Her muscles bunched
and flowed, her spine arched and stretched, her body sang at the
breeze that caressed her skin, sang with the joy of movement, and
with the wonder of her nearness however temporary to
him. The world was all her senses: sweet night scent, Karnee musk,
the wetness of fog, green growing things far off and the food-scent
of city vermin in the streets nearby; the steady rush of water from
a fountain, voices calling from far away, the soft
thrup-thrup of a nightbird hunting overhead; late moonlight
falling like silver through the thickening curls of fog, the
graceful lace patterns it cast through trees and buildings; the
cool smooth roundness of the cobblestone beneath her feet, the damp
fog condensing on her sleek fur, cooling her. The sting of her
healing wounds, the fire of the air in her lungs, the joy of being
alive. Later, and once again human, she knew she would feel horror
at the slaughter shed wrought. The ghosts of the dead men
would haunt her dreams. Later she would grieve the actions of her
monstrous half. But the Karnee Kait did not grieve. She felt
glorious. Glorious. She was alive, and those who would have raped
and murdered her were dead, and their deaths filled her with
furious joy.
The strange Karnee turned away from her, left down a side road.
She kept to the road she was on; shed finally recognized
where she was. She had chanced upon the combination of roads that
would take her home. One block, one right turn, and she would come
upon the high, spike-topped fence that separated the embassy from
the city surrounding it. The Sabir Karnee was already out of sight,
fleeing to his own safety; he would not, then, discover who she
was. Good. Shed live longer that way.
She slowed to a lope, becoming wary. While she was in this form,
her own people would be as deadly to her as any enemy. She dared
not let herself be seen. She had to get past the guards, over the
fence, up three stories of stone wall to the window of the suite
where she stayed. She had neither closed the shutters nor barred
the window before she left for the party; the Karnee part of her
chafed at the smell and feel of enclosed places, and the more she
needed the Shift, the worse the feeling became. That was to her
benefit. Nothing else was.
She crouched in the park across the street and watched the
guards moving behind the fence. Regular movements; a sweep by two
men, a short interval, then two men going across the grounds in the
opposite direction. Shed watched them from above on other
sleepless nights. The intervals at this early morning hour were
shorter than they would normally be more men were on the
grounds, and they were more alert. No joking now, no banter as
pairs crossed; they were anticipating trouble . . . or
her absence in the carriage that brought Tippa home, and whatever
garbled story of trouble Tippa had managed to convey, had put the
embassy on alert. Kait would have to be quick and precise to get
past the guards. They never looked up at the walls of the house,
though. So she had a second fact to her advantage.
She moved under cover as close to the street and the fence as
she dared. Then she waited. A pair of guards passed. The fog would
help hide her from sight, but would amplify any noise she made. The
guards moved as far from her as she dared let them; their opposite
pair already worked its way toward her from around the corner of
the house, and the next pair of following guards from the first
direction would not be far behind.
She raced across the street and bunched herself into the air,
teeth clenching down on her bundle. Her body compacted and then
uncoiled as if she were a spring. Straight up to twice the height
of a tall man she soared, clear to the top of the fence. All four
paws found purchase; her back arched high to avoid the impaling
spike over which she swayed; her tail lashed behind her, keeping
her balance.
From her left Did you hear something?
Sounds like . . . like something shook the
fence.
Yes. Ahead?
Cant tell. The whole damned fence rattled.
They would stop and check. Maybe work their way back to her. She
couldnt meet them, didnt dare let them catch sight of
her. She gauged distances, then poured downward, liquid as a cat
though no one who saw her could ever have mistaken her for
any sort of cat and landed in the clipped grass on the far
side of the hard path. The faintest of rustles when she landed; she
heard it clearly, but the guards wouldnt. Their voices
camouflaged the sound. One leap over shrubbery, several lengths of
skulking behind plantings to bring her to the spot below her
window, the merest instant to ensure that her bundle was secure and
that nothing would fall to the ground and draw attention upward to
her. A wait, as the next pair of guards moved past, their attention
on the two men ahead of them, and on the fence. Good.
She climbed up the rough-cut stones to the window that let into
her room, limbs spread wide to improve her balance, claws hooking
around every projection, body tight to the wall. One moment of
worry, heart-stopping, as just above the second floor she came
clear of the fog. The moonlight would outline her clearly to anyone
below she was a gleaming black-furred monster on luminous
white stone. But no one looked up.
She threw herself through the window and sprawled on the floor
of her bedroom; there, finally, the rush of fear and desperation
that had kept her going guttered out, and the Karnee beast gave way
once more to the sense-dulled, guilt-ridden creature who could pass
as human, but who could never be human.
Kait the woman washed away the blood left by Kait the monster as
best she could in the darkness. She hid her bloody bundle beneath
her bed, and tugged on a dressing gown. Then she fell into her bed,
and into the world of nightmares and terror, where her
victims specters hunted and haunted her, where blood clung to
hands, and where a destiny she did not believe in mocked her and
whispered in her ear, Your soul, your enemy; your enemy, your
soul.
* * *
Dùghall Draclas turned to the captain of the guards and
said, Im going to be useless if I dont get some
sleep. Wake me the second anyone finds out anything. Ill be
in my quarters.
The captain nodded. You think this is like what happened
to Danya, sir? That someone snatched her?
I think I dont know what to think. If this is
kidnapping, well get the ransom demand soon. But it
doesnt feel like a kidnapping to me. My gut says otherwise.
And anything could have happened to her. She doesnt know her
way around the city; if she tried to walk home, she could have
wandered down into a bad alley and been robbed . . . or
worse . . . He turned away from the captain.
I wish shed told Tippa what she thought shed
found. Or why she was staying behind. Then maybe Id know
where to start looking.
His people had already tracked down the princes who had schemed
to get Tippa drunk so they could disgrace her and, through her,
shame all of Galweigh House. Theyd been part of a small band
of the Gyru-nalle fanatics who thought a union of the Dokteeraks
and the Galweighs would spell the end of Gyru-nalle independence in
the disputed territories that lay between Dokteerak land and
Galweigh land. All three were going to deny everything
. . . until they discovered that they were being
questioned on the disappearance of an ambassador and not on their
plan to cause embarrassment to the Family. Had they been linked to
the kidnapping of any Family ambassador, every Gyru-nalle in the
Iberal Peninsula would have been hunted down and slaughtered. The
Families maintained their hold on the lesser people of Ibera with
the iron-clawed grip of eagles, and had no respect for the
crownless royal heads of long-dead empires.
So the Gyru-nalle princes talked hard and fast with some
encouragement from the embassy torturer and Dùghall,
after listening to the questioning, was satisfied that none of the
three had anything to do with Kaits disappearance.
He walked toward his quarters, the weariness of a night spent
anticipating disaster adding weight to every step he took. It
wasnt enough that an ambassador was missing. It had to be
Kait. He had too many relatives, and most of them he loathed. But
Kait was the image of his favorite sister, Grace delicate,
dark, and beautiful, and with the spirit of a young lioness. He
would grieve if anything had happened to her.
His path took him past Kaits room; on impulse he stopped
outside her door. Perhaps he should go in and look through her
things to see if he could find anything that might tell him what
had become of her. He felt sure the search would be pointless, but
the same gut instinct that insisted she hadnt been kidnapped
told him he ought to look.
He glanced up and down the hall to make sure no one was
watching. There in the empty hallway he felt he had a bit of an
advantage; spies would find it pointless to hide in rooms and spy
on hallways most of the time, since the business that would keep
them in the embassy in the first place would almost always take
place behind closed and locked doors. Nevertheless, hed be a
fool to betray the Falcons with such a simple gesture as opening a
locked door. The hallway remained empty, though. He decided to take
the calculated risk. He drew his dagger and made a quick, light
slash across the index finger of his left hand just enough
to draw blood, no more. When the dark droplets welled to the edge
of the cut, he murmured a few words, and a soft, radiant light
coalesced around his hand. He touched the lock above Kaits
door handle. A thought, a flicker of light from the tip of his
finger to the smooth metal cylinder, and her door swung open.
She lay sprawled in her bed, in restless sleep, covers flung to
the floor in a tangle, her nightdress riding up to reveal several
long, freshly healed scars on the back of her right thigh, and
smears of what looked in the dim light like blood on her leg, her
hand, and her face. She whimpered as she slept and her legs
thrashed; she breathed in short, hard gasps. As if she were running
from something.
Dùghall frowned. He closed his eyes for an instant, and
studied the faint glow of her form on the bed that his second sight
revealed. Odd that in all the time hed known Kait, hed
never seen that before. Odder that hed never thought to look.
The aura of magic lay lightly on her, and seemed to grow dimmer as
he stood there. It wasnt Wolf magic, though, and it
wasnt Falcon magic. She was the source of it, and yet she
wasnt, as well. His frown deepened. Mysteries within
mysteries that she could get into her room past guards who
were looking for her, that she had vanished in the first place,
that she carried enigmatic scars, that a faint whisper of magic
clung to her in spite of the fact that he knew her to be
magically unschooled.
These were mysteries he would have to fathom. And quickly. But
not so quickly that he had to disturb Kaits restless sleep.
Perhaps he would discover something useful if he just waited.
He settled himself into the chair across from her bed, set a
shield around himself that she would disturb the moment she woke,
and let his head drop back. Within minutes, he slept deeply.
* * *
Hasmal trailed salt across the surface of the mirror with his
left hand. It soaked into the line of blood that hed drawn
into a triangle. He sucked at his right thumb for just an instant
to lick away the last traces of his blood should he let any
stray drops fall onto the mirror when he summoned the Speaker, he
would find himself devoured. Or worse.
He whispered the final lines of the incantation:
Speaker step within the walls
Of earth and blood and air;
Bound by will and spirit,
You must bide your presence there.
Answer questions with clear truth,
Do only good and then
Return to the realm from whence you came
And dont come back again.
The salt on the mirror began to burn. The pale blue flames
flickered for an instant, then settled into a steady glow. And in
the center of the flames, a tiny light burst into life and shaped
itself into a perfect representation of a woman, though one no
taller than Hasmals longest finger.
She stared up at him, long glowing hair blowing in a breeze that
never traveled beyond the triangle of fire. What do you want
to know? Her voice was deep and sweet, softer than
Hasmals whisper, but not whispered. She spoke from
unimaginably far away, over the incessant sobbing of the wind that
blew between the worlds, and her words only reached him by the
magic of her simulacrum standing on the glass.
Hasmal cleared his throat and crouched nearer the glass,
shielding the light it cast with his body. I met a woman
tonight. She saw through my shields, though she should never have
been able to do that. I told her my name, though I didnt
intend to. She frightened me. Shes not what she seems to be.
Does she mean me harm?
No, though she will someday bring it to you anyway. You
are a vessel chosen by the Reborn, Hasmal son of Hasmal; your
destiny is pain and glory. Your sacrifice will bring the return of
greatness to the Falcons, and your name will be revered through all
time.
My sacrifice? Hasmal felt his heart tie itself into
a hard, small knot inside his chest. Having a revered name sounded
good enough, but the people the Falcons revered tended to be dead,
and worse, to have died badly. What kind of
sacrifice?
The woman waved a tiny hand, and in the flames Hasmal saw his
parents being nailed to the Great Gate. Then he saw himself being
beaten, tortured, and flayed by men wearing the livery of one of
the Five Families; and finally standing skinless in the midst of
the city of Halles while a crowd jeered and threw rotted fruit at
him, and soldiers tied his limbs to four horses, then sent the
horses galloping in four different directions.
Hasmal thought he might faint. Hed suspected he
wasnt being asked to sacrifice a pure black goat, or even a
bag of gold. But his parents lives and his own
. . .
The images died away, leaving the tiny woman looking up
earnestly at him. Your deeds will make you beloved.
Youll live on in the pages of the Secret Texts, and in the
hearts of all Falcons forever after.
Hasmal looked away from her, trying to erase from his mind the
image of his skinless body being ripped into four pieces by the
galloping horses.
Ill forgo the glory, he decided. Id rather live in
the present than on the pages of a book.
He stared down at the Speaker and shivered. Can I escape
this fate?
For an instant, he heard only the sound of that otherworldly
wind. Then she laughed. You can always try.
How? he asked.
But the fire on the glass burned low and all at once guttered
out. The Speaker vanished, leaving the mirror bare of salt and
blood.
He could draw more blood, summon another Speaker, perhaps get
the information he desired. But the spell had cost him in energy.
And worse, it had cost him in time. He might be able to control the
energy of another spell, but he would never get back the time
hed lost.
The strange woman had said she would be coming to find him. His
fate, and his and his parents destruction, were linked to
contact with her. He had no guarantee that he could escape the
Speakers images of doom; hed been given no promise that
he could spare his mother and father, either. But if he was not in
Halles, the woman would not find him, and perhaps he would not be
such a danger to them or to himself.
He rose, tucked the mirror back into his case, and stepped out
of the storeroom. Before she arrived, he needed to pack his
belongings and leave. He dared not say goodbye to his parents
his father would demand an explanation when his solid,
dependable, decidedly unadventurous son suddenly decided to pack a
kit and hare off to destinations unknown. And if the old man ever
suspected his son was fleeing his sacred duty to die for the
Falcons, he would probably turn Hasmal over to the Dokteeraks, then
nail himself and his wife to the Great Gate in penance. The elder
Hasmal wouldnt approve of running away from destiny
especially not a destiny that furthered the aspirations of his
beloved Falcons.
Hasmal the younger was neither so dedicated to that ancient,
secret order, nor so sanguine about his portended demise in its
service. He packed a few necessary belongings, his magic kit, his
copy of the Secret Texts, and what little money he had, and
wondered not how he could serve, but where he could hide and how he
would get there.
Chapter 6
In her sleep, Kait heard breathing not her own and felt
eyes watching her. In spite of her dreams dreams of running
and Shifting she became aware of a stranger who entered her
domain. She fought against the pull of sleep, knowing that she had
to awaken, feeling that while she lay unprotected someone was
discovering her secret, but she could not break free of the
tenacious depths of the Shift-fueled dreams.
The nightmares gripped her and tore at her. She saw the Sabir
Karnee coming for her, and she fled, but he caught up to her. This
time he did not come to rescue her from rapists and murderers; this
time he came because he wanted her. He touched her and kissed her,
and her mind cried out that her desire was a betrayal of her
Family, that she should flee before she gave in to him. But she was
weak. She did what she knew she should not do. She welcomed his
embrace and her Family died in droves at the hands of his
Family while she fed her lust and ignored her duty. Then the dream
metamorphosed, and she ran, wild and reckless, smelling the rich
earth and the vibrant growth of jungle and forest and field,
floating at incredible speeds with her feet never quite touching
the ground. And all the while, something terrible pursued her. The
scent of her pursuer rose out of the ground and poisoned the air
she breathed. Honeysuckle. Sweet honeysuckle. It terrified her,
though she did not know why. She careened along the edge of a cliff
that appeared out of nowhere, and discovered in the same instant
that she was running beside her cousin Danya. The two of them were
girls again, exploring the grounds outside of the House, and she
knew without knowing how she knew that the two of them had wakened
something old and evil . . . and that the monster that
they had awakened wanted to destroy them. Then the cliff fell away
beneath them, and she and Danya fell silently. As she fell, Kait
started to Shift again terrified that her cousin would see
her and discover the secret she fought so hard to keep. In spite of
her attempts to control the Shift, her arms stretched into front
legs, then thinned into wings . . . but she still fell.
She dropped, helpless, into an abyss, and watched the ground loom
closer and closer.
With a snap, heart racing, mouth dry, she was awake. She
didnt move, didnt open her eyes because someone
was in her room. The scent told her that the someone was her
uncle Dùghall; the irregular purring snores told her he slept
in the chair next to the door. When had he arrived, and why had he
chosen to wait for her to wake instead of waking her? And more
importantly, what had she betrayed of her nature while she
slept?
Her body ached, and she wished she could forget the disasters of
the previous night. She wished she could forget the Sabir son.
She also wished she could get past Dùghall without waking
him so that she could get something to eat before she had to answer
a lot of questions. She was ravenous her body demanded a
price for its Shifting, for its rapid healing and tremendous
strength and speed. It demanded food in enormous quantities; if it
didnt get what it needed, it would drive her into despair,
and then into a deadly, uncontrollable rage. The longer she waited
to eat, the more out of control her moods would become. But the
instant she opened one eye to survey the room, Dùghall woke as
if hed been slapped. His snore became a snort, his eyes flew
open in bewilderment, and he shot upright, gasping.
And there went any hope of breakfast before the interrogation
she was sure to face. She said, Good morning, Uncle,
and tried her best to look pleasant.
He required a moment before he remembered where he was and how
he had come to be there. Kait could see the information filtering
out of the dreamworld hed inhabited and into his eyes, and
she saw pleasure leave him by degrees, replaced by . . .
what? Worry? Fear? Anger? Whatever she saw there vanished beneath
the diplomats mask of calm before she could identify it.
What happened? he asked.
How much did she dare tell him? Dùghall wasnt the
senior ambassador in Halles. He was peripheral to the embassy
itself he was important, certainly; in the islands where the
Galweighs harvested their meager supplies of caberra, the natives
worshiped Dùghall as a god and wouldnt deal with anyone
else. He had power and prestige, and he represented the Family at
the moment as a respected elder statesman. But he was not the head
of the Halles embassy, and thus he would not be the man who would
decide what to do about the Dokteeraks and the Sabirs. If she
followed protocol, she would tell Dùghall she couldnt
discuss the issue, and she would go upstairs to speak to Eldon
Galweigh, to whom responsibility for the decisions would fall. But
to Eldon Galweigh, she was a junior diplomat of no real importance.
To Dùghall Draclas, she was a beloved niece and the young
woman hed sponsored into the diplomatic service. And Uncle
Dùghall would be less inclined, she thought, to pursue
difficult questions. So she said, First, I ran into
conspiracy.
He raised an eyebrow. The Sabirs and the
Dokteeraks.
Kait should have been relieved that the plot had already fallen
into the hands of those capable of dealing with it, but she was
perversely disappointed. Shed hoped that, by telling the
Family what shed discovered and by thus saving them from
betrayal and defeat, she could expiate the sin of desiring the
Sabir Karnee. She closed her eyes. You already
knew.
I recognized one of the Sabirs being led through the midst
of the Naming Day party by an irate houseman. I have no idea what
he was doing there.
Kait met his eyes and told him. I know.
She reeled off the conversation shed heard between the
Dokteerak paraglese and his servant.
When she finished, Dùghall sat for a moment staring at her,
his face pale and his lips and knuckles white. At last he said,
Good gods, girl, thats a nightmare. They plan an attack
during the wedding itself? Actual battle? I had thought at very
worst the damned Sabirs were attempting to curry favor
perhaps arrange a marriage of their own to weaken our
alliance. He looked down at the backs of his hands for the
longest time. Then, quietly, he said, If I can verify this,
you will have obtained valuable information, Kait-cha. Tell me, how
did you come by it?
Kait had given the answer to that question plenty of thought as
she made her way home the night before. Shed already fixed
her lie firmly in her mind. I felt ill, and sent Tippa to the
carriage ahead of me. I told her to go ahead home she was
flirting with three Gyru-nalle princes and somehow had managed to
get herself drunk, and I didnt see any sign of the chaperones
who were supposed to be with her. I wanted her out of the Dokteerak
House before she did something stupid. As it was, Im afraid
it was a near thing.
Ive . . . heard . . . from the
princes already. Last night. Some colleagues of theirs on the
Dokteerak staff drugged both chaperones and dragged them off,
intending to make both women look like theyd indulged in too
much of the Dokteeraks wine and had been sporting with some
of the concubines that were on hand for the evening entertainment.
They hoped to humiliate our Family. He waved her on.
Weve already dealt with that. Continue.
She glanced at him sidelong, curious. In Tippas condition
the night before, she would have been able to tell him little that
would have been useful; considering that, Kait found herself
wondering if perhaps Dùghalls methods of acquiring
information were as unconventional as her own. How had he known to
go after the three princes? How had he managed to locate them? She
leaned against the stone wall, pulled her blankets up around her
shoulders, and said, I went down a side corridor, thinking I
might find a fountain from which to draw a drink of water. I became
dizzy, and leaned against a statue, and when the dizziness passed,
I realized that I heard voices. I listened to what they were
saying; I moved behind the statue to hide when I found out what
they discussed was of interest to us. When the paraglese left, I
saw him go. She closed her eyes, remembering the pale, squat
man who strode down the corridor past her, so close that she could
feel the breeze when he passed. Hed looked remarkably like a
toad, she realized. She glanced at her uncle. He ordered a
visiting paraglese in from the Territories killed to give himself
an excuse for leaving his party.
Dùghall frowned, and for a moment she wondered what
shed said wrong. But he said, Damnall. Thats one
confirmation of your story. One of our runners came to the embassy
not long after Tippa arrived to inform us that the paraglese
Idrogar Pendat from Old Jirin died of a sudden fever last night. It
doesnt fill me with joy to discover his death was
. . . convenient.
You dont seem surprised.
His thin, humorless smile wasnt comforting. Im
not. Pendat assumed that he would be welcomed into the
Dokteeraks House and kept safe because he was among his own
Family. But new faces in any House create opportunities for many
sorts of change, and if the visitor isnt careful, he often
finds himself a pawn in anothers game. Sometimes a dead
pawn.
But he was Family. To Kait, Family was
sacred.
Dùghall said, Not all Families are like ours,
Kait-cha.
Kait nodded. Shed known the Sabirs were evil, and she
hadnt liked the Dokteeraks much when shed been
introduced to them. She still found it difficult, though, to
reconcile her hazy images of evil with the reality of a man
murdering one of his own Family to provide a convenient excuse for
missing a party. That gave a face to the word evil that
she would never have imagined on her own.
She tried to block out her hunger by concentrating on
Dùghall. She knew she needed to stay on her guard. But the
aftereffects of Karnee Shift would not be denied; she wanted food.
Food. Dùghall seemed to blur in front of her eyes and his
voice came from far away, as if he spoke from the other side of a
long field.
What happened to you on the way home? he asked.
I couldnt help but notice the blood on your legs and
hand and face when I came in.
Her hands flew to her face and she felt herself flushing.
I thought Id washed it all off.
He nodded. So what happened?
She hadnt had time to come up with a good lie for that.
I was . . . attacked, she said. While I
walked home. Thieves. She shrugged. I was lucky
I cut one with the dagger Id hidden in my skirt when he
threatened me, and just then a stranger came along and chased off
the others. I got a little bloody, but I was fortunate.
You were indeed. The streets of this city are dangerous.
You could have had much worse happen.
She nodded solemnly and said nothing.
If I can confirm the parts of your information that we
havent verified yet, Ill pass it on to Eldon, he
was saying. She continued to nod, thinking more of what she might
find to eat than of his words. But what he said next brought her
attention back to the present. Meanwhile, well have to
make an appearance at the Celebration of Names today. The
Dokteeraks have a parade and some sort of festival in the main city
square. I want you to come along you did a fine job of
protecting Tippa last night, but even more than that, you managed
to be in the right place at the right time to get information that
your Family desperately needed. I never attribute opportunities of
that sort entirely to luck. There is always some skill involved.
Perhaps youll be fortunate again today. Ill see that
you get a commendation for your work last night, by the way.
He studied the backs of his hands. Perhaps even a
posting. He glanced up, noted the delight in her eyes, and
smiled. No promises on the posting, though, Kait. Youre
very junior.
I understand.
He added, But about the celebration, be ready to leave by
Stura. The ceremony begins at Duea, and were to have places
alongside the Dokteerak Family atop their old ruin of a
tower.
Kait wondered if shed heard her uncle correctly.
Theyre plotting to kill us all, and were going to
sit in their damned tower with them and pretend to enjoy
their festival?
Dùghall smiled broadly. Indeed, we are going to go
and have a marvelous time. Further, were going to be
understanding and magnanimous about the unfortunate situation last
night with Tippa and the princes; our chaperone failed as badly as
theirs at protecting her, after all, and in these days reliable
help is hard to find. His eyes narrowed and something lethal
crept into his smile. And while we play the fool, our people
here in the embassy will be making sure that their plot against us
turns around and bites them instead.
He chuckled, shook his head as if the whole thing amused him,
then rose to leave. Dont wear anything orange. These
Baltos think its an unlucky color the first month of the new
year. You havent eaten yet, of course.
No. Not anything.
Youre hungry?
Ravenous.
Dùghall opened her door, then turned again and said,
Youll need to hurry. No time to go to the kitchen.
Ill have the staff bring something up for you.
If they dont bring me enough, Ill devour
whoever carries the food into the room, she said, and perhaps
some edge of her hunger crept into her voice, for Dùghall
looked at her oddly. Tell them to bring me something meaty.
And not that spiced meat they love so much here.
He laughed. All grown up and you still hate spices?
Ill just tell them to trot a whole lamb up to your room
you can have that as plain as youd like.
Still laughing, Dùghall stepped out the door and closed it
behind him, then poked his head back in. His face still wore its
merry smile, and Kait grinned at him. Forget
something?
Nothing vital. How did you get into your room last
night?
She wasnt thinking clearly. Hunger had dulled her
reactions. Worse, the question took her completely by surprise and
his tone was so casual that she didnt sense the danger in it.
She glanced at the window through which shed climbed before
she could stop herself. The logical lie came an instant too late,
but she tried it. I came in through the front door, of
course, she said, but Dùghalls smile had vanished
so quickly and so totally that she realized hed been acting
when he asked how shed come in that hed been
planning all along to ask that question, and that he had delayed
asking her so that she would relax. So that she would think he had
forgotten that she had come in without being seen or checked in at
the gate.
He ignored her lie; instead, he came back into her room.
Strolled to the window. Pushed open the shutters and leaned out and
stared down at the ground. Her room was three stories up, and
though the stone was unpolished, it offered no visible handholds.
She knew what he saw, and she knew that a human woman could not
have climbed up the wall and in that window. When he pulled the
shutters closed and turned to face her, she couldnt begin to
guess the meaning of the look on his face.
Well talk later, you and I, he said. No trace
of his previous good humor appeared on his face. But he didnt
look angry, either. She couldnt read him at all.
Meanwhile, eat and get ready to accompany me to the
Celebration of Names.
This time when he left the room, he didnt return. She
stared at the window, hating the stupidity of her response and
wondering if she had, with that single thoughtless glance,
destroyed her chances in the Galweigh diplomatic corps
. . . if she had betrayed herself . . .
Or worse, if she had betrayed her parents and sisters and
brothers.
* * *
Dùghall hurried toward his room, lost in thought. Kait
presented mysteries within mysteries, and he would have to take
whatever time was required to divine the secrets she kept hidden.
The Family couldnt entrust its diplomacy to anyone who kept
secrets from it agents with secrets gave enemies easy tools
for blackmail.
Whatever Kait was hiding, however, appeared potentially useful.
If all her information about the Sabirs and the Dokteeraks checked
out, shed won the gold ball in the spying game, and he
wondered how she had really done it. Mind-magic? Some form of
invisibility? Access to an artifact that gave her new talents?
Whatever shed done, shed be the best diplomat the
Family had ever had if she could do it again.
Maybe shed learned how to fly. That had been an impossible
bit of wall shed gone up and with the guards doubled
and on alert, he thought the invisibility theory gained another
point in its favor, too.
Further, he didnt believe for a moment her tale of a minor
attack by thieves and a rescue by a stranger. First, shed had
long scars on her leg and her hand, and blood all over her; a minor
attack would have done less damage. Second, she hadnt managed
to meet his eyes with confidence while she told him the story. If
she was going to survive as a diplomat, he would have to teach her
some of the finer points of effective lying.
Kaits secrets could wait, though, until he made sure that
her information was sound. If the business between the Sabirs and
the Dokteeraks proved to be true, she would be worth any time she
took.
Dùghall went directly from Kaits room to his own, and
once there made a show of stripping off his morning clothes and
putting on the broad black silk pantaloons and elaborate red silk
brocade robe that were his official garments as chief Galweigh
ambassador in the Imumbarra Isles. He knew he was being watched
someone always watched his room from the hidden panel along
the north wall. Hed discovered that the first night, and had
pretended to remain oblivious. Knowing for certain that a spy was
watching was almost as useful as knowing one wasnt.
Once dressed, he opened one of the half-dozen wig boxes he had
in the room, pulled out an elaborately braided wig, and settled it
on his head. From another box he pulled out the spike-adorned
headdress that would hold the wig in place. He settled the
headdress in place so that the rib bearing the seven spikes ran
from ear to ear, wiggled it a bit to be sure it was firmly on, then
drew out the tuft of beaded feathers that fit into the tip of each
spike and slipped them into their sockets.
Hed not intended to go so formally attired to what was
basically a semiformal event, but the wig, the headdress, and the
brocade robe all had special characteristics about them that suited
his purposes at the moment, and the spy would think it odd if he
donned them, then took them back off again before going
anywhere.
They were the clothes hed prepared before he left the
islands to attend this wedding. The brocade robe was lined with
hidden pockets, and each of those pockets carried in it a packet of
powders useful for the casting of spells, or a talisman already
spelled for a specific purpose. He slid a hand into what looked
like a decorative slit and felt along the beads embroidered just
beneath the edge for a particular pattern. When he found it, he
pulled out the silk bag tucked into the pocket beside it.
He opened the drawstring on the bag and pulled out a charming
gold brooch the design was a playful fox kit done in
intaglio, surrounded by the seven ruby stars that stood for the
seven major islands of the Imumbarra Isles, on a background of
hundreds of tiny incised stars indicating the uncounted lesser
islands. It was a very good copy of an official piece of jewelry,
and the spell it bore had cost him a solid week of work, and more
than a little of his own blood.
He affixed it to the central panel of his robe, and felt the
wall of magic hed created come to life. He smiled. The spy
sitting on the other side of that cunning peephole
would now see nothing more than what hed been seeing and what
he expected to see: a man getting ready to go to an important
function. Dùghalls double would appear to putter around
the room, riffling through documents, perhaps writing one of the
endless correspondences that made up diplomatic life, but doing
nothing noteworthy. Dùghall, meanwhile, went to another wig
box, lifted the wig from the stand it sat on, and took the stand,
dumping the wig back in the box. The stand, a head-shaped bit of
carved wood, came apart in his hands when he moved a carefully
disguised slider in the right jaw to expose a hidden recess, and
pressed fingers simultaneously into that recess and against the
left ear.
Hed hidden his divining tools inside: a bowl and stand for
catching blood, a mirror for the flames, two powder brushes, sulfur
sticks and warding powders, and a bloodletting kit hed
designed himself after wearying of the pain he got when cutting
himself with even the best knife. He sat cross-legged on the floor
and set the divining tools up, then fixed one of the hollow thorns
into the glass vial, wrapped a rubber tourniquet around his
forearm, and plunged the thorn into the first vein that rose to the
surface, wincing as he did. Still not the most comfortable of
methods, but infinitely preferable to the knife.
Blood spurted through the thorn into the bowl. When it covered
the bottom, he marked the first circle of his blood on the mirror,
letting it drip out in a neat, perfectly narrow line from the tip
of the thorn. Then he sprinkled the warding powders into the cup,
struck one of the sulfur sticks to make a flame, and lit the
powders. While they burned, he hurried through his opening
incantation with the speed of long practice.
A sympathetic fire sprang up along the circle of blood, and he
drew a glyph within it that indicated the past. Then he murmured
the name of the Dokteerak paraglese, and focused on the last time
he saw the man at the party the night before. Dùghall dripped
a little blood onto the mirror every time the flame began to burn
low; he watched as the enemy paraglese talked with the Sabir
emissary about his Familys destruction. He tried to follow
the Sabir emissary back through the streets of Halles to wherever
he was hiding, but magic blocked him from seeing the man once he
was well away from the Dokteerak House.
It didnt really matter. What mattered was that hed
confirmed every word of what Kait had told him. The Dokteeraks and
the Sabirs were in alliance, and the Galweighs were their
target.
Chapter 7
Stolen horses made for uncomfortable riding. Hasmal
cursed every ill-gaited strike of the beasts hooves on the
stone road, and every nervous bolt at the sudden eruption of birds
from shrubs or children from hovels. The horse, he had no doubt,
belonged to none other than Brethwan, the Iberan god of celibacy
and sex, of pleasure and pain, and of life and death and was
a harbinger of pain and death, and probably, if the state of his
testicles was any indication, of long-term celibacy. Hasmals
sores had sores, and he hurt so much that taking short breaks to
walk on the ground and lead the accursed animal no longer gave him
any relief.
Which would teach him to live in a country watched over by
Iberish gods, instead of the good Hmoth gods a man knew he could
depend on. Would Vodor Imrish have permitted him to steal such a
foul beast? No, no, and never.
Hasmal intended to get himself to someplace where the gods had a
sense of decency about them where he didnt constantly
have the feeling that they were laughing at him or playing clever
tricks at his expense. He heard the humans who still hung on in the
Strithian lands had congenial gods, if amoral . . . but
perhaps gods who approved of thieving and whoring wouldnt
look with too cold an eye on a Falcon, even one so far from where
he belonged. So he would go to Strithia, then a place enough
like another world to suit his needs, yet still within his reach. A
hundred leagues southeast to Costan Selvira, he could book working
passage aboard the first ship leaving harbor for Brelst. Once in
Brelst, he could sign himself aboard a riverboat going up the
Emjosi River; traveling upriver, the boatmen always needed extra
hands. Had he wanted to travel downriver, he would have had to pay
passage, so luck favored his enterprise already. The less a thing
cost, the more dearly Hasmal loved it, and the better he considered
the omens regarding it.
And as soon as he was across the border into Strithia, hed
be safe. The woman who was his doom was Familied, he would bet his
life. He was betting his life. She was probably Galweigh, if
hed read the woven pattern of her silk dress right, and she
certainly stood well up the ladder of social rank. She
wouldnt throw all that away by crossing the Strithian border
to come after him.
Thus engaged in his thoughts, he allowed himself to forget the
pain his razor-backed mount caused him; more importantly, he
allowed himself to forget that he rode the Shatalles Forest Road.
The former might have been a blessing, but the latter nearly became
his death.
He trotted the execrable excuse for a horse around a sharp curve
in the road, and suddenly men dropped out of the trees that tangled
their branches across the road like a canopy and the men
held knives and wore rags and desperate expressions. His horse
panicked and reared. Hasmal, because he was a poor rider and
inexperienced, fell to the road. And just like that, a knife grazed
his throat and all he could do while his horse galloped back the
way it had come was sit very still, trying hard not to breathe too
deeply.
Your money, the man with the knife at his throat
demanded.
I have none, Hasmal said.
Several of the thieves laughed, and one said, You ride a
horse, dont you? Your clothes are new and very fine,
aint they?
And the thief with the knife at his throat said again,
Your money.
Hasmal swallowed hard, wishing he had taken the time to build a
shield of nonseeing around himself before he left Halles but
that would have taken hours, and she might have come for him
before then. For that matter, he should have made himself a
permanent shield talisman long ago . . . but he had
always had tomorrow for such luxuries, and too many things to do
today. So the talisman had gone unmade, and now he stood in need
and helpless.
I swear, he said, I swear on my own soul that
I have no money. Not so much as a dak. And he thought of the
bit of money hed had, and of his precious magical supplies
and his book, and his other clothes, all of it at that moment
galloping away on the back of the damned horse. I stole the
horse, he said in a burst of honesty, then added an inspired
lie. And the clothes, too.
The men laughed at him, and the one with the knife at his throat
said, He thinks hes hid it too good for us. Strip him
well find it soon enough.
Four thieves held his arms and four his legs, and three more
began pawing at his clothes. The one with the knife at
Hasmals throat snarled, Dont tear his clothes,
you pigs. I want them. Then he leaned in close to Hasmal and
said, Even if you swallowed your money, Ill find
it. His smile was evil.
Hasmal sweated and shook. He had no chance of winning free of
the thieves, no matter how hard he fought. They held him tightly
and they didnt relax their guard or assume that because they
outnumbered him he wouldnt fight. They were careful and
cagey, and acted with a unison and a precision that spoke of long
practice at their work. They were going to find out he had nothing
on him, and then they were going to gut him to see if hed
swallowed his gold as some men were said to do before setting out
over dangerous roads. And when they discovered he really did have
nothing, the truth would come too late to benefit him.
One of the thieves finished going through his clothing.
Nothing on him.
I reckon Ill have to gut you, then. The men
who held Hasmal tightened their grips, and Hasmal stiffened and
squinched his eyes shut.
Everything I had in the world took off with that damned
horse, he gasped. He expected the sharp fire of the knife in
his belly at any instant, but nothing happened. He cautiously
opened one eye and found all the thieves staring at him.
The one who had been on the point of gutting him said, You
piss-brained idiot. Everything you had was on the horse?
Everything? What were you going to do if you were
thrown?
Hasmal said, I didnt know the damned things were so
hard to ride.
The thieves guffawed then, and their leader shook his head and
said, I almost believe you now . . . almost
. . . cause who else would be so stupid that he
wouldnt keep hisself anything in case of he lost his horse,
excepting a man who never had hisself a horse?
One of the other thieves said, Look at the raw spots on
his legs. Looks to me like he really aint never rid a horse
before.
Hasmal felt a moment of hope. He was naked, he had nothing, but
if they didnt kill him, he might always find clothes to steal
and food to eat and a place to sleep, and, given time and a few
materials, he could spell himself some protection, find work
. . .
But his hope died at birth. Still want to gut him?
another one asked, and the leader said, For what? To get
blood all over my new clothes? Just hang him and be done.
Why hang me? Hasmal asked. Just let me go. You
dont need to hang me.
And let you go and tell a mess of guardsmen where we met
you? Or how many of us they might catch out, if they came looking?
I reckon not. Well stretch your neck until you wont
tell anyone anything. Thatll do for our needs. He
turned to his men. Tie him and bring him.
Bring me? Hasmal kept hoping that something might
break his way; if they werent going to hang him right away,
perhaps he would get a chance to escape.
If we strung you beside the road, the leader said in
a surprisingly patient voice, wed as well as tell the
roadsmen this was where we was. Well take you into the woods
a ways and do you there. His voice said, No hard feelings;
this is just the job.
Hasmal couldnt find it in himself to be understanding.
They walked a long way, dragging Hasmal between them at
one point, one of them explained without being asked that they had
to walk so far because if the smell blew out to the road, that
could sometimes bring down the authorities, too. He didnt say
the smell of the corpse, but he didnt need to.
Hasmal realized that he was a walking dead man. He sagged at
last, and quit hoping for an opportunity to present itself. He
allowed himself to be dragged forward. He was sure he had ceased
caring. Then he heard singing. He thought at first he heard the
voices of the karae, prematurely beginning the dirges that
would accompany him into the Darkland; however, the karae
only sang into the ears of the dead, never the living, and several
of the thieves had started at the sound.
Boesels? someone whispered.
Boesels were supposed to be great hairy man-eating forest
creatures that lured travelers to their deaths by pretending to be
humans. Hasmal wouldnt swear that no such creatures existed
after all, he had seen stranger things with his own eyes
but he had never heard of one being taken in civilized
lands. And hed never heard of them singing.
Hunters, I think, someone else suggested, keeping
his voice down, too.
But the refrain of the song reached them then, and with it the
sweet minor-key piping of a stick-flute.
Khaadamu, khaadamas, merikaas cheddae
Allelola vo saddee.
Emas avesamas betorru faeddro
Komosum khaadamu zhee.
Its not either, the leader said. He grinned
like a leopard come upon unguarded goats. Thats Gyrus,
by Coz, and the first goddamned bit of luck weve had
all day.
Luck for the thieves half-luck for Hasmal. The song was
haunting, the singers voice a rich and vibrant baritone that
ached with pain and loss, but the only way Hasmal could have
regretted hearing it more would have been had the thieves already
hauled him by his neck up into a tree when it started. He knew at
the same time that he had been granted both a possible reprieve
from death and a likely sentence in hell.
When the thief had said
Gyrus, hed meant
Gyru-nalles: the notorious Gyru-nalles, members of an entire race
devoted to thievery of a high and organized order; known from the
ends of Ibera to beyond as traders of horses and dogs and stones
and rare metals; reputed as liars and pickpockets who claimed to
have once been kings of all Ibera; and most importantly, whispered
in the dark of night and behind the safety of barred doors as
stealers of children and young women and handsome boys, as slavers
with no scruples about where they acquired their human merchandise
and no quibbles about where they sold it, or for what purpose. Men
who dealt with the Gyru-nalles unlicensed buyers who would
buy unpapered, untaxed slaves would do so, Hasmal thought,
only because they wanted their slaves disposable. Hasmal knew worse
deaths existed than hanging, and were he sold into the ungentle
care of the Gyrus, he thought himself likely to meet one of those
deaths at firsthand.
Not that he had any choice in the matter. The thieves dragged
him forward again, and at a harder pace than before, and the leader
began to whistle: a long, falling note, two short, sharp rising
notes, and a trill. He repeated the call three times more as they
hurried forward, and the fourth time added a bit of what sounded
like birdsong, though Hasmal was city bred and couldnt begin
to guess what bird that call might have imitated. When the thief
fell silent, from the trees around them Hasmal heard movement where
he had heard nothing before. A man stepped out from behind an
enormous ficus he was pale-skinned, blotchily freckled, and
light-eyed. Red hair in hundreds of tight braids hung to his waist,
and he wore his mustache braided, too, and tipped with gold beads.
He smiled and gold teeth flashed in the forest gloom. He was a
Gyru-nalle for sure. Hasmal would have wept if he hadnt
thought doing so would make things worse for him. None of the other
Gyrus who surrounded them stepped into view, but Hasmal knew they
were there. And that they had arrows pointed straight at his
kidneys, no doubt.
The Gyru hugged the leader of the thieves and said,
Tra
metakchme, baverras ama tallarra ahaava?
The leader laughed and clapped the Gyru on the back.
Allemu kheetorras sammes faen zeorrae llosadee, vo emu ave.
Haee tahafa khaarramas salleddro. He tipped his chin
toward Hasmal.
Tho fegrro awomas choto?
Hettu!
Hasmal had caught a fair amount of that exchange Gyrus
traded antiquities, and hed been hearing them selling to his
father since he was old enough to walk. Shombe was not a tongue
Hasmal ever thought he would hear while he was the merchandise
being discussed, but then life was like that. The Gyru had said,
roughly, Well met, you hoary bastard, and what have you
brought to trade me? And the thief, in dreadful pidgin
Shombe, had answered, My brother, I found the most marvelous
slave wandering on the road, and no one to claim him. So what will
you give me? Come and lets trade.
The Gyru sauntered over and stared down at Hasmal, and his
eyebrows rose and his lips pursed. He walked around Hasmal,
studying him from all angles, came back and crouched in front of
him, snorted with disgust, and subjected Hasmal to the sort of
concentrated visual inspection that would have made a stallion
blush. At last he stood and turned to the thief. Still in Shombe,
he said, Well, he isnt bad, I suppose. He has some
muscle to him. I cant sell him to the dowagers, though,
because hes hung like a gnat, and the boy-market wont
care much for him, either, for the same reason. The thieves
giggled and laughter echoed from the trees where the Gyrus
allies hid. About the best I can hope for is to sell him as a
laborer, and those dont go for much.
The thieves leader glanced over at Hasmal. He says
he likes you, he said. He says if you futter any women,
they will still be virgins afterward. He thinks owning you might
give him a market in miracle babies.
Hasmal didnt see any reason to let anyone know he knew
what the Gyru had actually said. In Iberan, he replied,
Lucky, then, that no one is trying to sell you. I dont
imagine dickless eunuchs would be worth anything to that
market.
The head thief glared at him, though the other thieves
and a few of the Gyrus laughed. The head thief turned his
back on Hasmal and said, Give me eight ros?
The braid-haired Gyru rolled his eyes and held up two fingers.
I could see my way to give you two.
That eats donkey dung. I want seven anyway, for all my
trouble in getting him here.
The Gyrus laughed again and the one who bargained shook his
head. You want seven ros for that?
Phtttt! Ill
give you four, but Ill be lucky to sell him for
that.
The thief raised his eyebrows. Maybe miracle babies
aint worth much right now, he said to Hasmal in Iberan.
He wants you cheap. Then in Shombe to the Gyru,
Ill take six ros . . . and youre
stealing my eyes and the food from my mouth to get him for a
bargain like that.
The Gyru grinned. I cant steal what you dont
own. You can be lucky we dont take the lot of you and sell
you all I think that one is more a freeman than any of the
rest of you. But because I like you and because weve done
some business before, Ill buy your problem from you. For four
and a half ros. No more.
The thief flushed and frowned, and suddenly no one was laughing.
He stood there for a moment looking like a man who wanted to fight,
but with all of the Gyrus men still hidden in the trees, he
would have been a fool to start anything. At last he shrugged and
said in Shombe, Yeah. Ill take your four and a half
ros. He added in Pethca, one of the backcountry dialects of
Iberan, And I hope your balls rot off, you stinking
whoreson.
No flash of comprehension showed in the Gyrus eyes. He
opened a small leather purse that hung at his waist and with a
smile counted out four silver ros and two small coppers. He dropped
the coins into the leaders outstretched hand, bowed slightly
to all the thieves, and, still smiling, beckoned Hasmal to follow
him. The thieves whod dragged him into the woods let him
go.
For only an instant, Hasmal considered running. But in the trees
above him and from the thick underbrush all around him, he heard
the soft murmurs and faint movements of the Gyrus friends. He
felt their stares, and he could almost feel their arrows piercing
his body as he fled. Better to live, he thought, for tomorrow may
bring freedom better to live a hard life than to die an easy
death. He stumbled a bit his hands bound behind him threw
off his balance, and his nakedness made fighting his way through
the thorns and scrub brush and needle-edged palmettos more of an
adventure than any man deserved.
He followed, wishing that he were a stronger man, or a faster or
a braver one; wishing that he might suddenly be set free by a
miracle or an act of the gods, knowing that he wouldnt.
He had only one pleasant thought that he could hold on to. At
least he was well away from the woman who would have been his
doom.
Chapter 8
The great square of Halles fluttered with ribbons and
pennants and jangled with tambourines and mamboors and cymbals and
gongs. The thronging lower classes danced in long, snaking lines up
the broad main avenue toward the ancient obsidian tower in which
the Dokteerak Family and this year the members of the
Galweigh wedding party who had already arrived in Halles
waited and watched. Kait thought the tower was interesting; it was
certainly an artifact in that it predated the Dokteeraks and most,
if not all, of the other structures in Halles, but no one would
mistake it as the work of the Ancients. Where their structures,
built almost entirely of white stone-of-Ancients, soared in
delicate arches and pinnacles and bore no designs on their smooth,
translucent surfaces, the Halles tower had been built out of black
marble, with each stone dressed to fit perfectly against the rest
and the topmost stones carved into fantastically hideous winged
monsters. Time had marred them and worn some of the detail from
them, but the pocks and moss only accented their terrible teeth and
the mad expressions in their eyes. Who had built the tower? Kait
looked down at the rabble below and thought their ancestors were
unlikely candidates.
The crawling sense of blindly seeking evil that had set Kait on
edge at the party the night before had, if anything, grown
stronger. The entire city reeked of it. But her senses were dulled
and the tension of pending Shift had been sated, and she was able
to push the awareness of that evil to a dark corner of her mind,
where she could ignore it. Having eaten a huge meal before she left
the embassy, Kait wanted nothing more than to sleep; the
inescapable weariness that always overcame her after she Shifted
held her in its unrelenting grasp. But she had to stay awake;
further, she had to be charming when what she wanted most was to
rip out the throats of the lying Dokteerak bastards who surrounded
her.
The paraglese, Branard Dokteerak, short and fat, with his long
hair greased and twisted into beribboned ropes, walked over and
leaned on the balcony next to Kait and didnt attempt to hide
the fact that he was looking down the neckline of her dress to see
her breasts. She kept her irritation hidden after all, her
purpose in attending the ceremony and wearing the revealing dress
and associating with the lying, double-crossing connivers was to
allay suspicion and to give her Family time to come up with a
suitable revenge. Nevertheless, the paraglese was a loathsome toad
and had Kait been able to do it without causing an incident, she
would have hurt him.
Lovely girl, he said, smiling up at her.
Youre called Kait-ayarenne, arent you? Daughter
of Strahan Galweigh, if Im not mistaken.
Kait hoped she appeared sufficiently flattered by his attention.
I am, she said, though I must admit Im
surprised that you heard my name mentioned at all. Im far too
junior a diplomat to have been brought to your attention by my
Family.
And far too exquisite a creature to have escaped my
eye. His smile stretched, making his resemblance to a toad
startlingly exact. I confess that it wasnt in your role
as diplomat that I heard your name. I saw you at my party last
night, and thought that you looked very lovely, and I asked one of
your people who you were so that I might come over and make your
acquaintance. His smile vanished, and he shook his head, eyes
suddenly downcast. Unfortunately, before I could find a
mutual acquaintance who could introduce us, I was called away to
attend to a dear cousin who was taken ill
Idrogar Pendat? I heard that he died last night.
Sadly, you heard right. His death came unexpectedly
he was a strong man, and in the prime of life, and though he had
been ill, no one realized how terribly near death he was. My
physick says he had some weakness in his heart, and that the heat
and the dampness of the air here became too much for him.
I grieve with you in your time of loss, and commend your
cousins spirit to Lodan that she may treat him with
kindness, Kait said. That was the expected formula; she
managed to say it as though she really meant it, however. She
discovered to her amazement that she was enjoying the interchange;
not speaking to the paraglese as such, because he disgusted her,
but knowing the truth behind the lies that he told her and
pretending that she didnt, and acting a part that made her
someone other than who she was in order to deceive him. Unlike her
lifelong charade to be human, she shared this charade with everyone
around her. All of the people atop the tower were pretending
well, with the possible exception of Tippa, but Tippa was an idiot.
Sweet, but an idiot.
For Kait, the conversation with the paraglese was a revelation.
The creation of a Kait that did not exist the living lie
that had made most of her existence a study in guilt now
served a purpose. Through the years of pretense she had learned to
act, and acting was part of diplomacy. And through diplomacy she
could serve her Family and bring honor to the Galweigh name.
The paraglese smiled again, but sadly. You are as kind as
you are beautiful. Which makes me all the sadder that when I
returned to my party, I discovered you had already gone.
She nodded, and conveyed disappointment of her own. The
regrets are mine. But I had no choice. A few of your guests were
bothering my cousin Tippa, as you have no doubt heard. I only
attended the party as her companion I had no choice but to
take her home.
For one unguarded instant, she saw shock in his eyes. He hid it
quickly with another oily smile. The three guests have been
apprehended, and are now in our care. The Gyru-nalles have plotted
against the Families for years; this time, however, they were
careless enough to get caught. All three of those so-called princes
are to be executed today as part of our entertainment. The insult
to your cousin my future daughter cannot be
tolerated. He gave her a long, thoughtful look and added,
But I had no idea you were the one who took her home. The
men, when we . . . ah, questioned them . . .
they mentioned a terrifying Galleech of a woman who frightened them
away from dear Tippa, but neither I nor anyone else could recall
such a woman at the party. And seeing you now, I fail to see any
resemblance to the Galleech.
The Galleech was one of the five Furies, goddesses who predated
Iberism she was blue-skinned and fang-toothed, with ruby
eyes that shot fire that consumed her enemies. She strode through
the myths of Ibera like a one-woman plague, laying waste to all
that enraged her.
Kait said, Id hardly compare myself to the Galleech,
though I do have a bit of a temper.
The paraglese responded with a cocked eyebrow and a half-smile.
Evidently. He chatted only an instant more, then
excused himself to visit with other guests.
Bemused, Kait watched him go. When he found out she was the one
who stood down the three princes, the musky scent of attraction he
had emanated while talking to her had vanished, replaced by a faint
sweat stink of fear. Interesting. She wondered what the men had
seen and what they had said that would create such a response in
him.
Down in the square, the tail end of the parade came into view,
and the peasants who lined both sides of the avenue began to cheer.
Easily a hundred parnissas in the purple robes that they alone
could wear on the day after Theramisday marched forward. On their
shoulders the foremost carried a litter, and in the litter sat a
woman wrapped all in cloth of gold. The new carais of Halles, the
woman who had by oracle and lottery named the citys new year,
waved to the cheering hordes. Kait leaned forward on the
balustrade, interested in spite of herself. The choices of the gods
in picking their caraisi never ceased to be surprising.
This woman appeared to be tiny and ancient.
Beside Kait, someone chuckled. Wait until you hear what
she named the year.
She turned to find Calmet Dokteerak, who was to be her
cousins husband within a week, standing at her shoulder. He
was as clearly Baltos with his white hair and ice-blue eyes
and flat face and short, stocky body as Kait, tallish and
slender and dark of hair, and eye, was Zaith. He didnt yet
look like a toad, but Kait could see signs that he would one day. A
perfect young copy of his father. Kait tried to imagine herself
married to such a man to seal an alliance, and she had to swallow
her revulsion. Thank all the gods that her branch of the Family
lacked the status to make such marriages an issue.
She smiled. Were almost Family already. You
wouldnt keep me in suspense, would you?
He winked at her. I think I could be convinced to tell you
. . . if you gave me a little kiss. Seeing as we are
almost Family.
Like father, like son. The other Kait, the dangerous Kait,
stirred in her sleep, dreaming of the slaughter and destruction of
men who deserved it. The Kait who had won her place as a diplomat,
however, smiled broadly and said, I would have given you a
kiss without the excuse. I think my cousin is a very lucky
woman. She leaned toward him and gave him a brief but
passionate kiss on the lips.
He flushed an amazing shade of red and rewarded her with a smile
that almost made him likable. Almost, but not quite. The new
carais is a pig farmer, he said, staring down at the
procession that wended its way ever closer. And she named the
year My Glorious, Enormously Fat Pig Abramaknar.
Kaits laugh was genuine. Oh, no! A pig year.
Thats embarrassing . . . She flashed a wicked
grin at him and said, But we had worse once.
He had regained his composure. Do tell.
Four years ago a girl of fifteen became our carais. On the
day she added her yearname to the lottery, shed had a fight
with her brother. Her name was so terrible our family parnissa said
all the parnissas lobbied the oracle to see if they might discard
the name and draw out another. But of course they
couldnt.
Really. Ive never heard of parnissas wanting to
change a name before. What was it?
Now we just call the year Miracle Sword, but his
full name was My Shit-Breathed Brother Gamals Penis, Which
He Has Named Miracle Sword, and Which I Hope Turns Green and Falls
Off Because Gamal Is an Asshole.
Calmet giggled and his ears turned red. I can see where
they would want to change that yes.
That isnt the worst of it. The parnissas had a
terrible time deciding which god ruled over the year. They finally
loaded him off on poor Brethwan in his dark aspect, and decided he
was to be an ill-omened year. We were all glad when he passed, not
least of all the carais. She got tired of being linked in
everyones mind with the omens and Brethwan-Dark and her
brothers penis. Probably especially that last.
I should think so, Calmet said vehemently. At
least with a nice fat pig, you know the omens will be
good.
Below, the parnissas had finished their instructions to the new
carais. Now the crowd began to chant, first softly, then louder and
louder. Kait caught what they were saying and winced. They shouted,
Bring them out! Bring them out! Traditionally, on the
day after Naming Day, the parnissas executed criminals in public as
a symbolic sacrifice of evil, to destroy evil influences for the
coming year. The sacrifices were real crowd-pleasers, too, as the
increasingly wild calls below demonstrated. Kait hated them, and
had almost always found reasons to avoid them. But she
wouldnt be able to escape the spectacle this time; if Calmet
hadnt been at her elbow, she might have managed to slip away
unseen. The paragleses son, however, showed no inclination to
move on to other guests.
We have some excellent sacrifices, Calmet said.
In the street below, first one horse-drawn cage and then another
rolled into view. The cheering grew louder.
You have a lot of people in there. Kait could make
out at least ten in the first cage; the first blocked the second so
she couldnt see how many it held, but she guessed it would
carry roughly as many as the first why crowd one cage and
not the other? Her stomach knotted; shed hated the sacrifices
in Calimekka, but usually only one or two criminals were offered,
and they had always done such evil things that Kait had to admit
their deaths served justice. But twenty people . . . she
didnt know how she could force herself to watch twenty people
die, no matter what evils they had committed.
This isnt many at all. Last year we did almost a
hundred, most of them by drawing and quartering. The people would
be disappointed by such meager entertainment if we didnt have
something really special for them this year. You talk about good
omens . . . He shook his head, bemused. I
didnt think we would ever find anything like this again. And
after the slaughter in the Blamauk Quarter last night
. . . but you wouldnt have heard anything about
that . . .
He didnt finish his thought. In the square below, a dozen
mounted guardsmen in the blue and gold livery of the Dokteeraks
rode out from their station at the base of the tower; their black
stallions pranced to the blare of trumpets. The horses wore not
saddles but gleaming black harnesses that looked like they had been
designed for drawing the plows of the hells damned. To either
side of the twin line of horsemen marched armed pikemen in squares
five wide and five deep. The people in the square cheered
louder.
Kait thought about feigning a fainting spell; it wouldnt
be that hard, and she would be able to escape the gruesome
spectacle that was about to play out in front of her. But any
action of that sort would draw attention to her and the
wrong sort of attention and one thing Kait had learned early
in her life was never to draw attention to herself. She
would stand fast. She would witness the sacrifices. And she would
remind herself that the time she stood pretending to be a part of
the crowd atop the tower was time that her Family was using to plan
the destruction of the traitorous Dokteeraks.
Below, a sudden gust of wind swirled down the street, blowing
leaves and trash toward the tower, and several things happened at
once. The guardsmens horses reared and shied. Their
unexpected movement threw several of the pikemen to the ground,
causing localized uproars. And a familiar, terrifying scent, borne
up to the top of the tower by the gust, reached Kaits
nostrils. She froze.
Who are your sacrifices? she asked quietly, though
she already knew if not by name, then by ties that ran
deeper than mere blood.
Calmet grinned at her. I cant spoil the surprise
. . . but this is going to be marvelous.
It wasnt going to be marvelous; it was going to be worse
than anything Kait had anticipated.
The Dokteerak guardsmen had gotten themselves in order and were
awaiting the arrival of the cages. Conversation atop the tower had
died; the representatives of both Families aligned themselves along
the balustrade so that they could watch the proceedings. The
exception was Kaits uncle Dùghall, who appeared suddenly
at her left shoulder.
She looked at him hopefully. We have to leave? she
asked.
He shook his head. I thought I would watch the
entertainment with my favorite niece. He smiled when he said
it, but she sensed, or maybe just smelled, warning in his
demeanor.
She forced herself to smile back. You know your
companionship always brings me pleasure. She glanced over at
Calmet and was startled to find him moving away from her. For just
a moment, anyway, she and her uncle were far enough from the others
on top of the tower to have privacy.
He turned and stared down at the crowd, to all appearances as
enraptured by the unfolding spectacle as the rest of the Family
spectators. In a voice so quiet that she could barely hear him with
her own extraordinary ears (a voice which told her more than words
ever could have how severely her secret had been compromised) he
murmured, I heard from the elder Dokteerak what this is to
be. And while I dont know what I know about you, Kait,
I know what I suspect. We cant leave for any reason;
our every move is being watched. Are you going to get through
this?
She followed his lead, pretending to focus on the three princes
shed pulled Tippa away from the night before; pikemen were
binding their arms and legs, one limb per horse, to the modified
harnesses the stallions wore. She said, Ive spent a
lifetime maintaining appearances. Ill do whatever I have to
do.
The screams and pleas for mercy from the three men echoed louder
in the square than the jeers and shouts of the delighted crowd. The
head parnissa stepped up on a dais and gave a signal, and the crowd
fell silent. Paraglese, he shouted, and his voice
filled the square and boomed up to the tower, on this first
true day of the year of My Glorious, Enormously Fat Pig
Abramaknar, I ask you what you say to these men.
The paraglese took a deep breath and shouted down to the crowd,
I say these things. For treason against the Families of
Ibera, conspiracy, plotting to harm Family members, and the
breaking of sacred trusts with the gods who find favor in the rule
of the Families, I declare guilty by means of confession the
Gyru-nalle men who declare themselves princes, and who are named
Erstisto Ghost-in-the-Road, Lataban Too-Long-to-Home, and Meeraklf
Three-Tunes-Waiting, and sentence them to death.
The parnissa shouted back, Do you offer mercy or
pardon? Kait thought if there was any hope of mercy or
pardon, the men shouldnt have already been tied to the horses
. . . but the crowds, who wanted their spectacle,
didnt seem bothered by any qualms about the fairness of the
proceedings they witnessed. Immediately they began to shout,
No mercy! No mercy!
The paraglese raised his hands, and the crowd quieted. No
mercy! he shouted. The roar of approval from the mob covered
the order that sent all twelve horses lunging in opposite
directions.
Kait clamped her jaws so tight the muscles in her face ached;
she stared with outward impassivity as all three men tore
apart.
She became aware of a hand on her wrist, and glanced at her
uncle to see her own anger mirrored in his eyes. Realizing that she
wasnt the only one who did not revel in the public sacrifices
lightened a burden in her that she didnt even realize
shed been carrying. In something, at least, she was not
alone.
Servants were cutting loose the pieces of the three Gyru-nalles;
the guardsmen, meanwhile, had gone to the second cage. From it they
drew a lone boy. He was no older than five or six, and he was
beautiful, with a sweetness and an innocence that seemed to radiate
from him. His clothes marked him as a merchants son, and
suggested that his family was well off. His cleanliness and the
care that had been taken with his grooming suggested, further, that
he was well loved. He twisted toward the people in the second cage,
and Kait could hear his thin, terrified wail of Maman!
Papan!
She swallowed hard, fighting back the tears that she could
already taste. Several of the parnissas took the boy from the
guardsmen and dragged him to the center of the dais. The head
parnissa drew a great jeweled dagger from within the folds of his
robe and shouted, Paraglese, behold the monster! He
slashed the dagger down one side of the childs face, and a
red line gaped open in the blades wake. But not for long. The
child screamed, and Kait felt his terror as strongly as if it were
her own. And she felt the response, too the scream that
became a growl, the pain that set free the red-eyed, always-waiting
rage, the sense of power as blood began to sing and bones began to
flow and re-form and skin and muscles leaped to the glorious
promise of Shift.
Then fingernails dug hard into her wrist, and
Dùghalls voice in her ear murmured, Steady,
girl, and Kait drew back from a brink she had not even known
shed stood upon. Thank one and all the gods that she had
Shifted the night before, or not all the calming voices in the
world could have kept her from betraying herself. As it was, the
rage surged through her, refusing to be leashed, as she stared down
at the beautiful little boy who was no longer a little boy. His own
Shift had thrown him partway into the four-legged form the Karnee
curse bestowed, but only partway. His captors must have kept him
hurt enough and frightened enough that he would have spent much of
his time in a state of Shift; by doing so, they exhausted the fuel
that fed the fire of Shift. He was a small boy, but he would have
been dangerous for them to handle in a fully Karnee state.
Half-Shifted, unable to go either forward or back, he merely proved
to the paraglese that he was what they said he was. A monster. A
beast.
The crowd rippled with excitement. This was better than pulling
thieves apart, more thrilling than bear-baiting; one of their
respected neighbors had hidden a monster among them, and the
monster had been revealed, and with it the dirty secrets of a
family that had become criminal. The head parnissa shouted up to
the paraglese, The child is Marshalis Silkmans son, and
each Gaerwanday for his first five years, another child was
presented in his place to the god Abjan and the parnissas, so that
his monstrous nature might be hidden. Paraglese, on this first true
day of the year of My Glorious, Enormously Fat Pig
Abramaknar, I ask you what you say to the Silkman
family.
I say these things. For the breaking of oaths and the
hiding of monsters in our midst, for the deceiving of both gods and
men, for the endangerment of the public good, and for conspiracy
against the Families of Ibera and the people of Halles, I find
guilty by means of physical proof the Silkman family, and sentence
every living member of the family, by either birth or marriage, in
all generations, to death.
It was the sentence Kait had dreaded for her own family; not her
Family, for the Galweighs as a whole were immune to summary
justice, but her family father, mother, sisters, and
brothers because no single branch of the Family was so
valuable that it could not be cut off if doing so appeased a mob or
maintained the power of the Family as a whole.
Do you offer mercy or pardon?
The gods themselves have judged this beast and his family.
There can be no mercy, and no pardon.
The boy wept. The family begged the gods to intervene. The
guardsmen bound the boy to the horses. The mob screamed its
delight.
The horses leaped forward.
Chapter 9
Half a dozen young men leaned elegantly on pillars or
draped themselves across the white stone benches that decorated the
tavern courtyard. A single barmaid, her face flushed and her eyes
worried, brought them trays of ale in flagons and platters of fried
pork strips and fried bread, but her mind obviously wasnt on
her customers, or on the sizable tip she might reasonably hope for;
every time she heard cheering in the distance, she cringed. When
she had delivered the last of the refreshments Ry Sabir had
requested, she asked, Will you be needing me for anything
else? She was a typical peasant, her mind on the religious
festivities she was missing.
Several of the men laughed coarse laughs, but Ry silenced them
with a wave of his hand. No. Go. Enjoy your festival. Give my
regards to the gods, he added as she slipped through the
arches of the breezeway and vanished.
We could have had fun with her. The man who spoke
wore two vertical scars on his cheeks like badges of honor. His
shirt, of the sheerest and most expensive red silk, was so
transparent it served only to emphasize the powerful, lean lines of
the torso beneath; his leather pants, oiled to a shine, limned the
rest of him in equally sharp detail. His black slouch boots and
wide-brimmed scarlet velvet hat and the careful weaving of
cloth-of-gold ribbons through his long blond braids declared him a
dandy, but only a fool would mistake him for a weak one. His name
was Yanth, and he was rich, and a member of one of the cadet
branches of the Sabir Family, and for most of his life he had been
Rys best friend and closest ally.
Ry shrugged. He was so tired he ached, and was still starved and
testy as he always got after a Shift. If it hadnt been for
the festival, he would have spent the day in bed, demanding the
servants bring him food. But the festival gave him the chance to
speak alone to his lieutenants, away from the Sabir Embassy and
also away from any spies that might listen in a place like the
pleasant outer courtyard of this small public tavern and inn.
True. But then we wouldnt have been alone.
What fun is being alone? You have something better for us
than a pretty girl?
I need your help.
Rys five lieutenants glanced at each other with
expressions that ranged from curiosity to surprise to caution.
You know you have it without asking, brown-haired,
green-eyed Valard said.
Not this time. What I want goes against the Familys
orders. You have to decide whether youll help me or not;
Im not going to tell you that you owe me this, because this
could break me with all of them, and maybe you, too.
Now he could tell they were really curious. Hed never gone
against anything his Family told him to do, and they knew it.
Yanth stopped leaning against the pillar trying to look like
life bored him, and sat on one of the stone benches. Just sat;
didnt drape himself, didnt worry about presenting his
best profile to the passageway in case some lovely young thing
might come in. He leaned forward, elbows on thighs, frowning.
I cant speak for them, but Im still with you. Not
because I owe you, even though I know I do. Because youre my
friend.
Valard nodded. Same for me. You lead, Ill follow.
Doesnt matter where or why.
Broad-faced, pale Trev spoke up. I suppose I want to know
that we arent talking about an overthrow first. I cant
put my family at risk with something like that. Trev had two
younger sisters for whom he would have moved the world. And while
Ry knew that in all other ways he was as loyal and as devoted as
either Valard or Yanth, he also knew that Trev would never do
anything that would put his sisters into the slightest disfavor. He
was of a lesser family, and hoped to see them both marry well.
Not treason, Ry said. But not something that
will make you beloved in the House, if your role in it should be
discovered.
Karyl, Rys cousin and older than all the rest of them by a
few years, gave Ry a thoughtful look. If youre about to
do something stupid, I suppose I ought to be along, if for no other
reason than to pick up the pieces and return them to your mother
when the worst happens. So count me in.
Ry laughed. Leave it to Karyl to maintain the darkest possible
perspective.
He turned to Jaim, who had said nothing so far. That was typical
of Jaim slow to commit, but even slower to concede defeat
once he had committed. Ry felt if he could enlist Jaims
assistance, he would guarantee his own success. How about
you?
Jaim smiled his slow smile. I want to know what were
going to do before I say yea or nay.
Ry chuckled. So typical of Jaim. He was their voice of reason,
the one who advised caution, the one who always saw weaknesses in
plans before anyone else, and who usually already knew how to find
a solution before anyone else had defined the problem. Ry
wanted Jaim with him.
Im going to steal a girl that the Family wants
killed.
Now the eyebrows did go up. A girl? Whatever for? The
Family is always throwing them at you, and you never want to
catch, Karyl said.
This one is special.
Shed have to be. Youve refused most of the
beauties in Calimekka.
Yanth was grinning. We do have to wonder what makes her so
special.
And that was the question Ry couldnt honestly answer
not because he couldnt trust these five friends with
the truth, but because he didnt know what the truth was. How
did he explain to them that the Galweigh woman he had met the night
before had moved into his mind, and that even though she was
nowhere near him, he could still feel the heat of her body pressed
against his as they ran together after the fight; how could he
admit that his thoughts were no longer his own? How could he make
them understand that somehow he sensed where she was if he closed
his eyes and thought about her; that he could feel her anger at
that moment at some injustice which, in ways he couldnt quite
fathom, was linked both to her and to him? He sighed.
Shes . . . like me. And shes Galweigh,
which is why they wont let me have her. And its why
they want her dead.
Now they were frowning at him, not so amused by the idea of his
risking his relationship with the Family over a woman. Yanth said,
Like you in what way? Reckless? Bullheaded?
Stubborn?
Karnee, Ry said.
The silence that followed that blunt reply stretched, while
Rys lieutenants stared at each other. It kept on stretching,
as one by one they turned from each other to look at him.
Karnee, Yanth whispered.
The silence fell again.
Finally, Jaim sighed. It wont be like catching a
normal girl. If we do anything wrong, shell destroy us.
Id hate to stand against you with a dozen armed men; I
dont imagine she will be much weaker. Considering that
shes survived this long. He sucked in a breath, then
blew it out. One moment of carelessness is all it will take
. . . He looked down at his hands. And
Im guessing that you mean to grab her when we take Galweigh
House.
Ry nodded. I thought that in the confusion we would have
the best chance to get her out without anyone realizing what we
were doing. I cant steal her before then without risking the
Familys plan to take the House, and if I wait and try to find
her after, shes likely to be dead.
Yanth said, So were going into the House during the
invasion, just as wed planned, but instead of rounding up the
Galweighs and taking them prisoner, were going to search
through that whole enormous place for one woman.
Right.
One woman who knows the lay of the House, who isnt
going to want to come with us, and who just happens to be one of
the more efficient killing nightmares were ever likely to
meet.
Right.
Yanth nodded. I only wanted to be sure I
understood.
Jaim sighed. Well, put that way, I dont see any way
that I can refuse. Without my planning, none of you will live past
the first rush. So Im in, too.
Everyone laughed. Laughing came easy, Ry thought, when all the
danger and all the trouble lay in the future, when the six of them
had nothing to do but drink and eat in the pleasant shade of the
palm trees, with the sweet scents of jasmine and roses in the air.
But all five of his friends had just volunteered to die for him, if
dying was called for, and he couldnt allow himself to forget
that, or to overlook how much it meant.
Shes staying at the Galweigh Embassy right now.
Theyll move her back to Calimekka before the wedding, of
course, along with all the rest of the noncombatants. Before then,
we have to find out who she is.
Yanth groaned. You dont know her name?
Jaim sighed. And if we dont know her name, how are
we to find her?
Ill show you what she looks like. Ry was
nervous about doing so the showing was only a small magic,
and nondestructive, but until now, not even his best friends knew
of his involvement with magic. They knew of his Karnee curse;
hed Shifted in order to save Yanths life once, when
both of them had been younger, and reckless, and woefully
outnumbered. The magic, though, hed kept hidden, afraid that
there were some heresies so grave that not even best friends would
forgive them.
Which only proved to him how mad he had become. He was going to
betray the one secret about himself that he had kept hidden at all
costs, and he was going to do it to try to save the life of a woman
who had been born his enemy. Who was still his enemy. A woman he
had every reason to hate.
Why didnt he hate her?
He wished he knew.
He sprinkled caberra powder on the ground in a circle, and his
friends all stared, bewildered. He murmured his incantation, and
sliced the palm of his left hand with his dagger, and dripped the
blood into a tiny circle within the circle. He called on the link
he felt inside of himself, and summoned the only image of her that
he had bleeding and half-exhausted and covered with blood,
still in her Karnee form. He closed his eyes and drew the image
close, recalling as he did her scent, the sound of her voice, and
the incredible, impossible way her mere presence made him feel. He
did not call last nights image into the circle
instead, he called on the inexplicable bond he felt between the two
of them, and focused on her as she was at that moment.
He heard a gasp, and opened his eyes, and drank her in. She
stood in the center of the circle hed cast, staring at
something in front of her while she leaned against the parapet of
the tower in the center of Halles; the black carved stone monster
glowering just beneath her was unmistakable. Her straight black
hair blew like a silk pennant behind her. She wore a deep blue silk
gown, elegantly cut in the Calimekkan style that had not yet come
to backwater cities like Halles. She looked the highborn and
delicate daughter of power; she did not look like a woman who had
killed an alleyful of murderers and thugs the night before. In his
first glimpse at her in her human form, he fell more completely
under her spell. He knew he had to have her, or die trying. She was
exquisite, beautiful . . . forbidden. But not so
forbidden as the manner in which he had conjured her image.
His friends his lieutenants seemed frozen in time;
silent as ice statues, they stared at the shimmering image, their
eyes huge and shocked. Slowly, one by one, they pulled their gazes
away from the bewitching, ephemeral, softly glowing image of the
woman and looked to him. Ry looked for their rage or for signs of
betrayal, but instead he saw only wonder.
How . . . ? Yanth whispered.
For the longest time, none of the other four said a word. Then
Jaim added, I dont care how. Could you teach
me?
That broke a dam, and his friends words rushed out. They
wanted him to do more magic; they wanted him to show them how to do
what he knew; they wanted to be a part of this beautiful, forbidden
world that he had revealed to them; and they didnt care that
the knowledge he had was knowledge men had died to rediscover, or
that it had been lost for a very good reason, or that they would be
executed in the public square if they were ever caught. They
didnt intend to get caught, and in the meantime the wonder of
it held their imaginations and promised them secrets and a world
beyond the everyday. They wanted that world. And they were willing
to overlook any sin, any crime, were willing to promise almost
anything, to gain access to the door that would take them
there.
Well help you get the woman, Yanth said,
summing up for all of them. But promise that youll
teach us magic in return. As a favor to your loyal friends and your
unquestioning allies, just give us that boon.
For what they were offering to him their lives, their
honor he had to offer suitable recompense. He had thought of
land and additional titles . . . but they had the right
to request the favor they wanted most. And he would not refuse
them. He agreed.
* * *
I didnt think I was going to make it through
that. Kait paced from one end of the narrow library to the
other. Numb and sickened and still enraged, she fought the demon
inside her that begged for a chance just one chance
to destroy the monsters who had ordered that nightmare slaughter of
innocents.
All through the ceremony, Dùghall had said nothing.
Hed stayed by her side and headed off anyone who seemed to
want to talk with her, though he didnt seem to be doing
anything at all; hed kept her calm and hed gotten her
and Tippa back to the Galweigh Embassy at the earliest possible
opportunity. When he brought her to the library alone, though, Kait
knew he wanted to talk. You did make it through,
Dùghall said. Now you have to let it go. You still have
a part to play, and the Family needs you to play it without
stumbling. Especially . . . He stepped into her
path and brought her to a standstill, and stared into her eyes.
Especially since your information checked out exactly.
The Dokteeraks and the Sabirs are plotting against us, exactly as
you told me. You have certain . . . talents, should I
say? . . . Yes, talents . . . that make you
irreplaceable to your Family.
Kait held her breath, then released it slowly. You need to
know what I am, Uncle.
Ive figured it out at least I think Ive
figured out some of the difference in you. Sooner or later, perhaps
a few others of the Family will need to know. But you need not
think your differences make you anything but an asset to us.
Youre a gift, Kait. Youre beautiful, youre
intelligent, youre charming, youre educated
. . . and your special talents allow you to do things
other people cant. He patted her arm. You were a
marvelous child never afraid of anything. Youre
becoming a magnificent young woman. But more than that, you can
become a weapon for the Galweighs unparalleled by anything the
other Families can bring to bear against us.
Kait raised her eyebrows, thinking of the Sabir Karnee. If
Dùghall didnt know he existed, he didnt realize
exactly what the Galweighs were up against. Thats all I
want. Its all I have ever wanted to serve my Family. I
want to do anything I can to protect them from their enemies. To
repay them for protecting me, and giving me the chance to take a
place among them. She paused and looked beseechingly at
Dùghall. But maybe I dont have the right to risk
Maman and Papan by staying with the service, she said.
Maybe I dont have the right to serve, because more
people than I will pay the price if I fail.
Sit. Dùghall pointed to the high-backed carved
chair nestled into the corner beneath one of the librarys
leaded glass windows. He settled himself into its twin, and only
when Kait was seated said, You serve the Family; that is
duty. You do so without endangering the lives of your
family; that is both obligation and act of love. But the needs of
the Family must come first, Kait-cha. I have lived by this
dictum, as you must: You are born to greatness, but greatness
must be re-earned in every generation. Your life
Kait cut him off. is an extension of the
lives of my ancestors, and a bridge to the future, and as such my
life can never be wholly my own, for my every action reaps
yesterdays fruit and sows tomorrows seeds.
She quoted Habath solemnly. I know my duty.
Then no more uncertainty about whether you do right to
serve. You have been chosen; you must serve.
My comment is that I was not chosen by those who knew the
truth about me; I question that I would have been asked to serve if
the truth were known.
And that you reached adulthood alive so that you could be
chosen, what of that? I do not question too closely the value of
miracles the gods guide our feet down mysterious paths; I
chose you, but I think now that my choice was better than I had
previously thought, rather than worse. No matter what anyone else
might think. Ill keep your secret to myself for now; I
dont trust everyone in the Family to know a boon when one is
given.
Kait laughed at that. I dont trust anyone in
the Family to keep me from the horses in the square, to tell you
the truth. Except my family and you.
Nor should you. Remain circumspect, and Ill make
sure that you receive assignments suited to your peculiar
talents. He leaned back and laced his fingers together.
And speaking of your talents . . . what are they,
exactly? Ive already figured out that your hearing is better
than mine, and I know that you can climb sheer walls that I would
have thought impossible to breach without hammers and pitons. But
why can you do these things?
Kait said, Im Karnee.
Dùghall looked at her thoughtfully for a moment, and let
out a slow breath. I thought that might be it. For that
reason I warned you of the boy they executed today Id
heard . . . rumors . . . before we left the
embassy that such a creature had run wild last night and had been
apprehended in the early hours. I doubt the boy was the cause of
those deaths in the alley. He arched a thoughtful eyebrow in
her direction. So the Family curse has not yet
abated.
I would seem to be proof that it hasnt.
To what degree are you affected? Improved hearing,
improved sight, increased lust and vigor, added strength?
Kaits laugh this time had no humor in it. All of
those benign things, and all of the foul ones as well. Im
fully Karnee, like the child who died in the street today. I Shift
when Im angry or overcome by other emotion, or when Ive
gone too long without Shifting; Im both woman and monster in
one body, and the part of me that knows joy and pleasure without
regret is not the woman, but the monster. When Im Karnee, my
blood sings out for other blood, and for the hunt, and for rutting,
and Im without mercy, and without remorse.
There are times, child, when both mercy and remorse are
curses, too.
Kait frowned. Maybe so. But the human part of me carries
the remorse for both parts and seems to carry it in double
measure.
Dùghall nodded and leaned back in the chair, and templed
his fingers in front of him. In order to live with
ourselves, we accommodate who we are with who we wish to be. If we
are to know happiness in this short life, we do it without lying to
ourselves, and we remember to be kind. Vincalis again. I
really must find you a copy of To Serve Honorably when we
get back to the House. It and the Secret Texts will be essential to
you. Simply essential.
Kait said, Ill read both if theyll help me
serve the Family better.
Theyll help. Of course if you really want to serve
the Family, find the Mirror of Souls for us. He laughed when
he said it.
Kait didnt get the joke. The Mirror of Souls?
Whats that?
A myth, I think, Dùghall told her.
Weve found several references to it now in the oldest
books we have, and of course the Secret Texts speak of it. He
sighed. Supposedly, its the greatest artifact of the
Ancients. From the best translations weve obtained, it seems
to have been a device that called the dead back from the grave and
returned them to the world of the living. Imagine being able to
bring back to life all of our dead relatives. He shook his
head, bemusement clear on his face. We could overrun the
Sabirs and Dokteeraks and Masschankas and Kairns in days and take
control of Ibera. And that would be the end of the wars and the
slaughter and the struggle.
You sound like you think such a device might
exist.
Do I? Forgive an old mans wistfulness. I wish
such a device existed if the Galweighs alone could obtain
it, of course. But in spite of the several references to it in the
ancient literature, I believe that, had it ever existed, it has
long since vanished from the face of the earth. And I number myself
among the cynics, for I dont believe it ever existed. Such
magic would be . . .
He sat forward and smiled. Forget my musings, Kait. How
childish of me to fill your head with the fancies of the Ancients.
You dont need any such silliness. Concentrate on keeping
Tippa out of trouble, and make sure she doesnt suspect the
Dokteeraks treachery, or shell give us all away.
Shes a sweet child, but far too naive.
Ill make sure she thinks everything is still fine.
How long will I have to keep up the pretense?
Dùghalls grin was predatory. You and I and
Tippa will be leaving for Calimekka by airible four days from now,
at predawn.
Thats the day of the wedding.
Yes.
What about everyone else?
Most of them will be gone by tomorrow. The last few will
leave the day after.
Kait winced. The Dokteeraks will notice.
Dùghall laughed. Thats the beauty of this. The
airibles have been bringing in a steady stream of wedding
guests since we got word home yesterday . . . but
they arent truly wedding guests, of course. Theyre
soldiers in wedding dress, many of them disguised as women to make
up for the few swordswomen and female archers we have. And the
embassy staff has been traveling back in the supposedly empty
airibles, disguised as ballast. The three of us cant leave
until the last minute because Tippa and that rodent Calmet have the
sunset purification ritual the night before the wedding, and I have
to stand witness, and youre to chaperone again. But
well have an airible waiting for us when we return to the
embassy, and veiled soldiers will attend the wedding in your stead,
and my replacement shall wear a hood.
Kait smiled, and for the first time that day the smile felt
genuine. Then the wedding wont be what the Dokteeraks
are expecting.
Far from it. When its over, the Galweighs will be
the only ones celebrating.
Chapter 10
His horse well, even in the most liberal terms he
couldnt truly call it his horse, but it was the horse he had
stolen stood in the makeshift paddock with the Gyrus
other beasts, contentedly munching on hay. He recognized both the
animals speckled hide and the curving brand on its right
flank . . . and he thought, too, that he recognized the
vindictive gleam in its eye. Hasmal saw the animal when his guard
took him down to the stream to wash himself; the Gyrus kept the
horses both downhill and downstream, by which they showed more
concern for sanitation than the designers of the city hed
lived in. He didnt give any sign to the guard that he
recognized the beast; reticence seemed the best course of action to
him. But inwardly, he was elated. If the Gyrus had found his horse,
perhaps his belongings were somewhere in the camp, too. Perhaps he
could find a way to recover them.
The Gyru camp covered the north slope of the low hill it
occupied, from the long crest down to the stream that meandered
through the trees in the valley. Hasmal guessed more than a hundred
of the Gyru wagons sat there, though he couldnt be sure,
because the forest was thick enough that as he got a clear view of
some of the wagons, others disappeared, and the wagons themselves,
beautifully painted with scenes of forests and meadows, had the
unnerving tendency to blend in with their surroundings. Still, he
had a rough count, which was good enough to tell him that the Gyrus
outnumbered him by at barest minimum fifty adults so he
could give up any plans of overpowering guards and fleeing.
Too, he knew his strengths, and he knew his weaknesses, and he
considered himself intelligent enough not to mistake one for the
other. Born a city boy, raised in civilization where water
came to his home via the aqueduct and where people cooked food
indoors in fine brick ovens, and where they washed in public baths
instead of a river he did not think for an instant that he
would be able to escape through the forest, eluding his pursuers
and surviving the dangers of the wild. The wilderness was not his
strength.
Guile and caution were, though, and with guile and caution, he
would get himself out of this mess.
His guard didnt seem impatient with the time Hasmal was
taking with his bath. He sat on a fallen tree and grinned, his
crossbow steady on Hasmals chest. The crossbow made Hasmal
nervous; nevertheless, the guard had treated Hasmal well, made sure
he got plenty of food, and let him walk around the thorny
underbrush instead of pushing him through it. Since Hasmal still
didnt have any clothes, that last consideration meant a great
deal to him.
Kind of you not to mind my taking the time to get
clean, Hasmal said in Iberan. He and the guard were playing
out an elaborate game, in which the guard pretended not to
understand a word of Iberan, and he pretended hed never run
into Shombe. They pantomimed when they wished to communicate, and
spoke into the air in asides to the gods at other times, each
attempting to get the other to be the first to reveal secrets.
Hasmal scrubbed with the soap the guard had given him,
appreciating the lather on his skin as much as he appreciated the
feel of running water on all those places yesterdays
horseback ordeal had left aching. Those bastards who grabbed
me yesterday dragged me through every patch of filth and thicket
they could find between the road and the place where they met you
folks.
The guard kept grinning; he made no sign that he understood a
word that Hasmal said.
Hasmal relaxed into the water. It wasnt as clear as
aqueduct water, and it was colder, but at the moment it felt good
enough. I dont imagine you have any idea what it feels
like to be sold, Hasmal continued. To be a free man
running away from omens that spell your death, and to be captured
by thieves, and to have them decide to hang you because you
dont have anything to steal, and to have them decide, when
the rope is already around your neck, to sell you into slavery
instead so they can make some profit off of you. He shook his
head, ducked completely under the surface of the water long enough
to thoroughly wet his hair, and came up to begin lathering.
The bastards stole my clothes and left me naked, too.
Didnt even throw me a few rags so I could cover myself. Still
. . . being a naked slave is better than being a dead
freeman. He finished lathering, rinsed, and stood.
His guard, still grinning, threw him a towel so coarse and crude
that in the bathhouses of Halles, it would have been used for
nothing more lofty than knocking the dirt off shoes. Hasmal
wasnt sure whether he was supposed to dry himself off with it
or wrap it round his waist, and decided, since his guard offered
neither suggestion nor pantomime, to do both. The women in the camp
had gotten a few giggles out of his nakedness when hed
paraded by them on his way down to the stream; if he could skip a
repeat of that experience on the way back, he thought he would.
Id give anything to get my things back and get out
of here, Hasmal said. The guard pointed up the hill. Hasmal
started walking. The rough forest floor hurt his feet, but he felt
almost cheerful after the bath and with the towel to keep him from
being completely naked. Youd probably want me gone,
too, if you knew the sort of trouble Im likely to become.
Im under a curse a doom tied to some Galweigh woman. I
want to put as much distance as I can between the two of us, before
something terrible happens. Its sure to happen to me, but the
oracle didnt say there wouldnt be trouble for anyone
around me.
The guard led him back to the tent where hed been kept. He
left the towel something good and didnt put
Hasmals hands back into the stocks in which hed had to
sleep. Something else good. He did still put the metal ring around
his neck, and he did attach it to the chain that attached to the
stone ball that rested in the center of the tent. Hasmal
didnt fight this indignity any more than he had fought any
other. He let happen what was going to happen, and then he settled
in to wait. He was good at waiting.
The sun followed more than half its path across the sky, and the
noises in camp changed in character and volume. Hasmal heard
shouting and the stamping of horses and creak of wagons, and he
wished he could see what was going on. Finally someone came back
into the tent, but she wasnt his guard. She was a woman of,
he guessed, middle years, though she had aged extraordinarily well.
She dressed in loose leather pants and a gaudy silk shirt, the
costume favored by Gyru women, and she wore a heavy gold torque
around her neck and rows of gold beads in her braided hair. In her
youth she had been, he had no doubt, a stunning beauty, and even
though time had added lines to her face, and streaks of gray to her
fiery hair, it had not been able to erase her loveliness. All it
had done was add character something he always found lacking
in the faces of women his own age. He smiled at her out of reflex.
She was the sort of woman who would have caught his eye in any
circumstances, and these difficult times made no exception.
She studied him, thoughtful. He continued to wait, sensing in
her presence the shifting of his fate. Finally, she said,
Youre a strange sort of slave. You havent begged
for your freedom, yet you claim to be a freeman; you have not
threatened us with doom if we do not release you, yet you claim to
be under a curse. You havent tried to reclaim your horse or
your belongings, yet Ffaunaban says you saw your horse tethered
among ours.
So Ffaunaban does speak Iberan.
As well as you speak Shombe, unless I miss my guess. We
told him to find out what he could about you. You were most
obliging. And, I might add, most unlike our usual slaves.
Hasmal smiled but said nothing. Politeness, gratitude for
kindnesses done, and a bit of information dropped in the right ears
at the right time never failed to yield action. He could only hope
that it was the right sort of action.
The woman waited, too, as if expecting him to say more
perhaps to protest his status as slave, or to ask if he could have
his belongings back. When he remained silent, she rewarded him with
a brilliant smile of her own and arched an eyebrow.
Excellent, she said. You honor yourself with
your silence. Then she said something that shocked him to his
core. Katarre kaithe gombrey; hai allu
neesh?
They were the words of greeting used among the Falcons; words
from a language mostly lost in the destroying tempest of time, but
kept alive by the brethren sworn to uphold the secrets of the past
and to work toward the prophecies that would better all of
humankinds lot. His father had taught him that they meant
The falcon offers its wings; will you fly?
He responded as his father had taught him. Alla
menches, na gombrey ambi kaitha chamm. I accept, and for the
falcons wings I offer my heart.
Well met, brother, she said. She leaned over him and
unlocked the ring that bound him to the stone. Her heavy braids
brushed against his naked shoulders, and her sweet, faintly musky
scent filled his nostrils, and he was suddenly more grateful than
words could express for the coarse towel still wrapped around his
waist. We have things we must discuss. Please come with
me.
As quickly as that, he found himself a guest of the Gyru-nalles
instead of a slave. She led him out of the tent, and he saw that
the wagons were lined up, and that people were tying spare horses
to the backs of the wagons, and that outriders already moved along
the enormous train, shouting orders.
She showed him into a beautifully painted wagon which she
identified as her personal residence. A driver already sat on the
high crossplank, reins in hand. She waved to him and shouted
something in Shombe, then ushered Hasmal into her home on
wheels.
He was immediately enchanted. He had never seen the inside of a
Gyru wagon before, and he hadnt imagined how delightful such
a tiny space could be. The structure formed a single room, with a
stone-polished, close-planked wood floor and a painted wood ceiling
high enough to permit him to stand upright easily. A padded bench
seat ran along one wall below a genuine glass window, and along the
other wall were a pantry, a built-in floor-to-ceiling bank of
drawers, and between them another window and an area for food
preparation. The front of the cabin was given over to a deep closet
with a ladder that ran up one side to a loft, which a thick down
mattress and several cushions completely filled.
She had everything anyone really needed, he thought, and she
took it with her everywhere she went. For a moment, he was
envious.
Then she moved one of the cushions on the long bench seat, and
lifted the hinged lid of the compartment beneath. From the storage
space, she pulled out a pair of worn, dark green leather pants and
a dove-gray silk shirt. She tossed them to him, and he put them on,
conscious that she was watching him. They didnt fit him too
badly, considering that Gyru men were, on average, tall and lean,
and he was short and muscular. The clothing was very fine
better than what had been stolen from him the day before.
Whose are these?
Yours, now. They once belonged to a . . . friend
. . . but he has since moved on.
Thank you, then . . . He paused. He
didnt know her name. . . . Lady.
Never a lady, she said with a chuckle, though
always a woman. You may call me Alarista.
Which wasnt her name, he knew. Gyrus never gave anyone
their real names they felt possession of the real name gave
one access to the soul. He nodded. Alarista. You may call me
Chobe. That had been his nickname as a child, and would not
cause him to commit the social error of forcing his real name on
her, thus making her partly responsible for his soul whether she
wanted to be or not.
When hed dressed, she sat him down and offered him a drink
she called kemish, which she told him was made from the
seeds and fruit of the cocova plant, and from red peppers and
ground dried fish, and which tasted bitter and spicy and fishy
it was the most noxious thing he had, in fact, ever been
asked to drink. His people made confections from ground cocova and
honey that were sweet and smooth and marvelous; hed never
imagined anyone would find a way to make cocova taste terrible.
Still, he was a guest, and more importantly, the guest of a fellow
Falcon, and as a guest he swallowed the noxious stuff and smiled
and pretended he loved it.
When theyd finished their drinks, she finally got to what
was on her mind.
When you told Ffaunaban about the curse you were under, I
told him that was nonsense, and that you were just trying to tell
him something that would frighten him into letting you escape. But
I couldnt permit such an assertion to go unverified.
She smiled at him.
Of course not. He waited without adding anything
about the curse, because she was going somewhere with this, and
anything he added would only take away from the information she
gave him.
I did a divination. What I saw was . . .
frightening.
He kept waiting. Maybe she knew more than he did. Maybe she
would tell him what shed found.
She sighed. We cant keep you with us, as much as I
would like to; Ive never had the opportunity to meet a Falcon
from outside of my own people. But the doom you carry on you will,
according to my divination, swallow us in order to reach you.
She sat looking at him, her hands folded primly in her lap, her
head held high. We have always made a point to offer
sanctuary to those oppressed by the forces in power. But the forces
that want you . . . She shrugged delicately.
Not even I could suggest that my people stand between you and
the gods.
He hoped she would say more, perhaps tell him specific details
of the doom her divination had foretold, and why it had fallen on
him. But she had taken his route of silence; she watched him, and
now she waited.
Then you intend to release me? To set me free?
In a fashion. Weve sent pigeons to our agent in
Costan Selvira, and passage has been arranged for you aboard a
ship. Were breaking camp now were going to take
you there, give you back your belongings, see you aboard the ship,
and watch until it leaves the harbor. Once were certain that
we have sufficient distance between you and us, you may do whatever
you wish; until the time that your ship leaves harbor, however,
either a guard or I will accompany you.
Then Im a prisoner.
Her laugh was as lovely as her smile. Well, you
arent a slave any longer, and Id rather you considered
yourself my personal guest, but if you decided to try to
. . . ah, escape my hospitality before you sailed with
your ship she shrugged again, a movement that he
noticed did interesting things to her breasts my
people would be forced to shoot you before you ran ten
steps.
Why? Why not just return my horse and my things to me and
let me leave?
Her laugh this time was heartier than before, and the corners of
her eyes crinkled with merriment. Because and you will
pardon my frankness, please I dont think you have
either the sense or the skills to get yourself as far away from my
people as I want you to be. You apparently have neither the ability
to ride a horse nor the woodsense to know when youre riding
into an ambush, and I think, for all your intelligence and whatever
skills you do possess, that youd end up someone elses
captive before youd gone a furlong. She leaned forward,
and her silk shirt gapped enchantingly over her bosom, affording
him a clear view of her right breast and most of the left one.
Hasmal was having a hard time feeling indignant.
So you are going to make sure I end up a long way from
here.
As far as the sea and the ship will take you.
I suppose I cant complain. Id planned to do
something similar; as long as I leave my doom behind, Ill be
content.
She hadnt moved, and he became aware that hed been
talking to her chest. He flushed, looked into her eyes, and
realized that she knew exactly what hed been looking at
. . . and that she seemed amused by his scrutiny. He
stared down at his hands, feeling like an oaf and an idiot, and to
change the subject, asked, What am I to do in the
meantime?
She didnt answer him. After a moment he looked up to find
an enigmatic half-smile on her lips and a smoldering look in her
eyes. Her voice dropped to a low, husky purr, and she said, I
imagine we can think of something.
Chapter 11
Kait walked down Freshspring Street with Tippa at her
side and a retinue of soldiers disguised as servants and minor
functionaries at her back. They were ostensibly on a mission to buy
additional silks and glassware for Tippas trousseau, but in
fact were simply out to be seen, to convince the Dokteeraks and the
Sabirs that the Galweigh Family suspected nothing and would walk
into the wedding trap when the bells rang in the station of Soma
the next day.
Tippa, poor dim child, still suspected nothing. Shed been
told that her parents and the other notable members of the Family
would be arriving by airible that night, after the dedication
service, and that those who had arrived so far were simply distant
relatives from Goft and the colonies. She accepted the whole tale
as sacred writ, and tried to spend time meeting these
relatives, much to everyones chagrin. So Kait got
the twofold job of keeping her out in the public eye and away from
the newly arrived soldiers, who needed the time to finish going
over strategy.
Thus this buying expedition, which had resulted in the purchase
of five bales of sapphire-blue silk, and the order of a hundred
ruby-red spun-glass goblets at a price Kait couldnt begin to
believe, and the acquisition of a set of silver decanters shaped
like leopard cubs that Tippa declared precious and that
Kait found ridiculous. Thus, also, Kait acquired a blinding
headache that came partly from trying to push away the incessant
pounding waves of evil that had grown worse instead of better since
the night of the Naming Day party. In part, however, she thought
the headache had to be from hunger; shed had only a light
morning meal, and that had been at sunrise. Already the Invocation
to Mosst was ringing through the streets, and the sun, directly
overhead, beat down on her.
The fragrant smells of meat and bread and pies and a multitude
of other delicacies filled Freshspring Street from one end to the
other; the silk houses and metal changers and craftsmens
shops shared the narrow street with bakeries and fish houses and
mead brewers and Kait, smelling the various offerings,
thought that if she didnt get something to eat soon, she
would go mad.
Wouldnt you like a pie? she asked Tippa, who
had already turned her nose up at python-on-a-stick, and whole
roasted parrots beautifully braised in their own juices and stuffed
with corn and sweet yams, and a peccary stew that had smelled like
heaven to Kait.
Now Tippa sighed that pained sigh of hers that indicated she
thought herself surrounded by idiots. Cousin, dont you
see? I cant eat food from these places. Im to be an
adrata in this city, and I may someday be paraglesa. You should
know that I cant allow myself to eat street food like a
commoner.
Kait, eyeing a beautiful rolled-crust mango pie that sat on the
counter of one of those common cookeries, was not about to be put
off yet again, and for no better reason than that eating common
food was below the station that her cousin wasnt going to
attain anyway. So she said, One of the things Ive
learned in the diplomatic corps is that if you would be truly
beloved by all the people, you must find ways to make them believe
you care about them. And what better way to begin showing that you
care than by sharing their food without shame?
Tippa frowned down at her feet, and Kait could see her lips
moving. Finally she looked up. Youre certain that
eating the street food wont make us seem . . .
base-born?
Kait schooled her face to sincerity. Im
positive.
A pause. Another sigh. Then, Very well. Well all
eat. I was a bit hungry.
So they waited in line behind the workingmen and the merchants
and the salesgirls, and they bought two of those beautiful pies,
and the soldiers got themselves pastries. Then they visited another
shop, where they ate stuffed parrots. After that, a meadery, where
they indulged in strong red mead served in containers made of the
leaves of bassos trees, curled and sealed with wax to form hollow
cones. Kait thought the idea of disposable cups wonderfully clever
it was the first thing shed seen in all of Halles that
had genuinely impressed her. Finally, just before they reached the
last silk shop on the street, they stopped at an icery.
The shopkeeper bowed graciously and asked them what they would
have. Ice was even rarer in Halles than it was in Calimekka,
because it had to be brought in not only from the mountains, but
overland as well, and the prices marked on the mans board
were astronomical. Still, the heat of midday made frozen
confections irresistible to both women and Kait, in a moment
of largesse, bought her cousin and herself plus all of the mock
functionaries and mock servants little bowls of shaved ice flavored
with fruit juices and honey. They stood against the building
savoring these treats and trying to stay out of the sun when Kait
suddenly became aware that she was being watched. She stiffened
slightly but managed to avoid giving any outward sign that she knew
what was happening she and Tippa were supposed to be drawing
attention, of course, but this was different.
He was somewhere in the crowd. The other Karnee. The one
she had met and wanted.
She had been at least slightly aware of him since the moment
they had parted. She could tell through stone walls when he paced
outside the embassy, hoping for a glimpse of her. She could feel
her heart begin to race sometimes in the middle of the night in
acknowledgment of nothing more than his existence. She felt herself
drawn to him, as if he were a lodestone and she were iron;
something beyond her reach and her understanding made her desire
him even though she knew that her desires were a betrayal of her
Familys well-being. He was a hunger that she dared not
confess and dared not sate; he was both potion and poison, and even
the contemplation of indulging her craving felt as compelling and
as unforgivable as Shift.
Now he was close to her not within smelling distance, or
perhaps just downwind but close enough that she could feel
this other hunger building inside of her like a madness. Animal
passion, she told herself. Karnee lust, the weakness of your
inhuman other self. Dont give in to beast behavior.
The lust raged unabated.
And for the thousandth time since the night of the party, she
thought of Hasmal son of Hasmal, and of the wall of peace that he
carried with him. For the thousandth time, she chafed at the
presence of the inescapable others; she had never had time during
the daylight hours to make good on her promise to find him. She
suspected her uncles design in that fact, and not just bad
luck though Dùghall had not asked her what else had
happened before she arrived at the embassy and climbed the wall
that night, she thought he suspected more went on than shed
admitted. And he seemed determined to have her observed to ensure
that nothing else happened without his knowledge.
Now, though, with Tippa and the soldiers with her, Kait wondered
if she might suggest a side trip to Stonecutter Street, to
Hasmals Curiosities, on the excuse that she had heard of
something fabulous there that she wanted to buy for Tippa as a
gift. She caught the attention of Norlis, who was the embassy
master sergeant dressed up today as a junior undersecretary. He
came to her side and in a low voice said, My thanks, lady,
for the ice. It was very fine.
She smiled. A recognition of the . . . ah, the
suffering you have done today. Tippa would never have dared
speak to a master sergeant in the same tones she employed on junior
undersecretaries, and Norlis and his men, so disguised, had found
themselves the targets of several petty tongue-lashings. Soldiers
attached to Families held high rank and positions of great esteem,
and Family members treated them with the respect any sensible
person gave to those who, in moments of crisis, stepped in to save
ones life. Mere household staff hadnt earned such
respect and usually didnt get it.
Norlis flushed and shrugged. Its been a long
morning, and difficult, but . . . all for a good
cause.
I have a request. Ive heard that wonderful gifts
might be found at a little shop on Stonecutter Street. She
stared off to one side and frowned, as if struggling to remember
the name. Had . . . Har . . . something
Curiosities. She met his eyes and smiled triumphantly.
Hasmals Curiosities! Thats it! Id
like to go there before we return to the embassy, to buy something
special for Tippa and her new husband.
Norlis shook his head slowly and stared into her eyes, trying to
figure out what she really wanted. Well, of course he knew that the
wedding present story was a lie, because he knew as well as she did
that there would be no wedding. But the expression on his face led
her to believe that he would not have been enthused about her
request no matter what excuse she had given. He said, I know
more or less where that is . . . but I could never take
you there. Its a dangerous part of the city; people dressed
as well as we are go missing there in broad daylight, and the fact
that were traveling in a group would be no
protection.
She raised her eyebrows and silently mouthed the words, But
youre soldiers.
He pointed to his belt, where only a poniard hung. She realized
he carried no sword; none of the soldiers carried a sword. After
all, what household servant could afford a weapon of war
. . . and what could he hope to do with one if he had it?
She felt a wave of pity for the warriors dressed in the
functionaries red-and-black fusses and frills they
must feel naked without their blades and their own uniforms, which
were designed for ease of movement, not to show off the fine curves
of their calves and shoulders.
On Freshspring Street, a block from the embassy and in an
excellent neighborhood, the group had no real worries. Kait and
Tippa carried only the smallest amount of actual cash like
the rest of the well-born, Tippa purchased the things she wanted
with a letter of credit. Robbery would be a futile gesture, a fact
even the poorest city inhabitants knew well. Kidnapping, though,
was always lucrative, and with the soldiers mimicking functionaries
even to the arms they carried, the group would be easy targets for
a gang looking for such opportunities, if they were to allow
themselves to get too far from home or to wander down the wrong
streets.
But she had to find Hasmal, to discover his secret for keeping
the evil of the world from touching him. This was her last chance;
when she and Tippa returned to the embassy, they would immediately
begin to prepare for the dedication service. They would be under
constant supervision until the moment they returned once again to
the embassy, which would not be until the station of Telt, when the
sky was fully dark and the Red Hunter joined the White Lady in the
sky. And then she and Tippa would be hustled onto the last airible
leaving Halles, and they would lift into the blackness, and Hasmal
and his secret for peacefulness would be lost to her forever.
She had to find him, and she could not. She knew she could order
Norlis to take her there, and he would be duty-bound to follow her
orders and to protect her with his life . . . but Family
did not recklessly expend the lives of loyal soldiers. Kait had her
duty, too, and it was to accept Norliss warning for her own
safety and to protect Tippa. Kidnappings forced the Family into a
position of weakness; look at poor Danya, still not ransomed while
the Sabirs dithered over sacks of gold and inches of boundaries
like matrons over fish in a market, and the Galweighs tried
everything they could think of to get the kidnappers to accept some
sort of deal and send her home.
She looked away, toward the western wall of the city, where
Hasmal went about whatever it was he did during the day, and then
she hung her head. She would have given almost anything she had to
get his secret; she would not, however, chance ransoming her
Familys strength and honor.
She looked back at Norlis and said, Then lets go to
this last silk market for Tippa. She hasnt managed to buy
everything in the town yet.
Norlis said softly, If there is something in particular
you would like to get, I could go there once Im off duty and
purchase it for you.
No. I just wanted to look around. But thank you for
offering. Youre very kind.
Norlis smiled and turned away, and Kait closed her eyes for just
an instant, feeling the inescapable evil that pounded at her skull,
and the Sabir spy watching her and lusting after her as she lusted
after him, and she mentally said good-bye to Hasmal and his secret,
and to the possibility that she would ever find the sort of peace
and self-control he carried with him.
She wondered briefly if he even remembered her. Then she got
back to the business at hand.
* * *
Hasmal, finally over the seasickness that had kept him in his
tiny cabin for days, sat on the aft deck of the small Rophetian
merchantman. Out of the way of the sailors who scrambled up and
down the riggings, he enjoyed the pleasant breeze and the clear air
and wondered why the ship seemed to be sailing steadily
northeast.
True to her word, Alarista had put him on the ship with orders
to the crew that if he tried to get off, they were to kill him.
Shed paid one-way passage for him to the Kander Colony on the
other side of both the ocean and the world. The ship was supposed
to already be heading there to trade silk and glass and grain for
caberra spice. Alarista had given him his belongings and a final,
passionate kiss, and had told him she would miss him like
shed never missed anyone in her life. And then she had walked
away without even looking back, and the ship had sailed, and he had
discovered that he didnt have much stomach for the sea.
Well, maybe he would never make a sailor, but he still had a
sense of direction, and he knew that the ship had been heading due
southeast when they sailed from Costan Selvira. When he tried to
ask the captain or the crew why they had changed headings
for he had lost an unknown number of days lying in his hammock, too
sick to move they made the sign of the viper at him and
quickly spit on the deck to ward off evil. Hed finally given
up asking. He worried about the ships change of direction,
though, and the fact that he was the only passenger, and the fact
that everyone without exception regarded him with dread. He knew
that they had found out about his doom no doubt one of the
Gyrus had let it slip and he wondered if he was to be dumped
into the sea and left for the sharks and the sea monsters.
The cry of Land! brought him out of his reverie. He
looked to the horizon, and to the northwest made out a low black
smudge, like a line of clouds rising along the horizon. He
squinted, and the line stayed a smudge, but after a while time
brought into focus what his eyes could not. A large point lay
before them, flat and green, with the land falling back to either
side; the place had seemed tiny from the distance but grew as they
drew nearer, until he wondered if he looked at a large island or
the leading edge of a continent. Three of the soaring white towers
that marked the work of the Ancients stood above the trees; he
imagined that they were used as lighthouses. The merchantman cut
sharply east and sailed some distance off the coast, running
parallel with it. The wind hummed through the ropes and snapped the
sails as the crew lowered the largest of them and raised smaller
sails instead. The captain shouted his directions, the sailors
shouted their replies, and everyone acted as if Hasmal didnt
exist.
Before long, a town rose into view to Hasmals left;
plastered houses painted vibrant shades of red and yellow and
purple, with bougainvillea climbing the walls, sending cascading
blossoms of fuchsia and lavender and crimson over the curved-tile
roofs. Monkeys clambered over the houses and bounded into the palms
and banyans and swung from the feathery fronds of date palms and
shrieked; a flock of parrots screamed overhead; gulls spun in lazy
arcs around the merchantmans mast and pelicans trawled in the
ships wake. People thronged the streets, most of them dressed
entirely in white, so that they seemed to glow in the tropical sun.
The merchantman heeled over suddenly and headed due north around a
point that Hasmal hadnt seen because the long line of coast
behind it hid it, and a mass of tiny islands off to Hasmals
right slid into view, while to his left he discovered a beautiful
harbor, in which berthed easily fifty sailing ships of every
imaginable description, their bare masts rising like a denuded
forest. Among them, cockboats and rowboats and lean outriggers and
catamarans slipped from ships to shore and back, ferrying
passengers and cargo.
The merchantmans crew furled her sails and dropped her
anchor, and the tempo and mood of the ship changed; it became
slower and darker, and somehow ominous. In that lively, lovely
place, Hasmal thought fear should be an obscenity, but he was
afraid.
The captain came back to him and said, Get your things.
You leave us here.
The look in the mans eyes didnt encourage questions,
and Hasmal didnt ask any. He ran below, grabbed the single
bag that held his artifacts, his clothes, and his few other
belongings, and scurried back up the ladder, in time to see four of
the crewmen hoisting the ships longboat over the side. The
captain was waiting for him. He said, Go with them, and
dont give them any trouble. Youre lucky I didnt
drown you the first night out; the only reason I didnt was
because that band of Gyrus did me a favor once, and they asked that
you be treated well. But favor or no favor, your trip with me ends
here. Ill rot in Tonns hell before Ill drag you
and your curse clear across the Bregian Ocean and chance the
sinking of my ship.
Hasmal didnt have any money, any place to stay, or even
any clear idea of where he was; he thought perhaps he might be in
the Fire Islands, or perhaps up along the Lost Souls Coast. But he
didnt protest. As much as he would have been happy to find
himself in Kander Colony (which along with being clear across the
world had the advantage of being settled by Sabirs sure
promise that his trouble wouldnt follow him), he would get
himself to land wherever he was and take stock of the twin
blessings of being alive and of being farther from the Galweigh
woman than hed been before.
He got into the longboat, rode in silence across the water to
the shore, and at a sign from one of the crew, jumped into the
water when it was knee-deep and waded to land. The four men in the
longboat immediately began rowing back to the ship, and by the time
hed found a comfortable observation spot on a stone pier, the
merchantmans sails were already flying again, and it was
headed back out to sea.
He sat watching it until it disappeared around the point again;
his sense of loss seemed stupid to him, but he couldnt deny
the feeling. That ship had been a tie to his old life and his old
self, however tenuous, and when it sailed away, it left him
wondering who he would become, and what he would be.
At last, though, he stood; his leather pants were still damp,
and he needed to find fresh water so that he could clean the salt
out of them before they dried and cracked. He needed to make
arrangements for a place to stay, and for some way to earn money.
He needed to find a place to eat, too; his stomach, freed of the
rolling of the sea, began to announce to him that food had been
scarce of late and would be appreciated.
And he needed to find out where he had come to ground. That last
would be the easiest problem to remedy, if he could find someone
who spoke Iberan and if he was careful how he asked the question.
He didnt want to start out his new life the way hed
finished his old one, as a man commonly known to be under a curse.
He thought for a while about innocuous reasons why he might have
been put ashore with no money and with no idea of his location
it took him a while, but at last he concocted a story that
he thought would serve.
Then he located a Rophetian sailor standing by the pier, both
arms around a white-dressed girl, and went up to the man.
My comrades threw me off my ship, he said. I
thought I had sure luck with the bones, and at the last throw the
goddess deserted me, and I ended up owing more than I had
. . . He sighed and grinned. And Ive
been drunk the last five days, and I dont know where I
am.
The sailor laughed, white teeth flashing behind the thick black
beard. The bones and the mead have landed more than one man
on strange soil, he said, but if youre an ass, at
least youre a lucky ass. Youre a stones throw
from civilization. This heres Maracada, on Goft.
My thanks, Hasmal said. He managed a smile that he
didnt feel, and walked away without stumbling, and looked for
a place where he could hide. He fancied he could hear the gods
laughing at him; Goft was a big island perhaps thirty
leagues in length but it wasnt big enough. A narrow
strait separated the island from the mainland, and on the other
side of that strait lay Ibera, and no more than twenty leagues from
there lay Calimekka. The home of the Galweigh Family.
He was closer to disaster than hed been in Halles. He
needed to find another ship, and he needed to get himself to sea,
and he needed to do it fast.
Chapter 12
Darkness, the hard cold blackness of the station of Huld,
when the presence of light and warmth seems like a dream that will
never come to pass. Kait stood beside Tippa in the courtyard,
watching Dùghall pace. Tippa kept sobbing, How can I not
have a wedding? Im to get married today! and neither
Kait nor Dùghall had the patience to explain anymore that she
was to have been murdered at her wedding along with the rest of the
Family. The last airible should have already arrived, should have
come during Telt, and had not. Something was wrong, and the three
of them were going to be trapped in an enemy city in the midst of
war. Kait kept very still, watching the sky, listening for the
airibles engines, for the soft thudding of the pistons and
the beating of the rotors against the night air, but the beast
inside of her already tasted panic and wanted to flee. To run, to
go to ground, to hide.
The Galweigh soldiers responsible for catching the
airibles tethers held their pose, torches lit, waiting along
the line of fire that marked the embassy landing field. They would
catch the tethers and pull the airible down to anchor; at least,
they would if it ever arrived . . .
Kait fingered the hilt of the longsword at her hip and tried to
keep the monster inside of her still; tried to figure out what she
could do to keep Tippa and Dùghall safe; tried to think not of
becoming the Karnee creature, but of staying human and helping her
Family as a human. But the walls of the invisible cage constricted,
and her heart raced and her senses grew sharp with incipient Shift
and it was only then that she heard the steady, metallic
thupp, thupp, thupp of the airible over the normal noises of
the night.
Its coming, she said, and a murmur ran through
the line of soldiers; they heard nothing, and said as much.
Dùghall turned and stopped pacing and looked at her.
Youre sure?
I hear it.
Good. He nodded. Waited a moment, and another, while
to Kaits ears the noise of the engine became impossible to
overlook. But only when still another moment had passed, and the
sound she heard began to drown out the background sounds of Halles
with its predawn racket of peddlers and tradesmen rattling through
the streets, did the first of the soldiers stare at her and say,
By the gods, I hear it, too.
Karnee ears. They were their own betrayal. She told herself to
be more careful about her timing in admitting what she heard. At
another time, in another place, perhaps revealing her acute hearing
might be her death.
The noise of the airible grew louder, then yet louder, and
suddenly Kait could make it out against the sky, its shape a darker
blackness that blotted out the stars. This time she said nothing,
uncertain if human eyes would be able to mark the form so soon, and
not wanting to seem a woman of too many miracles in one night.
A moment passed, and one of the soldiers said, There!
Against the Shepherds. He pointed north by east, to a
constellation high in the night sky. The airible moved across those
stars, blotting them out, and the rest of the soldiers nodded and
bent to the groundlamps that would mark the readiness of the
landing field. They put their torches to the lamps and, as the
flames in the green glass lanterns flickered one by one to life,
doused the open flames of the torches in the buckets that lay
alongside. The airibles no longer used gaimthe, the burning gas, to
fill their large balloons, but the fuel the engines used was
flammable and dangerous, and the practice of never permitting open
flame around an airible remained.
The field, lit only by the row of green lanterns, looked eerie.
The grass of the field seemed leached of color, and the people in
it looked like week-old corpses. A chill crawled down Kaits
spine; the ghastliness of the scene seemed an omen to her, as
portentous as the pulsing, unending waves of evil that rolled over
Halles, or the inescapable certainty that the Sabir Karnee wanted
her and was coming for her. She pushed it out of her mind; the
airible dropped with surprising speed, and ropes snaked down out of
the sky. The soldiers caught them with practiced hands and looped
them around huge wooden pulleys anchored deep into the ground, and
began winding in the rope, straining against the huge cranks.
Within moments the airible hung just above the ground, tugging
at its moorings. In the green light, the red and the black of the
Galweigh crest blended on the garishly green-smeared silk of the
airible balloon, rendering the whole an illegible blob. Men and
women dropped out of both hatches in the long, enclosed basket,
landing on the ground below with the soft clanks of muffled armor.
The pilot appeared in the front hatch last of all and said,
Quickly, quickly, we must go. From the air I can already see
the leading edge of dawn in the east.
The soldiers hoisted Tippa into the hatch, and then
Dùghall; Kait refrained from jumping and allowed herself to be
unceremoniously shoved upward. She was grateful that she wore
sensible traveling clothes sturdy boots and heavy leather
pants and a cotton blouse with a wool tunic instead of the
delicate silk dress that Tippa had insisted on wearing. Entry into
an airible was never a graceful thing, and even less so when in
such a hurry. While she still lay on the basket floor, Kait heard
the whine of the rope paying out, and felt her weight press her
tight to the floor; they were rising fast, shooting upward so
quickly that her eardrums felt as if they would burst.
Dùghall said, Why were you so late?
Kait sat up. The pilot, a Rophetian named Aouel, didnt
turn from his stopcocks and his rudder wheel. His back to all of
them, he said, We had a foul crosswind in the midsky that
blew us south of course before I could rise out of it, and when I
did, I found myself in a headwind that I fought all the way in. If
you want the good news with the bad, though, well have the
same east-running wind all the way back, and this time it will
speed us on our journey.
I thought you werent coming, Dùghall
said.
Aouel glanced quickly at Kait, and as quickly made the look take
in the three of them. I would have flown through Tonns
hell itself to get to you, he said.
Which Kait suspected to be true; Aouel was a longtime friend of
hers, since the day when she had wandered onto the airible field on
the House grounds in Calimekka at the age of thirteen, and he had
shown her the miracles of airible flight for the first time. In
secret, in the following years, he had taught her to fly the
smaller of the airships those, like this one, that could be
handled by one person. The two of them had discussed her dreams and
his, and had remained in each others confidence even when
Kait had been sworn into the diplomatic service and her time had
ceased to be her own. The Family would have been horrified; a girl
of Galweigh breeding and future high position learning the trade of
a sailor, even a sailor of the air? A woman who would one day
negotiate the fate of the Family the confidante of a Rophetian
commoner? Unthinkable.
As Kait was wont to do, she had cherished the friendship and
guarded it as she guarded her own dark secrets and, giving a nod to
Rophetian theology, had decided the Family could go to Tonns
hell if they couldnt understand what Aouel meant to her.
The airible rose higher and the first flat gray light of dawn
that edged the horizon to the east suddenly illuminated the inside
of the cabin. No sight of the sun yet, but it wouldnt be
long. Kait shivered at the narrowness of the margin of their
escape; below, in the darkness that still blanketed Halles, eyes
watched the sky, waiting for the first beam from the sun to fall
across the top arch of the stone tower in the city square. That
light would herald the arrival of the station of Soma, and start
the ringing of the single alto bell that would mark the greeting of
the new day and launch the wedding processions from
Dokteerak House and the Galweigh Embassy into the streets. And
would culminate in the destruction of the Dokteerak Family, and
perhaps a large part of the Sabir Family as well.
For an instant, staring into that pale light, Kait saw a
reflection of the lean, hungry face of the Sabir Karnee, and for an
instant she felt his touch. And in that instant, her traitorous
heart hoped that he would escape destruction.
* * *
The first beam of sunlight struck the top arch of the black
Tower of Time through cloudless skies, and at once the bell ringer
filled the air with the single, repeated tolling of the station of
Soma. First station of morning, the First Friend of the New
Day.
As if the gates of the Galweigh Embassy were linked to the bell,
they swung open at the first note, and ten trumpeters and ten
drummers stepped into the street. They were gorgeously dressed in
the Galweigh red and black, their faces covered from forehead to
nose with fringes of gold beads, their instruments poised at the
ready. Behind them came ten handbell players, and behind them, ten
wood-flautists, and behind them, fifty dancers.
The bell of Soma rang seven times, and the last note hung in the
air, and the musicians waited still, poised until the
final shivering whispers died away into the morning hush. Then, at
a spoken signal from someone still in the compound, they launched
into the Wedding Dance. The dancers leaped in the street,
catapulted themselves into the air, and launched into great,
rattling flips and clattering spins. The heavy fringes of beads
rattled like another phalanx of drummers on their metal costumes.
The dancers carried curved swords that they swung at each
others legs with blinding speed and jumped over as they moved
forward; they shouted the names of the god of the week, who was
Duria, the spinner, and the god of the day, Bronir, who was the god
of joy and they never missed their footing. Graceful,
glorious they presented a grand and noisy spectacle.
The sides of the streets all the way from the embassy to the
Dokteerak House were already lined with workingmen and women
dressed in their finest clothing, out to see and be seen. The
paraglese of the Dokteeraks and the citys parnissas had
already jointly declared Durial Bronirsday a holiday, and the
common people of Halles were determined not to miss an instant of
the grand wedding parade that had come to amuse them; free
entertainment came hard in the city, and not often.
Behind the acrobatic sword dancers came the jugglers; oddly, all
of them juggled flashing swords, three at a time. The folk who
lined the streets murmured to each other that the trick wasnt
so much everyone knew jugglers never used sharpened swords.
But everyone agreed that the way light caught the edges of the
false weapons made them look sharp.
The concubines followed the jugglers. They flirted with the
crowd as they swayed forward, waggling their hips, jutting their
breasts, seeming a bit uncomfortable in the unaccustomed covering
of their wedding finery.
The people of Halles had hoped for trained tigers next, or
perhaps for some of the weird beasts that inhabited the Scarred
lands, but none were forthcoming. Instead, sixteen powerful litter
bearers in full dress uniform brought out the first litter, in
which sat a handsome man and a rather sturdy-looking woman, both
oddly dressed in heavy cloaks, with the customary beaded fringes
covering their faces from forehead to upper lip. Behind this first
litter came a seemingly endless succession of others, each litter
gaudier than the last, each couple swathed and veiled in more or
less the same manner. Crimson and black, a sanguinary Galweigh
river studded with flashes of gold poured forth from the embassy,
and in that outpouring the breathtaking gleam of gemstones seemed
as common as mere stones in the bottom of an ordinary river.
Glittering faceted rubies and cabochon onyx on everything; studding
the litters, the litter bearers, the brides family. A few of
the more knowledgeable marked the unending flow of gemstones as
almost surely glass, but even they had to admit the glitter made
for a gorgeous spectacle.
A choir of male singers accompanied the last litters, those of
the ambassadors, the Galweigh paraglese, and finally the bride.
They sang the standard selection of wedding songs, dedicating the
marriage to Maraxis, the god of sperm, seed, and fertility, in
whose month the wedding took place, and dedicating the bride to
Drastu, the goddess of womb, eggs, and fertility.
As was customary, the bride was completely veiled; the younger
married women in the crowd tried to make out the lines of her face
beneath the swaths of red silk and the gold-beaded fringe (for
seeing the eyes of a bride before her wedding was supposed to be an
omen of fertility in the coming year) but had to content themselves
with responding to the generous waving of her jewel-studded hands.
Those gems, everyone agreed, were real. The Hallesites
passed rumors back and forth about the bride. She was beautiful and
kind, she had taken a meal in the street, eating common food, she
had been generous with gifts and money to those shed
encountered in the streets. She had good wide hips, excellent for
bearing babies. Breasts big enough that those babies would have
plenty of suckle. She wasnt clever or witty and hadnt
seemed terribly ambitious always a plus in a woman who would
be the bride of a second son.
Altogether a fine young woman that was the common
consensus. Perhaps too good a girl for their paragleses
second son, who had the reputation throughout the city for being
spoiled, and something of a shit.
Another batch of sword jugglers and musicians followed the
brides litter, but they werent any great surprise. As
wedding parades went, the people decided, this one hadnt been
bad. A few tigers, less clothing and more cleavage on the
concubines, and perhaps a couple of fire-eating midgets and it
would have been perfect.
* * *
In the White Hall of the Sabir House in Calimekka, brilliant
morning sunlight slanted in through colored glass windows, throwing
harlequin patterns of tinted light across the carved white marble
floor so that it looked like a field of jonquillas and rubyhearts
and bluebells bursting out from beneath a sudden snow. The delicate
vaulted arches of a vast stone canopy soared over the circular
stone room, and the ceiling curved with them, echoing back every
soft sound born within the rooms confines. In this beautiful
sanctuary, the Sabir Wolves walked the final arabesques of their
power-building spell, joined by arrivals just in from Halles
Imogene and Lucien Sabir, the head Wolf and his consort. The Wolves
murmured in unison, their voices joined by the ghost-whispers of
their distant colleagues who moved insubstantial and only
half visible along the path with them . . . and
perhaps joined by other, stranger spirits as well.
The scent of honeysuckle suddenly filled the room from nowhere,
and as it did, all whispering and treading of the path and steady
chanting ceased at once, as abruptly and as completely as candles
snuffed out by a sudden draft. On the path, the Wolves in the
chamber and the ghostly images of Wolves that walked with them from
Halles and Costan Selvira and Waypoint halted as one, feet solidly
planted on the worn stone lines, heads turned toward the central
pillar which was not carved stone, as the pillar in Halles
had been, but solid gold. The air, tinged with spicy curls of
caberra incense and with the thickening sweetness of the
honeysuckle, and with malevolence, shimmered expectantly. A voice
spoke clearly into the mind of each Wolf: The time has come
let the sacrifice begin.
Something pattered softly across the room, unseen but felt by
the Wolves nearest it as pressure in the chest, as icy air that
stirred not one hair on a single head when it moved by; and all
breathed in the cloying honeysuckle reek that thickened, tainted
suddenly with the underlying stench of something long dead and
rotting.
Silence. A sense that more than the Wolves within the room
waited that other, older eyes watched, that other ears
listened. The walls of the sanctuary sighed, then murmured on their
own; words in a long-forgotten tongue that might have been full of
meaning or might have been the babble of some long-dead
madness.
Further silence.
A moment passed, and another, and then a third. Then the
faintest of drumbeats rippled through the air. One, then another,
then a third, ghostly, drummed by something that was not and had
never been human, pulsing through the air, increasing in speed and
strength as they increased in volume. The sound was the starting of
some monstrous heart that gathered resolution and power as it moved
nearer the source of its lifeblood: the White Hall and the center
of the Sabir magic. That beat moved nearer, and still nearer,
became louder and more forceful. Quickening as it moved nearer.
Nearer.
The Wolves stared straight at the pillar, eyes never wavering
toward the rooms single arched doorway, through which the
roar of that hellish heartbeat now ripped and raced like the pulse
of a stag pursued by wolves.
A girl appeared, hanging in the air, floating in the embrace of
nothingness. Her long black hair had been braided with elaborate
attention to detail and woven full of flowers, so that, as she
floated through the patterned sunlight, she seemed for an instant
to be another flower in that stained-glass garden, an ephemeral
creation of light and shadow.
She should have been beautiful; her delicate cheekbones, fine
lips, straight nose, and large, slanting eyes were perfectly
shaped. Her hands, resting folded in her lap, were works of art.
Beneath the gauzy whiteness of her gown, her small, perfect breasts
curved away to a slender rib cage and a tiny waist.
She should have been beautiful. Surely, she had once been
beautiful.
But the deadness of her expression, the unnatural pallor of her
skin, and the faint tint of bruises imperfectly covered by powders
and creams, and revealed by the sharpness of the morning light,
gave her the ghastly appearance of a corpse animated by something
other than life.
Three pairs of eyes glanced away from the pillar long enough to
study the girl to be sure that the signs of days and nights
of torture and rape and degradation were sufficiently hidden by the
makeup and fine clothes to ward off censure or punishment. Crispin,
Anwyn, and Andrew then looked to each other from their places on
the path, all of them disturbed that Danya didnt look as
convincingly pristine as she had when theyd prepared her in
their quarters. Crispin gave the faintest of nods, though
affirmation that if her appearance caused a commotion, he would be
the one to deal with it. With no other sign, the three of them
returned their gazes to the pillar.
The girl floated in the cloud of frigid, honeysuckled air to the
center of the room, where invisible hands lowered her to the ground
and held her against the golden column with an unbreakable grip.
She shivered with each beat of the phantom drum, but otherwise gave
no sign of life.
The drumming died into silence and the room sighed again, the
walls breathing softly, whispering unintelligible things. The
Wolves beneath did not permit themselves to be distracted by the
murmurs; they immediately set to the task of casting the spell into
which all the preparation had gone. Years of research, more years
to cull the proper spell from Ancient texts and reform it from the
old tongues of wizards into the rich, rolling Iberan language,
months of power-building, hundreds of lesser sacrifices, the
kidnapping of a young and powerful enemy Wolf, a delicate
diversionary plot and the commitment of all the Sabir Family
resources, in both material and manpower all moved at last
to this single time, this single place, this single irrevocable
irretrievable opportunity to annihilate the Familys
hereditary enemies, the Galweighs, from Calimekka. No faltering
now, no going back, no second thoughts. The dead were in
attendance; the living must act.
In unison the Wolves began the chant.
Chapter 13
Somethings wrong, Kait said.
Dùghall looked up from patting the sobbing Tippa.
Wrong in what way?
The feeling of all-pervasive evil had, in the last few moments,
grown unendurable. Kait felt it as nausea and joint pain and a
pounding headache behind her eyeballs, and as the crawling of
thousands of invisible spiders up and down her spine.
Ive felt something evil in Halles since the night of
the Naming Day party, she told him, but now I feel
almost as if it were going to . . . She frowned.
As if it were going to burst.
Dùghall turned to Tippa. Lie down, child, and breathe
as slowly as you can. Youll feel better soon. He waited
until she curled up on the velvet-upholstered bench, then came over
and sat next to Kait. Youve felt the presence of
evil. And you feel it now. He frowned, but to Kait he
also had the scent of excitement about him.
Yes.
How do you feel it?
I dont know how. I just do.
That isnt what I meant to ask. Describe the
sensations by which this evil tells you of its existence.
Kait nodded, understanding. First as pressure against my
skin. And tingling along the back of my neck. A sort of
. . . of greasiness, I suppose, that seemed to
move around and through me. Now . . . I feel as if my
eyes are about to explode from my head, and I want to vomit, and I
hurt everywhere.
Dùghalls eyes were wide. Yes. Yes. And the
sensation of greasiness?
I still feel that, but everything else is so much stronger
that it doesnt bother me as much.
Yes. Precisely. Tell me . . . have you had
dreams recently?
Nightmares. Every night. Monsters chasing me, and death
everywhere I havent had a good sleep since we got to
Halles.
Just so. Dùghall had begun to grin. The scent
of excitement around him intensified. Im going to do
something. Tell me what you feel.
Kait waited. Dùghall sat with his hands clasped on his
knees, eyes squeezed tightly closed . . . and did
nothing. And then, suddenly, Kaits headache was gone, and the
nausea and the pain with it. She felt wonderful as wonderful
as she had the moment she ran into Hasmal. Perhaps even better,
since her discomfort and anxiety had been so much worse to begin
with.
Its all gone, she said. All the evil,
all the pain.
Marvelous, Dùghall murmured, so low that only
she could hear him. This is simply marvelous,
Kait-cha.
Why? She kept her own voice pitched nearly as low
and soft as his.
What you sense is magic being worked. I must assume that
no one taught you to do this . . . ?
No. Of course not. Bewildered, Kait stared at her
uncle. Magic? She sensed magic being worked? But no one did
magic its practice had been forbidden ever since humans had
climbed out of the rubble left by the Wizards War and set
about rebuilding the world. Why would you say I felt
magic?
He took her hand and held it between his own. Dont
think that because it is forbidden, magic isnt practiced. Or
even that it is solely the tool of evil. If you can sense it, girl,
you have the potential to use it. And you could do good things with
it magic was once one of the paths to enlightenment.
He sighed. Even being able to tell when you are around magic,
though, will be invaluable to you as a diplomat in the
Familys service. We always need to know when our enemies and
allies have capabilities that we dont.
Kait considered that for a while. Magic was heresy of the worst
sort; doing magic was worse even than being Karnee. If she could
sense magic, did that mean she was doing magic? Was she guilty of
this further heresy in spite of having never sought it out?
She probably was. It didnt matter. She could only die
once, and the automatic death sentence she carried just by being
Karnee couldnt be made any worse if she added a cartload of
other sins.
Dùghall seemed able to follow the tenor of her thoughts,
for he said, You think about it and discover that things
cant get any worse for you, dont you?
Thats exactly what I was thinking.
Well, now Ill tell you how they can get better. You
must let me teach you how to tap your talents with magic. Once you
know how to use the forces all around you, youll be able to
avoid the pain you feel when you are close to those who are working
darsharen, which is the magic of Wolves, and the sort of
magic that is making you feel sick. And with farhullen,
which is the magic of Falcons and a force for good, you will be
able to overcome and even prevent some evils. Your
ability to serve the Family will increase beyond your
imagining. As he told her this, his face lit up as if he were
a boy receiving a great gift, and he radiated scents of pleasure
and excitement.
Kait remained cautious, though his enthusiasm allayed most of
her misgivings. Everything Dùghall had ever done with Kait had
made her life better. She trusted him. So she asked, If this
is so if magic can be used for good and not just for evil
why is it forbidden?
Dùghall made a disgusted face. Because the parnissas
would rather forbid what they dont understand than learn how
it might be of value if it were permitted. This is, I think, a
characteristic common to those who seek public power. Willful
ignorance and endless laws become the replacement for
self-education and self-restraint, because ignorance and laws are
easy.
Kait despised the parnissas. If ever they discovered what she
was, they would demand her death that same instant. Her parents had
risked their own lives for five years substituting another child
for her in the inspections on the Day of Infants. Yet she had done
nothing to deserve death; and she could not forgive the parnissas
for enforcing the laws that demanded it. Teach me, she
said. Im quick, and I work hard. Youll find me an
eager student.
Well start tomorrow. He smiled, then looked
over at Tippa. She was sitting again, and sobbing twice as loudly
as she had been before, and now she was rocking back and forth,
too. His smile tightened and Kait could see strain in his eyes.
Meanwhile, I can see that your cousin feels shes not
getting the attention she deserves. Excuse me while I tend to her
. . . or else I suspect shell resort to tearing her
hair and clothes and wailing like a war mourner.
He moved to her cousins side and left Kait to contemplate
magic and what it meant to her, and to her world.
* * *
Sacred is the binding of two lives, sacred the bond
between two families, sacred the promises made this day. The
parnissa who presided over the wedding shifted on her dais, and the
morning sunlight caught her hair and spun a silver nimbus around
her head. She smiled down at the veiled bride and bridegroom who
stood before her on the rise at the north end of the basin. She
smiled at the representatives of the two Families, the ranks of
blue and gold filling the stone risers on the west side of the
amphitheater, and the wall of red and black that rose to the east
side. She even deigned to smile briefly at the troops of
entertainers who crowded all the way around the rim of the
amphitheater, though most parnissas would have not noticed them;
the gods had nothing to say to their sort on these occasions.
Norlis, the embassy master sergeant, was playing the part of
Macklin Galweigh, father of the bride. He watched the swordswoman
playing the bride slide her right hand slowly into the deep folds
of her skirt. He forced himself not to stiffen and he kept his
breathing easy in spite of himself, and in spite of knowing that
the same anticipation ran through the veins of every other man and
woman in the Galweigh troops. Almost . . . almost
. . .
Jerren Draclas Galweigh, commander of the troops, shifted on the
hard stone riser. He sat just to the left of Norlis; he was,
because he was slender and shorter than average, dressed as a
Family woman. Norlis heard his breathing quicken.
Almost . . . almost . . .
And above, the extra ranks of swordsmen and archers, in their
disguises as jugglers and concubines, made ready without being
obvious about it.
The parnissa raised her arms over her head, her hands forming
the symbols of the sun and the earth. As the sun feeds
Matrin, so the man feeds the woman. As Matrin gives life to the
universe, so the woman gives life to the man. You are equal, and
from this day forth you shall stand together, paired, two made one
and stronger than any three.
The battle hunger pounded in Norliss veins, tinged with
the sharpness of fear. Inescapable, the fear that death
could be such a familiar face and still be such a stranger, that it
waited for him and for the rest who sat in the sacred basin
and yet he lived for moments such as these, when he became more
alive than he ever was elsewise. He waited, watching the lemon
lizards skittering through the grass below him, their bright yellow
bodies gleaming in the shortening rays of the tropical sun
. . . gleaming as bright and metallic as the tiny
glimpses of armor reflected back at him from the Dokteerak side of
the amphitheater. He smiled at that. Tradition gave the
brides family the eastern side of the basin, and tradition
this time meant that the enemy would have the sun in their eyes at
commencement of the battle, and that their stray movements now
revealed their treachery, at the same time that the long shadows on
the east side of the basin hid the Galweigh readiness to attack or
defend. Norlis smelled the sweat of the men and women all around
him who roasted as he did in battle armor disguised beneath wedding
dress. He listened to the drone of the parnissa, and the murmurs of
the audience, and he felt the sun on the back of his neck send
trickling beads of sweat down his own spine, beneath the scale mail
and the padding and his sodden clothes, to where he couldnt
get at it. So good to be alive and so dear, when all those
sensations could be snatched away from him in an instant.
And do you, Tippa Delista Anja na Kita Galweigh, accept
with honor this man, and pledge your faith, in the sight of the
gods who bless all true unions?
My honor on his good faith, now and always, the
impostor said.
Almost . . . almost . . .
And do you, Calmet Ekheer na Boulouk Dokteerak,
accept with honor this woman, and pledge your faith, in the sight
of the gods who bless all true unions?
If the Dokteeraks were to go through with their treachery, they
had to act or be forsworn before the gods.
And Calmet Dokteerak, who was ready to break his troth to
humankind, evidently didnt extend his treachery to
double-crossing the gods. He ripped off his groom veil to reveal a
helmet beneath. I do not! he shouted, and pulled a
dagger from its hiding place beneath his short cloak at the small
of his back. Die, you stupid bitch!
Tippas stand-in had her blade in hand before anyone from
either side could move, and Calmets hand and the dagger it
had clutched lay on the stones, drenched in blood.
To arms, Jerren Galweigh shouted, and suddenly the
circle around the top of the amphitheater was ringed with red and
black, and a rain of arrows poured from both sides into the western
risers.
All became chaos, but chaos with direction. The gold and blue
Dokteeraks, well led, charged up the western risers to engage the
archers there in close combat; the plan would have been good, but
the archers fell back and gave way to the ranks of swordsmen who
had been dressed as jugglers elite fighters with tremendous
skill with their weapons. Meanwhile, the Galweighs in the east
risers swarmed down and pinned the enemy between themselves and the
other flank of the attack.
The Dokteerak troops, who had expected no more resistance than
could have been mustered by any wedding crowd, died in heaps and
piles. Outnumbered and unprepared to meet battle-hardened warriors,
shouting for reinforcements that never arrived, they fought well,
but not well enough.
The two flanks of the Galweigh army forced the survivors down to
the floor of the amphitheater and back toward the cowering
parnissa, who screamed of heresy and abomination, and who remained
untouched by both sides because to kill the sacred hand of the gods
would bring down curses on the slayers family for uncounted
generations. So the bodies piled around her, most of them garbed in
blue and gold. But not all, of course. Not all.
Norlis saw friends fall, and grimaced, and drove harder into the
diminished ranks of the Dokteerak troops. His blade shone as red as
his clothes, the blood runnels full of gore. For Kait, he thought,
because he admired the Galweighs, but he secretly loved Kait. For
Kait, because these bastards would have slaughtered her and all her
Family.
For Kait.
Then there were no more enemies to kill there were only
surrendering soldiers begging for their lives. Jerren Galweigh
mounted the dais and raised his still-bloody sword over his head.
We triumph! he screamed. To the city, where we
will claim what has become ours.
The roar of cheers. Norlis shouted with the rest, yelling his
throat raw. Then movement overhead caught his eye. An airible
sailed slowly over the amphitheater, and faces turned upward to
watch it. Odd hed thought all the airibles were back
in Calimekka. A second moved into view behind the first.
He frowned. Many of the troops still shouted and cheered on this
unexpected air support, but the airibles didnt look
right to Norlis. The enormous white envelopes seemed both too
short and too round somehow. Their lines were oddly lumpy, their
engines sounded both too loud and too rough, and the shapes of the
gondolas beneath
The surviving Dokteeraks started grinning.
Faces peered out from the tops of the gondolas, and a sudden
chill gripped Norlis. None of the Galweigh airibles had open
gondolas anymore, did they? But the Galweighs were the only Family
in Ibera who had airibles or the engines that made them
move. Those were secrets from the ancient past, and guarded as
closely as the Galweighs guarded their lives.
But the airibles came on, and they were not Galweigh airibles.
The watching men overhead waited until they had drifted closer;
then hoses poked over the gondola rims, and in the next instant a
rain of something stinking and wet and green and sticky doused him
and everyone else in and around the amphitheater.
Run! Jerren shouted, but he hadnt caught on
quickly enough. Not quickly enough at all. While the green rain
still fell, archers from the second gondola began shooting flaming
arrows into the crowd, and into the stinking deluge. The green
liquid caught, and suddenly the sky rained fire, and around the
amphitheater hundreds of men and women blossomed with flames.
The airibles turned sideways. Norlis, not yet burning but
trapped in the center of flames, by all rights should have thought
of nothing but his own onrushing oblivion. He did remark the
airibles, though, and he recognized, when it was far too late to do
him or anyone else any good, the crests painted on their suddenly
visible sides. Sabir Family. Flashes of forest green and silver,
the design twin trees laden with silver fruit.
The other half of the betrayal and a betrayal not just of
the Galweighs, but of the Dokteeraks, who had considered the Sabirs
allies.
All of us burn together Galweigh and Dokteerak alike,
Norlis realized. And the Sabirs, who crossed us and double-crossed
them, win Halles. And what else? With all of our fighting forces
here, and all of the Family in Calimekka . . . do they
win Galweigh House as well?
Then flames and smoke and screaming swallowed Norlis.
* * *
The long shadows in the courtyard of Galweigh House turned the
manicured grass into rough-cut velvet in the places where the
morning sun reached over the wall. Humid air, the temperature
already rising, intermittent breeze catching and rattling the palm
fronds around the House and bringing distant wind chimes to
invisible life. A pretty morning that promised to give way later to
a hot and possibly stormy day. The serving girl picked her way
along the path to the guardhouse at the gate, carrying one tray on
her head and one in her arms, both laden with food.
One of the guards saw her coming and ran out to relieve her of
the heavier of the two trays.
Thank you. Im sorry I took so long. She smiled
up at him. She was attractive wide smile, even teeth, eyes
that crinkled at the corners when she grinned. A lot of cleavage
which she had gone to some trouble to show off.
He laughed. We were beginning to think Cook wasnt
going to feed us this morning.
The girl shook her head. You should know I wouldnt
let you go hungry. When have I ever not gotten your food to
you?
True. One of the other guards opened the guardhouse
door and sighed. Truly, Lizal, you are a vision to a hungry
man like me.
Of course I am. But not because you lust after me, you
goat. You only love me for my sweet rolls.
All the men laughed. One said, You didnt really
bring sweet rolls, did you?
I did. Thats what took me so long. I couldnt
steal enough for all of you until she left the kitchen for a
moment.
The man who had helped her carry their meal into the guardhouse
said fervently, Id marry you for real if youd
have me.
The woman they called Lizal laughed. But I wouldnt.
So your virtue and your honor are intact.
She stood chatting with them while they ate, as she did every
morning, watching them devour the corn flatbread and pudding and
fried plantains, and especially the stolen sweet rolls, with
bright, intent eyes. When theyd finished, she told them if
she didnt get back to the kitchen, Cook would have her hide.
She said the same thing every morning, and as they did every
morning, the men laughed and patted her round rump, and told her
they would marry her if she wanted and tried to tempt her into
staying longer, into going to bed with one or all of them, and into
various other indiscretions.
As always, she smiled, made vague promises that she would
consider their offers, and left.
She didnt go back to the kitchen, however. This morning
she walked back down the path toward it, but ducked behind some
tall shrubs the instant she was out of direct sight of the
guardhouse. There she stripped off her Galweigh livery and put on a
grubby plain brown smock and patched homespun skirt and shabby
leather sandals clothing that made her look almost like a
poor peasant. She disarranged her hair and rubbed dirt into the
creases of her hands and underneath her fingernails, and rubbed
more dirt into her feet and lower legs. Now she looked exactly like
a poor peasant. Disguise completed, she gathered up two small bags,
one that clinked heavily when she moved it, and a larger, lumpier
one that did not, and, with them in hand, moved behind the line of
shrubbery until the guardhouse was once again in sight. From her
screened vantage point, she watched and waited.
For a short while, she heard only the normal conversation
between the guards. Then she heard groaning, and vomiting. More
groaning. Then, after what seemed like forever, silence.
She rose, walked back to the guardhouse, and looked inside. The
guards all lay on the floor, some across others where they had
fallen. Their backs arched, their arms pulled straight back at
their sides, rigid as boards, their necks stretched backward, their
eyes bulged out and their tongues protruded.
The poison her Sabir employer had given her certainly looked
effective. Two sweet rolls each, and not a one of the men was still
breathing.
No mess, no fuss, no bother, she murmured. Not much
mess, anyway. She did watch where she put her sandaled feet as she
clambered over the bodies. She pulled the lever that released the
weights that lifted the portcullis gate (struggling a bit, because
it was surprisingly heavy), and set it into the locked position.
Then she walked out to the gate and to the obsidian-paved Path of
Gods, where she bowed to the first of the men in dark green and
silver who waited. The guards in the guardhouse are dead.
Everyone else is alive the Galweighs are too active this
morning, and I was afraid one of them would come across the bodies
in the kitchen if I poisoned the other kitchen workers. She
handed him the smaller bag. All the copies of the House keys
that I could get my hands on are in here, as well as the best copy
of a map that I could steal. The majority of the Family is on the
second floor right now, in their quarters. A few are still in the
main salon on the first floor. None, as far as I know, are on the
ground floor.
And below? Ry Sabir asked.
I dont know who might be there. If you have to go
below, youll have trouble. There are . . . things
down there that frighten me. You can hear them moving, and
sometimes you can smell them . . . but theyre
always in the dark where you cant see them.
He nodded, but didnt look worried. Well
manage. You know where to go?
I do. My passage has been arranged?
Yes. I think youre too cautious you could
have a place in Sabir House if you wanted it. Youve served us
well.
She shook her head. You arent planning on killing
all of the Galweighs, and they may come to figure out who was the
spy in their midst. They can be . . . vengeful.
As we all can if were crossed. He smiled
slyly. Have a good voyage, then, Wenne.
As the girl turned away from the cliff and hurried from Galweigh
House, Ry Sabir, with map and keys in hand, led his lieutenants and
his Familys troops into the enemy domain. The girl had been
right the servants were concentrated on the ground floor,
and the showing of swords convinced most of them to surrender
quietly; the efficient slaughter of the few who dared resist
convinced the rest. From there, Ry broke the Sabir troops into five
groups; they rushed both main sets of stairs and the several
servants staircases to the first floor simultaneously, and
caught several more servants on the way. In the salon, almost all
of the Galweigh Family waited for news of the battle in Halles. The
Galweighs, caught unarmed and unprepared, gave no more trouble than
the servants had they surrendered in exchange for the
promise of their lives. As easily as that, the great House
fell.
Ry handed over control of the main troops to his fathers
chosen commander, and drew his colleagues aside. She
isnt with them; were going to have to search the House
for her.
We could wait for her to come to us. Jaim,
uncharacteristically, was the first to speak.
Ry shook his head. He was both too excited to wait and too
afraid that something might go wrong. His fathers men
didnt intend to honor the guarantee theyd given the
Galweigh Family; as soon as the cleanup crews were sure the
captives were all in one place, the Family excepting a few
individuals who could give useful information were to be put
to the sword. Lucien Sabir wanted no bold rescues mounted by the
branches of the Galweigh Family in the Imumbarra Isles or Goft, or
in the far colony settlements of Icta Draclas or the North Shore,
and he reasoned that none would be if all the Calimekkan branch
were dead.
We have to find her now, he said. Now.
Its desperate.
Yanth said, Ill follow where you lead
. . . but where in this vast place will you
lead?
Ry closed his eyes and tried to locate the woman. In the House,
her belongings and objects in which she had invested a part of
herself surrounded him. He felt their faint glows in all
directions, pulling at him. Too, his own fear and excitement
pressured him to act quickly, now that his moment had finally come,
before something could take her from him permanently and
both fear and excitement clouded his senses. Adding to that
difficulty was the overwhelming force of magic gathered and aimed
at the Galweighs but not yet discharged that seemed to
thicken the very air he breathed, and to make him feel as if he
were running uphill through deep mud. He couldnt get a clear
fix on her. In several places in the House, however, he felt her
presence most strongly, and at least all of those were in the same
direction. Upward, he said. Shes got to be
somewhere above us. He ran for the nearest stairs.
* * *
The Galweigh Wolves chanted in darkness, building a crushing
blow against the Sabir Wolves one that would strike them
just as the Galweigh forces in Halles would surely defeat the
combined Dokteerak and Sabir forces. Drummers at the four corners
of the enormous workroom pounded out four separate rhythms that
wound over and around and through each other, talking back and
forth, moving like smoky voices in and out of the joined voices of
the wizards who spun the destruction and death of their hereditary
enemies out of syllables and will. No fires illuminated the
windowless room, yet there was light a soft glow that flowed
around the sacrifices who begged for their lives in their cage in
the center of the room. And there was, uncharacteristically, the
smell of honeysuckle, at first soft and seductive, and then
increasingly strong, and laced with scents of death and decay.
Baird Galweigh, much-Scarred head of the Familys Wolves,
threw his head back and howled the final words of the spell of
destruction . . . and as he did, he felt ancient minds
brush against his, and ancient ambitions shiver against invisible
bars. Fear curled in his gut, but he had faced more than fear in
his lifetime, and the promises of his enemies destruction
sang louder than the warnings his gut gave him. He brought the
spell to its conclusion, supported by the will of the rest of the
Wolves.
Lightning crackled in the room, running from the floor up the
walls, streaming across the ceiling, heading toward the Sabir
compound, seeking the magical high ground the spell had made of the
Sabir Wolves. The Galweigh Wolves braced themselves and turned
their attention to their captives, held in the center of the room
captives meant to handle the rewhah, the equal force
of negative energy that would rebound from the spell just cast. Any
part of the rewhah that they didnt absorb, the Wolves
would have to take. And any magic that the Wolves had to absorb
would Scar them.
The pressure built in the room, and built, and built, and Baird
crouched lower and lower, mimicking in an unconscious physical
display the magical preparations his body made to ward off the
coming blow.
Abruptly the lightning reversed course and poured into the
captives, directed there by the Wolves. The fierce will of the
wizards held the magical backwash on the screaming captives while
the energy twisted and mangled their bodies. But suddenly the
lightning spread, and burst free of the bounds, and poured over the
Wolves, too, twisting them and melting them and reshaping them as
if it were fire and they were wax.
The captives exploded in balls of light, vanished in clouds of
dust.
The lightning kept coming, and the Wolves began to fall to the
floor writhing, dying. Baird, in a last moment of clear
thought, realized that the Sabir Wolves had chosen to attack the
Galweigh Wolves at the same moment the Galweigh Wolves had attacked
them. He hoped their rewhah was as uncontrollable; he hoped
their death toll was as high.
But the last stimulus to touch his dying senses was not a sense
of pain and fear in the Sabirs. It was the reek of honeysuckle, so
strong it seemed a blanket suffocating him to death.
Chapter 14
Energy sang through the White Hall as the attack spell
shattered the Galweigh Wolves, and the Sabirs braced themselves
against the return blow. At the central pillar, Danya Galweigh
screamed and writhed, her body absorbing almost all of the magical
backlash. Her form changed from lovely to hideous as foul magic
poured through her; she sprouted horns and spines, grew scales and
fangs and claws, then shed them for worse and more hideous things;
always she melted and twisted obscenely. But the Sabirs had guessed
her strength and her resilience well, and she buffered them from
the deadly rewhah energy, while the Wolves, by spreading out
the slight overflow among themselves, prevented any one of their
number from taking heavy Scars.
What the Sabirs hadnt figured into their careful
calculations was a simultaneous attack from the Galweighs, and when
that spell hit their sacrifice, the combined forces of it and their
own rewhah broke free of the confinements of their spells
and the buffer of the girl. Danya Galweigh sizzled for an instant,
and black lightning coalesced around her; the air filled with smoke
and the sickening scent of decay; she screamed so loudly and with
such terror that her throat sounded like it was tearing itself
apart. Then thunder crashed inside the White Hall, and the girl
vanished utterly. And the combined magic of spell and rewhah
smashed down on the Sabir Wolves, unbuffered, undirected, and
raw.
Those quickest to understand what was happening the
senior Wolves and the unholy triad of Andrew, Anwyn, and Crispin
quickly shifted the brunt of the streaming hell of power
onto the younger, weaker Wolves. Thus they survived, though even
they bore fresh Scars. Those who were neither so quick nor so
ruthless died horribly, melting into inhuman forms, changing and
changing until the mutations became too many and too lethal to
survive, begging as they writhed for rescue, collapsing with their
pleas unanswered.
The walls of the White Hall began to scream the babble of
a thousand voices, of a hundred long-dead tongues. Clearly, the
survivors heard the sound of a door opening, though the White Hall
had no doors. Light shimmered, laughter echoed amid the thunder and
the lightning, and for an instant the scent of honeysuckle became
so thick it was suffocating.
The surviving Wolves fell unconscious to the floor, overwhelmed
by the force of whatever it was that had come through that
otherworldly door.
* * *
Almost home. Kait watched the great city slide beneath the
airible and wondered if she would have time to visit with her
sisters and brothers before she received her next assignment. She
smiled out the window, her mind already racing ahead to the visit
Drusa was pregnant and Echo had just had a baby, and Kait,
who would never dare have children of her own, loved to feel the
movement of new life in her older sisters belly, and loved to
feel her younger sisters son grip her finger with his tiny
hand.
Almost home. Tippa had finally stopped her wailing; Dùghall
had promised her a trip to his islands as consolation, and her
choice of the best Imumbarran weaving. She napped. Dùghall
stretched out on one of the velvet-upholstered benches,
reading.
Below and well to her right, she saw the first glimpse of the
House. Its ivory walls surrounded emerald lawn like a ring around a
jewel. She sighed. Almost home . . . to sisters and
brothers and endless cousins; to laughter-spiced meals taken at the
long tables; to talks with her mother as they sat by the fountains
or walked through the hanging garden in the morning; to evening
discussions of city policy and trade and politics with her father
and uncles; to familiar books in the library and the familiar smell
and feel of her bed, her sheets, her room.
She anticipated her return, and wondered if she would be so
homesick after every assignment, or if leaving would get easier
with time.
Her head began to ache again.
She blinked, and rubbed absently at her temples. She closed her
eyes.
The pain got worse.
Dùghall groaned. Kait sat up, frowning, and said,
Uncle? My head
The blinding pain took her by surprise. She clutched at her
pounding skull and cried out, as wave upon wave of fire-hot agony
drove sight from her eyes and threw her, helpless, to the airible
floor.
The pressure doubled, and doubled again, and at last blackness
swallowed her.
* * *
Aouel pulled the valve chain that shifted the ballast toward the
airibles nose. Calimekka slid by below; the starkness of the
gridwork of streets and the shadow-outlined pattern of red and
brown tile roofs contrasted with the rampant jungle greenery that
burst from every tiny square of unwatched earth, and with the
colorful rush of people and animals filling the avenues and alleys.
Already he could see the front face of Galweigh House carved into
the side of the cliff, and the sleek, translucent curve of the
walls around it. He loved the calm of the air, the distance from
the noise and bustle of the city, the feeling of being part of the
world that hurried below, yet apart from it and superior to it as
well.
He let his concentration drift to thoughts of the newest
airible, already under construction on the Galweigh airfield in
Glasmar, and the improvements in lift and speed hed heard
boasted of it; hed done no more than install himself as
imaginary captain of it, though, before a groan, a thud, and a
scream, all in quick succession, destroyed his fantasy. He grabbed
his dagger and turned, expecting to find Dokteerak stowaways,
perhaps but he could see no sign of danger. Kait lay on the
cabin floor, unmoving. As he hurried to her he could see that her
chest still rose and fell. Sweat beaded her unnaturally pale skin,
and beneath her closed eyelids, her eyes darted from side to
side.
What happened? he asked Dùghall. But though
Dùghall remained in his seat and his eyes stayed open, the
ambassador didnt answer. Instead, he leaned against the
velvet cushions, his face as pale as Kaits, seeming to see
and hear nothing that went on around him. He trembled and pressed
his hands to his ears as if to block out some unpleasant sound.
Aouel looked to Tippa, who stared back at him. What
happened?
I dont know, she said. Shed just woken
up. Her eyes were red and swollen from all the crying, and she
looked frightened. Still, she knelt by Kait and checked her pulse,
then checked Dùghalls. Aouel had always thought her
empty-skulled, but perhaps shed inherited a bit of the
Familys sense after all. I was asleep, and I heard a
shout.
Aouel glanced toward the airibles controls. It maintained
the gentle downward spiral that hed set for it. He had a
moment before he was needed back at the controls. So he tried to
rouse Dùghall, who appeared to be less affected by whatever
had happened. He shook his shoulder, then jerked his hand back as,
for just a moment, an eerie faint green light illuminated
Dùghalls body. The light vanished so quickly Aouel could
have tried to convince himself that hed imagined it
but he didnt think he had.
In any case, Dùghall groaned and clutched his head, and
opened his eyes. All those voices . . . he
whispered.
Then his eyes met Aouels. Kait?
She hasnt moved, Aouel told him.
Dùghall massaged his forehead. Take Tippa to the
front with you. Land us as quickly as you can. Dùghall
gave Tippa a hard look. You, as soon as we land, go inside
and find your cousin Tammesin. Tell him I need help out here.
Dont say a word about what has happened. Not a word. Nothing
about Kait, nothing about me fainting, only that I need
Tammesins help out here. Do you understand?
Tippa nodded.
Go, then. He turned his attention to Aouel.
Have we much longer until we land?
No.
Good. Land us, then get me some help for the girl. Make
sure that idiot Tippa doesnt go shouting all over the House
that something has happened to Kait. This was . . .
He frowned and lowered his voice. It was an enemy attack. It
has the feel of Sabir work, but theres more to it than that.
Something dangerous is going on, and until Ive had the chance
to speak to the paraglese, we need to keep it quiet.
Aouel felt sick. Sabir work and it had affected Kait
badly. He wondered how much danger she was in. He ran to the front
and took up the controls again the airible had drifted south
of its destination, but it had not gone badly out of range.
Hed have to circle around and come at the landing ground from
the north, which would be awkward. Most of the regular landing men
were in Halles with the rest of the soldiers; an unpracticed crew
composed primarily of householders would be bringing him in, and
they wouldnt be looking for him to come from the north.
On this day, he wasnt supposed to announce his arrival
the removal of the Galweighs from Halles was supposed to
have been accomplished with stealth at both ends of the journey.
Under other circumstances, he would have circled overhead until the
landers saw him and came out to bring the airible in. These were
not normal circumstances, however. He had strict instructions to
get on the ground as quickly as he could.
So he pulled the cord that sent air screaming through the valves
of the airibles ready alarm. They would hear that alarm
inside the House, on the grounds . . . and yes, probably
all the way to the Sabir compound, two hills away. To Tonns
hell with all of them, and anyone who complained of his
actions.
By the time hed fought the airible into position, the
lander crew was on the ground. He skipped protocols and brought the
airible down as fast as he could, dropping the mooring ropes well
before any of the men could hope to catch them. Some might tangle
. . . but enough wouldnt.
Be ready to jump the second we touch down, he told
Tippa. For a wonder, she didnt quibble about muddying her
skirts or skinning her knees. Partly to keep her calm enough that
she wouldnt do anything stupid, and partly to reassure
himself, he said, Im sure Kaitll be fine,
though he wasnt sure of any such thing.
Shed better be, Tippa said softly. She
risked her life for me, standing against some Gyru princes on
Naming Day night. And Uncle told me shes the one who
discovered the Dokteeraks plan to kill me today. Id be
once shamed and once dead without her.
The landers were slow to the winches and sloppy with the ropes,
but Aouel had expected nothing better. He closed down the throttle
that fed fuel into the airibles engines and let the landers
do their work, never mind that they did it poorly. He got down into
the gangway with Tippa, so that he could assist her to the ground
he couldnt expect the tyros manning the ropes to know
assisting the Family passengers was their job, too.
So when the airible stopped descending and he opened the hatch,
he wasnt prepared for the sight that greeted him a
line of Sabir archers hidden from the air by the overhang of the
Houses first-floor balcony, their bows drawn and their arrows
aimed at the landers; two more archers, these not dressed in their
Sabir livery, with their arrows trained on Tippa and him; and a
handful of rough-looking swordsmen in Sabir livery who came running
toward the airible gondola.
Aouel didnt think; he shouted, Dùghall
Sabirs! at the same time that Tippa screamed.
The Sabir troops grinned, and the archers drew their bows
tighter.
On the ground, one man shouted. Both of you.
Now. Or well kill the girl.
Aouel swallowed. He lowered Tippa to the ground, then jumped
down himself.
Who else is aboard?
The ambassador. Dùghall.
Thats all?
Yes, Aouel lied.
The swordsman turned to Tippa. That the truth?
Tippa nodded.
The swordsman glanced at Aouel, his eyes taking in the livery,
the braided black hair, the bead-trimmed beard. Youre
the pilot of that thing, right?
Aouel nodded.
And Rophetian?
Yes.
Rophetians are all right, and we can use a trained pilot.
Youll find a place with us. He gestured to two of the
other swordsmen, and they moved to Aouels side, efficiently
took his weapons away from him, and pulled him out of the way of
the gangway.
The swordsman turned back to Tippa. And who are you? The
little bride-to-be?
She nodded.
Another damned Galweigh. We have more of you people than
we need . . . but Im sure the men will find a way
to make your wedding day memorable. He laughed and grabbed
her arm, intending to shove her toward more of the Sabir
soldiers.
It happened so quickly that Aouel almost missed it. The
Sabirs fingers wrapped around Tippas upper left arm.
Her right hand whipped out of the folds of her skirt and her dagger
flashed across his throat before he could raise his hand to block
it. Blood gouted from the wound in a pulsing stream, spattering the
girls face and her hands and her dress. In the same instant
that the swordsmans fingers began to lose their grip, two
arrows sprouted from Tippas rib cage as if by magic, and she
stared down at her chest, her expression shocked and disbelieving.
She turned to look at him, eyes round; she looked so much like she
wanted him to explain, and her mouth opened, and he would have
sworn she was going to ask him a question. Then she sagged, and the
life went out of her eyes, and she fell across the downed
swordsman.
Then Dùghall appeared in the gangway, and looked down at
the body of his niece, and dropped heavily to the ground.
Ill see that you pay for that, he told the
archers. They laughed, and one drew back his bow. But another of
the swordsmen snarled, Put that down. Hes the one we
were to get, you ass, and the archer relaxed the tension on
the bowstring.
Aouel thought, yes, they would want Dùghall. The Imumbarra
Isles were the heart of the Galweigh caberra trade, and if the
Sabirs wanted to take that over, they would have to find out what
he knew, and perhaps work out a deal with him. He was, after all,
one of the Imumbarran gods.
And the Sabirs werent fools; they would want the spice
trade. So for the time, at least, Dùghall would be safe.
He avoided looking at the ambassador, afraid that his eyes might
show too plainly the question he wanted most to ask: What did
you do with Kait?
He might find out too soon several of the swordsmen were
clambering aboard to search the gondola. He stood, forcing his face
to remain impassive, hoping that Dùghall had hidden her,
wishing he could sneak just a quick look at the diplomat but not
daring even the most hurried glimpse.
He prayed for the safety of his friend, and stood sweating in
the hot sun, and finally the Sabir soldiers came back to the
gangway and said, All clear. Found some mail and some silk
and a couple of silver bottles shaped like cats. Nobody else in
there, though.
As the soldiers force-marched him and Dùghall toward the
House, Aouel almost smiled.
Chapter 15
The sound of voices yammering unintelligibly inside his
skull finally brought Ry around. He opened his eyes, intending to
demand silence of the people making all the noise but only
one person sat beside him. That was Yanth, and Yanth dozed on a
chair, a bandage covering part of his head.
The voices shouted louder not from another room or from
far away, but from right inside his head. Three of them, two men
and one woman, argued in the most heated and scathing tones, but
while he could make out each syllable of each of their words
clearly, he couldnt understand anything they said. Further,
he couldnt even identify the language they spoke which
seemed to him both terrible and strange. As a Sabir, trained from
birth to both diplomacy and magic, the languages of Ibera
both living and dead kept few secrets from him. He spoke
most of the living languages fluently and could at least follow
basic conversations in the rest. Of the dead languages, he had
solid knowledge as well; most of the surviving works on magic were
written in the five major tongues of ancient Kasree, which had been
Ibera and Strithia and part of Manarkas before the so-called
Thousand Years of Darkness.
Yet he recognized nothing of the conversation that went on
inside his skull save the tones of rage.
He pressed his fists against his temples and tried to remember
what had happened. He and his friends had been running up the
stairs. Something had exploded inside of his head tremendous
pain and noise had blinded him and driven him to his knees. The
world had filled with the scent of flowers and rot.
And beyond that . . . nothing. Nothing.
What time was it? Where was he? Where were the rest of his
friends? How long had he lain insensate? And what had become of the
Galweigh woman in the meantime?
He sat up. The voices fell silent, but he didnt have the
feeling that they had left him. Only that they waited for
something. It was madness to believe he heard voices in his head,
except he didnt believe himself the sort to go mad.
In a chair next to the cot on which he lay, his best friend
slept. Ry said, Yanth, wake up.
Yanth stirred, groaned, and opened his eyes. My head pains
me, he said, then focused on Ry. Gods, youre
finally awake . . . He frowned and rose from the
chair in a jerky, almost panicked motion, and backed away. Or
are you?
Ry had no patience with nonsense. Of course Im
awake. What a stupid question.
If it were a stupid question, I wouldnt have a gash
in the side of my head, and poor Valard would not be curled in the
next room with his arm broke in two. We mistook you for awake once
before, and you attacked us.
Ry winced. Perhaps he was the sort to go mad; he
remembered nothing of the incident, but he would not disbelieve
Yanth.
What happened?
What do you remember?
Going up the stairs in Galweigh House. Some sort of
explosion, and a terrible smell. Pain. Darkness. Then
nothing.
Yanth sighed and settled himself back into the chair.
There was no explosion in Galweigh House. No smell, no noise.
You were running ahead of us and suddenly you dropped to the floor
and held your head. Your eyes were open, but you said nothing to
us, and no matter what we did, you would give us no sign that you
heard. We tried everything we could think of to wake you, but at
last we realized nothing we knew to do would help, so we carried
you down the stairs again. We left your fathers man in charge
with explicit instructions that if a girl like the one we were
looking for showed up, he was to save her for you. He said he
would. His men were already killing the nonessentials by then and
dragging out the bodies to be burned, but he said he would watch
for such a girl, and that he would not permit her to be killed. We
tried to take you home for help . . . but
. . . Here his face clouded, and he fell
silent.
But what?
Yanth said, I wanted one of your Familys physicks to
see you, but none were available. Something terrible happened to
your Family.
Something inside of Ry knotted, and he swallowed. What
sort of terrible thing?
The physicks dont know. One of your younger cousins
went to the White Hall. He told the physicks that something had
drawn him there. He found many of your relatives . . .
dead . . . and many more . . . ah
. . . changed, the physick told me, but he would not tell
me how.
My parents?
Yanth seemed to shrink. Your mother is badly injured,
though she lives. Your . . . He sighed deeply, and
said, Im sorry, Ry. Your father is dead.
Ry paled. His father had led the Wolves, and through them the
entire Sabir Family. If his father was truly dead, then leadership
of the Family came open. And the new leader would be chosen by
maneuvering among the strongest of those who survived. The
maneuvering would likely kill as many as the disaster had, though
in cleverer ways. How many others are dead? he asked.
And who still lives?
I dont know. The physick I spoke to spared me only
the time he needed to look at you and tell me he could do nothing
for you, and that further he had others in desperate need of his
services. I found out about your parents and the little I did hear
while he checked your breathing and your heart, and then he told me
to take you away from the House and hide you someplace safe,
because he didnt know what had happened to your relatives,
but he could not promise that it would not happen again. And until
any of the survivors of the White Hall could wake up and talk, he
told me to assume the worst.
Was it some trick of the Galweighs? Ry mused, but of
course it had been some trick of the Galweighs. They had discovered
the Sabirs true plan for their destruction and had countered
it.
No, that wouldnt answer it. If the Galweighs were to
blame, their corpses wouldnt be burning in piles on the
grounds of Galweigh House. The Dokteeraks? No again. They had no
Wolves among them the Sabirs and the Galweighs alone among
the Five Families knew the old magics, or dared to use them. Yanth
hadnt said Rys relatives had been attacked by magic,
but the physick would never have dared admit that to someone who
wasnt even Family, much less a Wolf. He had told Yanth those
who survived the attack had been changed, though to Ry, who
had seen the Scars wrought by spell rebound, nothing more needed to
be said. And nothing but magic could have destroyed his father and
injured his mother in the same attack. Nothing else he was
sure of that.
Not the Galweighs. Not the Dokteeraks. He couldnt entirely
rule out a play from the inside he would have no trouble
believing, for example, that his cousin Andrew and his second
cousins Crispin and Anwyn would kill off whatever relatives they
could in order to take over leadership of the Family among
themselves. The only problem with that theory was that neither they
nor any other faction that he was aware of currently held a
majority among the Wolves. No one within the Family would be able
to muster the sort of magical support it would take to subvert the
energy of a spell against the other Wolves in the Family and
to attempt a takeover without a majority would be suicide. Crispin,
Anwyn, and Andrew werent suicidal. That he was sure of.
So the destruction had come from another player. A
powerful player. Who, though? And how? And what did this other
player hope to gain?
* * *
Theyre dead, Kait. Theyre all dead, and you will
be, too, unless you get away from this place.
Stifling air and the stink of alcohol. A soft, heavy weight that
covered her entirely and pushed her to the ground. Her head
pounded, and her eyes refused to work. The voice inside her head
would not be still; she wanted to return to the comfort of
darkness, but some woman she did not know insisted on talking to
her.
Theyre all dead the Sabirs are burning their
bodies now. You could smell the fires if you got up.
She blinked, but what she saw with her eyes open remained the
same as what she saw with them closed exactly nothing. The
perfect blackness of blindness swallowed her. Something bad had
happened. Something had taken her out of the security of the world
she had known; something had changed the rules of the world as she
understood it; something dangerous had opened a door and stepped
through it.
She recalled pain, and a sweet, rotting odor. She closed her
eyes and pressed her fingers to her throbbing skull, and tried to
recall as much as she could of those last moments. The feeling of
growing evil that had been so strong at the Dokteerak party, which
had worsened in the following days, had abruptly overwhelmed her in
the air above the ground; and for just an instant she had felt the
elation of a beast caged that had at last broken free of its bars;
and then she had, impossibly, smelled some sickeningly sweet smell
and what had it been? The name eluded her, but she would
recognize it again if she ran across it. And then an insane babble
exploded in her skull, as if a thousand madmen began shouting all
at once, each trying to get her attention, and the pain of that
bedlam drove her into the dark escape of unconsciousness. And
now?
Airible fuel, she realized. The alcohol smell was airible fuel.
She was still on the airible, but no longer in the passenger part
of the gondola; instead she lay in the space just to the fore of
the fuel chambers, tucked under folds of emergency cloth kept on
hand for en route repairs on the airibles outer skin.
Someone had hidden her. Had the ship landed safely, Dùghall
would have carried her to a physick or taken care of her
himself, knowing what he knew. Instead, she had been carefully
placed in concealment in a part of the ship that was easy to reach
from the passenger section, but intentionally difficult to find.
Further, shed been hidden within that carefully chosen
hiding place, which implied that whoever hid her expected hostile
others to perform more than a cursory search.
Which they did, the unidentified woman said. She spoke
inside of Kaits head, which made her either a sign that Kait
had gone mad, or a sign that the world had. Kait, who didnt
consider herself prone to the weaknesses embraced by many of the
women of her class, preferred to assume the latter.
For the time being, she would accept the presence of the
stranger in her head. She offered information, and Kait needed
information. Once Kait reached safety, she would question the other
womans presence, and her identity, but at that moment, simple
curiosity was a luxury that Kait couldnt afford.
So they searched the ship for me, she whispered.
For anyone who was left. They got the other three.
And who are they?
You already know that.
Yes, she did. When you woke me up, you said the
Sabirs.
Yes.
That made sense. They were the only Family who would dare attack
the Galweighs on their own ground; they were the only ones so evil
or so desperate to expand their power that they would take such a
risk. Apparently theyd succeeded.
So hostile forces held the airible. Kait ran her left hand along
her thigh and felt the comforting shape of the sword pommel. Armed
in human form, she might successfully protect herself without the
dangerous exposure of Shift. She had at least some hope of
vengeance. She listened, and was rewarded with muffled night sounds
and distant but unintelligible voices, and the creak of the airible
as it tugged against the mooring ropes.
She squirmed out to the edge of the bale and breathed slowly.
The stink of the fuel got worse, but the air instantly became
cooler; a more than even trade. She heard breathing just above the
trapdoor that led into her hiding place rapid panting
interrupted by soft whuffles. Whos out there? she
whispered, and received a low whine and a moment of soft scratching
at the trapdoor in response.
A friend of yours, the woman said. He jumped into the
airible when everyone else was gone, and has been lying on the door
ever since.
Kaits skin crawled. Gashta?
The whining became louder, the pawing at the door more
insistent.
The old friend was a wolf, a sometimes-comrade of the hills with
whom she had run deer and peccaries when in her Karnee form. She
had saved his life once, and he rewarded her with a loyalty she
didnt think existed in humans. He was, however, no pet, but a
fully wild wolf who ran the mountaintops through and around
Calimekka, and she could not understand how he came to be aboard
the airible. Either the ship had come down somewhere outside the
walls surrounding Galweigh House, or the walls themselves had been
breached and something had drawn him inside.
Out from under the piles of cloth, her eyes had adjusted to the
dim light. Shed been unconscious for a long time. Night had
fallen; otherwise, light-prisms that ran all along the top of the
work areas of the gondola would have brought in daylight.
What should she do? Attack whoever she found outside the airible
and kill as many as she could before she died? Try to escape to
bring help? Or to raise an army to attempt retaking the House? Or
should she surrender and die without a fight?
Before action, discern the situation,
she murmured. Some of Nas Madibles wisdom and unlike
her uncle Dùghalls beloved Vincalis, the Family as a
whole held Madibles works in high regard. Her tutors ground
him into her skull from the moment she began diplomatic
training.
Discern the situation. The stranger said the wolf was the only
one except for Kait aboard the airible. So she should be safe for
the moment. She brushed her fingertips lightly over the hilt of her
sword, seeking reassurance, then pushed up on the trapdoor. Gashta
resisted only for an instant, then moved off. She slid the trapdoor
out of her way, vaulted into the passenger compartment, and pushed
the door back into place. While she crouched beside it, Gashta
nuzzled her, licked her face, and whined again.
The stranger had been right. No one occupied the compartment.
Now, though, she could hear more clearly the voices on the ground
outside. And she could smell something that the fuel stink had
completely covered: the rich, roasting-pork scent of burning flesh.
Human flesh. Shed witnessed the burning of a Scarred spy in
Calimekkas Punishment Square as part of her diplomatic
training. What she smelled then, she smelled again.
Theyre all dead, the stranger had said. Shed been
right about everything else so far. The Sabirs were out there
burning the dead bodies of her relatives. So Kait had to entertain
the possibility that she was the last surviving member of her
Family.
No. She couldnt think that. Despair was too close, and her
chances of survival slim enough even without it. Theyre
not all dead, she told herself. If I act well, and quickly,
Ill save some of them.
Before action, discern the situation.
She stood, and Gashta growled.
Hush, she whispered, and drew her sword. First she
had to find out where she was.
She crept to the airibles windows and looked out. And her
heart nearly broke. The airible was moored on the landing field of
Galweigh House, and even from where she watched, she could see that
the great gate stood open that gate which had, in her
memory, never stood open for more than the time needed to permit
passage of any approved entrant. She could see the gate clearly in
the dancing light of the flames from a massive pyre that burned
beside it, and she could see, too, the pyre. And the black
silhouettes of the bodies that fueled it. And outside the edge of
the flames, soldiers. Sabir soldiers, with the twin trees of the
Sabir crest clearly outlined on their cloaks.
Galweigh House had fallen.
She swallowed the tears that came, and she and the wolf crept
out of the airible and down onto the airible field. She took her
sword and killed the two men who guarded the field silently,
without either warning or remorse. The House lay under heavy guard,
and she knew that no matter how swift or fierce she was, she would
not be able to rescue any survivors alone. She could choose to die
with them, or she could find help.
Goft lay only twenty leagues to the north and east, and the city
of Maracada held one of the Lesser Houses of the Galweighs, Cherian
House. The Family in Cherian House traded, and held tremendous
riches, and owned an armada of ships and men by the hundreds who
would be strong and fierce and able to fight for what the Family
had lost. She had to reach them.
You havent much time, the stranger said.
Kait already knew that.
The airible was the way to reach Goft, of course, but without a
crew of men to cast off the mooring ropes smoothly, she had a
problem. She had to get off the ground and obtain some height
before the Sabirs noticed her. She lay in the dew-damp grass beside
the wolf, watching the men who moved back and forth in front of the
flames tending the fire. She studied the round lines of the airible
as it tugged against the mooring ropes in the breeze. She tested
the wind. She frowned. Too much of it to loosen the ropes one at a
time; if she did, the airible would swing around and face into the
breeze, or perhaps even unbalance and hang tail-up and she
would be discovered.
There was a way, of course. The Galweighs and their researchers
and implementers held both the secret of airible construction and
the secret of the great engines that powered them. According to her
father, a single Ancient manuscript, which survived through the
whole of the Thousand Years of Darkness, came to rest at last in
the Familys hands full of secrets, that manuscript,
many of which it still kept locked within cryptic comments and
diagrams for machinery whose uses no one in these latter days could
discern. But the House artisans and inventors, moved to a safe,
hidden location, had pried out the facts about powered flight one
by one, and had at last succeeded in giving the Galweighs wings.
And for the last ten years, the Galweighs had guarded those secrets
jealously. Should any airible fall into enemy hands, the pilot knew
to release a hidden lever that would break off all the mooring
ropes simultaneously at the envelope and cast the ship loose. It
would still be flyable, though not landable the pilot would
have to survive a crash once he found a place away from the enemy
to bring the ship down but keeping airibles out of enemy
hands meant more than retrieving a single airship.
Kait knew where that lever was; she had some experience flying
the ship; she could get herself to Goft. Getting safely to ground
once there held its own risks, but she would deal with them when
she got that far.
She ran her fingers along the wolfs hackles, wondering why
hed sought her out, and how hed found her. She could
not take him with her, but she feared to leave him within reach of
the Sabirs. When she began to creep back to the airible, though, he
solved her dilemma for her; he licked her nose once, and bit very
gently on her ear. Then he growled, rose, and trotted along the
wall toward the gate. She watched him for just an instant and
realized other wolves waited at the gate for him.
She wondered if she would ever see him again. Then she crawled
along the ground to the gangway of the airible, launched herself up
and into it as if she were wolf herself, and quickly slid her hand
under the polished wood of the control console to the hidden lever.
She jerked the lever, heard for a fraction of an instant the whine
of cables slipping, and felt the jolt as the airible leaped upward
in an unpowered, awkward lift and then the wolves began to
howl.
Breezes that blew along the clifftop buffeted the airible; Kait
feared that she would strike the trees or the wall before she could
rise above them, so swiftly did the airible move across the ground.
Miraculously, though she felt the gondola scrape along the top of
the wall while the airible shuddered, she lifted free, and floated
upward into the blackness of the night.
Below her the city blinked and shimmered with the soft
illumination of countless thousands of candles glowing forth from
countless thousands of windows; with the brighter fires in the
lamps set by the lamplighters each night as twilight fell; with the
sharper glow of the gas flames in the foundries where, even after
dark, men toiled and sweated; and . . . with the stark
bonfire that sent its greasy coils from the grounds of Galweigh
House down into the already smoke-scented city below, taking with
it much of her Family.
But not all. Not all. She would not let herself believe the
voice of the stranger in her head, the voice that said All gone.
All gone. She would make the Sabirs pay for the life of each
loved one they took from her. She swore by all her gods that she
would destroy them, or die in the attempt.
Chapter 16
Dùghall permitted himself the smallest of smiles
when the wolves began to howl. He tightened his fist over the cut
in his palm; the tiny magical spell that had drawn them to the fire
hadnt been as difficult or cost as much as he had
anticipated. His call had been general to any creature that
would slip within the walls of Galweigh House and watch Kait until
she got safely away, then signal her escape. Hed expected a
bird birds responded well to him. But the wolves answered
first, and seemed eager to come, as if they were familiar with the
House and its confines . . . or with Kait. He didnt
let himself worry about the strangeness of that. The night was full
of magic, even yet, and as a Falcon he knew that all forms of life
responded in their own way to it, and for their own reasons
but that those summoned from good responded with good. They
wouldnt hurt her.
And their howling let him know that she had somehow managed to
get herself to safety outside Galweigh Houses walls. While
curious about how shed managed it, he wasnt surprised.
That image of the wall shed climbed in Halles remained clear
in his mind.
With her safe, the time arrived for his next move. He continued
to lie on the floor, feigning sleep; the Sabir guards had locked
him and the other valuable Galweighs, and such
technicians and artists as theyd found, in a windowless inner
chamber on the fourth floor. Two the House seneschal and a
brawny distant cousin of Dùghalls lay dead in a
corner from injuries they had sustained in an attempted escape. The
guards had refused to summon medical help for them while they
lived, and had (to Dùghalls relief and the rest of his
companions dismay) refused to remove the corpses when they
died. Their bodies lay in the corner next to him hed
bedded down within reach of them by choice.
Dùghall sent cautious mental tendrils out and touched each
of the rooms living inhabitants. Most slept deeply. A few
drifted between sleep and wakefulness. Only one other than himself
lay awake. Dùghall repressed a sigh and, with his tiny spare
dagger, which had escaped the guards careful search
for what guard would think of checking in the tuck beneath the roll
of fat on a middle-aged diplomats belly for a knife no bigger
than a thumb? he reopened the shallow cut in his palm and
dripped his blood onto the floor, and summoned for the one who lay
awake and the few who drifted or fought nightmares a peaceful,
restful sleep.
He tried no such trick on the guards who sat outside the door,
laughing at each others stories of the women theyd
raped and the loot theyd stolen that day. First, the Sabir
men wore amulets made by some Sabir master which protected them
from minor magics. Second, he wanted the bastards outside
the door. It was the best place for them.
When he was sure he alone among the rooms inhabitants
remained awake, he sat up and crawled between the two corpses. He
reached out and touched their cold bodies, feeling for their hands.
When he found them, he placed both on the floor in front of him,
fighting the stiffness that had set in. He would get no blood from
them; he would have to make the offering one of flesh. Flesh would
make the spell stronger, but also harder to control. And the taint
of wild magic that still pervaded the House and the city gave him
pause. No matter how pure his casting, no matter how entirely
defensive its character, the wild magic could add an uncontrollable
twist to it that could send it back to attack him and his, and the
strength of flesh magic could make it deadly. But he could do
nothing and condemn the few survivors of his Family to death and
worse or he could make the attempt at their salvation,
knowing death and worse might still be the result.
In his favor, the Sabirs had burned the other Galweigh corpses.
And they would have, he felt sure, removed their own dead to Sabir
House; until the Sabirs could consecrate Galweigh House to their
own use, any other action would be heretical. An offering of only
two corpses would be a meager number for what he needed, but if any
in the fire lay even partially unburned, they would add strength to
the sacrifice. And the fact that only a few corpses lay within the
Houses walls would keep the strength of the spell within
bounds he might hope to control if it ran amok.
Such a delicate balance the narrow strait between not
enough and too much. He pursed his lips and began.
First he cut the corpses hands across the palm and pressed
the cuts together. He lay his own bloody palm across the top of the
two dead hands and whispered:
By the blood of the living
And the flesh of the dead,
I summon the spirits of Family
Who have gone before.
Without the walls of this room
But within the walls of this House
Enemies have come
And killed,
Have plundered
And pillaged,
Have conquered
And claimed.
Come, spirits of the dead.
All dead flesh within the walls of Galweigh House
I offer as your payment
If you will chase beyond the walls of this House
All alive beyond the walls of this room.
Harm none; draw no living blood;
Inflict no pain.
I ask not vengeance;
I ask only relief.
By my own spirit and my own blood
I offer myself as price to ensure
The safety of every living creature,
Friend and foe,
Now within the Houses walls
Until this spell is done.
So be it.
A cold voice, distant as the dark realm between the worlds yet
close as death itself, murmured in his ear, We accept.
The finger of a spirit traced a line along his cheek, and a tongue
that existed nowhere in the physical world licked the blood from
his palm. Something sighed. Something else chuckled. The hair on
the back of Dùghalls neck prickled, and icy sweat
dripped from his upper lip and his forehead, slid down the furrow
of his spine, and slicked his palms. He had never before summoned
the dead. He hoped fervently that he never would find the need
again.
Then the corpses began to glow, softly, from the inside, as if
they were fat-bodied candles with the wicks burning deep in their
hearts. Soft and red they shone, their light burning brighter as
the bodies became ever more translucent, and then transparent.
Dùghall felt the magic rising, strong as a river. But the
force of the spell far exceeded what he had anticipated. How many
dead had lain within the Houses walls? Had that current of
wild magic taken hold? He could not find the place where the spell
drew extra strength, but while he sought for it, desperate to
control the wildly growing pulse of energy, the magical river rose
to the flood point, to the place where he might have had any hope
of calling it back, and then beyond.
He closed his eyes and prayed that he had cast his spell without
a trace of hatred, without any secret desire for the destruction or
death of his enemies. If he had not, those enemies would surely die
but so would he and everyone in the room with him.
* * *
Hasmal rolled in the berth on the ship, restless, wakened yet
again from nightmare-wracked sleep by the sound of laughter. And
once again the laughter hung only in his memory, tinkling and
feminine, never touching the world he inhabited.
In his dreams the creature who mocked him hovered over him, her
hair red as rubies, her wings flashing and sparkling like gems in
brilliant sunlight, her delicate body no bigger than his hand. She
was a creature of the spirit world the same spirit world he
had invoked in seeking to escape his doom. One of her kind had told
him to flee. His later spells and auguries had led him to this
ship, to a captain who needed a man who could work metal and repair
things.
The previous shipwright had arrived in port with too much money
and too little sense, and had gotten both drunk and in trouble. The
captain, when hiring Hasmal, clearly stated in his terms that he
would not bail his men out of prison (which was how the job came to
be open in the first place); Hasmal, who didnt drink and
whose entire existence at the moment focused on keeping himself out
of trouble, saw no problem in this. Hed been working for the
past few days on getting the ship seaworthy, and the captain had
spent the time (though so far without success) hunting for a cargo.
He assured Hasmal that the Peregrine never waited long in
harbor and that they would surely sail within days.
While not as good as being at sea, that promise seemed
sufficient to get Hasmal out of harms reach. But the spirit
laughter rang in his dreams, and interrupted his sleep, and as he
lay there in the darkness he wondered if he ought not flee upland,
away from people, to hide in the dark wet jungle.
His castings were clear tossed bones, the cards, and even
a solitary late-night check with another of the blood-conjured
spirits reassured him that he was where he needed to be. No matter
how nervous he might become, this was his right path. His ship. The
Peregrine was a form of falcon . . . as he was a
form of falcon and wasnt that a sign in itself? One
falcon would fly the other falcon away from danger and
destruction.
He settled down again in his berth and listened to the
comforting creak of the planks and the lap of water against the
hull. Sweet, soothing sounds that promised imminent escape and
glorious freedom. He drifted to the edge of dreaming, to the
twilight land between waking and sleep. And there the winged spirit
sat, cross-legged in the air, a wicked grin on her face, waving her
fingers at him.
Miserable beast. He strengthened his shields, drawing energy
from the bay beneath him and the currents of air around him and
spinning them into another layer of the wall that kept out evil and
made him seem to be no one a man who made no impression,
left no mark, captured no ones fancy and that gave him
silence. Blessed silence. The spirit, walled out of his mind,
vanished. After a while he slept.
* * *
Get up! Get up or you will die!
A man, by turns annoying and angry, shouted at her from
somewhere in the distance. The girl curled tighter into a ball and
tried to shut his voice out; it was bringing her to wakefulness,
and though she could not remember why, she knew she didnt
want to wake up.
At least move beneath the trees, where youll have some
shelter! Move! Move, girl! You cannot die on me now!
Her body hurt, but not in ways she understood. She didnt
feel attached to the hurts at all. She recognized pain, but it
didnt seem to be her pain. It occurred in places that her
body didnt have. It hurt wrong, though she could not
quite comprehend how that could be. She seemed to have been
inserted into the body of a stranger, and the strangers body
didnt feel things the way she felt them, or smell things the
way she smelled them, or hear things the way she heard them.
Vaguely, she knew that she was cold. The air smelled wrong
sterile and empty. All her life, her world had been scented
by the lush growth of the jungle, the rich dark earth scents, the
profuse perfumes of flowers, and the thousand colliding odors of
the city of Calimekka, and now all of that had been erased and
replaced with nothingness. The cold didnt bother her as much
as the emptiness of smell . . . and of sound. She heard
wind whistling and moaning, and from time to time a distant, sharp
cracking, and nothing else.
Get up! Please get up! I cant let you die, girl. We
need each other, you and I.
Almost nothing else, then. He hadnt left her
yet. Why hadnt he? He was a stranger. Shed never heard
his voice before. In fact, shed never even heard a voice like
his before. He spoke with a faint accent, but one unlike anything
in her experience. And she thought shed heard all of them.
She opened one eye.
Whiteness assaulted her. Something had erased the world, leaving
her in a place as empty as a sheet of vellum untouched by the
scribes pen. Impossible. If she rubbed her eyes, they would
work again. She tried to do just that, but when she moved her arm,
a monstrous clawed hand moved into view and reached for her. She
screamed and tried to scrabble away, and the white ground gave way
beneath her and beside her, and turned to powder that blew into her
nose and her eyes and her mouth, stinging where it touched, and
melting, and tasting like . . .
Snow.
She dropped into a deep drift of it, realizing as she did just
what it was that surrounded her. This was the snow that merchants
brought from far in the south and sold by the cupful in the open
market. She had never imagined the world being covered in the stuff
in her mind, those merchants had always had to dig for the
precious delicacy, mining the earth for pockets of it the way
miners dug out opals and emeralds. Here lay a fortune in snow, so
deep the pocket she stood in reached from her feet to her neck,
stretching away as far as the eye could see in all directions. She
turned, looking for anything else, and at last circled around to
see a small copse of trees not too far away. Endless wind had bent
them until they hunched over like tired old men carrying firewood
on their backs. Their leaves were needle-shaped and short; they
were green, but the green looked dreary and dark to her eyes.
She could not see the source of the voice that had so
insistently harassed her until she woke; neither could she see any
monster. In fact, in the whole world she seemed to be the only
living creature. She wondered where the monster had gone, or the
speaker; she wondered if they were one and the same. Where
are you? she shouted, and immediately, as if from inside her
head, the voice shed heard before whispered, Shhhhh!
Theyll hear you, and you arent ready to face them
yet.
She whirled around, but nothing was behind her. Keeping her
voice down because she didnt like the sound of
theyll hear you, especially not when said with
the frightened tone the stranger used, she said, Dont
hide from me. Come out and let me see you.
I . . . cant come out. And you cant see
me. Im trapped in a place where Ive been kept prisoner
since . . . well, since long before you were born. I can
only send you my voice, but not into your ears. I speak to your
mind, though I can see things through your eyes, and hear things
through your ears.
Danya frowned, and lifted a hand to brush blowing snow from her
face. And once again saw the hand of a monstrosity coming toward
her face. This time she didnt scream. Bits and pieces of
memory were starting to come back to her she began to recall
being in a dungeon for a long time, and then being kept prisoner in
the rooms of her Sabir torturers. Yes. Those days blurred into an
endless pageant of humiliations and degradations and pain. They had
ended, though; she no longer lay chained to the floor. Something
had happened recently something had taken her from the three
of them, but that something had been worse than what they had done
to her . . .
Then she had it. The memory returned, and she wanted to scream,
but did not. Instead, she stared at the hand. Her hand. Tiny dark
copper scales covered it like armor, right to the fingertips that
terminated in hard, black, curving talons. The scales moved up the
arm, becoming larger and lighter in color, so that at the elbow
they were a bright copper, and at the shoulder, where spikes of
bone or horn jutted from above and below the joint, they were pale,
almost tan, but still with the same metal sheen. She moved the hand
and its twin to her face, and closed her eyes so that she
didnt accidentally scratch them out, and she felt her face.
Nothing of the woman she had once been remained. She now found a
sharp crest of bone running from the top of her skull down to the
much-widened space between her eyes. Her nose swept forward, as
long as one hand, part of a lean muzzle. Her teeth felt like
daggers rows of daggers. More spikes erupted from the angle
of her jaw on either side of her face a face now entirely
covered by tiny, pebblelike scales.
Not until her fingers tangled into a heavy braid of long soft
black hair did she begin to weep. The hair, now wet and in some
places frozen, felt no different than it had before she served as
sacrifice to the Sabirs. Before their magic Scarred her. The hair
was still human, though she would never again be.
Ignoring the voice that implored her to move to the relative
shelter of the copse of trees, she dropped to her knees and covered
her eyes with her hands and sobbed. The invisible stranger kept
telling her if she didnt find shelter, she would die. That
suited her perfectly. She wanted to die.
Cold tears clung to her face and froze. The bitter wind howled
around her and began to cut into her. In the distance, so far away
that it might almost have been another voice of the wind, something
screamed. Her heart howled out its pain and grief for all that she
had lost and all she would never have again. She fell toward
voluntary oblivion, looked at the darkness of surrender and easy
death, and almost . . . almost . . . almost let
herself tumble in.
Then, slowly, her sobs grew softer, and her tears fewer. Danya
lifted her head and stared out at the bleak expanse of nothing that
lay in all directions. Hellish nothing, empty of all she had once
loved. She had lost her Family, her world, her friends and
in this twisted body she wore, she had to acknowledge that she had
lost them forever. She could never go back and be Danya Galweigh,
Wolf of the Galweighs, again. Her Family had not rescued her, had
not ransomed her, had left her in the hands of enemies, and she
could not and would not forget that. She had suffered in the hands
of her captors, and she had expected to die many times, and wished
to die many more. She hated the monsters who had tortured her. She
would never escape the sounds of their voices, the feel of their
touch, the bitter vision of their faces.
But she was alive. She was alive, and she was free, and no
matter what the Galweighs had not done, and no matter what the
Sabirs had done, she was now in a better position than any of them.
Because she was alive, and they could not know that. And she knew
who they were. And she knew where to find them.
And she would find them, no matter how long it took, no matter
what it cost, no matter what she had to do. She would find the
people who had abandoned her, and those who had tortured her, and
those who had sacrificed her, and she would make them pay.
She stood, and shook the snow from her body, and lifted her
head. Let them lie in their warm beds, safe in the comfort of their
ignorance. She was coming.
She was coming.
Very good, the voice of her unseen ally whispered in her
thoughts. Very good indeed. I thought you were strong enough to
survive. If you desire revenge, I will do everything in my power to
help you get it. Anything, Danya. But first I suggest we get you to
shelter, and perhaps food. Because you wont be able to make
them pay if you die here.
You can get me to shelter?
I can direct you. I am limited in what I can do but I
have ways of finding things.
Why would you?
Silence for a moment. Then, Because I know what happened to
you. Because I know what thats like. Because I
didnt survive the things that happened to me. You
wouldnt be wrong to never trust anyone again, but I can tell
you that Ive been where you are now, and I have more reason
than you could ever believe to help you get what you want. You can
help me, Danya and I can help you.
Danya considered that. She did not know how the spirit had found
her, or why; she knew nothing of the person he had been. She did
know, though, that she had no other allies, and was unlikely to
survive to find them on her own.
Lead me, she said. I will follow.
Chapter 17
Once in the sky and safely away from Galweigh House, Kait
confronted the stranger who looked through her eyes, listened
through her ears, and smelled the damp night air through her nose.
The stranger kept silent, so that only the sense of presence and
unfamiliar weight and the strangers occasional restless
shifting inside the recesses of her mind convinced her that the
silent, watchful presence was not a figment born of imagination and
the days burden of grief and horror.
Kait started the engines in midair once she was sure she was
well past the point where any of the Sabirs might hear them. She
fought the tailwind that kept pushing the airible north more than
west. And when the airship was securely en route to Goft, she said,
Now you can stop hiding and tell me who you are. And
what you are.
The stranger in her mind sighed. Does it matter? I can help
you.
It matters. Are you a demon of the sort which possesses
people and drives them to speak to the air and foam at the mouth?
Or are you a god who wants to require a task of me? Or are you
something else?
Nothing so grand as either a demon or a god. My name is
Amalee Kehshara Rohannan Draclas.
Kait froze when she placed the name. Youre my
great-great-great-great-great-grandmother? Amalee Draclas was
a martyr, dead nearly two hundred years, and victim of none other
than the Sabirs. Her torture and murder, according to Family
history, had been carried out in front of the walls of Galweigh
House, in full sight of her husband and children.
Yes.
Kait didnt know what to say.
You doubt me.
Yes.
Youd be a foolish girl if you didnt. I can prove
who I am to you, though. And I can help you get revenge on the
Sabirs.
That her many-times-great-grandmother would want revenge on the
Sabirs, Kait could well believe. But that she should appear as a
voice in Kaits head . . .
Magic released me from the place where I had been imprisoned
since the day the Sabirs murdered me. I have no body, of course.
But I remember who I am, and my life before I was killed. And when
I was released, I sought out a descendant. You were the one that
survived.
That makes sense, I suppose, though I never truly believed
in spirits that visited the living. I always thought the dead went
between the worlds and were reborn into new bodies and new
lives.
Your theory isnt too far from the mark . . .
unless sadistic torturers trap the spirit and cage it. I would
surely have lived again before now, had they not done what they did
to me.
Kait recalled the mayhem that had pushed her over the edge of
the abyss into unconsciousness. Many voices had fought for
her attention. Some of them no, most of them had been
frightening.
I wasnt the only spirit so trapped, Amalee said.
And some of those with whom Ive spent the last thou
. . . ah, two hundred years were evil. Truly
evil.
Kait accepted that explanation.What happened to all those
others?
Amalee didnt answer.
Grandmother . . . what happened to all those
others?
The response held an air of weary sadness. I dont know.
They might have gone between. Or . . . perhaps
not.
Amalee didnt want to talk after that, and Kait needed to
concentrate. The island of Goft made for a difficult target on a
dark, windy night.
And later, as she watched the lights on the Goft coast slide
nearer and then drift slightly to her left, that difficulty became
worse. Her fuel supply was dwindling rapidly, and she needed to
come around into the wind so she could hold the airible steady
while she jumped into Maracadas bay. One engine sputtered and
died; the airible hadnt gotten its ground maintenance when it
came in at the House. The other three engines were starting to
choke and miss, making the sounds they made when the fuel began
running out. She had only gotten to Goft because of the assistance
of the tailwind. Facing a headwind, she would have been engineless
and adrift long before. Now Maracadas harbor lay beneath her,
but she felt sure she would only be able to make one pass over it
before the fuel and her luck ran out. She needed to get out of the
airible quickly.
She frowned and tugged harder at the rudder pull. At the same
time, she shifted the ballast forward and nosed the ship down
toward the surface of the water. She wanted to bring the airible as
close as she dared before she brought the nose back up and released
it to the wind. If she had to, she could crash it into the bay and
sink the airible before she swam away, but Maracada was full of
strong swimmers and divers and salvagers, and someone might dredge
up the engines or the envelope and make use of the Familys
secrets. Far better for Galweigh interests if she could set the
ship adrift on the easterly wind and let it crash into the
trackless expanse of the ocean. No one would find it then.
She edged the rudder over farther and the airible tracked south
to southeast. The full reach of Maracadas bay spread out
beneath her, crowded with ships, lively still with lights; in spite
of the darkness crews ferried cargo in to shore or out to their
ships in longboats or hurried to or from their liberties on land.
She dropped closer to the surface of the water, and pulled the
hatch open. She didnt want the airible to strike the masts of
any of the ships that lay in the harbor. To prevent that, she would
have to act quickly. She checked that her dagger and her sword were
both strapped tightly to her sides; she tightened the laces on her
boots. She had to bring the ship as close as possible to the
surface of the water, then nose it back up again sharply, and jump
before it rose too high. She was a strong swimmer, far stronger
than any normal human, and the surface of the bay looked calm
enough; she didnt fear that her clothes or her weapons would
drag her under. She had quick enough reflexes to get out of the
ship before it rose too high. But she was tired and her head hurt,
and the pain and grief of the days events had caught up with
her. She stared down at the rippled mirror of water below her and
wondered how bad it would be to sink to the bottom of the bay and
never rise.
Ive heard its a painful way to die, Amalee
said. And while it would solve your problems, it
wouldnt do anything for your hopes of revenge.
True enough. Kait resented her dead ancestors intrusion
into her thoughts, but part of her was perversely grateful that she
had been forced to face reality. Dead, she could do nothing to help
any survivors, nor could she avenge the dead. Shed wanted to
serve her Family. Now she was more than a very junior diplomat. Now
her Family needed her desperately.
She set the airible on the course shed planned, steeled
herself against the momentary paralysis of fear, and jumped as the
ship began to soar upward. Shed judged her moment well
she fell clear of ships and dinghies and other obstacles but
shed failed to anticipate the effect that dropping from a
great height onto the surface of the water would have on her. She
smashed into the bay as if she had hit dry land; the rock-hard
water slapped her and slammed her and the shock stunned her. Then
the bay swallowed her, and she felt herself slipping beneath the
surface. The water closed over her head.
Both her mind and her dead ancestor screamed, Swim, damn you!
Swim! but Kait could not. Her body refused to respond. She was
drowning and she knew it and she could only sink deeper into the
swirling currents of the bay. Her lungs burned as she breathed in
water.
Her body, even in its stunned state, responded to that threat.
It brought out its ultimate weapon. Kait felt a subdued fire along
the sides of her neck, and without realizing the moment that it
happened, she found herself breathing the salt water of the bay.
She blinked, and discovered her eyes could make out shapes
underwater even in the darkness. The Shift was only partial; her
last Shift had been too recent, perhaps, or the shock of hitting
the water prevented her body from doing more. But the Karnee reflex
was enough.
She could breathe, and after a while she could move, and after
an even longer while, she managed to swim to shore. She dragged
herself up onto a part of the sandy beach away from light and
motion and humanity. When the Shift subsided and she knew she could
walk among people again without drawing death down upon herself,
she got up and brushed as much sand from her clothes as she could,
dried both her sword and dagger on her shirt, and walked through
the town and up the long hill to Cherian House, where her Family in
Maracada resided.
She had to wait with the guards at the gate of the House while
someone who could vouch for her could be found and brought out. The
someone, when he finally came, was a distant cousin of about her
age who had joined her in Galweigh House for a years worth of
diplomatic classes before he returned home and took up his duties
as a trader. His name was Fifer, and Kait had always thought him
both homely and dull. Time hadnt done much to improve
him.
He stood inside the gate and studied her with sleep-bleared
eyes. He didnt offer a smile or a greeting or give her any
sign that she was welcome. He simply stared; then sighed; then
turned to the night gatemaster and said, Yah. Shes my
cousin. You can let her in.
Hello, Fifer, she said.
You have no more sense now than you had before, he
told her. This is no hour to disturb a House. Ive had
to wake Father so he could greet you. And you look
appalling.
She didnt explain to him; she wouldnt get his
sympathy even if she told him what had happened, and didnt
need it anyway. She would hope for better treatment from her
uncle.
Fifer led her through the House into audience with her uncle
Shaid, who was paraglese of the Family in Goft. When hed
delivered her, he stood by the door, waiting to be released, a
courtesy his father pointedly ignored.
The Goft paraglese seemed unrelated to his youngest son.
Handsome, smiling, and affable, he greeted her in the house library
with a glass of wine, some corn tortillas, and a bowl of fresh
fruit one of the servants was finishing laying out as Kait came in.
He appeared undisturbed that hed been dragged from bed at
such a dreadful hour.
Kait, dear child, you look like death. And why hasnt
my son taken you to get fresh clothes? I would have waited to see
you.
Kait took the proffered glass of wine and sipped slowly.
Im fine, Uncle, she said. What I have to
tell you is more important than a change of clothes or a shower.
Those will wait the news I bring should not.
He showed her to the seat nearest the food and settled across
from her. Then tell me, dear. How did you end up at my door,
and in such a state?
She told him the entire story, and watched as he grew pale. When
she was finished, he leaned back in his seat and closed his eyes.
Ah, gods. Galweigh fallen, and the Sabirs ascendant in
Calimekka. Tears glistened at the corners of his tightly
closed eyes, which he knuckled roughly away. And of the war
in Halles? Have you word?
No word. Dùghall, Tippa, and I left before daybreak
of this day just past, before the battle was to begin and
Ive already told you of our arrival in Calimekka. I had no
way to get news before I escaped.
He rubbed his temples, sighed, opened his eyes. Perhaps we
have not lost the day there. Support from that direction would be
helpful.
Kait thought of the men and women in Halles who had served her
Family so faithfully, and bit her lower lip. The Sabirs knew
we would be back in Calimekka with our defensive forces away; they
were ready for us in the one place. I have to assume they were
ready for us in the other.
Then we must act as if no help will come from the
west. He frowned. A challenge, and a
trial. . . . Well, we shall triumph somehow.
He straightened his shoulders and smiled grimly. Kait, I must
think tonight on how Ill implement the rescue of any
survivors, even before I consider the retaking of the House and the
destruction of the Sabirs. Go shower and rest, have the night staff
bring you something from the kitchen if youre still hungry,
and Ill be sure youre sent fresh clothing. Tomorrow
when you wake, meet with me and well discuss the layout of
the House and anything else you can give me that will help us going
in. I havent been to Galweigh in years, and though Fifer has,
Im afraid he hasnt demonstrated such powers of
observation as would make me want to base a battle plan on his
recommendations.
He rose, and she rose, and, as she did, she heard a soft
shuffling behind the wall of books nearest them. Shaid took no
notice of the sound, and Kait wondered if his ears could hear it.
Someone stood behind that wall, and had been very quiet there for
all the time she and the paraglese had spoken, or else had just
arrived. She wondered which.
Fifer, give her the Ambassadors Room, please. That
is well away from the busy parts of the House; shell need a
good nights sleep, and I would not have her disturbed.
Well have much to do tomorrow, she and I.
Yes, Father.
Shaid hugged her tightly. Kait, my condolences on your
losses. We have all of us lost much tonight, but I know youve
lost more than most. I want you to know that Ill do
everything in my power to bring the bastards to justice for what
theyve done. Not just for the Family, but for you as
well.
Thank you, Uncle, she said, and bid him good night,
and followed Fifer out the door.
It closed behind them, and as it did, Amalee said, Wait. You
havent heard enough yet.
Kait thought fast. She caught Fifers sleeve and said,
Hold up, would you? I have something in my boot. Stay just a
moment; I dont think I can stand to walk another step without
getting it out. She leaned against the library wall and began
tugging at the wet leather . . . but slowly.
Inside the room, she heard the soft groan of a secret door
sliding open. And Shaids voice saying, That confirms
the rumors, then.
Rather neatly. One survives to tell the tale. What do you
intend to do? The other voice was female; the accent
highborn, the tone cultured, the attitude coldly amused.
Wait, of course. See what the Sabirs intend to offer in
the way of prisoner exchanges, see if we can work out some sort of
deal with them and eventually retake the House, of course.
Not soon.
Which shall make having the girl around uncomfortable, I
should think. Shes sure to want to mount a rescue
immediately.
I would rather, Shaid said softly, let the
Calimekka line of the Family die out entirely. With our bloodline
in primacy, we stand to gain legitimate claim to the Calimekkan
estates, and we no longer have to have approval for our proposed
trade routes. And we can do as we will with the colonies. If even
one of them survives, of course, their whole line maintains
primacy.
Kait tugged the boot free and made a show of feeling around
inside of it while Fifer fidgeted, deaf to the conversation behind
the door.
Then you dont intend to let the girl worry you about
a rescue.
The girl? What girl? She must have died in an airible
crash, or drowned in the sea, or been waylaid by bandits, for she
certainly never reached here.
Very wise, Shaid. Very wise. Shall I attend to the matter
for you?
Personally. The fewer people who might remember her, the
better. Ill make sure everyone else who saw her come in is
given special assignments until we can be sure the rest of the main
line is dead.
Kait pretended to find a stone and put it in her pocket. She
started putting the boot back on again, and again made the process
look difficult.
Now?
No. Not until shes in the room. Fifer will come back
and tell us when she arrives. I dont want any, ah
. . . disturbing noises that might later recall
themselves to someones memory. And no one else is currently
on the third floor.
Kait gave the boot a sharp pull and it slid onto her foot. She
had no idea who the woman in Shaids confidence was. She
thought, since she knew her death had been planned, that she could
probably protect herself from that first attack. However, she would
still be where she wasnt wanted, and where she could not get
help. She would lose time, and she couldnt fight off the
whole House if Shaid was determined to see her dead. Uncle
Dùghall had been right in telling her that outsiders in a
House offered opportunities, and need not expect a warm
welcome.
Uncle Dùghall . . .
A tear slid from the corner of her eye and she brushed it
roughly away. She would live, and she would avenge the people she
loved, even if she had to do it alone.
Now, though, she had to do the unexpected. And she thought,
since Shaid had been kind enough to hand over one of his sons to
her, the present would be the best time for a surprise.
Im ready, she said. Would you mind
taking me by the kitchen first? Im starved, and Id love
to take some food up to my room with me.
Fifer regarded her with blank eyes. You can call to the
kitchen from the room and have something brought up to
you.
Id rather eat on the way. I havent had any
food since the day before yesterday.
He sighed. Its late and Im tired.
Fi-fer. I had to steal an airible, fly it here,
then swim to the House from the bay. I bet Im tireder than
you are. Besides, Im the one who found you when you got lost
in the lower levels of my House. You at least owe me a few
favors. She tried to give him a teasing smile, though after
what shed just heard, all she could feel was rage.
The stupid eyes regarded her with distaste. He sighed. The
kitchen.
Yes. The kitchen.
He dragged down one hallway, took a cross-corridor, and trudged
down a spiraling back stair lit intermittently by oil lamps,
sighing on every other step.
They went down two stories without speaking to each other. No
servants passed them in all that time. Finally Kait asked,
What floor is the kitchen on?
Ground. Of course. Were almost there.
Kait casually rested her hand on her dagger. The next moment
would tell a great deal. The archway that would lead to the kitchen
appeared to their left, but it didnt lead directly into the
kitchen. Instead it led into a hall. A dark, empty hall. Good. The
stairs did not end at the ground floor, but continued downward.
Kait fell half a step behind Fifer and wrapped her left hand over
his mouth. With her right hand, she pressed the dagger to his
throat. Listen carefully, she said, and
dont make a noise. I dont like you, and I like you even
less now that I know your father intends to have me killed tonight.
But I wont hurt you if you do as I tell you. She
tightened her grip to emphasize her Karnee strength, and felt the
struggle go out of him. You understand me?
He nodded. He breathed fast, and she could hear his heart
racing. Wheres your treasury?
He mumbled something, but of course with her hand over his mouth
it didnt come out clearly. She said, Point.
He pointed down the stairs.
Take me.
He went. Funny how he didnt sigh constantly anymore. Maybe
he was no longer sleepy. The stairway ended in a metal-ribbed
stonewood door. The door had no latch and no handle, no keyhole and
no window. She knew of such doors Galweigh Houses
treasury had one just like this one. The person who opened the door
had to slide fingers into the correct series of holes and push the
latches aside. Pushing even one wrong latch released the knife
mechanism that neatly cut off every one of the fingers just below
the knuckle. Very effective at keeping people out, those doors.
Open it, Kait said.
Mmmm mmaaaahhh, Fifer said, shaking his head.
Kait pressed the edge of the dagger against his neck hard enough
to blanch the skin. You cant? Of course you can. Or, at
least, lets hope that you can. I cant let you go or
youll make noise or run for help. If I have to deal with the
door, Ill need both my hands free, and Ill have to kill
you first in order to have them free. Then Id still have to
cut off your hands so I could have something to push into the
holes, because Im not going to use my own fingers. I would
rather not kill you I would rather not have to kill
anyone . . . else. But if it comes down to you or me,
cousin, you need not ask which way the bones will fall.
She tightened her grip again, and he groaned.
You going to do what I tell you?
He nodded.
Then do it.
He rested his hands along either side of the door, and slid each
finger slowly into one of the depressions. He took his time, and
Kait didnt hurry him while she knew the combination to
her fathers treasury door, she wouldnt want to have to
stick her fingers into it in a hurry, either.
Fifer swallowed so hard his body shook, and pushed the levers
simultaneously, and after an instant Kait heard a click from inside
the wall. Fifer removed his hands, and the door rolled silently
into the left wall.
Kait stepped on the heel of Fifers right boot and said,
Pull your foot out of it . . . slowly.
He wriggled a little, but removed the boot. Kait shoved it into
the opening, right against the groove where the door would slide
when it closed. Then she forced her cousin into the treasury.
As soon as they stepped across, the vault door slammed closed
behind them, but it didnt close all the way, thanks to the
boot. The insides of treasury doors required a different
combination, and Kait didnt want to take her cousin back out
of the vault with her. As long as the door remained wedged open,
she wouldnt have to.
They stood to one side of a wonderland where neatly sorted
jewels in glass cases rose from floor to ceiling, and stacks of
bars of precious metals towered so high and so wide they created
walls of their own, and banks of wooden drawers lined one wall,
while beautiful embroidered silks and stacks of Ancients
books and carvings in ebony and amber and ivory sat collecting dust
on shelves along another. This is very easy, Kait said.
I need money, and not even very much.
Fifer pointed to the wooden drawers.
Fine. She marched him in the opposite direction. The
shelf that housed the embroidered silks had ceremonial robes folded
to one side and the ceremonial robes came with belts. She
pushed Fifer to the floor, drew her sword, sheathed her dagger, and
took a couple of the belts. As soon as he was tied and gagged, she
hurried over to the drawers.
The wealth of a small nation lay within them. Coins of gold and
silver lay in heaps and piles, sorted by denomination and issuing
mint: gleaming hexagonal Dokteerak daks; tree-stamped Sabir farnes;
Masschanka robans; Kairn slaudes; Galweigh preids; and from outside
the realms of the Five Families, monies from the Strithian empire,
the Manarkan Territories, and places unknown to Kait monies
stamped with the visages of the Scarred and their world. Enough
money lay in those drawers to let her raise an army of mercenaries
a thousand times over. She would hire from the colonies if
possible, from allies if available. From foreigners if
necessary.
Dont waste your time trying to find mercenaries,
Amalee said. Im telling you, the Family is dead. But you
can bring them back.
From the dead? Kait blurted.
I know of an Ancient artifact that will let you
. . . ah, resurrect them.
From the dead. She recalled
Dùghalls amused speculation about the existence of such
an artifact the Mirror of Souls and his comment that
its existence was almost certainly a myth.
He was wrong. The Mirror of Souls exists, and it works. Get
enough money to hire a ship and a crew that can sail you north and
east across the ocean, and I will take you to it. You want to help
our Family, then get the Mirror.
North and east would take her across the Bregian Ocean. Few
ships made that crossing, and the lands on the other side were
mostly unexplored.
But if her ancestor was right and she had a chance to bring her
Family back . . .
Her Family. The Family that shed believed so much better
than the Sabirs or the Dokteeraks, the Kairns or the Masschankas.
Her Family, with an uncle who had turned on her as quickly as that
Dokteerak paraglese had turned on his relative and for what?
Because she stood in the way of his ascension to Galweigh House.
And more power. And more wealth.
Shed always been told, and had always believed, that
loyalty among Family members came above everything else that
it was the very essence of what being Family meant.
She sagged against the wall, for the moment all the fight gone
out of her. She felt tears start down her cheeks; she tasted their
salt, and remembered her mothers warm arms around her when
shed cut herself. Remembered the comfort of her fathers
voice, calming her down and helping her find her way to her
humanity when, Shifted into Karnee form, she had to hide away in
the dark places in the House, after they first moved there from
their country home. Shed been so afraid then. Afraid that
someone would see her, discover her secret, kill her as that child
in Halles had been killed. But her parents had saved her. Over and
over, they had saved her life. And her brothers and sisters had
helped her, and she had survived to earn the chance to repay
them.
Except she was too late.
No way to repay the dead. If she listened to Amalee, she would
only be deluding herself. At best, the Mirror of Souls was a
thousand years lost, and irretrievable. At worst, it was a myth.
The Sabirs and their treachery were real. The Goft Galweighs and
their treachery were real, too. And she couldnt even
get her revenge on the bastards whod destroyed everything she
had ever loved in the world, because the surviving members of her
Family would pay the spawn of evil their own souls to feed their
lust for Galweigh House and the power it represented, and the
treasure it housed.
All her life, her Family had been everything to her, because
shed been so sure the Galweigh name was synonymous with
everything which was good, and just, and right in the world.
Shed been wrong to believe. There was, she discovered, Family
which was a political thing and knew no loyalty and
family, which was a thing of blood ties and love, and for
which she would gladly have given her life.
And if the only chance you have is a bad chance, is that not
still better than having no chance at all? Is it, Kait? Think,
girl. If the Mirror of Souls is lost forever, you have lost nothing
that you had not already lost. But if it exists, and if you can
find it, you will regain something you could have in no other
way.
Kait stood straight and brushed her tears from her cheeks with
one sleeve. She would have given her life for any of her family.
She would still give her life. For even the slender chance
that she might see her mother and father alive again, and her
brothers and sisters. . . . If she could hold on to
the hope that her uncle Dùghall would once again tell her his
bawdy islander jokes and quote his obscure philosophers
. . . if she could even dream that one day beloved
Galweigh voices might ring again through the halls of the House
. . . for that, she would sail the almost-uncharted
ocean, trek across the wastes of Scarred lands. For the lives of
those she loved, she would risk everything.
Maybe she couldnt believe in Family anymore. But she would
never stop loving her family.
The muscles of Kaits jaw clenched so tight they burned. If
she wanted the chance, she had to act. Fast. She started filling a
small leather bag with gold. She attached one bag of gold to the
belt beneath her tunic, and started on a second.
Good girl. I knew I could count on you. Now, then, once you
get your money, steal one of those books on the shelf the
older, the better and flee this place. When youre
safe, and weve told some greedy captain the lie that will get
you berth and allies in finding the Mirror, Ill give you the
proofs you want about me. Only get to safety first.
She filled and hid the second purse. Then she dumped a handful
of silver coins and a few bronzes into her pockets a woman
who showed gold in the wrong places wouldnt live long.
Finally, she dug through the Ancient books until she found one
so old she couldnt even recognize the letter forms.
That one will do.
Kait didnt know why she would need it, but better to have
and not want than to want and not have, as Wain Pertrad wrote. When
she had what she needed, she mockingly saluted her cousin and
fled.
* * *
Dùghalls spell spun itself into life. Down in the
black heart of the silent House, the bodies of the dead Wolves
glowed, casting light in their secret chamber a chamber
which would afterward be undisturbed by light for long years. Their
radiance cast amorphous, shifting shadows, then dispelled all
shadows in a burst of brilliance that seemed to destroy all
darkness. But the bodies, devoured entirely by the spirits of the
dead, disappeared without a trace of dust or ash, as if they had
never been. And darkness claimed the room once more for its
own.
In other rooms in the dark labyrinth between the main House,
long-forgotten victims of violence, scattered suicides, and two
small children who had wandered too far and never found their way
back to the realm of daylight before starving cast their own small
shadows before disappearing. Rats and cats and mice and snakes who
had found dark corners in which to die sparkled like stars for an
instant, then were gone forever. The meat in the Houses cold
room vanished in like manner, as did food left uneaten that waited
in the trash bins for disposal. The graves of the dead Galweighs in
the Family boneyard lit up inside, though no one could see. And out
on the grounds proper, the embers of the fire that had burned the
dead glowed more brightly for a moment. And two brilliant lights
out on the landing field where the airible had waited showed that
it had escaped, before ensuring that the fate of the two men who
had been guarding it would never be known.
When the last of the lights died away, an instants hush
fell over Galweigh House. The guards and soldiers and officers
looked at each other, words lost to them. And in that hush, the
spirits of the dead reached out and touched the living.
* * *
Trev leaned against the stone wall in the hallway, staring at
the door his searching had revealed. The passageway behind it led
into darkness, a blackness that his lamp refused to illumine. His
skin twitched as if touched by a thousand cobwebs, and sweat
dripped from his forehead down his nose and beaded on his upper
lip. An instant before, hed seen the reflection of pale red
light from beyond the point where the passageway twisted; in the
instant that his eyes had registered it, it had vanished.
Something waited down there. Something bad, that knew he
existed, and that now hid in the darkness, waiting for him to move
into reach.
Why go on? Rys woman wasnt in the House anymore
Trev would almost have staked his life on it. After Ry had
that seizure, hed volunteered to stay behind to look for her,
but the longer and harder he looked, the more certain he became
that she was nowhere in reach. Why keep looking? He couldnt
say. Maybe secretly he wanted to earn more of Rys admiration,
or to take Yanths place as his closest confidant. Maybe
underneath everything, he hoped for advancement as Ry advanced in
the Family. Though he despised such base motives in others, he had
to admit they compelled him as much as friendship for Ry. Maybe
more.
The darkness ahead of him seemed to deepen, to gain weight and
presence, and Trev swallowed hard. He wouldnt live in
Galweigh House if the Sabirs made him paraglese of it. The damned
place felt alive to him, as if it were watching every step he
took.
You cant take her home with you even if you do find her,
he told himself. You try, and shell Shift and slaughter
you.
The darkness began to whisper.
Sibilant almost-formed words caught at the edge of Trevs
hearing. Pattering in the blackness, and dry squeaks, as if rats,
pressed to dust by the weight of the thick dark, came at him to
protest their fate. A draft of dank air brushed his cheek, and he
stepped back, away from the door, caught off guard by the faint,
unpleasant carrion reek it carried.
Wait, the darkness whispered, and he didnt know if
he heard the word or only imagined it.
She wouldnt be in there.
He closed the door and slowly backed away, keeping his back to
the wall so that no one would surprise him. His lamp cast long and
dancing shadows, and he wished that dawn would come and chase them
away. Whispering began behind him. He spun and squinted into the
dark. Saw nothing. Heard the door he had closed open behind him.
Jerked around, sword raised, lantern lifted so that he could make
out the outline of his enemy.
Saw nothing.
But the carrion smell bore down on him, a moving wall. Nothing
in front of him. Nothing behind him.
The cold, damp hands of nothing reached through his clothes to
his skin, stroked him, prodded him. The long-dead voice of that
nothing murmured, You belong to me, and this time he
could not doubt that what he heard, he heard with his ears and not
with his imagination. What he felt, he felt for real. He flailed
out with his sword, but his blade found no resistance in its arc to
the floor, and steel rang hard on stone, and the shock of the blade
striking ran through the palm of his hand and up his wrist, and he
cried out. Lost his balance. Dropped the lamp.
It smashed to the floor, and for a moment the oil burned
brightly in its puddle on the stone, and he leaped back to escape
its spread. Carrion arms caught him. Held him, while the flames
guttered down to blackness, and the darkness that was more than the
absence of light descended with full fury. A carrion body that he
could not touch, could not hurt, though it could touch him, pressed
flesh to his flesh, and the corpse chill of it and the stench of it
flowed through him. He believed he would die. Too frightened to
make a sound, or even to move, he wished that he could faint and
find that the sun would wake him in the morning, in his own bed,
the victim of nothing more than too much wine and a too-vivid
dream.
Mine.
Lips moldy and rotting brushed against the nape of his neck, and
fingertips that alternated putrefaction with bony fleshlessness
caressed his chest, his belly, his cheek, his back.
Ive waited for you for so long . . . for
so long . . . for so long . . .
She wasnt there. Nothing was there. But he could not break
free, could not flee, and could not fight, and his sword dropped
from nerveless fingers and clattered to the stone. His feet left
the ground as she lifted him into the air and bore him off
blinded by the impenetrable blackness that surrounded her, by the
fact that the only noise she made as she moved was a soft rustle
that might almost have been the sound of a long-vanished silk skirt
brushing the floor. He lost any sense of direction, of place. He
did not know if she traveled up with him, or down, or for that
matter which of those two things would be more frightening. He was
the captive of death itself, and he could not think or reason or
plan beyond that fact.
From the floors below him he heard screams and the echoes of
screams. They got closer, became louder; did he move toward them,
or they toward him?
The all-enveloping blinding blanket of darkness, the fetor, the
fear, the screams of countless unseen others they were the
walls and floor and ceiling of his world, the perimeters of his
existence beyond which nothing else was.
Then they were gone.
He lay on a bed of stones, breathing cool, clean air scented
with morning dew and loam, and the sounds that surrounded him were
the moans and sobs of others, but also the sounds of a city moving
to life in the time before the break of day. Human shouts,
good-natured or angry, and carts and beasts of burden in the
streets, and farmers bringing livestock into market someplace
below. In the valley. In the world beyond Galweigh House.
His eyes cleared, the unnatural darkness erased in an instant.
He rolled to his side; sat up; looked around. He sat in the middle
of a graveled road, surrounded on all sides by the Sabir troops who
had taken Galweigh House, and by the officers who had led them, and
by the Family who had come to direct the taking of the spoils. The
road and the grassy berm to either side could have been a
body-strewn battlefield, except that none of those who lay stunned
and in shock seemed to be harmed. Before him, the road twisted into
moonlit jungle. Behind him . . .
He turned, and saw through the frame of palms and many-trunked
strangler figs the edge of the wall of Galweigh House, and a part
of the gate the Sabirs had paid so much to get opened. It slid shut
as he watched. Leaving him and the rest of the conquerors once
again locked beyond the impenetrable wall, and the House in the
hands of the dead.
Chapter 18
The woman who walked into the tavern where Ian Draclas
sat sipping bitter mango beer with three outrageous liars caught
his attention more for what was wrong about her than what was
right. She strode to the bartender without bothering to acknowledge
the interested glances she got from the men at the tables, which
was odd enough; most of the women in the tavern at that time of
night wanted the glances, and the money they could make from the
men who gave them. Additionally, this woman looked like shed
been dunked in a well, then dipped in dirt; but nothing about her
said poor or in hard times. Her clothes,
entirely wrong for the area and the time of night, were outdoor
garb made for protection from the elements and for durability. He
studied them with a practiced eye; they were well made.
Absolutely top quality. As were the sword she wore at one hip and
the dagger at the other.
Her bones were delicate, her hands slender and long-fingered but
strong-looking, her wrists thick enough with muscle that he
suspected the sword was no decoration conferred by her Family
status. And she was lovely, though her beauty hid itself behind her
tangled hair and water-damaged clothing. Even the way she stood and
walked spoke clearly to him of breeding. He would guess she
belonged in the highest echelons of local society in the
parlors and salons of the Families, dressed in diaphanous silk,
sipping nectar. She no more belonged in a dockside tavern than
. . . He smiled inside, considering, and arched an
eyebrow. She no more belonged than he did.
An enigma. He did love an enigma. His smile moved to the outside
as, with a brisk nod, she turned away from the barkeep, scanned the
room, and looked straight at him. She turned once more to the
barkeep, said a few words, got a nod in affirmation, and began
working her way through the tables toward him.
. . . an all three of them were begging
me, but I . . . I . . . wanned em hungry
. . . if y unnerstan me . . . so I
. . .
Ian decided a liar telling his tale of sexual adventuring with
three Manarkan princesses was less compelling than a dark-eyed
enigma. Later, he said, and left them. Meeting her in a
slight clearing between two tables, he said, I saved you the
trouble of presenting yourself at a table full of boors. From the
look of you, your night has been interesting enough
already.
Her half-smile of agreement never reached her eyes.
Captain Draclas?
I serve you.
Im given to understand, by some asking about, that
you not only have a fast ship available for hire, but that you
might not be averse to a rapid departure . . . and
perhaps even, if the incentive were right, to sailing light.
She kept her voice low and her eyes focused on his face. He found
her intensity unnerving. Deliciously so.
He nodded quickly, so slightly that only she could see it. Then
he spread a drunken grin across his face and said, Why
din you say so, Leeze? He let his voice sound a little
too loud, a little drunk. If you need a place to sleep for a
night or two, Im . . . He giggled.
Im sure we can find you a bed . . .
someplace. He looked around the room, trying to catch the
attention of the men at the tables; they reacted by turning away,
envious, or by hooting encouragement. Ian grinned and swaggered; he
slid an arm around her waist, neatly catching her sword between her
thigh and his as he did. Better, should anyone come asking later,
that they not remember that sword. Outside, he said
under his breath.
She slid her own arm around his back, and dragged her fingers
from the nape of his neck down between his shoulder blades in an
intimate gesture that felt entirely too good. Almost as loudly, and
in an accent he would have sworn was born and bred dockside, she
said, Shouldna say such things t a good girl like
me, you. Im na that kinda girl. She managed a
predatory smile and a laugh as professional as any in the room. She
squeezed his buttock, and they walked out together. The attention
of the room no longer fixed on either of them, since the nature of
their association had been classified, in the minds of the other
patrons, as business of a personal kind. Nothing worthy of further
thought.
Outside, the act dissolved like a spun sugar treat in summer
rain. The woman pulled gracefully out of his reach, turned to him,
and smiled this time a genuine smile. Nicely done. You
think well under pressure.
Necessary in my line of work.
Reassuring to one in my position.
And what position might that be?
Her teeth flashed the grin broad and dangerous.
There are some powerful people after me for a manuscript that
I . . . acquired. Bought. From a dealer. These people got
hold of information regarding the contents of the manuscript, and
now they want it and me with it.
She was lying. He could see it in her eyes. He knew it as surely
as he knew the sun would rise soon. She hadnt gotten her
manuscript from any dealer shed stolen it. And why
would a woman who gave every indication of being Familied steal a
manuscript of any sort? Why not buy it? Hells-all, why not simply
command that it be given to her, for that matter? If she was of
Family, she had that right. An enigma within an enigma and
only one way he could see to solve the puzzle. Ask. So
whats in this manuscript that people want so much that
theyd come after you?
Her voice dropped to a whisper and she moved closer to him.
The location of an undiscovered Ancients
city.
Taken aback, he laughed. Theres no place left on
this continent to hide such a city at least, no place that
you or I could reach. Maybe in Strithia, or deep in the heart of
the Veral Territories . . . but Ill not go there
for any treasure.
Agreed. But it isnt on this continent.
His heart started to pound. Where, then?
Manarkas?
She smiled. North Novtierra.
He took a step back from her and stared, his heart skittering at
the thought of such a treasure. North Novtierra? Virgin
land unclaimed, uncharted, ripe for the taking. Hard to
reach, hard to explore, vast beyond all imagining. Three months of
sailing just to get there and that wouldnt include any
time crawling up and down the unexplored coast trying to find her
city. No doubt a hundred undiscovered Ancients cities lay
within the fertile, forested slopes and broad plains of North
Novtierra. A man could spend a lifetime trying to find just one,
and fail. But if this woman knew the location of such a place
. . .
Ah, shang! Such a place would be worth the risk of life,
fortune, Family anything at all to the finder. With
the fortune this woman could make from the spoils of an untouched
Ancients ruin, she could buy herself the paraglesiat of one
of her Familys smaller cities . . . have enough
money left over to build a solid standing army . . . take
any technology she acquired from the site and either develop it
herself or use it as leverage to an even higher position of
power. . . . One good city could take her into
otherwise unreachable spheres of power. Make her the equal of any
paraglese in Ibera.
Of course, what would be a treasure for her would be a treasure
for anyone else involved, too, including him. She didnt
strike him as stupid, so she knew that. He wanted to know what
shed done to protect her interests. North Novtierra.
Thats half a world away, and a hellish dangerous voyage into
the bargain.
Yes. But your ship could make the trip. It isnt a
coast-hugger. I checked.
Youre right. It isnt. And its seaworthy,
and fast. Right up there with the newest caravels in the Family
fleets. And Ive crossed the Bregian before I could
probably get you there. But whats to prevent me from taking
the treasure and stranding you once we arrive . . . or,
for that matter, from dumping you overboard once were well at
sea and finding and claiming the city for myself?
She chuckled, and something terrifying crept into the sound. The
hair on the back of his neck stirred, and his gut twisted.
You wouldnt want to try stranding or dumping me,
Captain. I assure you I can take care of myself. As for you using
the manuscript to find the place, you couldnt unless you
happen to be a Family translator, and unless you happen to
specialize in the Ancients languages, and unless you can
specifically read Tongata Four in Brasmian script. Im betting
you cant. Further, Im betting that you wont find
anyone else besides me who can. As far as I know, Im the only
one who has deciphered it.
He could no more read Tongata Four than he could flap his arms
and fly. And wouldnt know Brasmian script if someone tattooed
it on his nose. Which made her as valuable to him as the city
itself and guaranteed her safety at least to the city. Which
she obviously knew. Beyond that . . . well, he thought he
believed her when she said he would make a mistake trying to strand
her. Why he believed, he couldnt say. Perhaps it was
the danger in her smile.
Abruptly what shed told him fitted together, pieces of the
puzzle falling neatly into place; in that moment he knew not
only how shed come upon the manuscript, but who she was. She
hadnt bought the thing, of course; however, she hadnt
stumbled across it accidentally and stolen it on a whim, either.
She was one of her Familys lesser daughters, relegated to the
dry and dusty translation of Ancient archives, pushed aside because
her branch of the Family lacked sufficient pull to get her a good
marriage or a good post. She would have been just a link between
the will of her Family and the craftsmen and artists who used her
translations to re-create Ancient technologies. Shed been
given a manuscript to translate; had come, at some point in it, to
a mention of the location of a city that she felt would be both
reachable and worth finding; and because she had ambition and a
hunger for a life better than the one shed landed in,
shed leaped at the opportunity, snatched the manuscript, and
fled into his life.
Which, of course, she would never admit.
He liked her. By all the gods, he liked her. She reminded him of
himself. Even that dangerous little burr in her voice when she told
him that trying to get rid of her would be a bad idea appealed to
him. He decided that if no . . . when;
after all, why not have faith in his windfall? he decided
that when they found the city, he wouldnt waste his
time trying to dump her or kill her. Why kill a woman worth
marrying? Marrying power, after all, was more efficient than
earning it.
And she was a good-looking woman. From her height and
coloring and build, of either the Galweigh or Kairn Families, and
since she was on Goft, hed bet Galweigh. Galweigh would be
very good, if she could win her bid for power. Even a moderate
position in that Family was worth a paraglesiat in the Dokteeraks
or the Kairns or the Masschankas. The only other Family equal to
the Galweighs was the Sabirs. Sabir would have been bad he
had solid reasons for avoiding them.
He regarded her with proprietary pleasure. His future wife. His
future ticket into wealth, power, luxury. No sense letting her know
hed undertake the trip for free to have the opportunity to
win her and through her claim her city. He needed to let that part
unfold slowly. So he gave her his best hard-nosed trader impression
and said, Whats in it for me?
The transit fee there you give me a reasonable
price and Ill pay it. A fair percentage of the cargo we find
Ill make it worth your while. My patronage on any
return trips. A place in . . . She reconsidered
what shed been about to say, and smiled and shrugged.
Well, lets say for now that anything else I can offer
would be even more speculative than the city and the cargo. But as
I said, Ill make it worth your while.
He nodded. For the transit fee . . . He
didnt want to ask so much that she couldnt pay it, and
how much could she possibly have, anyway? But he didnt want
to ask so little that he raised her suspicions. Ten solid
large. Up front. It was a lot, but it was also within reason
for the distance and the danger of the journey.
She winced.
He waited. If it was too much, hed see it and lower his
price a little at a time.
She sighed, stared at her feet, finally nodded. You have a
preference for any one mint?
The Dokteeraks cut their gold coins with silver sometimes
dont pay me in stamped daks. Farnes and preids spend
best, but gold is gold.
She nodded. Done.
Well enough. She didnt argue, so he might have gotten
more. Still, if he got the city, what more did he need? So
what must I know to get us out of the harbor alive? he
asked.
She didnt waste his time pretending she didnt
understand what he meant. We need to move fast and we need to
leave a false trail. We cant supply here if you arent
already stocked. Mentioning what were looking for or where
were looking would probably be fatal.
He shrugged. I figured that. Anyone in particular you need
to avoid?
Her laugh was so harsh it startled him. If you maintain
close associations with the Five Families, dont mention me,
eh?
Now he truly was startled. All five? Not even
he had managed to get himself that deeply into trouble.
To Galweigh, Sabir, and Dokteerak, my life is
. . . forfeit. To Masschanka through their association
with the Sabirs and the Dokteeraks, probably the same. And Kairn,
through their alliance with the Galweighs, might also take me in
for any offered reward. Avoiding all five would be best.
He felt a measure of admiration at that. He didnt know
anyone who could honestly claim to have made enemies of all the
Five Families. Ill do my best.
How early can you be ready to leave?
Meet me on the beach by the wharf as the bells ring
Huld.
The woman looked at the sky, and he saw her picking out the
White Lady from the other stars, and measuring her distance from
the horizon. The Red Hunter, which would signal the passing of the
station of Telt and the arrival of Huld, would not join her for
some time.
Well enough, the woman said. That will give me
time to do the few things I must do.
She was already gone when he realized he didnt even know
her name.
* * *
He believed it. Kait hurried down to the beach. She
had nothing she needed to do so much as she needed to keep out of
sight, and by the wharf near where she had dragged herself ashore
shed seen plenty of cover.
Of course he believed it. Tell anyone an implausible lie and
build a plausible diversion behind it; hell almost always dig
through the implausible lie to your diversion, think hes
found the truth, and fail to look further. Amalee chuckled and
changed the subject. The captain certainly was taken with
you.
Kait reached the beach and moved to a line of low shrubs and
grasses that lay north of the wharf. Its because
Im Karnee. His interest didnt have anything to do with
me.
Amalee stayed silent while Kait found a comfortable, hidden
vantage point from which to watch the wharf and settled into it.
Once shed stilled, though, her ancestor said, What do you
mean, because youre Karnee? Youre lovely. He
couldnt have failed to notice that.
Trust me, it wouldnt matter. One of the effects of
the curse is that the Karnee attract members of the opposite sex
and of their own sex by some sort of . . . Im not
sure . . . scent, maybe. Like flowers attract bees, I
suppose. The bee doesnt desire the flower, and humans
dont desire the Karnee they both just want the thing
that makes the scent. The effect was well documented four hundred
years ago. Kait sighed. My parents managed to secretly
gather copies of everything that was known about my kind. They had
me read them so that I would understand what I was.
She didnt bother to add that they had done so at terrible
danger to themselves. Or that they had given her every advantage
they could to help her survive in the world, risking their own
lives and the lives of all their other children in the process. She
had known love in her life; her parents and her surviving brothers
and sisters had loved her, without question or reservation. She
would simply never be able to find such love again.
So all men want you.
Most. And many women. The effect seems to be stronger on
men. Some people seem immune to the scent. Or drug. Or whatever it
is that I give off. Not many, though.
A long silence. Then, Oh, that would be delightful.
You think so? Imagine knowing that no one who wanted you
actually wanted you. That wherever you went, men and women
would approach you, court you, want to bed you . . . and
that if you could get rid of your scent, and dump it on a dog, they
would abandon you and court the dog. Now think how
delightful it would be.
And do you ever bed them?
Kait wondered if the woman had been such a prying nuisance in
life. Could explain why the Sabirs sacrificed her.
Sometimes, she admitted. Another curse of
being Karnee is the insatiable appetite. For everything. Sex
included. I fight the appetites. Sometimes I lose the fight.
When she did, sex always felt hollow. Empty. A loveless,
passionless exercise, in which she constantly had to guard herself
against the excesses of pleasure that could throw her into Shift.
She came away from each encounter with nothing but guilt and a
desire to avoid the next. But like Shift, the sexual hunger of
Karnee could only be held in check for so long. Longer than Shift
itself most times that was inexorable as the tide. But
sometimes the beast inside of her would not be denied.
Kait yawned. Sitting and waiting began to feel like a mistake.
How long had it been since shed slept? That interlude of
unconsciousness didnt seem to have helped shed
woken from that tired and drained. Fear and rage and hope had kept
the weariness at bay while shed tried to find a way to help
her Family, and then to save her life. Now, however, the exhaustion
that weighted her limbs and dragged at her eyelids became
unbearable. Sleep beckoned; a god to be embraced, desirable beyond
all imagining. She settled lower in the sand, and discovered that
one of the branches of the shrub directly behind her curved in an
arc that would support her head.
Amalee was oblivious to her weariness. She was nattering on
about being Karnee. How marvelous. An enormous sexual appetite
and an unending supply of people to fill it. My dear, I wish
Id been born Karnee. All of that power . . . all of
that control . . .
Kait felt a moment of sympathy for the long-dead Sabirs
whod sacrificed her ancestor. If the woman were alive, she
thought she might have been tempted to follow the same course of
action. She yawned again, and realized that her eyes had fallen
shut she had no idea how long they had been that way. She
forced them open. Can you stay awake if I sleep?
Child, I havent slept in a th in two hundred
years.
Can you wake me when we have to leave if I am
asleep?
Yes.
Good. Then be quiet until the town rings Huld. Im
exhausted.
Huld. Of course. A pause. And how do they ring that
now?
Kait sank into welcome darkness.
Kait? How do they ring Huld now?
She fought the embrace of the dark god a moment longer.
The same way they always have.
The pause she got was not encouraging.
Three bells. Different tones. Youll hear
them.
Odd that her ancestor didnt remember that. Perhaps nearly
two hundred years of being dead made you forget things.
The dark god brushed her cheek with his lips, and she lost the
thought in the feathery comfort of sleep.
Chapter 19
The last of the screams had died away not long ago.
Silence owned the House for the moment. Dùghall rose and
tapped the airible pilot, Aouel, on the shoulder.
Theyve fled, he said. But were going
to have to get outside and close the gate before they return. Can
you kick the door open?
Aouel, haggard-faced and sleep-drugged, struggled with
Dùghalls words. Fled? The Sabirs? Why? Are you
sure?
I dont know why, and we dont have time to
figure it out. They all started screaming and ran away; they
arent out there now; we have to get to the gate.
He could have opened it himself with magic, but he couldnt
have explained to the other survivors how he got it open
and he didnt want to do anything that might link him
with the suspicious disappearance of the two bodies from the room,
or the flight of the Sabirs from the House.
On the other hand, the method by which a big, strong young man
would go through a locked door was understandable by everyone.
Nothing suspicious about it. And Aouel used that method. He ran at
the door and hit it with his shoulder. It shuddered, but held. He
hit it again and again; after six or seven solid crashes, the frame
splintered around the catch and it burst open.
The noise woke the other sleepers. Dùghall told them only,
The Sabirs ran away. Then he ran out into the hallway
and trotted toward the stairs that would take him to the ground
floor, and eventually to the gate, following Aouel, who, being
younger and in better shape, didnt have to go slowly to keep
from jostling his belly uncomfortably. Behind them, Dùghall
could hear the other survivors coming out, chattering to each other
about what could have possibly made the Sabirs leave. Good. They
could puzzle out some answer to their miraculous rescue while he
wasnt present.
He followed Aouel, who charged through the House and out onto
the grounds, tore through the gardens and across the manicured
paths and the exercise grounds and the airible ground to the
guardhouse by the gate. He managed to keep the younger man in
sight, though sometimes only barely. He made it past the shrubs in
time to see the gate close.
He smiled, bending over with his hands on his thighs, wheezing.
Closed. His left palm hurt like the very hells. His lungs burned.
The world faded in and out of a gray haze filled with tiny points
of light. His heart felt ready to explode out of his chest. It
didnt matter. None of it mattered. If hed been missing
legs or arms, that would have suited him fine, too. The Sabirs were
out. Gone. Beaten again.
Aouel crunched up a graveled path between flower beds and
stopped at his side. You going to die on me, old man?
He sounded like he was breathing hard, too.
Dùghall raised his head. Not today, young rooster.
Not today.
Good. Because theres something you need to
know.
Dùghall straightened and looked up into the
Rophetians frowning face. His momentary feeling of triumph
melted away. What?
She took the airible.
This made no sense to Dùghall. He had, in the back of his
mind, registered the fact that the airible was gone, but he
hadnt considered what it might mean. Aouel apparently had.
Who . . . who took the airible?
Kait.
Dùghall snorted. Nonsense. You have to realize that
she couldnt have taken it. Even had she known how to fly it,
she had no ground crew to release the ropes and where would
she hope to take it or land it? The bastard Sabirs took it, and I
hope it crashes with them and they burn to cinders.
Aouel didnt look at all convinced. Kait took
it, he insisted.
How, son? How could she have?
Look on the ground over there. Aouel pointed, and
Dùghall saw ropes still locked through the landing
winches.
They cut the ropes. He chuckled. They cut the
ropes. He could just see those idiots struggling to get the
airible off the ground, and he smiled. If the Sabirs cut the
airibles ropes to take off, theyll dance
Brethwans jig getting back to the ground in one piece
again.
Aouel was shaking his head. The ropes werent cut.
The Sabirs would have done anything to get the ship safely from
here to their House. The ground crew would have walked there
through the city if they had to. Those ropes were intentionally
released, and only Kait would have done that.
Dùghall crossed his arms and waited for the explanation
that was coming. The explanation he knew he wasnt going to
like.
Theres an emergency lever hidden in the pilots
cabin, the pilot said. It releases all the landing
ropes at the same time a feature the crafters built in just
in case one of us ever found ourselves overrun by enemies when we
landed.
Dùghall frowned. You could have pulled that lever and
gotten us all off the ground yesterday . . .
Aouel shook his head. Had I been in the cabin, I would
have. But Kait had taken ill with that spell, remember. Tippa and I
were already in the hatch, ready to run for help for her. And the
Sabir men threatened to kill Tippa if I moved anywhere but out of
the airible.
Dùghall remembered. Yes. That seems so long ago, but
youre right, of course. About that, anyway. As far as this
nonsense of Kait taking the airible . . .
Aouel rested a hand on Dùghalls shoulder and said,
She knew how to fly it, Parat Dùghall. She knew where
the hidden lever was, she knew how to operate the lifters and the
engines, and she had flown that particular ship several
times.
Dùghall could do nothing but stare, speechless.
Aouel saw the look and winced. I taught her myself,
he added.
For the longest time, Dùghall could think of nothing to
say. Finally, however, he managed to croak, Why?
Aouel shrugged. She wanted to learn. And she was quick,
and clever, and . . .
Dùghall felt his knees sag. Then she isnt
hiding somewhere just outside the gate.
No.
Dùghall had been so sure that at least one of the people
from the Family that he truly loved was safe. Now he knew nothing.
What emergency features did the crafters build in to land the
ship, in the event that you had to release the ropes?
Aouel pursed his lips. We werent to land it. If we
used the emergency release, we were either to get it to friendly
territory and crash it within our own grounds, or we were to fly it
out to sea and sink it.
And there are emergency boats aboard for such an
eventuality?
We . . . ah . . . were always given to
believe we would . . . ah . . . go down with
it, so to speak.
Youre telling me she has no way to get safely to the
ground.
None. At least none that can be assured. The best she can
hope for is that she will crash in friendly territory, and that the
crash wont hurt her too much. But if the ground crew
didnt refuel the ship when it landed and I cannot
imagine that they would she may not be able to get to
friendly territory.
Dùghall glared at the pilot, and thought of Kait. She could
have been an extraordinary diplomat, he thought. She could have
done wonderful things for the Family. Or beyond the Family. She had
been special. Now he could only assume that she was dead, and that
her promise had died with her.
I should have you hanged, he told Aouel. I
wont. The Family has lost enough people. But Kaits
death is on your hands, and I will remember. And someday I will
hold you accountable.
* * *
The ship no longer rocked gently from side to side; instead, it
surged and plunged, as if climbing one hill, sliding down the other
side, and climbing the next, over and over. Hasmals hammock
moved with a life of its own. For a moment he puzzled over the
change. Then a contented smile spread across his face as he
realized what it meant. The Peregrine had put out to sea and
was on its way somewhere, and anywhere would suit Hasmal just fine
because it meant that he had finally escaped.
He pulled on his shoes and dashed up the companionway to the
main deck. A low line of islands lay off to the left, but the
Peregrine sailed in a clear sea. The captain leaned against the
tiller, eyes squinted into the low morning sun, a contented
half-smile on his face. Several sailors, including the Keshi
Scarred crew who hadnt dared show their faces abovedecks the
whole time the ship lay in Iberan territory, draped themselves in
the ratlines, enjoying the stiff breeze and the sunshine. Hasmal
sensed their joy at being free again, and understood it well. He
shared it himself.
He walked aft, and nodded to the captain. So we got our
cargo.
The captain smiled. And got you out to sea promptly, just
as I promised. You wanted to be at sea awhile, you said. You should
be pleased with our destination.
Really?
I should think. Were sailing all the way to North
Novtierra. I hope you had everything you wanted with you we
wont be doing more than looking at land for a very
long time.
Hasmal laughed out loud. Good news, he said.
Ah, Captain, you cannot know what good news that is. He
settled against a rail and stared down at the rushing water.
Thought youd feel that way, even though you never
said what it was you were . . . avoiding.
The captain didnt say running from but Hasmal
heard the words anyway. He shrugged and told a half-truth.
Nothing extraordinary. A woman. Expectations. A future I
didnt fancy.
Ian Draclas laughed out loud. I didnt think when I
took you on that you had the criminal eye, Has. Many a good man has
taken to the sea to escape a woman. Truth be told, my first voyage
was for that very reason.
Hasmal glanced up at him, curious.
A young girl took a liking to me, and told her ferocious
father that Id taken her maidenhood, and that she wanted to
marry me rather than see me hanged in the city square. I
. . . ah . . . I thought a girl who would lie
like that to her father would lie like that to her husband, and
besides, I had no wish to settle down to life as an apprentice to a
shopkeeper, no matter how fine his wares or how rich his coffers.
So I found a berth aboard a ship heading north, and I never looked
back.
Hasmal nodded, thinking of the doom he had finally averted.
There are fates worse than marriage or death, but those are
bad enough.
The captain laughed.
Hasmal closed his eyes and felt the warmth of the sun on his
face and smelled the richness of the salt air and realized that he
could breathe for the first time since that night that hed
cloaked himself in magic and crashed the Dokteerak Naming Day
celebration because he could. Free, free, and free; hed
broken from his doom, escaped his unwanted fate, won his battle.
And if he was on a ship bound for gods-knew-where, and if he hated
the ocean, and if he got sick from the constant motion, no matter.
He would pay the price to be his own man.
Vincalis, the ancient poet, philosopher, and patron sage of
Falcons, had once said, The Art chooses the moment and the
man, and rides that man like a nag until he bursts his heart and
dies; only the fool ventures within magics grasp without good
reason.
Maybe Im a coward, but I have no wish to die for the
Falcons. Ill not be magics horse again. And Ill
never again tempt fate for the sake of curiosity, Hasmal told
himself.
He had convinced himself on Naming Day that he had good reason
to slip unnoticed within the walls of Dokteerak House; Stonecutter
Street, indeed the whole of the Bremish Quarter, was alive with
rumors of preparation for war among the citys Family, and
with stories of foreign messengers representing not one but two
enemy Families, and with speculation that the upcoming wedding was
not all it seemed on the surface, he thought he did himself and his
family a service. And the city itself stank with dark magic. So he
had invoked Falcon magic in order to observe the byplay of the
Families telling himself all the while that
self-preservation and not idle curiosity impelled him and by
doing so he had wakened the interest of the other world in him, and
tied himself to those Families and events, and had only narrowly
averted binding himself to their doom.
Dont play on the gods playing fields
you wont like their games, and in any case, they
cheat.
Vincalis again. Words to live by.
Ive learned my lesson, Hasmal prayed. Thank you, Vodor
Imrish, for gentle kindness in delivering your good Hmoth boy from
the hands of the meddling Iberan gods. I promise Ill never
mistake prying for self-preservation again.
* * *
Kait had no idea how long shed slept. She only vaguely
remembered Amalee waking her to get her aboard the ship shed
hired. She remembered even less of paying the captain, explaining
that she had no gear, and moving into her cabin. That she had
succeeded in doing all those things, though, was evident. She lay
in a comfortable bunk in a clean, tiny cabin, on top of the covers
and still with her boots on. Her clothes were a wreck. She wished
shed had a chance to buy new ones, and to acquire a few other
supplies while she was at it; she could only hope that Captain
Draclas had women among his crew, and that one of them might be
willing to sell some of her things to Kait to cover her until their
next harbor.
Feeling better?
Amalees voice startled Kait. She jumped, and
her long-dead ancestor laughed.
Im fine, Kait muttered. I wish you
wouldnt do that.
Im sure. But you cant imagine how lonely
Ive been. Its wonderful to have someone to talk to
again, and its wonderful to be heard.
Kait stretched, yawned, and sat up. The cabin smelled of oak and
cedar, of wood polish and candle wax; it held an aura of honest
hard scrubbing its soapstoned floor gleamed white as bone,
and its worn sheets and carefully darned blanket were spotless and
scented with alaria and lavender.
Dont you want to talk? I have so many things to tell
you
Frankly, no. In the morning, I want to be alone with my
own thoughts.
Its well after midday, and probably not long before
sundown.
Kait unbraided her hair and wished she had a convenient place to
wash it. Though no longer damp, it still had that unpleasant,
heavy, gritty feel that came from having soaked in seawater.
How about this, then? I like being by myself, and I
have things I want to think about alone. So go away and dont
talk to me until I ask you to. Whether its morning or
night.
A gentle tap sounded on the cabin door. Kait froze.
Parata? Are you awake?
Im awake, Kait said.
Do you have company?
Kait rubbed her hand over her eyes and sighed. I was
talking to myself. I woke out of sorts.
Im your cabin girl. May I come in?
Enter.
The door opened. Kait wasnt prepared for the creature who
presented herself for inspection. Of the Scarred, Kait had only
seen those who trespassed the borders of Ibera and were executed in
Calimekkas Grand Square. Always she had seen them from a
distance, and more often than not, she had looked away. She had
never been within arms reach of one; for that matter, had
never expected to be.
And here stood a creature Scarred beyond anything Kait could
have imagined, and the creature identified herself as Kaits
cabin girl. In Ibera, the girl would have been criminal by virtue
of her existence which proved, Kait supposed, that they
werent in Ibera.
Matrins Scarred came in two varieties those like
Kait whose Scars were hidden, either all or part of the time, and
those like this girl, who wore theirs for all to see. The girl
would come from an entire tribe of creatures just like her, a tribe
that was only one of an unknown and perhaps unknowable number of
similar tribes. The visibly Scarred were sometimes called the
Thousand Races of the Damned. They came from the twisted lands
surrounding Wizards Circles; ancient magic run amok had
ripped the humanity from those who, a thousand years earlier, had
inhabited those lands. Ancient magic had twisted the survivors as
it had twisted the lands, and in doing so had given birth to
numberless races of monsters. Monsters barred from Ibera, the last
home of humanity.
Kait vaguely recalled that captains were by law rulers of their
ships and that as long as they and their crew were aboard those
ships, all aboard ship were subject to no law but the
captains . . . but the fact that an Iberan captain
would hire on Scarred crew had never even occurred to Kait. She had
thought of Captains Law as simply a matter of maintaining
discipline over crew, not as truly setting up a foreign country
within tiny wooden confines.
Kait stared because she couldnt help herself; because she
felt herself confronted with heresy; because she felt herself a
hypocrite for being herself a creature of heresy and still being
shocked; because she didnt know what else to do.
The girl, caught under her gaze, lowered her head and whispered,
If you are displeased with me, I can leave. There are others
who can take care of you who are not . . . what I
am.
What you are . . . Kait thought, disgusted with
herself. What you are is an honest version of what I am.
Please come in, Kait said, making her voice gentle.
And please forgive my rudeness. I have never seen one of the
Scarred before you simply took me by surprise. I did not
realize any of the Scarred could be so beautiful.
And though she had managed in her words to smooth over her
rudeness, Kait realized shed spoken nothing less than the
truth. The girl was beautiful. Her eyes, enormous and pure
jet-black, gleamed in a face as shiny and iridescent as the
carapace of a beetle or the body of a hummingbird in the
sunlight that backlit her, she looked like a gemstone. Though her
face shimmered mostly in purples and blues and greens, she wore
highlights of ruby red and gold across her high cheekbones and
long, delicate chin as she turned to pull the door closed. Once out
of the sunlight, most of the iridescence vanished into a black as
rich and pure as that of her eyes. Eyebrows formed of some wispy,
delicate white stuff so light the faintest hint of breeze or even
breath moved them arched above those bottomless pools of eyes; they
seemed alive. The girl had braided the outer ends of the eyebrows
where the hair grew long; the braids hung on either side of her
face down to the angle of her jaw, the ends adorned with tiny
polished beads and wrapped feathers. Her hair had the same almost
magical life as her eyebrows. It was equally white, and caught up
in one thick braid that shed draped over a slender shoulder
and tucked into the belt at her waist, looping it there like coils
of rope. Hard not to wonder how long that hair would be unbraided,
or to imagine what it might look like unbound. Amazing stuff. And
her ears Kait had seen their equal in the does and stags
shed hunted in her Karnee form. Same size, same shape, same
ever-mobile nervousness; ears affixed to the sides of a face that
they dwarfed. The nose was sharp-tipped, wide of nostril, mobile.
The mouth wide also, with full lips curved upward at the
corners.
The girls body, hidden beneath the draping folds of her
white flax shirt, gray pants, and soft-soled boots, was impossible
to guess at, other than that the arrangement of parts was more or
less like a humans, and that there wasnt much to
it.
The girl, for her part, studied Kait with the same intensity
that Kait studied her. They sized each other up for a long moment.
Then the Scarred girl tipped her head at an angle, and frowned
slightly, and said, You arent like the rest of
them.
Kait felt her heart pick up its pace at those words.
No?
The girl smiled, revealing a row of very white, very pointed
little teeth. No. You are . . . She shrugged
and the corners of her mouth twitched, as if she were amused by the
enigma presented. I dont know. Somehow you are more of
a predator. Like me. Somehow. Please dont be offended. I
would never say that you were . . . of my kind I
know that in your world that would be a deathcrime. But you have
the smell of the hunter about you. And the mannerisms of the hunter
and the hunted.
Kait nodded. Predators knew each other, and the girl was right.
Kait was a predator, and denial on her part would do more to
arouse the Scarred girls curiosity than to quell it. I
often hunted when I was at home. Deer, mostly. Sometimes other
things. Now there are people after me, so I have truly become
hunted. Your senses are good.
The girl smiled. Accepted the compliment, and perhaps the
explanation, though something in her eyes made Kait think she
considered it incomplete. Still, politely, she said, I
thought as much.
Kait changed the subject. And you were listening at my
door.
Oh. Those huge eyes went rounder. Yes, well.
Not really listening at your door I simply hear very well,
and the captain told me I must take you, when you woke, to the ship
stores. Hed stationed me outside your door with that charge,
because when you came aboard you carried no baggage, and he said
hed laid in a few things you might need. Clothes, toiletries,
personals youre to have your pick of what we have, and
then Im to take you to the shower and let you change.
Ill clean the clothes youre wearing for you while
youre at dinner. I think they arent as damaged as you
might believe, though the dye in your vest will probably have to be
redone. She glanced at Kaits feet. And those
boots . . .
Dont worry about the boots. With some leather oil
and some hard wax, Im sure I can work them back to something
respectable.
The girl nodded. Ill be sure you have what you
need.
Youre the one who cleans this room, arent
you?
Yes.
Its wonderful. If I could ask you one thing, though
. . .
Anything.
In the sheets, the alaria . . .
A quick smile flashed across the girls face.
Its too sweet for your nose, isnt it?
Yes.
For mine, too. It isnt a predator scent. It covers
too much.
Kait nodded. I like the lavender, though.
As do I. Very clean. Not very concealing. The diaga
but, no, you are diaga, too. She frowned, a delicate
operation that set her eyebrows dancing. Most of your
kind like the alaria. But I wont use it for your things. Just
the lavender.
Thank you.
Are you ready, then? To go get some new things and take
your shower and go to dinner? Youre to sit at the
captains table tonight.
Im almost ready. Tell me your name first.
The passengers always call me Girlie.
But that isnt your name.
No. But my name is hard to say.
Kait waited.
The girl trilled her tongue, the note going from low to high and
ending with a soft whisper.
Kait had always been good at imitating sounds, and years of
studying the other languages of Ibera had sharpened both her ear
and her tongue. Rrru-eeth? she said.
The girl laughed, and the laugh was as musical as the name.
Thats it exactly. Exactly. Not even Jayti says it so
well.
Jayti?
My lover. Hes diaga, but hes wonderful.
Youll come across him sooner or later; hes one of the
sailors.
Kait nodded, thinking that for a human man to have a sexual
relationship with a Scarred woman would be an immediate sentence of
death by torture and mutilation for both Rrru-eeth and Jayti should
the fact and either of the participants ever touch land in Ibera at
the same time. So she wasnt the only one on the ship keeping
deadly secrets.
They went to the storeroom. Kait found clothes there that fit
her plain working clothes, sturdy enough for her needs, if
not of the quality shed known all her life. Sword oil and a
whetstone and cleaning rags. Personal items. She restocked, and
Rrru-eeth took her to the tiny shower, and she bathed in little
spurts of cold water, and washed her hair, and dressed in the new
clothing. Both women returned to Kaits cabin long enough to
put all of her new things in the drawers built into the bottom of
the bunk and onto the shelves at the foot of it. Then Rrru-eeth
took Kait to the galley, where the captain and the crew were
gathering for dinner.
There Kait discovered that miracles sometimes happened
and better yet, that they sometimes happened to her. Hasmal son of
Hasmal sat at the long trestle between a crew member so Scarred
Kait could not tell whether it was male or female, and a lean,
hard-eyed woman who had one hand on his forearm and who seemed to
be regaling him, nonstop, with some story he didnt wish to
hear.
Rrru-eeth caught Kaits indrawn breath and expression of
delight, and said, An old lover?
Simply an acquaintance, but one Id hoped to get to
know better . . . before circumstances changed. I never
thought Id see him again. Now . . . She
couldnt hide her smile. Excuse me for just a
moment.
Hasmal didnt become aware of her presence until, standing
directly behind him, she said, Hasmal son of Hasmal, if ever
I thought the gods might like me, that moment is now. Imagine
finding you here, of all the places in the world.
He turned, and in the first instant she could see that he
didnt recognize her. Easy enough to understand; hed
seen her only briefly, and then shed been dressed for a
party, and in the company of her younger and prettier cousin. She
decided she must not have made much of an impression on him. Then,
in the second instant, the flash of recognition widened his eyes
and drained the color from his skin. He said, You! in a
voice she would have reserved for a meeting with a walking corpse.
His eyeballs rolled up in their sockets so that she could plainly
see a rim of white underneath each. His muscles sagged, and he
flopped like a childs rag moppet, and slid under the table
before anyone could catch him.
Bewildered, Kait looked at the pale lump of him that lay under
the table, and then up to the crew staring at her from every other
seat in the galley. The captain had apparently witnessed the entire
exchange; his expression was complex, but the clearest emotion Kait
saw there was bemusement.
She held out her hands, palms up, and tried to find words. None
came.
Ian Draclas came over and pulled Hasmal out from under the
table, and made sure he was breathing. Then he glanced up at Kait.
I would not have thought that you were the one. When
weve eaten, please come with me to my cabin. You and I need
to talk.
Kait nodded, still speechless. She was the one?
What one? And why had Hasmal reacted with such . . .
such terror, for certainly she could find no other word
. . . to her presence? She had been delighted to see him.
Pleased that there was someone on board that she knew, even though
she didnt know him well. She had certainly been hopeful that
he could teach her that trick of his for creating a wall of peace
around himself the same one that Dùghall had replicated
just before disaster struck.
She frowned, and while several of the sailors carried Hasmal out
of the galley, she took her seat next to the captain.
Dinner was a hushed affair.
* * *
In the long ward, in the cloud-dimmed light of late afternoon,
the Wolves who still survived lay separated by cold white rows of
narrow, empty beds. Ry stood next to his mother, who still lived,
but who now had no sight at all, and whose Scars would have given a
younger Ry screaming nightmares. Might still give him nightmares,
he acknowledged, though he kept his horror and his revulsion from
his voice when he spoke to her.
Who still lives? she asked him. Your
father?
No, Mother. Im sorry . . . but he did not
survive. Nor did Audrai, who had been his older sister.
Elen?
Of course. Shes fine, and if you wish, Ill
tell her youre ready to have her visit you. Elen, seven
years younger than he was, would not even be old enough to train
with the Wolves for another two years. She hadnt been in the
circle that day, and so had been, like him, completely spared.
His mother showed neither pain at the loss of her husband and
elder daughter, nor relief at the survival of the younger. She had
never pretended deep love for her children or for Lucien, and she
didnt pretend it at that moment. Her concerns were with
succession; with the direction that the Wolves would take now that
Lucien was gone, and that was where she focused her attention.
Who looks to have the best chance of leading the
Wolves?
That you could accept? Which wasnt what
shed asked, but Ry wasnt ready to deal with the
question shed asked just yet. He sighed, looking down those
nearly empty rows. So many dead. Uselessly, pointlessly dead.
Tomey will be well soon.
Tomey is both weak and stupid.
Tomey is pliable. Not stupid. With your support, he could
be encouraged in an agreeable direction.
Agreeable, of course, being defined as what his mother
wanted. In all the years that Lucien held the leadership of the
Wolves, that had been the definition of the word, and Imogene would
not care to have it changed at this late date in her life.
Stupid. Hell never take the leadership.
And that was probably true. Tomey was not stupid; in fact, he
had a remarkable sense of self-preservation that would likely keep
him far from any power struggles. Ry shrugged. Considered others
his mother might not object to. Gizealle is badly Scarred.
Shell live, but her injuries are as deep as your own.
Shes going to need time.
She might make a successful bid for power.
Eventually. Shes more likely to support her
brothers bid.
His mother sucked air through her teeth and hissed, Andrew
lives?
The whole of the Trinity lives. Andrew thrives. His
Scarring was minimal; he has already returned to his apartments.
Crispin was somehow untouched on the outside, though the physicks
say he bears internal Scarring. Anwyn also lives, though barely. Of
the survivors, his Scars are worst, though even before the disaster
he bore more marks than most.
His mother rested one twisted hand over blind eyes and groaned.
Though they might not have had support for a bid for power while
his father lived, the Trinity or, as the three cousins were
called behind their backs, the Hellspawn Trinity would
likely be able to coerce a fair amount of backing from the
Familys new, weaker configuration. Especially since those
most established in the topmost ranks of the Wolves circle
were either dead or terribly damaged.
Youll have to make your own bid now, his
mother said.
Ry had known the conversation would turn in that direction. It
had been as inevitable as sunrise, as summer rain, as death. Before
he went in to visit her, hed tried to think of any way he
could stop her before she started, but there was no way. His fate
was sealed the moment his father died and the Trinity lived; his
mother would either bind him to a course he did not want, or else
he would defy her and the Family will and end up shamed. Perhaps
even disowned.
Youre the one who wants to lead, he said
softly. Your ambition, your hearts
desire, your skill. Why not make the bid yourself?
I wasnt born Sabir.
Youve led the Family in fact, if not in name
for twenty years. You still carry the Sabir name. Most of
the Wolves will follow you. The few who dont youll drag
into line. Or disown.
She forced herself into a sitting position, and he cringed. Her
deformities became more clear and more terrible once the sheets
fell away. If I were still Unscarred, she said softly,
with my sight, with my strength, with my beauty, even then
they would not follow me. None but a Sabir-born has ever led the
Wolves. None but a Sabir-born ever will. This is the truth that I
have come to know and come to hate in all of these years and
that you, too, must accept. I am the only Wolf living who can truly
lead the Family as it needs to be led. But you are the one who must
stand before me and appear to lead. They will accept you, Ry, as
they never will me. Your place is at the head of the Wolves. Your
time is now.
He crossed his arms tightly over his chest. And what of
your insistence that I father a horde of children before I stand in
the circle?
Her face tightened. Too late for you to take a bride. I
always told you that you needed to be thinking of the future. But
no matter. You must have bastards running around all over
Calimekka. Claim the most promising of them, and bring their
mothers into the Family. If the mothers are disgraceful, well
keep them out of sight until we can dispose of them entirely; if
theyre reasonably acceptable, well make them paratas.
Either way, well legitimize the children and make them your
heirs.
He smiled, knowing that she couldnt see his face, but
knowing that she would hear the smile in his voice. I have no
bastards, mother. I have fathered no children, legitimate or
otherwise.
Anger flashed across her face like lightning; there and gone,
but threatening to return at any instant. He didnt care.
Are you sterile?
His smile grew broader. Not that I know of. Ive
simply been careful.
She knotted the covers in her hands. Her ruined face darkened
with rage rage at him, that he had let her down by failing
to plow the fertile fields of the women that had been presented
before him, and probably rage at the universe that had deprived her
in one stroke of her beauty, her strength, and her power.
Then Elen will bear children to carry on the line, and either
she or they will take your place when you can no longer hold it. We
have no time now for you to decide you want the children you
didnt want before. The place at the head of the Family is
open, but the fastest and the strongest and the smartest will fill
it. And that will be you.
With you behind me.
Yes. You dont have the experience to hold the
position on your own.
He didnt have the experience to hold it at all. And he
wasnt his father, to welcome living under his mothers
control for the rest of his life. Even if he had never met the
Galweigh woman, he would have fought being pushed to become the
true head of the Sabir Family. With her on his mind, though, the
entire thing became unthinkable.
No, he said. I cant.
I didnt ask you if you could, son. I told you that
you would. We cannot permit the Trinity to take over the Wolves,
and you at least will have my backing and the heritage of your
fathers reputation to back you up.
I cant. He sighed, and said what he really
meant. I wont. Then he told her a lie with the
merest hint of truth in it. The Galweigh Karnee sailed
northeast. Ive heard rumors that she goes to raise an army of
the Scarred to bring against the Family. I am leaving to stop
her.
His mother lay back in the bed, and all emotion erased itself
from her face. Nothing you can do is as important to the
Family as taking your fathers place.
I wasnt asking your permission, he said.
I came to visit you to tell you good-bye. Nothing
more.
She held herself still and silent, and he wondered how much that
show of self-control cost her. She never was a woman who kept her
feelings hidden. He waited, knowing that she would not let him
leave unless she had the final word; he waited, too, because even
if he could not say that he loved her, he still respected her. He
owed her the show of respect that she had earned by her position
over him, both as his mother and as the longtime leader of the
Wolves. He waited, and she let him wait.
At last, however, she said, You are decided that you will
leave?
I am.
And you are taking your friends with you, no
doubt.
He lied to her again, in spite of his respect, in spite of the
honor she deserved, in spite of his yearning to keep his integrity.
One lie made the next easier. My friends were killed in the
battle at Galweigh House. I travel alone.
No emotion on her hard face. They died in the service of
the Family. Their own families will gain the honor they won. As for
you . . .
More silence.
Ry stood, feeling the tension in his shoulders. Hed done
the best he could for his lieutenants; all of them had insisted on
going with him in pursuit of his obsession. They would not share
his shame, nor would their families suffer his mothers
vengeance. But if she could vent her fury only on him for his
disobedience and disloyalty, she would punish him all the
harder.
She coughed. Cleared her throat. As for you, if you leave,
do not come back. The Sabirs will beat off any pitiful army of the
Scarred that girl raises without assistance from you. If you leave,
you will become barzanne, and all hands of this Family and
the allies of this Family will be turned against you. Your name
will be removed from the Register of Births and you will cease to
exist as a Sabir. Further, I will curse you, and will carry my
curse to circle, and the curse we will bring to bear on you will be
that of walking death we will crush your spirit and steal
your life, but your corpse will never rest. This, my son, I swear
if you will not stay and take the place of honor you deserve
within this Family, you will cease to exist.
Worse than he had feared. Worse than he had imagined. To be made
barzanne was to be declared not human. He had thought she
might disown him; he had been prepared to some degree for that. But
to realize that she would take from him his right to existence
within any part of Ibera that she would, in effect, declare
him a target for every assassin and bounty hunter and unscrupulous
profiteer because he would not bow to her will, stunned him.
He tried to imagine being marked. Being hunted. Or fleeing outside
the realm of Ibera, never to return.
To his knowledge, no mother in Iberas history had ever
declared her son barzanne. Such a declaration was
irrevocable. Once it was approved and made public, he would be
walking dead for as long as he eluded capture then dead.
Then, if Imogene succeeded in the final part of her oath, dead
walking.
He closed his eyes and the girl he sought came within his reach
once more. He could taste salt spray on his lips and smell sea air.
He could feel the warmth of late-day sunshine on his upturned face
and the roll of a deck beneath his feet. If he listened, he could
hear the rich timbre of her voice, though he could not make out the
words she said. She moved farther from him with every breath he
took, and his body burned for her. His mind burned for her.
But . . . barzanne.
He had thought himself brave. He had thought himself
unstoppable.
I was wrong, he realized.
Ill stay, he told Imogene. Ill do
what you want me to do.
A ship lay in harbor, his friends already waiting on it,
supplies laid in. It would not sail, or if it sailed, it would do
so without him.
Chapter 20
The captains cabin small but private,
elegantly appointed, furnished in rare and exotic woods inlaid with
bone and semiprecious stones, draped in sheerest silks. Gold
gleamed from odd corners: a small cat idol with jeweled eyes that
perched in a nook of the writing desk; a medallion on an interwoven
chain of heavy links that hung from an ebony hook; three signet
rings in a partially open jewel case. Casual signs of wealth and
success, more obvious but less telling than the row of books neatly
shelved above the bunk: a well-bound edition of Two Hundred
Tales of Kaline sitting next to the translated Philosophies
and Meditations by Oorpatal, and beside that, lives of
Braliere, Minon Draclas, Hahlen, and Shotokar.
Kait took the room in with a practiced eye, and came to some
conclusions that would have discomfited the captain, had he known
of them. She decided that he was of high, possibly Familied, birth;
that he was well educated but rebellious, perhaps an enemy of the
privileged world that was his birthright, that he was vain and
ambitious, that he indulged in piracy when more honest work failed
to come his way.
I cant permit my shipwright to be distressed,
the captain was saying. He paced the short path in front of the
chair in which hed bade her seat herself, his hands tucked
behind his back, fingers interlinked, head down. Hes
vital to us on a long voyage. When were out to sea, we have
to be able to make our own repairs on the ship and its
fittings, on the crews belongings . . . He
shrugged. Occasionally we need to fabricate some new thing
for a special situation. In any case, I cant afford to have
Hasmal threatened or distressed in any way. Im not sure what
your previous relationship was
Kait held up a hand. A moment, Captain.
He paused in his pacing and looked at her.
I cannot even claim to have properly met Hasmal. I know
about him only these things: that he dealt in rare and ancient
artifacts, that he was at a party I also attended, and that he was
helpful to me and my cousin at that party. I never saw him before
that night. I never saw him after, until today. I wanted only to
thank him again for his assistance my cousin became very
drunk and behaved badly, and he helped me get her out of the
building without drawing attention to her condition. Not the
whole truth, but surely close enough.
The captain slid his hands into his pockets and leaned against
his locker. Then why did he faint when you spoke to him? I
was under the impression that you had attempted to coerce him into
marriage. Perhaps that you had threatened to claim assault on your
maiden virtue unless he capitulated.
Kaits shocked laughter erupted without warning. My
maiden virtue? Dear Captain, any assault on that was
years in the past and is best left buried there. She took a
few deep breaths, giggled, shook her head disbelievingly. My
maiden virtue, if were going to be so . . . polite,
was disposed of in a wholly voluntary and mutually agreeable manner
and has not troubled me since. Nor have I ever felt the need to
bother the disposer of it with threats; I am not yet ready to give
up my autonomy to marriage and its rule by committee. My freedom
was too hard-won. The last of her amusement died away,
replaced by puzzlement. As for why Hasmal fainted
. . . She turned one hand palm up and shrugged
slightly. You know at least as much as I do.
They studied each other, looking for cues.
His reaction worried me, the captain said.
Worries me.
Of course. It shocked me. But I dont know what
caused it.
Your appearance caused it.
Kait sighed. Unless he succumbed to poison at that exact
instant which seems unlikely Im inclined to
agree with you. But I truly dont know why.
Draclas frowned suddenly. That . . . the
manuscript you mentioned . . . you say he was a dealer in
antiquities?
So he told me at the party.
You didnt by chance . . . buy it
from him, did you?
No.
A dealer in antiquities . . . His frown
deepened. He demonstrated his smithing to me before I took
him on. His skills were excellent. But he claimed previous
experience aboard ship. I had no reason to doubt him
. . . He stared down at his feet, speaking more to
himself than to her. When he looked up again, it was to ask her,
Where did you meet him?
Kait considered her answer for a moment. She didnt want to
be too open about her past her presence in Halles, if
Draclas kept current on events, could help him pinpoint who she
really was. But lies were hard to control, and lying about where
she met Hasmal seemed risky, especially since she didnt know
why hed reacted the way he did when he saw her. In
Halles, she said.
Halles? Thats nowhere near the coast.
Thats where I met him. He told me he worked with his
father acquiring and selling antiquities. Thats all I knew
about him, except that both he and his father were named
Hasmal.
Draclas settled onto the edge of his bunk and gave her a hard
look. Halles. Why did you pause so long before telling me
that?
Im not sure how much I want you to know about me. I
was trying to decide if letting you know I was in Halles would tell
you too much. I decided that it didnt.
He snorted. That sounds honest enough, anyway.
It is.
Were going to have a hard time being friends, you
and I, if you dont trust me.
Kait arched an eyebrow. If I dont trust
you? Captain, I suspect you have many more secrets than I
do. She glanced around the room, letting her gaze settle on
the various treasures casually displayed. I think that for
now, at least, you and I would do well to keep our own confidences;
I dont think youll be any more eager to tell me your
deepest secrets than Ill be to tell you mine.
She smiled when she said that, and he responded with a smile,
but she didnt miss the wariness that crept into his eyes.
Certain shed hit her mark, she rose. If were
finished here . . . ?
He rose, too. Id like to be your friend, Kait. You
seem like you could use a friend.
Perhaps I can. But not just yet. Well be
. . . associates . . . She tested the
weight of the word, and decided it suited her needs. Yes.
Associates. For a time, at least. We share common goals, and
possibly a common outlook. Friends, though . . .
well see. Friendship takes time.
He opened the door of his cabin for her, and she stepped out on
deck. She walked to her own cabin, the pressure of his stare
tickling along the back of her neck until she let herself into the
room and closed and locked her door.
* * *
Hasmal crouched in his room, glaring at the Speaker who had come
to his summons. Shes here. Here. You knew this
would happen. You lied to me.
From within her wall of blue flames, the Speaker chuckled.
My sister answered your call, and she told you only
the truth.
She told me that I could escape my doom.
No. She told you that you could try.
If I had stayed at home, I would have been safe. Instead,
because of what she told me, I traveled half the length of Ibera
and ended up trapped on a ship with the woman I tried so hard to
avoid.
If you had done nothing you would have been safe. But your
safety is irrelevant to the larger scheme. While you have been
trying to hide from your destiny, and unintentionally wrapping
yourself deeper in it, whole worlds have stepped into the fray that
is building.
Hasmal clenched his hands into tight fists, but forced himself
to breathe slowly and to let his anger drain away. Why did
your sister mislead me? Why did she lead me to believe I needed to
flee?
Because you have something to do, Hasmal rann Dorchan,
that will change your world, and affect ours, and perhaps even
others more deeply embedded within the Veil. If you escape your
fate, these worlds will be the worse for it. You matter, mortal, in
a way that few ever matter and while no one and no thing can
force your actions along the right path, my sister could, and did,
steer you in a direction that seemed most beneficial to us at the
time.
What am I expected to do?
That isnt the question. Your path is never cast in
iron, your future never certain. The question is, What
may you do? And even that I cannot tell you, not because
I wish to taunt you, but because I do not know. I only see the
branching paths that mortal lives can take, and the ways they flow
together and apart. I can see that you and Kait Galweigh, the woman
you fear, have a powerful future if you are together, and that the
two of you may do great good, or great evil, but that you will
succeed at nothing if you are apart.
But shell doom me and all I love.
Your association with her leads to doom, and pain, and
grief. Perhaps to great victory . . . and perhaps to your
death. But all men die, Hasmal, the spirit said. Few
ever live.
He sat in silence, watching the spirit disappear back into the
Veil from which he had summoned her, watching as the last traces of
cold flame burning on the surface of the mirror flickered out.
The coldness inside of him spread from his core from
heart and gut and spirit out to his fingers and toes. His
flesh prickled, and he shivered, though the air in his room was
stuffy and hot. She had quoted Vincalis at him, in what he was sure
was an intentional paraphrase. The original speech had been:
All men die, Antram. All men age and wither and creep at last
into their dark graves, and from thence into the flames of Hell or
cold oblivion, as their theology dictates. But to only a few men do
the gods give a task, a burden, a road to greatness that can, if
they take it, raise them above the thick clouds of complacency that
blind most eyes and plug most ears. To only a few men do the gods
give true pain, which removes the bloated cushion of softness and
brings sharp awareness of the preciousness of life; which raises up
heroes and strips cowards naked before the world. You, Antram, will
do great things. You will see, you will feel, you will breathe and
touch and revel in each moment you are given. And you will suffer
great pain. And someday, whether soon or late, you will
die.
But all men die, Antram. Few ever live.
* * *
In Calimekka, in the center of Sabir House, in a silent room
that opened onto a balcony that hung above a jasmine-scented
garden, Ry Sabir paced. The room lay in darkness not even a
single candle burned but that mattered little to him; he saw
very well in light so low that normal men would have been blind.
Back and forth along the tall bank of glass-paned doors he stalked,
oblivious to the sweet scent of the night air, oblivious to the
gentle breeze that set the gauzy drapes billowing.
He was lost in the prison of his own mind, held to the pillory
of the words he had said and the words he had left unsaid. And he
could not find peace.
Wait for me, hed told Yanth. I must
attend my mother, to at least try to make her understand. But
whether she gives me her blessing or not well sail
tonight.
And to Trev, who ever feared for his sisters, I promise
you that your sisters will in no way be dishonored by what we go to
do. I wont let that happen.
To the captain of the Sabir-owned ship, Ill pay you
double your yearly wage, and a gift on top of that, if youll
take me and my lieutenants wherever we need to go, and get us there
safely, and not ask questions. This is Family business, and
dangerous; you have my word as Sabir that you will have the honor
of the entire Family for the service you do us.
And to his mother, My friends were killed in the battle at
Galweigh House. I travel alone.
And again to his mother, Ill stay. Ill do what
you want me to do.
Betrayal, the breaking of his word, the destruction of his honor
upon a half-dozen rocky shores no matter which way he
turned, he would be lying to someone. Trev and Valard and Karyl and
Jaim and Yanth had become, by his utterance, dead men, unable to
return to their city or their homes under their own names; his
mother would honor her word to treat their families well only if
they were never seen again. When hed faced an unknown
journey, when hed been sure he had the strength to defy her,
his lie had seemed the only way that he could keep his promise to
them not to drag their families into dishonor. He had intended to
come back in glory, so that all would be forgiven.
And the captain who waited for his arrival at that moment,
certain that his future was assured because he served a Sabir who
had vowed no less . . . what of him? Ry had promised him
the honor of the Sabirs, and if the man were to tell any of the
other Sabirs what he had been waiting for, they would undoubtedly
treat him as the accomplice of a traitor.
Only wild success in a journey that goes I know not where, and
serves I know not what purpose, can give that man all I promised
him, Ry realized. I intended to find a way to make good on the
promise. But now?
What of his own cowardice in the face of a threat he thought his
mother would never make? Cowardice . . . he could call it
nothing but that. She had held barzanne over his head, and
he had capitulated; he could have taken his honor with him into
exile, but instead he had given her his word that he would stay and
uphold his duty as she defined it. His word. What worth did that
have? What value would it ever have again?
A pity he wasnt dead. No one maintained expectations of
the dead, or held them to their word; they became exempt from every
promise theyd ever made.
A pity he wasnt dead.
Such a pity.
He stopped pacing and moved to the balcony. Out in the
courtyard, in the beautiful night, only animals moved. He could
smell them in the breeze: the mingled scents of cat and dog and
peacock; the faintest hints of mouse and sparrow and owl; the musky
perfume of the two fawns who would grace the courtyard until they
became too large and unruly to live there, and who would then grace
a banquet while replacements brought in from the wilds became the
new living ornaments. Leaves rustled, and the cat caught a mouse,
and Ry listened to the frantic squeaking, quickly silenced, and
smiled slowly.
Better he were dead. Even better were he murdered and his body
never found. Best of all if evidence existed that his death had
come at the hands of the Hellspawn Trinity, for such evidence would
turn Family sentiment against the trios bid for power harder
and faster than anything else could. Murder had always been a way
to forward ones cause in the Family, but to be sloppy enough
about it to get caught at it no. The removal of ones
obstacles, if one wished to maintain respect, had to be
accomplished with finesse. A certain grace. An air of
. . . mystery.
He could vanish, Ry realized. He could forward his mothers
cause by doing so, or at least become an embarrassment to her
enemies. He could find the woman he sought, and perhaps find the
thing that she sought at the same time.
You can do all of those things. But only if you act quickly.
Your opportunity will be lost if you wait until morning.
That pressure in his skull was back, and with it the mental
itch. He stiffened. The strangers voice had returned to his
mind. This time it was only one voice, but he did not welcome one
outsider into the privacy of his thoughts any more than he welcomed
the babble that had erupted when he first woke after the Sabir
Familys disastrous attempt to take Galweigh House. He was a
Wolf, and no Wolf would tolerate such an intrusion. He began to
spin the magic that would force the intruder out, but as he did,
the stranger stopped him with a soft phrase. Careful, little
brother. Youre clever, but you havent seen what
Ive seen.
Ry froze. Identify yourself, he whispered.
How many dead older brothers do you have?
I suppose that depends on how many mistresses Father had
that Mother never found out about, and how careless their bastards
were.
Half a dozen that I know of. But I didnt say half
brothers.
Youre Cadell? He didnt believe it. He
couldnt. That babble of voices in his mind when he first woke
up after the debacle at Galweigh House had been in some language
hed never heard. This voice spoke clear, unaccented Iberan.
And what would his dead brother be doing inside his thoughts?
It would take too long to explain, and we dont have
much time.
We have enough time for you to prove who you
are.
We do. I am or was Karnee, like you. We shared
both a room and a bed until my death. When I left that last day, I
had the feeling I might not be coming back, and I left my
medallion, which you even now wear around your neck, for Mother to
give you. And when you were four, I carried you across Red Bridge
on my shoulders every time we had to cross it because you believed
a man with purple eyes lived underneath it, and every time we got
near it you insisted he was staring at you.
Ry remembered. Tears started in his eyes, and he closed them.
Ive missed you.
And I, you. But if you dont hurry, youre going to
lose Kait. And you dont dare lose her. This is important,
little brother. More important than anything youve ever done,
and maybe more important than anything youll ever do
again.
Ry was puzzled. Who is Kait?
Kait Galweigh. A picture formed in Rys mind: the
compelling creature hed first met in the back alley in
Halles, whom he had viewed standing atop the tower there watching
the executions.
Fine. You know her name. Tell me, why is it so important
to you that I find her?
Because she knows where to find the Mirror of Souls. And
shes set sail to get it. Ill tell you why the Mirror is
so important later. For now, suffice it to say that it must not end
up with any Family but the Sabirs.
Ive heard a legend about it.
Not important. Just go. Trust me, little brother. You have no
spare time. Do what you have to do to get away from here. And we
can discuss the importance of all of this when you are at sea.
Agreed?
Agreed.
Ry turned his attention to the staging of his own death.
Carefully and quietly, he rearranged the furniture, overturning a
chair, breaking one of its legs, pulling the covers off the narrow
bed and dragging them partway to the door. He took out pen, ink,
paper, and blotter from the desk that sat against the north wall
and wrote the beginning of a note:
Esteemed Uncle Grasmir,
I have accepted the burden of my Family responsibility; after
discussing the matter with Mother, I feel as she does that my bid
to lead the Wolves will be most beneficial to meeting the
Familys needs and goals. Though I do not seek this position
gladly, for I have neither wife nor child and will be barred from
such once I begin to walk the circle, I feel I am the most likely
candidate to prevent Crispin, Anwyn, and Andrew from taking
over.
With that goal in mind, may I ask for your support, as
paraglese as well as beloved family member? Ill need
your
He let the letter stop in midsentence, blew on it to dry the
ink, and dropped it down between the wall and the desk, making sure
that an edge with handwriting on it showed clearly. Whoever
discovered the blood and the disarray of the room would bring in
the Family, and Grasmir would insist upon an investigation. The
letter would point blame or at least suspicion in the direction Ry
desired, while the signs he left behind would make everyone sure
hed been murdered.
He drew his knife, dipped the blade in the wine bottle hed
been drinking from for everyone knew that a blade soaked in
spirits prevented the spirits of sickness from entering the body
and sliced into his arm. The pain woke the Karnee madness in
him, and he growled as he let his blood pour onto the floor. He
smeared it on his hands and grabbed the blankets, then left trails
on the floor as if hed been dragged by his feet. He soaked
the broken leg of the chair in his blood, getting most of it on the
very end of the leg. Then he pulled out a few strands of his hair
and soaked them in blood and caught them in the splinters. He
thought that would give anyone enough to go on.
He let himself skirt the edge of Shift. He didnt
need it yet, not in the way he would in another half month, but
he was in enough pain that the changes came readily. He felt the
fire flow into the wound and sighed. It healed itself as he
crouched there, waiting. Then he pushed himself further and deeper
into the Shift, letting the hunger build. He stripped off his
clothes as quickly as he could and bundled them tightly together.
With them he bundled his letter of credit (worthless if he were
barzanne, equally worthless if he were dead; but he and the
ship would be well away from Calimekka before the news of his death
had a chance to affect credit), his rings, his purse, and his
dagger and sword. In the little time he had, he made the bundle as
tight and neat as he could.
Once he was fully Shifted, he leaped out onto the balcony and
climbed up the wall, digging claws into the spaces between stones,
hanging on to the bundle with his teeth. When he reached the top,
he ran along the roof tiles, compromising between speed and stealth
to get himself to the north end of the House. There, the wall lay
less than a mans height from the roof, and the jump down,
though not easy, would be more easily accomplished than elsewhere,
and with less chance of his being seen by the guards or
servants.
Once he was safely outside the wall, he found a dark, deserted
alley, and there he relaxed and calmed himself until he was able to
welcome back his human form. He dressed, strapped on his weapons,
and stepped out into the street again.
A worried Yanth met him on deck. I thought youd been
killed on your way here, or that something had kept you from
coming.
Ry hugged his friend and sighed. More truth to all of that
than youd believe. He watched the sailors raising sails
while the captain stood at the helm. Both tide and a light breeze
favored their departure, but wouldnt for much longer
if hed taken any longer to figure out what he had to do, his
delay might have cost them half a day, and that half-day might have
cost them everything. But Im away, and were free
to carry out our voyage.
She understood? Im surprised.
She didnt understand. But there are other ways of
reaching an objective. I chose one of them. The dock log
didnt list this voyage in my name, did it?
The captain did what you told him registered out in
the name of C. Pethelley, Merchant, cargo of fruit and equipment
for the colonies.
That was a relief. Sometimes people forgot details when it came
time to act, but Ry had chosen the captain as much for his
reputation for intelligence under pressure as for his equally solid
reputation for discretion. Then we sail away happily and find
Kait.
Thats her name?
Kait Galweigh.
Yanth grinned. Makes her a little less magical, an
ordinary name like that.
Not to me.
I suppose not. He shrugged, and his smile was
unapologetic. So where is your Kait going?
East by northeast right now. We follow.
Yanth chuckled. East by northeast. Thats vague
enough to point us at the tip of one continent and the whole of a
second . . . and the second almost entirely unexplored.
Plus all of an ocean, and not a friendly ocean, either. I hope your
nose is working well, or well have a long search ahead of
us.
Which will give us enough time for me to teach you those
few tricks of mine you wanted to learn, and for you to teach me
that dagger move of yours that disarms the opponent; Ive long
envied that move.
Yanths face was a study of conflicting emotions. You
want to start that tonight?
Ry was tired enough that he thought he would be able to sleep
through the night and all of the next day as well, and already
ravenous from his brief Shift. Not tonight. Tonight
well sleep. Tomorrow, or maybe the day after, will be soon
enough to be industrious.
* * *
Dùghall frowned over the oracle cast on the table. Had it
been any less clear, he would have been tempted to use his own
blood to summon a spirit to confirm its message. He could find no
room for doubt, though, in the pattern made by the silver coins
spread across the embroidered silk zanda. In the quadrant of
House, the terse message of two coins: Flee and Betrayal
by trusted associates. In the quadrant of Life, the equally
terse Present danger. The quadrants of Spirit and Pleasure
lay empty, while the quadrant of Duty held the complex message
Home overlapped partially by Seek new allies and
conjuncted with Keep your own counsel and The gods
intervene. Wealth, Health, Goals, Dreams, Past, Present, and
Future all lay empty, and he could not remember having seen such a
strange throw in his entire life. The coins that should have landed
within the empty quadrants had, to a one, rolled on their edges to
fall outside the embroidered periphery of the zanda, where
they gleamed on the black silk, haunting him with their silence.
The gods intervene, indeed.
Hed planned to stay on in Galweigh House, to assist with
the Familys business until the survivors of the massacre
pulled themselves together and put the House back in order. But as
he stared at the zanda, he realized that would not serve. He
would have to pack a small bag, leave without explanation, and put
as much distance as he could between himself and the rest of the
Family. And he would have to do it immediately.
Betrayal by trusted associates. That distressed him.
Which associates? His personal staff, who had come with him to
Calimekka? His aide, who had served at his side for most of his
life? The Family members whose lives he had saved when he routed
the Sabirs? The pilot? Who would betray him? And why?
Certainly not all of those in the House with him were traitors
he knew there were those among the survivors who would help
him, who would do what needed to be done with him. But what he
could not know was who they were, or who they were not. And the
message on the zanda told him he was not to try to sort them
out. He would leave silently, immediately, as if he had been
spirited away, and both the guilty and the innocent would remain
behind to wonder what had become of him.
He fixed the placement of the coins on the cloth in his mind,
then brought his arms up in front of him and pressed his palms
together and pressed the heels of his hands to his forehead. With
eyes closed, he released the energy hed drawn around himself
to cloak his activities, murmured his words of thanks to Vodor
Imrish, patron god of Falcons, and added the subtle plea that this
newest demand for his services would spare the lives and honor of
any loyal members of his staff who were left behind.
Then he gathered up such of his belongings as he could carry in
a small pack on his back, spun around himself a guise that said,
I am only someone beneath your notice, and someone you expect to
be here, and he stepped out into the hallway.
He would flee, he would seek new allies, he would keep his own
counsel, and, for the time being at least, he would head home to
Jeslan, in the Imumbarra Isles, alone and without questioning the
orders that had sent him there. He had known from the day that his
mother initiated him into the Falcons that the gods had a special
mission for him. He had waited all his life to find out what it
was, and he had begun to believe that the early oracles had been
wrong, and that he would be only another Keeper of the Secret
Texts, and that in itself had been special. Hed tried to
convince himself that it had been all.
Now . . .
Now . . .
His gut told him that his moment was coming. That the world had
changed, and that now he was being called upon to be a sword for
the gods. He had been hardened by tragedy, tempered in blood; fat
and old and slow though he had become, he finally had within him
the clear-burning, ruthless flame that he needed to be wielded by
an eternal hand. Vincalis would have been satisfied with his
qualifications.
In his heart and in his soul, he could hear the bell-clear
ringing of metal on metal. He had been unsheathed.
He wondered who the true enemy could be.
Chapter 21
Snow-blind, half-starved, freezing, and sick, Danya
Galweigh pushed herself to take one more step across the unending
tundra. And one more after that. And one more after that. She
drifted in and out of awareness; when she was awake, she could
recognize the voice that urged her on as the voice of her guardian
spirit, assuring her that salvation lay just over the next rise.
The voice metamorphosed into dreadful things when she became
confused: It became Crispin Sabir coming to torture her again, and
it became the chanting Sabir Wolves in the center of a huge circle;
it became the voices of all of those she had seen suffer but had
not helped; it became her dead grandmother, and a favorite cousin
who had died in childhood.
She rose out of the mists in her mind one more time, and into
the temporary clarity, and the voice said, Almost to shelter,
Danya. Almost to friends, who will help you take care of yourself
and the baby. Just a little farther. Just a tiny bit
farther.
She said, Baby?
Yes. The baby. You knew, didnt you? She remembered
the torture. The rape. The brutal laughter, the cruel stinking
faces shoved close to hers, grinning while they hurt her,
delighting in her humiliation.
Baby?
There could be, would be, no baby from that horrid union. The
gods could not be that cruel.
But now that the voice had told her, she could feel, through her
magic, the truth of what he said. The vomiting, the weakness, the
dizziness, the wrongness, were not just symptoms of the
Scarring, nor were they entirely signs of her nearness to
starvation; a new life grew inside of her. She reached into herself
with what little magic she could summon, and felt that life. Small
and weak as the flame of a single candle in a drafty room, it
pulsed inside of her.
She wanted to hate it, the way she hated whichever of the three
monsters had been its father. She wanted to hate it, she wanted to
find a way to be able to kill it, yet when she touched it with her
mind, something pure and genuinely good reached back and touched
her. She pulled away from the first tentative touch of the stranger
inside her and stood in the snow, staring down at her feet,
sickened. How could anything good come of so much evil? She
didnt want to know, and she didnt want the child. But
that tendril of goodness and not a little of her own
momentary weakness stopped her from twisting the growing
infant away from its delicate link to her and purging her body of
it.
She sensed satisfaction from the one who watched over her.
You have done well, dear child. And you will continue to do well.
Only hurry, now, and Ill get you to safety.
She hurried, for what little good it did her. The promised safe
haven did not lie only a few more steps ahead of her. She walked
for another half-day before she finally toppled into a hole in the
snow and found herself face to face with a Scarred family. The
family drew weapons, but she, surrounded by unexpected and
marvelous warmth, by the rich scents of cooking meat, and by relief
that someplace existed away from the endless awful cold and hellish
snow, fainted.
She had no way of knowing how much time had passed when she
finally woke, but she found herself still in the warmth, lying in
the flickering light near a small open fire. The creature that
crouched across the fire from her held a long, bone-tipped spear in
one hand. He stared into the flames, narrowed eyes almost hidden in
the deep fur that covered his face. His flat, glossy gray nose and
the narrow slash of his thin lips were the only other breaks in
that thick white pelt. His ears, if he had them, were so small they
were hidden within the thicker ruff of gray-white fur that circled
his face. Danya thought him odd-looking, but his appearance was not
unpleasant. When he saw Danya looking at him, he waved the spear at
her in a warning fashion and said something unintelligible. What he
said didnt sound as if he had hostile intentions, though. His
voice held kindness, and reason. And only the gentlest of
warnings.
She imagined him saying, Dont do anything stupid. I
want to help you, but I cant if you attack me.
Close enough, the voice in her head whispered. Given
time, I can make sure you can talk to them. For now, eat the food
hes made for you.
She sat up slowly and held out her hand to show that she carried
no weapons. None other than her claws, in any case.
The creature said something else, and pointed to the large
fired-clay cook pot that hung over the little fire. Danya reached
forward slowly and took it, carefully trying to look as
unthreatening as possible.
Hed cooked some form of stew. She said, Is this for
me? She didnt understand his reply, and she
couldnt read the expression on his fur-covered face, but his
tone furthered her belief that he meant her only good.
She reached into the pot and speared a cube of meat on her claw.
She knew she didnt dare eat too much or too quickly, but
aside from the few hares and snow-pigeons shed managed to
catch and eat raw, she had not had food since her last meal, the
night before she became a sacrifice. She ate the meat cube, wishing
she could lower her muzzle straight into the pot to lap out the
contents in a few quick gulps. She didnt want to be sick,
though. So she forced herself to take dainty little bites, and to
hand the pot back to her host even before it was empty, because she
could feel uncomfortable pressure in her stomach.
The two of them sat looking at each other across the fire. She
recalled the others that shed seen in the house before, but
she could not hear them or smell them or get any sense that they
were still present.
He made his family leave. They went to one of the other homes
in the village until he could be sure that you werent
dangerous.
Danya considered that for a moment. Why didnt he just
kill me when I fell into his house? Why take any chance on me at
all?
Among his people, apparently strangers are always taken in
and made welcome. Ive seen similar things before
. . .
But Im not of his people. Im a completely
different kind of . . . of monster.
A soft chuckle in the back of her mind then. You arent
in human lands anymore, Danya. Beyond Ibera, people are usually
considered people no matter what form they take. With a few
exceptions, the humans are the only ones who refuse to recognize
that.
Danya didnt respond to that. She couldnt think of
herself as human anymore, but she had to admit that on the inside
she was the same person she had been before; at least, if she was
different, she hadnt discovered how yet.
You . . . you brought me to these people. How did
you know they were safe?
She felt rather than heard the sigh. First, now that you are
fed, and sheltered, and for the time safe, let me tell you my name
again. Ive never cared for being called
You.
Youve told me your name before?
Certainly. But it proved an exercise in pointlessness when
you were in and out of delirium. My name is Luercas. I am
. . . or rather was . . . a Wolf like you. I
was killed in a situation Id rather not discuss now, but for
some reason my body was trapped in the Veil, and I havent
been able to move forward or back. Until now. Something happened
when you were . . . ah . . . sacrificed
. . . that released me from the prison that had held me
for well, I honestly dont know how long I was trapped.
But I found myself inside of your mind, looking out of your eyes,
and I think perhaps the reason I was released was because I could
help you and no one else could. Luercas fell silent for a
moment. Danya waited.
At last he said, In my current state, I can sense things that
are at a distance. I can feel potentials and while I
couldnt be sure what we would find when we got here, I did
sense that in this direction lay safety for you, and your one
chance of survival.
Danya lay back and let her eyes drift closed. The food, the
warmth, and the hardships of the last however many days all
conspired to push her toward sleep. She did ask, Why did my
survival matter to you? I cant understand that.
Because, Luercas said, I can sense potentials. You
have something important to do. Something vital and good. Something
that is going to change your world. And I am, in some way, a part
of that. And I believe that you must achieve this goal before I am
released to pass through the Veil to whatever awaits me beyond
it.
Danya nodded. Across from her, the Scarred man ate the stew
shed left. He contorted his face, but she couldnt read
the expression. She tried to respond with a smile, but realized her
own facial muscles were no longer designed for such nuances. She
sighed again, and closed her eyes.
Im glad youre helping me, she told
Luercas.
That was her last coherent thought for a long time.
* * *
Kait sat in the ships parnissery in the darkness before
the dawning of Embastaru, the Day of Hours, and listened to the
sweet, high voice of the ships parnissa reading the old
words. She had been a month aboard the Peregrine, and the
rhythms of ship life had dulled some of the pain of her precipitous
exit from Calimekka.
The Book of Time, third of the five sacred books of
Iber, says, Number neither your days nor your hours, lest
they pass by you quickly while you count them. Instead, name them
as friends, and bid them tarry awhile, and you will know long life
and happiness. So we greet each station of the day by name,
and with reverence, acknowledging all both as friends returned to
visit and as strangers to be made welcome strangers who have
come into our midst briefly, and who will never return.
The parnissa wore the white robes traditional for the day, and
the candlelight reflecting off the robes and her pale skin and
equally pale golden hair made her look more spirit than flesh. The
ship creaked and rocked, and the sounds and rhythms soothed. Kait
was close to sleep, but she remembered her duty as one of the
Familied to uphold Iberism in all places and at all times, and so
she sat on the hard bench in the candlelit parnissery and fought to
keep her eyes open.
Morning approaches blessed morning.
The parnissa paused, and Kait and the other attendees said in
unison, We honor the Stations of Morning.
We honor Soma, the parnissa intoned.
Everyone replied, Soma, who is the bringer of first
light.
Kait let the familiar words drift over her. The service was both
womb and wound, cradling her in its ties to the past at the same
time that it hurt her with its reminder that the future could never
be as bright or warm. In the past days, shed kept to herself.
Shed burned candles for her parents and brothers and sisters,
for her aunts and uncles and cousins; shed prayed for the
success of her journey, while never quite believing that the
artifact she sought could truly exist. Shed tried her best to
give herself a measure of peace, but inner peace eluded her.
The parnissa walked along the edge of the pedestal at the front
of the parnissery, lighting candles. We honor
Stura.
Stura, the singer of morning songs, the lively
child.
We honor Duea.
Duea, fair daughter who dances the sun to
midday.
Kait recalled sitting in her parents parnissery on a dozen
occasions, repeating the same words in the same sleepy tones,
giving half-aware honor to gods neither she nor her family really
believed in, comforted by the presence of her sisters and brothers
on the bench beside her. Her father had kept them all quiet with
hard looks, her mother had bribed them with treats afterward.
The same words, the same tones, the scent of beeswax sweetened
with lavender that the candles gave off, and this year the hurt in
her heart that would not go away.
And following on the heels of morning, the parnissa
continued, the Stations of Aftering.
We honor the Stations of Aftering.
We honor Mosst.
Mosst, master of heat, creator of fire.
Thought of her Family brought their killers to mind, and chasing
the thought of Sabirs came the thoughts of one specific Sabir. Her
gut knotted, thinking of the Karnee in the alley, and suddenly she
realized she held him in her mind not because of memory or the
random drift of thoughts from one thing to the next, but because
some part of him had already been there.
Waiting. A tantalizing glimpse of a dream fragment flitted
through her mind and out again before she could catch hold of it,
but she had it long enough in mind to realize that at some point,
shed dreamed of him.
We honor Nerin.
Nerin, whose gift is long light and clear
vision.
She shivered and tried to push him from the place he held in her
thoughts; she wanted to find her way back to the service honoring
the gods of the hours. Instead, she discovered that she could reach
out and touch him with her mind.
He slept. She held so still she almost didnt breathe, and
let her eyelids drift shut.
He slept aboard a ship. He was some distance from her.
He followed her.
We honor Paldin.
Paldin, who blends the worlds of light and dark, and
illuminates the world after the sun has fled.
He followed her, in a ship filled with his men; he hunted her.
She could feel in the lightness of his sleep some of the edge of
his determination to catch her. She could feel a sense of loss in
him, though she could not fathom what he had lost. She felt his
hunger, and felt it directed at her. Even in his sleep, he came
after her.
As we honor the times of light, we honor the
darkness.
We honor the Stations of Night.
We honor Dard.
Dard, the first true darkness, who greets the White
Lady.
We honor Telt.
Telt, the middle darkness, who conjoins the White Lady and
the Red Hunter.
The White Lady, who had once been mortal, had fled the Red
Hunter in life. He had hunted her from the time she came of age and
became very beautiful until the day when, weak and weary, she ran
into a passageway between cliffs in a forest she did not know, and
discovered that the only way out was the way shed gone in.
Trapped, she prayed to Haledan, the goddess of beauty and truth,
asking that she be spared the fate the hunter planned for her.
Haledan came to her, and offered to protect her from the hunter if
she would pledge herself into Haledans service forever. The
girl agreed, and Haledan turned her into the most beautiful star in
the sky, the White Lady, and thus she escaped both the hunter and
death.
But the hunter called upon his patron god, Stolpan, the god of
craftsmen and workers, and begged not to be cheated from the hunt
when he was so close to catching his quarry. Stolpan could not undo
what Haledan had done, but he could let the hunter continue his
hunt. The hunter agreed that he would serve Stolpan forever, and in
exchange, Stolpan made him the Red Hunter, the star that was as
dark and frightening as the White Lady was bright and pure, and in
that guise, he chased her across the sky every night. He would
never catch her, but he would hunt her forever.
Realizing that her enemy, the Sabir Karnee, pursued her, and
that he somehow knew where she was, Kait felt a sudden kinship with
the White Lady. The only difference was that she didnt have
the protection of a goddess she had no guarantee that the
one who hunted her would not catch her.
We honor Huld.
Huld, singer of the last darkness, who waits to embrace
the rising of the sun.
Wait in silence, for the new day comes, and the new hour
with it. Hold Soma in your heart, and all those stations that
follow after. Be blessed, this day and every day, and rejoice in
each moment, for all are sacred, and none will come
again.
We bless you; we bless each other; we bless ourselves,
this day and every day. Desporati sajamis, tosbe do
naska.
The words of the final benediction, which in the ancient
parnissas tongue meant, In our humanity we unite, body
and spirit, signaled the end of the service. The movement of
the people on either side of her pulled Kait away from the link
shed shared with her hunter. That change, in turn, woke him.
She felt him open his eyes. She could, for just an instant, see
through them; he occupied a cabin more lush than her own, and
larger, but he shared it with others. She caught just a glimpse of
a hard-eyed man with a lean face who sat across from him on the
edge of a bunk, and another, pale-haired and almost sweet-looking,
who slept in the bunk above that man. The lean man seemed to look
into Kaits eyes. He frowned and said, Whats the
matter, Ry? You look . . . sick.
Then she felt the Sabir realize she was there, and instantly the
tie that linked them broke, and hurled her consciousness back into
her own body, into the parnissery. Most of the rest of the
worshipers had already filed out, and the parnissa stood looking at
her with a curious expression on her face. Kait rose quickly,
before the woman could come over to ask her if she had something
she wished to discuss, and followed everyone else out onto the deck
of the ship. At that moment, the sky, which along the eastern
horizon wore rich veins of deep purple and ruby red above a
widening line of pink and yellow, erupted in gold, and the sun
broke free of the sea that had hidden it.
The alto bell welcoming Soma began to ring, and all the
worshipers on deck faced east, dropped to their knees, and welcomed
the new station and the new day.
If youre finished, I need to speak with
you.
She had knelt with the others; she twisted around and looked up,
and found Hasmal standing behind her, studying her with an
expression that was a curious mix of determination and fear. He
hadnt been in the parnissery for the service; she wondered if
hed just happened upon her, or if hed sought her
out.
Still shaken by the contact with the Sabir with
Ry, as his companion had called him she rose and
shrugged. Maybe later.
Hasmal smelled afraid, but he lifted his head and stared at her.
Without doing anything that she could see, he surrounded himself
and her with the same wall of peace that had first caught her
attention at the party. In that instant, she felt Amalee protest,
then fall silent, cut off in mid-yelp. And a faint weight that had
tickled in the back of her mind, and that she only noticed by its
sudden absence, also vanished. What I have to tell you
wont wait any longer. Ive put it off much too long as
it is, and Ive . . . er, Ive been told
. . . that by doing so, I have put us into unnecessary
danger.
She didnt want to deal with him right then. Later, but not
right then. But hed managed to intrigue her. She nodded.
We can talk in my cabin, I suppose. Unless you have someplace
else . . . ?
No. Your cabin will serve.
She led. He followed.
* * *
You know where she is, then? Shaid Galweigh sat in
cool near-darkness in the Cherian House private meeting room, at
the head of a long cast-bronze table older than memory. The Wolves
of Cherian House, untouched by the disaster that had wiped out the
Galweigh House Wolves, because they had not participated in it,
lined both sides of the table.
The head of the Wolves, a plump, jovial-looking woman named
Veshre, nodded and smiled. Were certain. Weve
located her aboard a private ship currently heading east-northeast,
somewhere along the Devils Trail. We think they put in for
supplies at one of the islands about a week ago, and since then the
ship has been moving steadily again.
Have you divined her destination?
The Wolves glanced at each other. None were sure how to give the
paraglese the news they had uncovered. Veshre finally shrugged and
said, There are some complications, Shaid. Weve linked
a number of . . . She frowned, not liking the
melodramatic terms that came first to mind, but unable to frame
what she had to say in any terms less sensational. A number
of . . . well, deities, I suppose Id have to say,
to her movements. One has somehow attached itself to her, others
watch her, there is some sort of blocking force that until now has
been near her but seemingly unrelated to her, but now that seems to
have involved itself as well, and just before Soma she disappeared
entirely. That blocking force . . . it, ah, engulfed her
. . . and she has not reappeared.
Shaid rose halfway out of his seat, his face livid, but Veshre
waved him into it. Shes still aboard the ship. She had
no place else to go. That last problem is one we can work with. The
involvement of unknown deities is more problematical. She could
have acquired powerful defenders.
Deities. Shaid shook his head in disgust, leaned
back in his seat, and templed his fingers in front of him.
Deities. Why has a deity attached itself to her?
It is a lesser deity, Veshre emphasized.
They all are. None of them is recognized in the pantheon,
none of them came from anywhere vital.
They came from somewhere, didnt they? Shaid
did not enjoy the company of Wolves, a fact he usually kept to
himself. But this morning, his edges showed. Theyve
attached themselves to the woman I want dead. Their presence must
mean something.
Veshre nodded. Only one has actually attached itself to
her, she reminded him, but yes, of course they mean
something. We feel were going to be able to divine their
intentions before too long. Obviously we have to be subtle
we dont, after all, want their attention focused on us. That
could be . . . She didnt finish the sentence.
Bad was such an understatement for the possible consequences
of alerting unknown deities to the Wolves spying presence.
Disastrous, on the other hand, would make Shaid less certain
of the control she and her Wolves had of the situation, and at the
moment, the power balance in the Family was unsteady. His lack of
faith in her ability to carry out his program could be the deciding
factor in his seeking outside assistance. The Wolves were already
aware of his clandestine courtship of the Sabir Family. They needed
to walk carefully indeed to maintain control of their situation, at
least as long as Shaid was paraglese. Were dealing with
the problem, she said at last. Its unique, and
well let you know as we make progress. However, if we told
you that we could kill the girl right now, wed be lying.
Well deal with her as soon as we understand the situation
completely.
Shaid didnt look happy, but he did at last meet her eyes.
Very well. Keep me informed of what you discover, and come to
me before you kill her. I want He smiled slowly and
stopped.
Veshre didnt like the look in his eyes, or his
vultures smile, but she rose, gave him the quick, shallow bow
appropriate for one of her rank, and said, The moment I have
news, you will have it as well.
The other Wolves rose at her signal, made their obeisance, and
followed her out the door.
* * *
The Veil parted and a final brilliant sphere of pale pink light
erupted from the void. It spiraled down into the midst of a swarm
of similar spheres perhaps twenty in all. These danced
around each other within the confines of an imaginary bubble, their
subtle movements and shifting colors conveying at incredible speeds
information that, had it been in the speech of mortals, would have
translated into the following conversation:
We gather in freedom at last. Welcome, brethren of the Star
Council.
We arent all met, Dafril. One of our number has not
responded to the call.
Who is missing? Dafril touched minds with those present,
then recoiled. This fills me with unspeakable
dread. . . . What has become of Luercas? Has his
soul suffered annihilation since our release from
captivity?
Nereas answered. Weve lost him, but he is not lost.
Before you arrived, we sought him even as we sought you. You
confirmed your approach; he . . . did not. He hides
himself; those of us who sought him cannot find him, but his soul
line has not been extinguished. He has not fallen therefore
we must assume that he has . . . strayed.
Then Luercas must be the first item we address. Does he
actively oppose us, do you think?
All of us thought he stood with us. Since he expends such
effort in evading and eluding us, we must suspect he only pretended
agreement so that he could completely understand our plans and
aspirations, the better to destroy them.
Why? Why would he stand against a new golden age? Why would
he resist us?
A pause fell then in real terms, it lasted no longer than
the time a single bolt of lightning needed to flicker from one
cloud to another, no longer than half of the blink of an eye, but
in the context of those who participated in the conversation, it
seemed to drag on forever.
Finally, one of the spirits of the Star Council offered the
possibility all of them dreaded.
Perhaps he seeks to create for himself an empire on Matrin,
with himself as god-emperor. Perhaps he wants the golden age we
desire, but for himself alone instead of for everyone.
Another pause, pregnant with the distress of all those present.
General agreement followed, but became a confused babble as those
present tried to press their recommendations for dealing with
Luercas on each other. Finally, everyone calmed down enough that
Dafril could ask for suggestions again.
We should destroy him when we find him, Mellayne
suggested. We should obliterate his soul line.
Werris disagreed. We should force him through the Mirror of
Souls into a mortal body incapable of responding to him. He will be
trapped while he lives, and when he dies, he will be pushed through
the Veil. But the death of his soul will not be on our
consciences.
Vaul found even that excessive. Perhaps banishment would be
sufficient.
Others offered other suggestions, all of them contradictory,
varying in severity and duration. Some only wanted to find the
missing Luercas in order to try to bring him to reason through
discussion; others wanted his soul destroyed without any question
or trial his absence, they thought, was condemnation enough
of his motives. None could think that his absence from this first
meeting of the Star Council in over a thousand years was
irrelevant. All wanted to take action immediately, but none could
agree on the action to take. The babble rose again, and threatened
to break into heated argument, and Dafril could tell that her
colleagues would accomplish nothing further on the issue right
then. Their hypothetical determination of punishment for Luercas
remained pointless until they found him, in any case. So she
changed the subject.
Have all of us chosen suitable avatars among the
mortals?
Everyone had.
Excellent. Dafril shared a feeling of delight with her
colleagues. My avatar is on her way to rescue the Mirror of
Souls from its resting place. Events worked into my hands very
nicely she didnt require much pushing at all to
undertake the journey.
Sartrig said, Mine follows her, in case she cannot complete
the mission. He would follow her whether I prodded him or not
he is under other compulsions besides mine. But these
compulsions, which come from within, are to my benefit. They allow
me to remain in the background, where most of the time he is not
aware of my presence. Just as well he could banish me from
his mind if he chose to do so; his magical training has progressed
already to that point.
Other reports followed in quick order: a paraglese encouraged to
pursue a path away from the interests of his Family and toward the
broader interests of the Star Council; a princess of the Gyru-nalle
royal line of Feelasto led to speak of making an alliance with the
Families of Ibera; a Dalkan pirate-king just beginning to think of
suing for peace with the Iberan Families.
With such encouraging reports to buoy them, the Star Councillors
separated to return to their avatars, agreeing before they parted
to watch for Luercas and to think until they met again on what
should be done about him.
Chapter 22
Hasmal refused the chair Kait offered him; instead, he
sat on the floor of her cabin and insisted that she sit across from
him. When they were settled, he added to the shield hed cast
around the two of them. He spun through it the dont
notice us spell he had prepared so carefully in advance. Kait
watched his finger tracing through the powder he scattered on her
floor and said nothing. More interestingly, her face gave away
nothing that she was thinking. He almost smiled then her
years of training in diplomacy might serve him almost as well in
what he needed to do as if she had been brought up from childhood
to be a Falcon.
When the shields were strengthened and he was sure the
activities in the room would not draw any attention from anyone on
the ship, he brushed his powders into a neat pile, scooped them
into one hand, and scattered some on himself and some on her.
Her expression still didnt change, but when hed
finished, she did ask in an even, polite tone, Religious
ritual?
He shook his head, and now he did smile. No. Something
that would get both of us condemned to death anywhere in Ibera, and
probably here as well, for all of Captain Draclass liberalism
in other areas. The completion of a magical spell.
He did see a flicker of expression cross her face then, but it
never touched on fear. Instead, in the brief instant before calm
neutrality removed that tiny spark of visible emotion from her
eyes, he thought he saw resignation.
And he thought, Resignation? What a bizarre response.
It seems that I am born to be a heretic, she said,
and gave him a sad smile that he did not understand. No
matter how pure my motives or how dire my need or how great my love
of Family, every road I travel takes me further from the True
Path.
I dont understand.
Now one of her eyebrows arched and the start of a smile quirked
at one corner of her mouth. You dont understand that if
this wall of peace you build is built with magic, and if I desire
to learn how to build it as well, that doing so will make me a
heretic? Please. How long did you live in Ibera? And how did you
keep from being drawn and quartered in the public square?
He shook his head. Shed missed his question. I
understand that what I do is . . . heretical. In Ibera,
in most places in the world, to most people. I know that. What I
dont understand is why you act as if this is only the latest
heresy for you.
Ahhh. My heresy. She glanced around her cabin
and shrugged. The walls listen, Hasmal, and the keyholes
watch, and I would be doubly damned if my secrets got out. Even
here.
The spell I cast around us protects us. No one will notice
you; no one will listen. You and I are alone.
That eyebrow flickered upward again. Then she smiled and
shrugged, and said, Are you a brave man, Hasmal?
No. He didnt even have to consider the
question. I am the basest of base cowards.
Her smile grew broad, and hinted at merriment. She leaned
forward and rested a slender, long-fingered hand over his, and
said, You are honest, and I cant remember the last time
I met an honest man. Were all cowards, I think. Those who
would deny that are simply liars into the bargain. Her hand
squeezed his. Ill show you my heresy, and that way
well be even. Youve given me the power to have you
hanged aboard this ship, if I ever wanted to betray you; now
Ill return the favor, so that youll be able to sleep at
night.
And then she added, with a final, gentle squeeze, I
wont hurt you. I promise.
While he still wondered what in the world that enigmatic
statement could mean, a surge of dark, wild magic erupted from her
and her body began to twist. Her smile became a feral beast-grin as
her mouth and nose and jaw stretched forward and tapered into the
lean, muscular muzzle of a killing machine. Her eyes, their rich
brown unchanged, moved back in her skull and apart; her forehead
angled backward, growing deeper as it flattened. Ears stretched
upward, pointing and belling into wolfish erectness, though that
was the only part of her face that made him think of a wolf. Her
body altered, too, so that she went from being two-legged to
four-legged, and the breeches and tunic that had fit her so
fetchingly in human form hung weirdly on her in this other shape,
stretched almost to bursting across the rib cage and haunches,
hanging slack at waist and wrists and ankles.
We all have our secrets, you see, she said, and she
still spoke in the cultured accents of a woman of Calimekkan
Family. Her voice, though, was the voice of a creature of
nightmare, one that stalked through the endless forests of
sleep.
Sweat broke out on Hasmals forehead and his upper lip, and
when he said, So I see, his voice broke on the word
see, squeaking as it had when he was fourteen and not
since.
Her reversion to human form took longer, though the process he
thought of as melting began the instant she spoke.
When at last she sat before him as a human again, he said,
What are you?
She closed her eyes and sighed. I was born under a curse.
We are called Karnee, my kind . . . though I have met
only one other Karnee in my entire life, and he pursues me even
now. She shrugged. Im a monster. A heretic. An
evil beast that most times masquerades as a woman. If my parents
hadnt hidden me and taken another baby in my stead before the
parnissas on Gaerwanday, the Day of Infants, I would have been
slaughtered in an offering to the Iberan gods. As it is, my
survival was a threat to them every day that they lived. Had anyone
ever discovered what I was, not only I but every member of my
immediate family and most if not all of the household
staff would have been killed in one of the public squares of
Calimekka. My existence threatened the lives of every person I ever
loved, and I didnt even have the courage to destroy myself so
that I could know that they would be safe.
Her smile was bitter. Were all cowards in one way or
another. She shrugged it off. Now that you and I have
traded our awful secrets, tell me why you suddenly needed to talk
to me, when youve been avoiding me since I came on
board.
Im to teach you. Im supposed to
. . . to initiate you. Into the Falcons. Make you a
Warden.
Initiate me? Youre supposed to? Kait looked
intrigued by that news. Who told you that?
I consulted spirits. He felt his face flushing as
her eyebrow twitched upward in almost-concealed disbelief. I
did. Its part of the magic that I must teach you. I have to
introduce you to the Secret Texts, and train you to Ward, and
She held up a hand. The Secret Texts of
Vincalis?
His jaw dropped, and for a moment he could find no words.
Youve read the Secret Texts? he asked her at
last.
My uncle told me hed give me a copy when we got back
to the House. After the wedding. He couldnt, because he and
my cousin and the pilot were killed when we landed, and I escaped.
He was going to teach me that wall trick you do, too
. . .
She quickly described the events of that day, finishing with her
escape from her uncles House.
That explained much. Theyre still coming after
you, Hasmal said softly.
Coming after me? I know.
Perhaps that shouldnt have caught him off guard, but it
did. You knew your uncle and the Wolves of his House were
after you? Im surprised. You were marked by Wolf magic, but
it was very subtle. I blocked their marker with a spell of my
own.
At that, she did look surprised. She shook her head.
No. The Sabirs are following me. Not my Family.
The Sabirs? No. I found no sign of that.
They stared at each other, confusion on both their faces. Then
Kait said, Youre certain my Family is after
me?
I stake my life on it.
And I know that a man named Ry Sabir and his men pursue us
by ship. I know this as surely as I know I breathe, or that you and
I sit on this floor.
Both Sabirs and Galweighs after you. Why? Of what
importance are you?
She stared down at her hands. You must know something
else. The spirit of an ancestor of mine came to me when my Family
was killed. She told me that I could bring them back to life if I
obtained the Mirror of Souls. So I am going after it.
Hasmal buried his face in his hands. The Mirror of Souls. The
Ancient artifact that the Secret Texts promised would be linked to
the return of the Reborn. Kait Galweigh, his doom, was on the ship
that had been intended to take him away from her, and she was a
monster, and they were seeking the Mirror of Souls, and the world
as he had known it would be coming to an end at any moment.
He wondered, if he jumped into the ocean, how far he would have
to swim to find land. Then he wondered if finding land even
mattered; drowning might be preferable.
You dont want to find the Mirror of Souls, he
said.
She arched an eyebrow. I do. I want to have my Family
back.
Hasmal shook his head. That isnt the way it will
work. Listen. You and I are linked together. Spirits told me that
you would be a danger to me, and that by being together we would
somehow effect the return of the Reborn, so I did everything I
could to get away from you thinking that you would be coming
for me in Halles and terrible things happened to me but I
managed to survive, and I thought I was well away from you on this
ship that would sail to the ends of Matrin. Then you show up
on this very ship, of all the places where you could have gone. And
now I find out that were going off to retrieve the single
artifact mentioned in the Secret Texts in reference to the return
of the Reborn. This has nothing to do with bringing your Family
back, Kait. The gods have their hand in this, and if we keep going,
were going to die.
Kait tipped her head to one side and stared at him.
Youre actually quite a nervous man, arent
you?
He almost wept. No. Im the most sensible man in the
world. I had work I liked. I spent time with my parents. I knew
what I wanted; I was going to take over my fathers shop when
he wearied of the work, as he did from his father. I was a Falcon
because my father taught me, but I didnt expect to have to do
anything except pass on the teachings to my son or daughter. I
never wanted to be one of the tools Vodor Imrish used in
returning the Reborn to the world. The tools of the gods end up
broken. And I dont want to die, and I dont want my
parents to die, either.
She patted his leg. It was a condescending little pat. A
dont worry, silly man pat. She said,
Im not doing anything for the gods, Hasmal. And I
dont even know who the Reborn is but Im not
doing anything for him, either. So this terrible future you foresee
isnt going to happen. No death, no destruction, no horror.
Ill get my Family back, and youll go back to your shop
and be a shopkeeper like your father and his father before
him. She smiled when she said it.
He gritted his teeth. I only wish that were true. You keep
your optimism because you dont know what is happening. The
Reborn, he said, speaking slowly and clearly, as if he were
dealing with a particularly stupid child, lived during the
time of Vincalis, more than a thousand years ago. The Reborn was a
wizard of tremendous talent and perfect goodness named Solander. He
created the Falcons to stand against the evil wizards commonly
known as Dragons, who used magic as a weapon and peoples
lives as fuel. He did his best to prevent the Wizards War,
but the Dragons captured him and killed him as a dissident.
Vincalis, who was a prophet for the Falcons as well as
Solanders student and biographer, put aside the plays and
poems he wrote for his living, and cast oracles for one thousand
one hundred days. Each day, he wrote the future he saw in the
Secret Texts. He correctly predicted the Dragons
self-destruction, and the falling into disfavor of magic. And he
also predicted that the Reborn would return when the Dragons rose
from their own ashes. And that the Mirror of Souls must be found
and taken to the Reborn to prevent disaster. And that only after
terrible destruction and a second Wizards War would the
golden age the Reborn had promised come.
Kait finally looked like she understood the danger. But
magic is still forbidden, and forgotten. She thought of her
dead uncle Dùghall, and his claims of magic, and sighed.
Well, mostly forgotten.
Hasmal laughed. You dont believe that, surely. The
Falcons kept the Reborns magic alive for all of the thousand
years after the Wizards War. Your Familys Wolves and
the Sabirs Wolves have been scouring Ancient cities for the
texts and artifacts of the Dragons for more than four hundred
years. In the Wolves, the Dragons have risen. And now the horrors
begin.
Im working for the return of my Family. Not for your
god and your wizard.
Hasmal shook his head. The gods use who they will. And
they never ask for volunteers.
Fine. So you come to me and you tell me that you have to
speak to me, and this is because you want to commiserate with me,
that you and I have been chosen by your god as . . .
sacrifices? Is that it? Well, youve told me. Now youve
done your duty and you can leave. Forgive me if I dont choose
to go along with your gods plan.
She was an exasperating woman. I came because I need to
give you the Secret Texts to read. You need to know what we face.
And I need to teach you the magic of the Falcons. I need to make
you a Falcon.
She snorted. You didnt want to have anything to do
with me, and now suddenly you want to be my mentor? How fortunate
for me.
I dont want to be your mentor. And I dont want
to have anything to do with this destiny, any more than you do. I
never fancied myself a hero. I want to teach you so that Ill
have someone who can back me up if we get into trouble.
Kait shrugged. Well, teaching. Thats a different
matter altogether. I wont serve your god Im not
even sure who Vodor Imrish is. But learning is never a mistake.
Teach me whatever you know.
* * *
Anwyn Sabir rubbed one clawed hand along his horns. Theyd
gotten longer since the abortive attack on the Galweighs. He
crossed his legs and glowered at the twin cloven hooves, flat and
broad as dinner plates. His human leg the last thing
hed had to remind him of the time when hed been a man
instead of a monster had vanished in the backwash of magic
and the simultaneous overflow from the Galweigh attack. He missed
the leg; missed the smooth flesh and the foot that, if he looked at
it, reminded him of the days when he looked into mirrors readily
and with pleasure. Walking was easier, though, with legs that
matched and that both bent the same way.
Arent you ready yet? he growled.
Quiet, unless you want me to shift the damned
rewhah to you. Maybe next time youll grow a tail.
Crispin glared at him. Andrew gripped a girl-child of about five
under one arm; Crispin held her hand over the little fire hed
started in the cauldron on the stone table. He slashed across her
palm with his knife blood spattered and the girl shrieked
and managed to kick Andrew solidly in the shoulder.
Anwyn laughed, but didnt say anything out loud. He was
still recovering from the effects of his last Scarring, and
didnt want to find himself in the way of any more rebound
magic for a while.
Crispin let go of the childs hand and focused on the spell
he was casting. It was a tiny spell, really not one that
would require the girl as a sacrifice. Anwyn thought hed
probably use her as a sacrifice anyway, both as a precautionary
buffer theyd all gotten leery of unexpected magical
rebounds since the disaster and because he took pleasure in
the suffering of his sacrifices. But if he wasnt greedy, they
might be able to get another use or two out of her before she
died.
Crispin finished casting the spell, and Andrew and Anwyn both
looked into the dancing flames in the cauldron. At first, nothing
appeared.
Maybe the bitchs son really is dead, Andrew
suggested.
Anwyn laughed. Not even were that unlucky. He made
it look like wed killed him for a reason, and it wasnt
so someone else could do it and get away with it.
Maybe someone else made it look like wed killed
him.
Weve been over this before
Silence, Crispin said.
Images began to form in the flames. A square of white, then
water . . . these resolved gradually into a high-prowed
Rophetian ship moving across open sea.
A ship? Andrew frowned and leaned farther forward.
Why would he be on a ship?
Silence. Crispin never looked away from the flames,
but the growing exasperation in his voice sounded clear enough to
Anwyn.
Theyd suspected from the moment the bloody mess in
Rys room was discovered that he wasnt dead. Theyd
been sure of it when the magical pointers and traces had all marked
them as the killers; they knew they hadnt killed the little
bastard, though it would have been a good idea. They were at a
loss, though, as to why they would be set up as the killers.
Ry couldnt return to claim leadership of the Wolves after
faking his own death; his mother couldnt hope to benefit from
the sympathy hed generated for her or the hatred his death
had generated against them, since she was Sabir only by marriage;
and for any of the other Sabir Wolves who might have eyed the
position at the head of the pack, the removal of Ry and the blaming
of the three of them for the death wouldnt help to secure
their ascension.
So what benefit did anyone gain by the stunt?
The three of them had discussed the matter, carefully secured a
sacrifice, and after a month of avoiding any activities that might
have made them look guilty of what theyd been accused of,
they found both the time and the place to work their divination
without drawing any attention to themselves. By the end of the
month Anwyn was healthy enough to participate, too. The paths were
finally clear for them to discover what Ry was up to.
Now it looked like he was on a ship, and sailing away from
Calimekka.
And who did that benefit?
Can you bring in any more detail? Anwyn asked.
Crispin wore his frustration on his face. Hes well
shielded, and has shielded the people with him, too. I cant
even get a look at the captain or the crew. Hes been very
careful.
Youre certain hes aboard that ship?
The blood and hair we got from his room would not form
links to anyone but him. Hes there.
Mark the ship, then. Sooner or later, hell cease to
be so vigilant. Sooner or later, well be able to see what
hes doing, and what hes hiding.
Crispin nodded. Andrew dragged the child back to him this
time she started screaming before he touched her, and kept
screaming when he nicked the artery in her neck and the blood began
to spurt into the cauldron. The three of them focused on the spell
they cast, to mark the ship and everything in it magically, so that
they could locate it again wherever it might be. Then they braced
for the rebound, for the marking spell was bigger and fiercer than
the divination spell. They funneled the backlash, when it came,
into the dying body of the child. She shimmered and glowed and
began to melt into a fur-covered, bat-winged monster, and at the
same time she began to cry pathetic little mewlings that
grew weaker and weaker as her blood spurted into the cauldron to
sizzle and hiss and smoke.
Anwyn watched Crispin without seeming to watch him, and saw the
weakness there that he saw every time they sacrificed a girl child.
Amused, he looked away to keep from betraying himself to his
brother. Handsome, arrogant Crispin had few weaknesses, but the one
he did have was for little girls; hed had a bastard daughter
by one of the threesomes toys, and kept her safely hidden
from everyone. Anwyn suspected she was in the hands of a caretaker
family somewhere in the New Territories, or possibly even in New
Kaspera. But not even he knew.
He did know that she still lived, and thrived, and that Crispin,
for all that he thought he hid it well, remained squeamish about
the sacrificing and killing of little girls. Which was a useful
thing to know. Knowledge was power, and Anwyn had decided long ago
that where his older brother was concerned, he would take any power
he could get.
The child went limp in his arms, but not before the backlash had
spent itself in her frail body. Anwyn said, Here, Crispin,
Ill get rid of that for you.
Crispin handed the little corpse to him. Andrew giggled, and
said, Give it to me to play with first, wont
you?
Both brothers turned to study him with distaste. Anwyn grew
wearier daily of his cousin Andrews perversions had
been amusing when first he and Crispin discovered them, and the two
of them had even, from time to time, participated out of curiosity.
But Andrew seemed to be both defined and encompassed by the lusts
that drove him, and Anwyn thought that no matter how deep he and
his brother dug into their cousins soul, they would find
nothing but more layers of the same muck and scum beneath the
surface. Which made Andrew tiresome company.
Not this time, he said, and watched Andrews
face pinch tight. Crispins roses need fertilizer. If
you want a toy, get one of your own.
Anwyn turned back to Crispin. What do you want to do about
Ry?
Crispin brushed the wavy golden hair Anwyn so envied out of his
face and shrugged. Not much we can do until we can uncover
his reasons for leaving, for staging his own murder, and for
destroying his own chance to ever lead the Wolves. Well watch
him. When we can prove hes alive and on that ship, I suppose
well expose him. Then . . . He smiled and
glanced down at the cauldron. Then I imagine well kill
him. Without making ourselves to blame for it.
Chapter 23
The Peregrine slipped past another island in the
Devils Trail. Smoke curled from a tall cone in the center of
the island, and a thick black trail of new rock drove down to the
shore between the burned skeletons of trees that forested either
side. Kait thought that Joshan, the goddess of the high places, of
solitude, and of loneliness, would feel right at home there.
Kait paced the port deck, staring at the island, smelling the
things that still lived there. The Peregrine ran close in,
close enough that Kait could pick out the herd of deer that grazed
at the edge of the burn line, where new growth had already started
to come back. She growled softly and flexed her hands, and stared
at them with hungry yearning.
Forty days since her last full Shift. Forty days that had
always been the outside limit between Shifts for her. Her little
demonstration for Hasmal had given her a tiny reprieve, but she
needed to be able to let go. She wanted to run, to hunt, to chase,
to kill, and prey was within her reach, and she couldnt let
herself go after it. She needed to give herself over to the other
for a full day, and if she jumped over the side and swam to the
island to hunt, by the time she could excise her demon for another
two months the ship would be eighty leagues to the northeast. She
turned away from the deer.
She had to Shift. The need burrowed under her skin now, an
unceasing and ever-worsening itch. She couldnt leave the
Peregrine, because she would never be able to rejoin it if she
did. She was terrified to Shift aboard ship, though. She had no
doubt that if she was found out, the crew would kill her. And how
could she keep from being found out?
She growled again, as the rich scent of the deer on the island
swirled out to her one final time. Already the island lay behind
them instead of beside them. Even knowing that she would be trapped
if she jumped overboard, Kait almost couldnt restrain
herself.
The hunt. The chase. The kill.
Her fingernails dug into the palms of her clenched fists, and
she realized that she felt points digging into her flesh, not
crescents. She stared down at her hands in horror. She had claws
now, not fingernails, and her smooth human skin wore the first
faint down of beast fur. She looked around her, frantic. Perry the
Crow, one of the ships lookouts, hung in the rigging at the
top of the mainmast, staring ahead. Ians second-in-command,
the dour Rophetian navigator Jhoots, stood at the wheel, also with
his back to her. A few of the crew checked the coils of lines, or
climbed through the rigging, shifting or tying sails at
Jhootss command. So far, none of them had paid any attention
to her. Thanks to the moonless darkness, if she could get off the
deck before she Shifted from two legs to four, perhaps no one
would.
But where could she hide?
Not her room. Rrru-eeth would be by in the morning to clean it.
The door had a lock, but Kait didnt trust Rrru-eeths
hearing, which she suspected of being keener than her own. The
Scarred girl would catch the change in her Shifted voice, or her
breathing, or gods only knew what else.
Down below, the crew slept. But below them lay storerooms. And
below that, the bilge.
Moving casually, so that she would not draw attention to
herself, Kait went below. She paused halfway down the gangway. Most
of the off-duty crew slept in hammocks strung from the cross
braces, hammocks that swayed with every rise and fall of the ship.
Their snores played an interesting counterpoint to the slapping of
water outside the hull and the creaks of the ships timbers.
She would have no trouble at all getting past the sleepers. But
along the far bulkhead, close to the doorway that led to the
storerooms and gave access to the bilge, four people played a game
of hawks and hounds, and one of the players was Rrru-eeth.
Kait felt her clothing loosening and tightening. She swallowed
hard and stared through the forest of posts and strung hammocks at
the players bent over their game board. She had so little time. She
tried to hold her fear in check; Rrru-eeth, predator that she was,
would notice fear as quickly as Kait would have in a similar
situation.
Calm, then. Calm.
She dropped the rest of the way down, and stood as straight as
she could. Then she walked through the swinging hammocks as if she
belonged among them.
She made one reassuring discovery. Rrru-eeth wouldnt smell
her as she passed. As Kait moved farther away from the gangway, the
fresh night air succumbed to the miasma created by more than a
dozen poorly washed bodies and their various gases. The cloud of
belches and farts and sweat and dirt was thick enough it was almost
visible. Kait thought she could probably herd cows through the
common room without anyone being the wiser, if she could just keep
them quiet.
Rrru-eeths ears swiveled toward her as she moved nearer
the doorway; Kait kept her steps confident and steady, and prayed
she would be able to maintain her form human enough to walk on only
two legs until she was out of earshot.
Thats five to you, one of the men said, and
Kait heard the rattle of dice.
Six. I go again. . . .
Nine. . . . Again. Eleven. Youve
missed your point three times. Do you want to stand hounds or
hawks?
Rrru-eeth said, If it were my play, Id demand to see
those dice. You havent made your point once
tonight.
Kait was almost to the door. They were paying her no
attention.
A steady voice tinged with annoyance. Maybe hes just
unlucky tonight.
Rrru-eeth again. Maybe. Though Ive never seen him so
unlucky before.
Kait stepped through the door, and almost breathed a sigh of
relief, and behind her heard, Ill let the three of you
settle this. Im for the head.
Kaits heart leaped for her throat. The head what
she had mistakenly called the water closet until a few of the
amused crew had corrected her lay at the lowest level of the
Peregrine, and all the way aft. The exact way shed
hoped to go.
The shock of fear pushed her heart faster, and her breath hissed
in and out, and she heard the growl starting in the back of her
throat. Felt the fizzing in her blood, and the red-hot animal rage,
and she Shifted into the beast . . .
. . . darted into the deep shadows as the man came
around the corner . . .
. . . huddled there as he strode past her, close
enough for her to touch . . .
. . . and all the while, in her mind, she felt the
fury of the other, that she should hide instead of attacking, that
she should cower like prey when she could easily kill the man who
endangered her.
Kait, small and weak in the back of the others mind, still
somehow kept the beast chained until the man was past. Until she
could slip through the patchy darkness, lit only by two storm
lanterns, to the narrow trapdoor that opened into the bilge. She
dropped down into the bilgewater, ignoring the stink, and let the
trapdoor drop shut above her. She curled up on a timber brace, and
let the rats come to her, and when they did, she killed them,
snapping their spines with a single toss of her head.
In a day, when the Shift passed, she would have to come up with
an excuse for her absence from her room. For her enormous appetite.
In a day, she would have problems, and the crew would wonder about
her, and Ian would have cause to distrust her. But had she stayed,
even if she had been able to keep everyone from her room, Rrru-eeth
would have heard the change in her voice, would have heard the
clicking of her claws on the plank floor, and she would have known
something was wrong. She would have known. This way, as long
as she wasnt found out while she was still in Shift, the
worst they could all do was wonder.
* * *
Crispin Sabir strode into the Hall of Inquisitions prepared to
face his accusers. He wore his formal clothing silk breeches
and velvet cutwork tunic both dyed forest green, the finest white
Sonderran lace at his throat, cloak of cloth-of-silver with an
enormous Sabir crest in the center, the two trees worked across the
back in thousands of tiny drilled emeralds. On his right hand the
golden wolfs-head ring, the tourmaline eyes glowing in the
dim light as if the beast lived. On one hip his sword, on the other
his dagger, both bearing his insignia. His soft black boots
gleaming with polish, his silver cloak pin burnished to a
sheen.
Andrew and Anwyn had already been questioned. Both had been able
to provide independent alibis for their whereabouts the night of
Rys supposed murder. Crispin intended to do more than
that.
Grasmir Sabir, majestic in simple silk, with the emerald-studded
chain of the paraglese around his neck, sat ready to condemn
Crispin for the murder of his cousin Ry. To either side of the
paraglese sat half a dozen members of the Family, none Wolves. In
fact, no other Wolves had been permitted in the room for any
portion of this trial, not even as observers. This fact pleased
Crispin, and worked in his favor. He noted the predominance of the
trading branch, who had for years tried to oust the Wolves from any
positions of power and tried to eliminate their influence in the
Family councils. Today, Crispin intended to deal their faction a
crushing blow. He had his alibi, and his proof, and something else.
As he took his place in the low seat beneath the dais, he smiled a
tiny, secret smile.
This inquisition into the murder of Ry Sabir, son of
Imogene Valarae Sabir and Lucien Sabir, deceased, is reconvened.
This is an ongoing investigation into the means of his death, and
the guilt, implied by both the dead mans letter and physical
evidence within his room, of Crispin Sabir. Before we bring forward
the evidence against you, Crispin, have you anything to say for
yourself?
I have. Crispin stood, knowing that he looked regal;
he was easily a match for the paraglese, and far outshone the rest
who stood against him. He heard the murmurs of approval from the
onlookers, all Family who had few or no dealings with the Wolves.
He smiled, this time for everyone to see, and from beneath his
cloak produced a device of glass and metal a long spindly
framework of the Ancients unrusting steel built to reveal a
glass globe within. The device had several levers and switches on
it, and a gear train running from the switches to the globe.
May I bring this forward for your inspection?
If it has anything to do with this investigation, you may.
What is it?
My alibi, Crispin said, and carried the device
forward and set it on the dais. If you would switch the blue
switch at the base to the right, you will see what I
mean.
All of the Board of Inquisitors gave him suspicious stares.
Its a device of the Ancients, Crispin said.
One the Wolves discovered some years ago which we have made
use of from time to time.
The paraglese toggled the blue switch, and a faint light began
to glow within the glass sphere. Nothing else happened.
Very pretty, he said, and I could see where it
might be useful at night, when I wanted to read at my desk instead
of by the fire. But I fail to see how it proves your innocence. Or
even suggests it.
You have some of Rys hair, and some of his blood.
Dont you?
You know we do. Both were found where he was
murdered.
Crispin nodded. Take a single hair, and slide it into the
slot at the base of the device.
The paraglese narrowed his eyes and said, I fail to see
the purpose of this.
Please. I promise Im not wasting your
time.
The paraglese called for the evidence box, and put on a pair of
fine white calfskin gloves, and opened the small metal casket with
care. He pulled out one of the silver boxes inside of it, and from
that box withdrew a hair. Crispin showed him where to put the hair,
and when it was in place, said, Now, in order, and counting
to five in between each switch, toggle the green, yellow, and
orange switches to the right.
The paraglese toggled the green switch. One
. . . two . . . three . . .
The sphere began to turn a dull blue. The change was visible
throughout the room, and Crispin heard scattered gasps.
. . . four . . . five
. . . The paraglese toggled the yellow switch.
. . . one . . . two . . .
A cloudy dark spot began to resolve itself within the blue.
. . . three . . . four . . .
five . . . The paraglese toggled over the final
switch, and immediately the dark shape in the center of the sphere
resolved into a clear image.
The image of Ry Sabir, very clearly alive and moving. He was
speaking, though the person to whom he spoke remained
invisible.
Thats my alibi, Crispin said quietly, though
his voice carried through the stunned chambers as loudly as if he
had shouted. Ry isnt dead.
Where is he? and What happened to him?
mingled with Who is responsible for this? among the
onlookers and the council. Crispin pressed his lips into a grim
line, and in response moved the two dials that worked the gears
within the device. The view moved away from Ry so rapidly that no
one could get a clear view of anyone who was with him, though it
was clear he was with many people. Not until Crispin had a ship
fixed cleanly within the glass did he remove his hands from the
dials.
You tell me where he is and who is responsible, he
said.
The paraglese leaned forward, and gradually his expression
hardened into cold rage. He looked up from the glass and then to
the councillors on either side of him. Hes on a
ship, Grasmir said. One of our ships. One of our trade
ships. The paraglese looked down at Crispin and said,
It would appear that you, your brother, and your cousin have
been the victims of conspiracy between the Traders and your cousin
Ry. And perhaps his mother. I revoke the charge and rights of this
council and find you innocent myself. And I apologize that I cannot
ask you to sit on the council that will begin investigating the
conspiracy that tried to implicate you in a crime that wasnt
even committed. That your enemies sat on the council that would
have tried you was an unfortunate accident I cannot, though,
knowingly appoint you to sit in judgment against them. Though the
idea strikes me as ultimately fair, I cannot overlook the bias you
will have against them for what theyve attempted. He
rested his head in his hands for a moment, then pushed his fingers
through his receding and graying hair. However, if you have
anything that you would ask of me as paraglese, I will be inclined
to look favorably on your request.
Crispin nodded. I do have a favor to ask, one that will
cost you very little. The Wolves have been without a leader since
the death of our beloved head Wolf, Lucien. Our efforts on behalf
of the Family are weak and scattered. I would, with my brother and
my cousin, lead the Wolves forward for the good of all the Family.
I ask only that you support our bid for leadership, and then only
if you feel we would be worthy of that honor.
Grasmir smiled. It would seem, from the letter that Ry
wrote to me before leaving on the trade ship, that one point of
this exercise was to prevent the three of you from doing just that.
I dont like conspiracies, and I dont appreciate being
lied to or made a fool of. It is my right to override the autonomy
of any branch of the Family if I feel that doing so is in the best
interests of the Family as a whole. I feel that way now. Therefore,
there will be no bid among the Wolves for leader. I declare you
leader of your people, and your brother Anwyn and your cousin
Andrew your assistants. Nor will I brook any disagreement with my
decision. He stood. Go, with my blessing. I dismiss
this council. Traders stay within the walls of the House.
You will answer for your actions on this same day next
week.
* * *
They had almost torn the ship apart looking for her when she
finally crawled out of the bilge and dragged herself up toward her
cabin. Hasmal found her as she fought her way up the gangway toward
the main deck. Ian and Rrru-eeth and Jayti were right behind.
Hasmal, bless him, had spent the time that he searched for her in
thinking, because the first words out of his mouth were, You
had a seizure again, didnt you?
Seizure. The falling sickness. That frightened people, but not
to the point where they felt they needed to kill the victim. Not
like the Karnee curse.
So she nodded. I think so. I dont remember. The last
thing I remember, I was in my cabin reading. And the next, I woke
up in the bilge.
They helped her up onto the deck, talking about fresh air and
sunlight. It didnt help. She still felt like a week-drowned
corpse. She stood, having a hard time keeping her feet under
her.
Ian stood in front of her, backlit by the setting sun, and his
eyes narrowed thoughtfully. You have the falling
sickness. A statement, not a question.
She nodded.
How often?
Not often. Once every couple months.
But often enough that your Family couldnt hope to
make a good marriage for you?
Once would have been often enough to prevent
that.
Damaged goods.
Thats the way it is with Family. Which was
true. No one could hope to arrange a marriage for a woman with
falling sickness her dowry would be forfeit but shed
be sent home after the first episode; everyone knew that the
falling sickness passed from mother to child. So Kaits story
about taking the book gained another layer of realism an
unmarriageable daughter would end up doing something hideous like
translating dead languages in a windowless room for the rest of her
life. Further, she had a rational excuse for her absence, and for
any future absences. Thank all the gods for Hasmal. She could have
hugged him. Would, she thought, when she was clean again, and fed.
When shed slept. Shed eaten rats when the hunger grew
too great, but even in her beast form she didnt like rats.
They weighed on her stomach as she stood there.
Ian was nodding, and his eyes bore an empathy that surprised
her. He was silent for a long time. Then he said softly, I
know all about the Families and their damaged goods. I do
indeed.
Hasmal said, We were afraid youd fallen
overboard.
Kait said, Im glad I didnt.
And Rrru-eeth, standing off to one side, said, How did you
get all the way down in the bilge without anyone seeing
you?
Kait shrugged. I dont remember. I dont
remember anything. She wished that were true. She wished she
could at least forget the rats. Weak from hunger and exhausted from
the Shift, she staggered, and as the ship rode over the crest of a
wave, the deck rose beneath her and she fell.
Suddenly the movement was too much for her. She was wretchedly
sick. She crawled to the rail and threw up into the sea.
That put an effective end to the questioning. When she was done
being sick, Ian and Hasmal carried her into her cabin, and
Rrru-eeth assigned herself to nurse her.
For the next two days, she decided she would do nothing but eat
and sleep.
* * *
So what did you do with the bodies? Crispin still
wore his formal clothing, though hed gotten rid of the cloak
as soon as he came through the door.
In the garden, beneath your roses. Of course. Anwyn
chuckled. I trust we didnt disturb the roots too
much.
Crispin didnt smile. I trust you didnt. I have
some very delicate hybrids taking root out there right
now.
Andrew sat playing with the switches of the contraption
theyd put together to amuse the Inquisitors. They like
our toy?
The paraglese did. The Traders sitting on the council
thought it was fine until they saw the ship.
Making it a Trader ship was a nice touch, Anwyn
said.
Crispin shrugged. Doing it that way eliminated two of our
problems at the same time Rys disappearance and the
Traders power.
Both his brother and his cousin smiled. Eliminated the
problem, Anwyn mused.
Andrew giggled.
Eliminated. Crispin pulled out a chair and sat
astride it, facing backward. He draped his arms along the back and
said, I wish you could have been there. It was
beautiful.
If wed been there, who would have worked the magic
to make your pretty pictures? Andrew was frowning.
Both Anwyn and Crispin looked at him with annoyance. He
didnt mean it literally, Anwyn said. He turned his back
on Andrew and said, Tell me, how beautiful was it?
You know how wed hoped to have Grasmir support our
bid for leadership of the Wolves?
Anwyn nodded.
He went one better than that. He declared us leaders.
Rather, he declared me leader and the two of you my assistants. We
dont have to win over anyone the pro-Lucien faction might
field. Were in charge, and the rest of the Wolves cant
do a thing about it.
Anwyn studied him thoughtfully, too clever to point out right
then that they had agreed the three of them would share power
equally. But Crispin could tell he was thinking about it. It would
come up later not as an argument, because the paraglese had
said Crispin would be in charge, and Anwyn wouldnt be able to
prove his brother had manipulated events to make that happen. But
it would come up.
Meanwhile, however, all Anwyn said was, Well, things are
certainly going to change now.
Andrew tittered, evidently already imagining how they
were going to change.
Chapter 24
Three weeks of reading the Secret Texts preparatory to
learning any actual magic. Three weeks twenty-seven days
of pondering the history of magic and the future of her
world as told through the prophecies, aphorisms, and asides of a
man who was undoubtedly brilliant, but sometimes perversely vague.
Three weeks of sitting in her cabin from before the sun rose until
long after dark, trying to fit what she knew of the events of the
past and the present to the complex puzzle Vincalis had left behind
and Kait had finally reached her limit.
When Ian Draclas knocked on her cabin door, she opened it
gladly.
You havent come out of your cabin for anything
except meals in so long, he said, that poor Rrru-eeth
is certain some form of sea-madness has overtaken you and that you
are pining away from grief in there.
Kait already felt the pressures of Shift growing inside of
herself again, and thought that would make a convincing enough form
of sea-madness for Rrru-eeth when it materialized, but she managed
a sincere-sounding laugh. Ive been studying, she
said.
Something fascinating, no doubt. He leaned a bit
past her so that he could peer around the cabin.
History, she said, moving unobtrusively to block
him. I want to be very sure of the location of the city and
its treasures.
Of course, he said. I hadnt considered
that you might not have finished translating your book when you st
I mean, when you . . . bought it. Of course you
hadnt translated all of it. Buying it, how could you
have? He flushed.
His awkwardness amused her. She moved closer to him,
hypersensitive to his warmth and to his scent, which was musky,
sensual, and very male, with unmistakable overlays of fresh air and
sunshine. He was handsome she hadnt permitted herself
to think about that, but now she caught herself smiling up at him
just to see him smile.
And his return smile disarmed her; in it, she could see surprise
and hope and a faint shadow of her own growing hunger.
You seem different tonight, he said. She
couldnt help but note the touch of wariness.
I feel different. Im lonely, and tired, and I
want to enjoy an evening not thinking about lost cities or
Ancient artifacts. She rested a hand on his forearm, and
lightly stroked the soft furring of golden hairs.
Really? His eyebrows rose; his voice dropped. His
smile this time was much more overtly sexual.
She brushed past him and pulled her door closed behind herself.
Yes. Somewhere outside of that room.
Shed managed to push all thoughts of sex out of her mind
since boarding the Peregrine. It made for complications she
didnt want to face. But she knew she would never manage
celibacy through two complete Shifts, and she would be better off
picking a partner rationally than in the midst of the raging fire
of Karnee lust. Shed considered Hasmal as her desires got
stronger; he attracted her. She knew there would even be an
advantage in taking him as her mate he knew what she was.
He, however, was one of the few men shed ever encountered who
was not compelled by her accursed Karnee blood to think he loved
her. In fact, he had clearly stated, when she made a tentative
overture, that he bore no interest in her at all.
For all her complaints to Amalee about the men and women who
were drawn to her, and how humiliating it was to know that they
were not drawn to her at all, but to her curse, Kait found
it even more humiliating to run across someone who was immune even
to the curse. That immunity suggested to her that she had nothing
genuinely lovable about her; that without her curse, she would have
been invisible to men.
Ian was not immune, even after his experience with her bout of
falling sickness, and at the moment she took comfort
from that.
He rested fingertips lightly on the small of her back. If
you dont want to spend any more time in your cabin, would you
enjoy visiting in mine?
I would love to.
Neither of them said anything else until she followed him to the
door to his cabin and let him usher her inside.
He lit his lamps, and only when the golden glow bathed both of
them did he ask her, Are we going to reconsider being friends
now?
She leaned against his chest and raised up on her toes to kiss
him lightly on the lips. Were going to be even better
than friends, I think. Her heart pounded and her blood surged
through her veins. Shed wanted this shed needed
to feel desirable, beautiful, wanted. She could see in Ians
eyes that she was all of those things. She kissed him again, and
loosened her tight control over the passion that boiled inside of
her; she submerged herself in the touch and taste and scent of him,
in the feel of his arms around her and his hands touching her.
She let herself pretend that he wanted her for herself.
And at the same time, she managed to bury her forbidden hunger;
she pushed the enemy Karnee, Ry Sabir, away from the center of her
thoughts, where he had occupied her free moments while she was
awake, and her dreams while she slept.
* * *
Rrru-eeth listened outside the captains cabin for a long
time. Shed been listening out there every night for more than
a week, ever since the first time the captain had taken Kait to bed
with him. When she left at last, she joined Jayti in the little
corner of one of the storerooms that they had appropriated for
their trysts.
She complained to him about what shed heard, finishing
with a bitter snarl. I cant believe the captain sleeps
with her. I cannot believe he wants her.
Jayti, lean and dark and easygoing, pulled her down onto his lap
and laughed. Well, be happy for him. Hes been alone for
a long time.
No. Rrru-eeth snarled as he started unbuttoning her
blouse. She pulled back and said, Ive told you before,
there is something wrong with her. She isnt normal.
Ruey, how could you of all people possibly care about
that? Whos normal? You and me?
Rrru-eeth said, She has things wrong with her. She talks
to herself in her room, and she hides things. She and that Hasmal
meet in her cabin early in the morning, before the watch shifts. As
soon as they go in there, I cant hear a word they say, but I
can still feel them talking. Its . . .
unchancy. She whispered, And she has an animal smell to
her. Ive thought that since even before she was sick
. . . but since then, Ive noticed it even
more.
An animal smell! Jayti laughed at Rrru-eeth.
Youre jealous of her, arent you? Because
shes pretty and the captain wants her. She treats you better
than any human woman whos ever been aboard this ship, Ruey.
Ive watched her. She never asks extra work of you, and she
talks good to you. Real good.
He pinched her buttock and Rrru-eeth growled at him.
Dont you dare, he said, still laughing.
Youve fancied the captain ever since he gave you a
place on this ship. And now some woman of his own class wants him,
and youve realized youll never be captains lady.
Isnt that it? Hmmm? Isnt it?
Rrru-eeth shrugged and nestled against his chest. You can
think what you want. But I dont trust her. And I dont
like her. Shell turn the captain. You just watch if she
doesnt.
* * *
In Kaits dream, they danced. At first, her partners
face stayed hidden in shadow as they spun and floated over an
otherwise deserted dance floor. She felt the music but she could
not hear it. All she could hear was his breathing, deep and slow
and steady. And his hands burned on her bare shoulders.
In Kaits dream, they danced, and she began to recall that
they danced this way every night. She looked around, feeling as if
she had been trapped by the chains of day and had just regained her
freedom. The silent music moved quicker, and his breathing grew
faster with it. Yearning, and the pounding of her blood in her
veins; that was the music to which she danced.
Touch me.
His voice made her very soul tremble. She brushed his skin with
her fingertips, and discovered that he was naked. As was she.
Magic. This was magic, but not the magic of wizards; this was the
magic of man and woman, of lust and desire. This was the dance of
sex, and the heart-pulse drumbeat quickened yet again.
Touch me.
In Kaits dream, they danced skin to skin, floating across
an open meadow, and the shadows fell away from his face and his
eyes were a pale, beautiful blue, dark-ringed, and his smile burned
its way into her heart, and she loved him. Gods help her, she loved
him. In her dreams she danced with Ry Sabir, whose Family had
murdered hers, who might have had a hand in killing her loved ones
himself, and in her traitorous dreams she welcomed his embrace, and
she opened her heart to him. In her dreams she knew she loved him
she, who had never loved a man.
In her dreams, they danced, and because he was her enemy, and
because in her dreams she was too weak to kill him, she woke.
And found herself in Ian Draclass bed.
Disappointment seared her, stung her, cut her until she bled.
She bore its sulfur-bitter taste without letting her emotions
show.
Did you sleep well?
I slept with my enemy. She kissed Ian lightly, playfully, and
did not answer his question. Time for me to go, while
its still dark.
You dont have to leave. Stay with me.
She nibbled along the nape of his neck, trailed her fingers down
his spine. I have to go. For now, I have to. But if you want,
Ill be back tonight.
By the return of night, she would have banished Ry Sabir from
her thoughts. She would have convinced herself that she hated him,
that she wanted to see him dead. She would have made herself
believe that she could feel genuine passion for Ian Draclas, and in
Ians bed she would prove to herself that her dreams
didnt matter.
Until she slept.
In her sleep, she could not lie.
Chapter 25
Kait made it back to her cabin just before Hasmal
arrived. So far, shed managed to keep him from knowing about
her relationship with the captain, just as shed managed to
keep Ian from finding out about the time Hasmal spent with her.
Another week had passed, and shed finished her solitary study
of the Secret Texts, and begun learning basic magic.
He knocked on her door, and she let him in, acting as if
shed just woken.
He glanced at her bed, where shed rumpled the covers and
made it look like shed just climbed out of it. He gave her a
cold look and said, You didnt have to mess them on my
account.
Kait felt heat flushing her cheeks. I
. . .
You need to learn not to lie. Not to your colleagues,
anyway. I already knew about you and the captain. It isnt as
if it were any great secret.
That was news to her. When did you hear?
Two weeks ago. I probably knew not long after you
did. His tight smile told her shed been foolish to hope
to keep the relationship secret. How are you doing on your
shielding?
The dreams arent bothering me as much. Most times I
can wake up from them when the dance starts now. And I dont
have the feeling that hes looking over my shoulder during the
day not like I did at first.
You still think hes following us?
Yes.
Hasmal sighed. I think youre right. I wish we could
get rid of him. Ive thrown zanda half a dozen times in
the last few days, and I get nothing at all.
Kait tugged the blankets on her bunk straight, then sat on top
of it. That seems like a good sign.
No. Youve lost him would be a good sign.
Hes still back there would be a neutral sign.
Sorry, I have no information regarding your question is
a very bad sign.
Why?
Because it means he has access to magic powerful enough to
make himself and his whole ship disappear to the zanda. I
couldnt do that. I and my father together
couldnt.
Oh. Kait knew that only she could feel Ry behind
them, and the feeling connected to her through her Karnee senses.
Hasmal had said that as far as he could tell, no one was following
them physically, though he insisted the Galweighs from Goft still
tracked them magically.
Well deal with the problem when it arrives,
Hasmal said. Now, what has your spirit said about our
destination?
Finally Kait felt that she had good news to give him. She
told me that well find a chain of islands tomorrow. From that
point, we only have another two days or so to reach the continent,
depending on the weather.
The weather has been good so far. Hasmal didnt
look happy, though.
Whats wrong?
Once we reach the continent and find the city, well
also find the Mirror of Souls.
Exactly. Thats why weve come all this
way.
As soon as we have the Mirror of Souls, we become a target
both for the Sabirs who are following us and for the Galweighs who
are waiting for us to come back to them.
Amalee assures me that were going to survive this,
Hasmal. Youll see.
He nodded. So she says. But I did a divination last night.
The Speakers say the Reborn has already been conceived. If
thats true, your ancestor may be guilty of wishful thinking.
Once the Reborn is conceived, disaster is imminent. So tonight
youre going to help me with a ritual to see if what they say
is true.
I cant help you with a ritual, Kait said
softly. She glanced around the tiny cabin as if expecting the
ships parnissa to rush in with a lynching crew. I
barely know enough about magic to maintain a shield.
Even that will help. With you adding your strength to the
shield, Ill be able to use more of my energy to seek the
Reborn. The ritual is dangerous and difficult, but we have to
know.
Kait didnt think they needed to know at all.
I promise you the Reborn isnt going to figure into your
future, Kait, Amalee said.
Kait had learned to answer her without speaking. Perhaps not.
But Ill never convince him of that. The least I can do is
help him with his ritual so that he can see for himself that
hes exaggerating the dangers we face.
Your ancestor doesnt like my idea, does
she?
You can hear her?
No. But Ive gotten better at reading your
expressions. I can always tell now when youre discussing
something with her. You get a faraway look in your eyes, and your
mouth tightens. Tell her I want your help whether she thinks I need
it or not.
Kait didnt need to tell her. Amalee heard perfectly well.
And responded scathingly. Kait didnt pass on her comments
word for word. She just said, She still doesnt like the
idea, but I dont care. If you need me, Ill help
you.
Then meet me in the aft food storeroom tonight when Telt
rings.
* * *
Kait knelt on the hard storeroom floor, behind the bags of yams
and flour and the casks of beer, and beneath the dried meat that
hung, swinging with every movement of the ship, from hooks
overhead. In the darkness, the silhouettes of those homely things
loomed like monsters rising from the sea; she could almost feel
their hot breath against the back of her neck. With every creak she
was certain that she was about to be discovered. The sounds of rats
scrittering along the enclosed shelves suddenly unnerved her, and
every stray step that echoed across the deck above her head set her
heart pounding like a war drum.
The darkness had never bothered her. But she discovered that she
feared her pending introduction to real magic, and as much as that,
she feared being discovered.
Across from her, Hasmal cupped a blood-bowl to his chest and
closed his eyes and offered up a quick, whispered prayer to Vodor
Imrish, that they might not be interrupted as they sought across
the leagues for the Reborn. That done, he lit a tiny candle and
crouched over it, and by its light drew his own blood and poured it
into the blood-bowl. Kait watched his facility with the tiny knife
and the tourniquet and thought she would be practicing very little
magic. She hated the idea of piercing her flesh or drawing her own
blood. Though Hasmal insisted very little of the farhullen
magic involved bloodletting, Kait felt any amount was too much.
As soon as Hasmal had a little puddle of blood in the bottom of
his bowl, he pinched out the tiny flame. He leaned, shivering,
against a bag of yams beside him, breathing hard. Now we
begin the actual spell, he said. Keep your shields
around both of us until I tell you to let them drop.
Youre sure I have to drop them? The Galweighs and
the Sabirs will be able to see what were doing
. . . and where we are.
The shield that keeps others out would trap us in.
He shrugged. You cannot send out a spell while shielded. Nor
can you send a spell through a shield someone else has placed over
you. That fact is part of what makes magical battles so deadly. But
back to what we were doing. Just be ready when I tell
you.
Kait already felt queasy, and the idea that she would be
exposing herself to those who followed her only increased the sick
feeling. But she nodded, and focused herself the way Hasmal had
taught her.
Meanwhile, he shook several packets of powders into the
blood-bowl and murmured an incantation that she recalled reading in
one of the later parts of the Secret Texts.
Heie abojan treashan skarere
Pephoran nonie tokal im hwerat . . .
[I who wait in the long darkness
For the coming of the light,
Seek now the quickening spirit
Of the Reborn; you who were once
Master of the Falcons,
Our teacher, and our guide;
You who were stolen from us before your time
And who promised to return to lead again;
You who taught love and compassion,
Humility and responsibility,
Integrity and honor above all virtues.
I call out to you.
The world needs you, and
Your Falcons have not forgotten.
Kind Solander,
Shall I be blessed to hear your voice?
I offer myself as your protector
While you are weak,
Your teacher while you are young,
Your servant always,
That you may return
To heal the pain of the people
And bring love and the fulfillment of hope
To the hollow shell of the world
You left behind.]
The powders within the mix of blood began to glow. Kait
shuddered. She could be brave in the face of the most terrifying
physical dangers, but in the face of magic, she wanted to cower and
flee. She could feel the spell beginning to work; she could feel it
in her bones and in her blood, and though she didnt
experience Hasmals magic as being painful or
greasy the way she had the magic Dùghall had
identified in the airible, she still became increasingly
uncomfortable. As if she were standing near a fire and the fire
were growing bigger and hotter. She knew she wasnt in danger.
But she could sense the
potential for danger.
Drop the shields now. If the Reborn has truly returned,
the blood itself will begin to glow, Hasmal had told her
before they started. Now, in the silence and the darkness,
Hasmals blood proved the truth of the message the spirits had
given him. It began to glow softly, its white light a radiant
nimbus that started as a thin skin around the bowl, then spread to
envelop his hands, his arms and shoulders, and finally all of
him.
Then it spread farther, covering Kait in its warm, comforting
cocoon.
Once within the sphere of the light, she felt the tenuous
awakening of the Reborn. Far away, the infant stirred in his
mothers womb and reached out to embrace the feather touch of
magic. He was full of love; he
was love. Hot tears welled in
Kaits eyes and slid down her cheeks, and she embraced the
fragile connection. While his spirit touched hers, her fear of
magic dissolved, and she felt whole. More, she felt accepted in a
way she had never been in her life. Even with her parents, she had
always known that they loved her in spite of what was wrong with
her. But the Reborn loved her just as she was, and accepted her
because in his eyes, she was as perfect as he was.
In the instant that their souls touched, she felt that a pain
that had always been inside her had healed. And when she looked at
Hasmal, and saw the tears running down his cheeks, she knew that
she was not alone. Kait could not believe that she had been so
blessed that she had been chosen to assist the Reborn when
other, worthier people had lived and died waiting for his arrival,
and had never seen their hope fulfilled.
Peripherally, she sensed that other Falcons like Hasmal had come
to offer their services and fulfill their oaths, and had come, as
well, to witness the private beginning of the wonder and the joy
that was promised to all people. So many minds, all strange to her
and yet all unified in purpose and in love, brushed against hers
and did not pull back in revulsion. She was what she was; they were
what they were; gathered around the soul of the Reborn like men who
had been lost in the desert and who had found a spring at last, all
they could do was love each other and rejoice together.
Kait stretched herself farther, and touched the Reborns
mother and got a shock. All she could feel from her was rage
and pain and hatred. She sensed that the woman had suffered
horribly at the hands of her enemies. The mother seemed blocked off
from the love her unborn child offered; her pain and anger locked
her into her own mind and prevented her from being healed in the
way that Kait had been healed. Then Kait received a second shock.
Flashes of the other womans thoughts and memories reached
Kait, and she discovered that the Reborns mother was her
cousin Danya.
She wanted to shout,
Youre still alive! Someone she
loved had survived the Sabirs treachery. But she
couldnt make Danya hear her. She wanted to say,
You
arent alone. Im here, and Ill come help you.
But Danya was deaf to her offered comfort, too.
Kait lacked the magical skills to make herself heard. But that
would change. She would learn whatever she needed to learn, because
in the moment that Hasmal brought her into his circle, her world
had changed for the good. She had so much to live for, and so much
to do. The Reborn was real, and would be the son of her beloved
cousin, who had not died at the hands of the Sabirs. Kait would do
whatever she had to do to keep them safe, and to help the
Reborns love restore the world.
* * *
Rrru-eeths diffident tap at the cabin door woke Kait, who
had spent the night alone.
Come in. She yawned and stretched. In spite of the
increasing tension caused by her need for Shift, she felt good.
Lighthearted, full of hope, certain for the first time that the
future would be better than the past. Danya, mother of the Reborn.
She grinned at Rrru-eeth when she peeked her head in the door.
What shall I do for you today? Do you have any laundry, or
does anything in your cabin not meet with your
satisfaction?
Kait grinned at her. Do you have something else youd
rather do today? Spend time with Jayti, maybe?
Rrru-eeth shook her head. Perry the Crow sighted the
islands you described, and until theyve made sure we
wont ground on a reef, Jayti will be on deck
working.
Perry the Crow was a sociable crewman named Perimus Ahern, who
had a liking for heights and whose eyesight was as sharp as
Kaits. During meals, he told amusing tales of his life before
hed joined the Peregrine, when hed been a
Calimekkan barrister prosecuting cases of patent theft among the
citys inventors. In his last case hed made the mistake
of winning the case for the actual inventor who had accused a minor
member of a major Family (though he refused to say which one) of
the theft of his idea. Perry discovered to his chagrin that he
needed to make both a career and location change the very next day.
He said, though, that he had come to love the sea, and his trial
against the Family inventor had turned out to be his
luckiest one.
Ill be glad to reach land again, Kait said.
Im tired of the sea.
Rrru-eeths smile had an edge to it. The ship can be
confining for even a short time. Imagine spending your entire life
on it.
Kait thought of living in a tiny world built of wood and bounded
by nothing but water and sky. She shook her head. I
cant imagine that. But surely you only spend some of your
time on the ship.
Rrru-eeths dark eyes narrowed, and she said softly,
I wouldnt think of leaving the decks of the
Peregrine. As long as Im on board, I answer only to
Captain Draclas. If I were to leave, well . . . there are
those in Ibera and the Territories who have reasons to want my neck
in a rope.
Kait sensed the other womans pain as a change in her
scent, a tensing of her body, a shift in the pattern of her
breathing. All those things came to her clearly the Karnee
senses were growing more acute as she neared her next Shift. She
leaned forward and said, I cant believe you earned that
fate. She shook her head. Youre a good
person.
Rrru-eeth clasped her hands together and said, Yet by
Iberan law, Ive earned death in any Iberan land.
How?
Its not important.
If its your life, how can it not be
important?
Rrru-eeth laughed a sharp, angry bark. My life is
important to me. To Jayti, I suppose. Certainly not to you
youre Family.
Kait shook her head. Not anymore. My neck is, Im
sure, marked for the rope, too.
Rrru-eeth sighed, and Kait pointed to the chair across from her
bunk. Sit. Talk. We have some time, surely.
With obvious reluctance, Rrru-eeth took the offered chair and
said, My people were from the mountains to the southeast of
Tarrajanta-Kevalta, what you would maybe know as Lake Jirin in
Manarkas.
Kait nodded. The Galweigh Family had holdings in the New
Territories south of Lake Jirin, which was one of the lakes the
Wizards War had created.
I lived there until I was about six, I suppose. Maybe a
little younger. Then diaga came to our town, and claimed all the
people in it as their slaves.
Kait said, The diaga? Thats humans like
. . . she was going to say me, but at the
last instant, she changed that to the captain? And
Jayti?
Yes. Our people were good fighters, and they stood against
the diaga, but your peoples weapons were better. Most of our
fighters died. This left the injured, and the old, and the young,
and a few of the women who were pregnant at the time and not able
to fight. The diaga gathered all of us and took us to the New
Territories. We went first to Old Jirin, then to Badaella, then to
Vanimar, and finally for me, at least to Glasmar. At
each stop, the diaga sold such of us as they could. No one had much
interest in a child as small as I was until we reached Glasmar, and
there, at last, a buyer found me.
Her voice had grown harsh at those last few words; Kait had the
idea that the buyer had not been some kind family who needed a
companion for their young daughter. She was right.
A man named Tiroth Andrata bought me. He also bought my
younger sister, who was the only other member of my family to
survive, and two other little girls from our village. Wed
been acquired to be trained as concubines for those among the upper
classes of Glasmar who had . . . exotic tastes. Tiroth
Andrata apparently had a thriving business in exotic concubines; he
became wealthy from his trade, and met his own needs at the same
time. He trained us all himself, you see. He was very fond of small
children, and perhaps fondest of all of little Jerrpu
girls.
Jerrpu?
My kind of person. As you call yourself human.
Kait swallowed and nodded to show she understood. So he
. . . trained you . . .
Trained. A weak word for what he did.
Rrru-eeth smiled thinly. Oh, yes. He trained us regularly. We
learned all sorts of techniques for pleasing those who would one
day be our masters. Bagga, which is what he had us call him, was
especially fond of teaching us to take pain and humiliation, which
he said was the ultimate form of giving pleasure. She looked
away and her eyes narrowed again. We spent long years with
him, my sister and I. The other two from our group he sold, and all
of those children that he bought afterward, as well. The two of us
he kept until we were no longer little girls at all but you
see, we had become very good at taking pain and humiliation, and he
spent a great deal of time and effort finding new ways to give it
out. He told us he kept us because we were stronger than the little
children that he could sell for a better price, and he didnt
want to risk breaking one of them while developing new training
when he could practice on us.
Kait closed her eyes and rubbed her temples. She felt sick.
Shed taken the existence of servants and slaves for granted
all her life; they were the silent faces in the hallways, bringing
things or taking them away, making sure rooms stayed clean and beds
had fresh linen and food came on time and tasted the way it was
supposed to. Theyd never had voices to her before.
Theyd never seemed entirely real.
Now she thought of the slaves that belonged to her own Family
they were different because in Ibera they had to be human,
of course, not Scarred, but they were still slaves. Among the
Galweighs, she could think of several men who bought child slaves
regularly and sold them to their associates when the children
reached adolescence. Shed never given much thought to the
purposes those children served, nor to where they had come from or
what became of them when they grew up. There were things Family
didnt discuss, and how relatives used their slaves was one of
them.
She looked over at Rrru-eeth and bit her lip. She was ready for
the happy ending, the one in which Rrru-eeth won her freedom and
found love. So what happened? How did it all end?
During training one day, Bagga hurt my sister more than
she could take. She died. Rrru-eeths voice was flat.
I saw him kill her, so I killed him. I hurt him first, using
everything I had learned from years of torture. Then I killed him
very slowly. Then I took the children he was training to sell, and
dressed them, and stole as much of Baggas money as I could
find in his house, and marched the children through the streets of
Glasmar down to the docks. I could find only one captain who would
take us aboard without the childrens papers. She jerked
her chin in the direction of the ships helm. Ian
Draclas. He wanted a lot of money more than I had. Its
risky transporting slaves if you dont have a slavers
seal or slavers papers, and of course neither of us would be
able to prove that the children were free, because they
werent. So I offered myself without wages for as long as it
would take to pay for their passage to safety. He hired someone who
made papers for all of them. And for me. He took them someplace
where they could live as free children, and found them families. I
found my own family here. I found love here, and freedom from pain
and humiliation and torture. And as long as I never step on land
ruled by a Family again, I should be safe enough.
Sick, Kait closed her eyes and covered her face with her hands.
Im sorry, she whispered.
You dont owe me an apology.
Im sorry you suffered. Im
. . . How could anyone make restitution for the
pain Rrru-eeth had suffered? How could she be marked for death,
when the ones who had deserved death had been the men who killed
her family to take her as a slave, and the men who had sold her,
and the man who eventually bought her? Where was the justice that
would champion such an outcome?
The Reborn would free the slaves, Kait realized. He would bring
peace, and justice, and he would remove Rrru-eeths pain.
Im sorry that someone could do that to you, and
leave you to blame. Kait stood and rested a hand on
Rrru-eeths shoulder. Thats all going to change.
All of it.
* * *
Ry paced along the deck, forward, then aft, then forward again,
in no mood to talk with anyone. She was out there. Still far ahead
of him, getting closer to her goal.
He tasted the salt spray on his lips, and stared out at the sea.
Clouds built along the southern horizon, a line of black that
looked for the moment like a distant mountain range. The sun
dropped closer to the western horizon. A pod of whales had run
alongside the Wind Treasure for nearly two days, until
sometime after midday they had either tired of their game, or lost
interest in the humans and their ship, or had been lured away by
schools of fish; in any case, they had veered off and Ry had seen
nothing alive in the ocean the rest of the day.
The captain said the clouds looked like the leading edge of
trouble. Hed set the ships course more directly
northward and added extra sails. The change might move them toward
safety, but it moved them away from Kait.
Ry grew impatient. He wearied of the waiting, of the bleakness
of the sea, of wanting her and not having her. She was a drug, and
the longer she was out of his system, the more he lusted after
her.
In their cabin, Valard and Yanth played querrist, and Jaim wrote
a long entry in his journal, and Karyl played his guitarra and
wrote another of those sad love songs he used to lure women into
bed with him. Only Trev had been out on the deck since the evening
meal, and he kept his distance, watching Ry without saying
anything.
He stalked forward, then aft. Lately, the visions he saw through
her eyes when he closed his own had changed. Now, late in the
night, he saw a man oddly familiar-looking, whose presence
in her bed was somehow more infuriating for that tantalizing
familiarity. They were lovers, Kait and this stranger.
Ry knew about the Karnee drives. Hed subsumed his own by
the use of magic, but at a fierce cost. When the lusts were worst,
he quenched them with a spell but when he did, he burned
inside, and suffered terrible rages, and blinding headaches, and
Shift came at him harder and faster. Still, he did not give in to
the lust, which was why, when his mother demanded he serve in his
fathers stead, she could not trot forward half a dozen of his
little bastards for him to legitimize.
Kait showed no signs of knowing Wolf magic. So she couldnt
know the spell that suppressed the lust. Her Karnee desires ran
unchecked.
Ry didnt care.
She was his. Hed claimed her, his magic had marked
her, she did not belong with another man. And when he closed his
eyes in the night and saw her touching that stranger, and kissing
him, and bedding him, he made himself a promise.
When he caught up with Kait and claimed her, Ry intended to rip
out that strangers heart and crush it in his hand.
Chapter 26
Danya twisted in her sleep and cried out, and in doing so
woke herself. Another nightmare, another return to the dungeon and
the Sabirs, to her Familys abandonment of her, to torture and
horror. Waking was no better, for as she shook off the nightmare,
the reality of unending touching by invisible fingers became
stronger. Invisible eyes spied on her; invisible strangers reached
inside of her and caressed the child she carried. Those strangers
promised lies love and safety and security, concern,
compassion, joy. She fought them off when they tried to smother her
with their false comfort; she was unable to push them away from the
bastard babe.
Their presence had been constant for days. She couldnt
stand it. She wanted to scream, to destroy things, to hurt someone,
but as before, when she had been the Sabirs prisoner, she was
helpless. She shivered beneath the fur robe, but not from cold.
Gently, child, Luercas said. Gently. Your fear
wont help you, and it wont change anything. Let them
have their moment, and dont spend yourself in wasted
resistance. Your moment will come. For now, get up and come with
me; I want to show you something wonderful.
Who keeps touching me? she asked.
Hush. Not here, not now. Be satisfied that they wont
hurt you. We can discuss who they are and what they want soon.
Soon. In the meantime, come. What I have to show you will bring you
joy.
Luercas didnt understand the sense of violation that those
constant touches brought back. He said the things that had killed
him had been much like what had happened to her, but for him to
tell her to accept to quit fighting he proved to her
that he didnt really remember.
Nevertheless, doing something would be better than lying there
in the darkness with nothing to think about but the unending
probings of the strangers. She rose and let the robe fall to the
floor. She pulled on the fur chaps her hosts wife, Tayae, had
made for her, and the modified fur tunic that had been a gift from
the women in the next house over the tunic that made room
for the spikes erupting from her spine and joints, and somehow
emphasized her hideous deformities and she tugged on the
straw-insulated fur boots that kept her feet warm but still
permitted her claws to project. She listened to Tayae and Goerg and
their children sleeping in the loft; she made no noise as she
crawled down the passageway that led from the main room, where she
slept, to the outdoors. Her hosts woke easily, and though they
would never question her activities, she would feel obligated to
give them some sort of explanation, in her still-halting Karganese,
of where she was going and why.
Outside, the long night of the arctic winter still reigned. The
stars glittered with cold brilliance, close and malevolent. The
snow crunched beneath the flat, hard skin soles of her boots, the
only sound other than the wind whistling across distant drifts.
Set out along the main path. Follow it to the river. When you
reach the river, cross and turn right along the bluffs.
She was coming to know the area well enough. Because she
didnt know what else to do, shed offered her services
to the villagers after a few days, and with some
nervousness, the Kargan women had asked her to help them carry
stored food from the villages outlying caches back to the
underground houses. Shed accepted, and had been on her way
back to the village with them, loaded with food, when a pack of
lorrags attacked.
The lorrags were Scarred monsters that might have started out as
wolves or bears, but might as easily have been rabbits before the
Wizards War twisted them into nightmares. They burrowed
beneath the snow where they could and, where they could not, moved
on top of it on four wide, well-padded feet, nearly invisible in
their heavy white winter coats. They were terrifying beasts,
cannier than wolves though a bit smaller, lean and fast and tough.
The four lorrags that erupted out of their tunnels in the snow had
given no warning of their presence beforehand, and had Danya not
been there with teeth and claws at the ready when they struck, one
or more of the Kargan women would have died.
That none had, and that the village had lost none of its food,
either, had won Danya both gratitude and complete acceptance. No
one cared that she bore different Scars than they. She became a
part of every food-carrying expedition; she became an invited
companion during hide preparation and sewing sessions, though her
hands were not capable of holding the tiny bone needles or of
threading the sinews through the little eyes. She was more
physically suited to hunting, and the Kargan men welcomed her, too,
and took her with them. Her nose was better than theirs and her
speed over short distances allowed her to run down game that would
otherwise have escaped. She added to the wealth of the village in
measurable ways, and the Kargans showed their appreciation at every
turn. The women gave her gifts; the adults brought her into their
council circles. The village adopted her as one of its own in a
smoke-hut ceremony, and the boys who were too young to hunt and the
men who were too old or injured were renovating an abandoned house
for her as they did for their own children who reached adulthood
and stayed within the village. Until they finished the renovations
and purified it with ceremonies, she continued to live with
Goergs family, and to collect her welcome gifts, and to
alternately hunt with the men and work with the women.
She remained bitter. She did not forgive her Family, she did not
forgive the Sabirs, and she could not forget the Scars that made
her a monster, or the unborn child that had been forced upon her.
Acceptance into the Kargan clan made the sting more bitter, because
she could not forget that the Kargans were monsters like her. She
could not forget that she could never go home that she was
outcast forever from the society of humans, and that the people who
should have welcomed her never would again. Yet
. . . if she could somehow make her way through Ibera
without being killed for being an abomination, and if she could
reach the Galweigh Wolves, they would take her in and set her in
the circle with the rest of their Scarred to work magic. She would
have to hide in the darkness, her only contact with the world she
had once loved through the eyes of the young Galweigh Wolves who
had not yet been set in circle and who therefore remained free.
Every human from her past, though, had been taken away from her,
and nothing she could do could ever win even one of them back. She
was dead to them, and they to her.
Accompanied by such thoughts, she crunched through the darkness
over the shell of compressed snow, breaking through occasionally,
and quickly reached the river. The Kargans called it the Sokema,
which meant Our Blessing. It cut like a raw wound
through the rolling white-on-white tundra, a darker line of black
in the darkness. Wind blew thin curvettes of snow across its
mirror-slick black-ice surface, but the snow didnt stick. She
walked out onto its surface without hesitation, not worried about
it holding her weight. Shed helped the village women chop ice
to reach the running water beneath they used the holes both
to draw up cooking and drinking water and so they could set the
live lines that gave them fresh fish to supplement the dried fish
and smoked meat and the occasional fresh game. She knew from that
experience that the frozen surface was thicker than she was
tall.
The novelty of ice, like the novelty of snow, had worn off
quickly. It became just another obstacle to contend with its
slickness offered little purchase to her boots, and would have
offered even less to her bare, hard-scaled feet. She scrabbled with
claws splayed out; she kept her arms out for balance; she wished
once again that she could master the art of skimming across the
surface on the narrow carved-bone blades that the Kargans used, but
her unwieldy, Scarred body seemed unable to accommodate itself to
the graceful, flowing movements required.
Reaching the bluffs on the far side took both time and effort,
and she was panting by the time she arrived.
She didnt remember the directions Luercas had given her.
Which way now?
Turn to your right. Climb the bluffs, but not all the way to
the top. Follow along them just below the ridge so you wont
show against the skyline, should anyone decide to look for
you.
Danya wondered why Luercas thought anyone might care to look for
her. The villagers sense of privacy, from everything she had
so far seen, was acute. If she went out for a walk, they refrained
from asking anything about her destination or what had happened
while she was out; they did not ask her where she was from; they
did not question who she was. Early on, they had offered her their
own names, but did not ask for hers. When she eventually told them,
they treated her name as a gift. She couldnt imagine them
looking for her unless they thought she had come to grief. She
suggested as much to Luercas.
The surprise I have for you is something the villagers are
aware of, though only in a distant way. None of them has ever seen
it; none of them would ever dare. Their superstitions make them
fear this place, though neither they nor their parents nor their
grandparents nor their great-grandparents have ventured to test
those superstitions against reality. If they realize you have gone
to In-kanmerea, their name for the place, they will fear for your
life, and for your soul. He paused, then added, In-kanmerea
means House of the Devil Ghosts. I could give you their
beliefs about it, I suppose, but they have no basis in fact, so why
bother? Better you see the place for yourself. She felt his
next pause as a sigh. I dont know that any of the Kargans
would be brave enough to attempt your rescue if they knew you had
entered . . . but I would not gamble against that; you
seem to have made yourself beloved in a very short time.
She said nothing. She clambered along the bluffs and considered
the idea of the pragmatic Kargans being superstitious about any
sort of wonderful place. Such an idea seemed to run counter to
everything shed seen of them so far. Their fears seemed to be
of those things that offered real danger to them, like the lorrags,
or like the sudden ice storms that had already killed one young man
since she arrived. But people were contradictions. It was their
nature. She assumed the fact would be true even about almost-people
like the Scarred.
Like me.
The bluffs carried her around a bend and out of sight of the
village. Immediately, Luercas told her, Now climb up to the
ridge. Stay along the river In-kanmerea will be easy to miss
otherwise.
It was almost easy to miss in spite of her following his
directions exactly. She almost walked by the entranceway that lay
at arms length to her left. White on white in the starlight,
with the same delicate glitter as the snow all around it, it could
have been a large, oddly formed drift. The snow that did drift into
the corners of the long curve of stairs burrowing into the
snow-glazed tundra furthered the illusion.
Go down. Slowly; the stairs may be icy. A warming spell cast
on them prevented that once, but if snowdrifts can accumulate, the
spell must have fallen apart.
Danya looked down into the darkness, uneasy. The Kargans feared
things that were dangerous; they waited to discover the danger of
the unknown before fearing it. Had they acted in any other way, she
would have died when she fell through the roof into Goergs
house. At the mouth of the House of the Devil Ghosts, she
hesitated, and presented Luercas with a plausible excuse for her
hesitation. If the spell ever worked, it should still work.
According to the Law of Magical Inertia, spells in force tend to
remain in force unless acted on by an opposite force.
You quote your teacher well enough. You simply arent
applying the rule. Remember the spell that Scarred you and threw
you all the way from Ibera to here. The energy of that spell sent
shock waves across most of Matrin, if not all of it. When it did
so, it stirred any number of latent spells, and stilled any number
of active ones. I would almost wager that In-kanmereas spells
were active until you arrived. Otherwise, these steps would have
cracked and weathered centuries before this.
Still she stood at the top of the stairway. Hesitant.
Afraid.
Luercas grew impatient. Hurry, girl. The wonders of an age
await you.
Did she want to see the wonders of an age? She put one foot on
the first step and stopped. She didnt hesitate beyond that
point, however. Shed come this far already, and the
architecture of the stairway and the smooth white material it was
made of gave her subtle reassurance; such stairways filled Galweigh
House. The stairway led down into one of the homes of the Ancients,
she guessed. Or perhaps a public building. In either case, it would
offer her an opportunity to surround herself, however briefly, with
things that reminded her of home.
She descended steadily, allowing her eyes to adjust to the
increasingly impenetrable darkness. By the time she estimated that
shed made three complete turns around the spiral, however, no
light remained, and even she, with her incredibly sensitive vision,
was blind.
You want me to keep going?
Youll find accessible light within. You havent
much farther to go in the darkness, and youre in no
danger.
She didnt know that she believed him, but it didnt
really matter. She trailed a hand along the wall to her right and
held the other out in front of her face to keep from stepping into
a solid wall, and she felt for each step below her before
committing her weight to it, and in that manner traveled what
seemed to be another full spiral.
The hand in front of her face proved unnecessary. The soft,
slightly hollow sound she made in descending the stairway changed
in both volume and tone as she neared the end, warning her, and she
felt the door in front of her with hearing and her sensitivity to
pressure and the movement of wind before she felt it with her
fingertips. Im here, she said.
Yes. Open the door and go in.
Are there any traps set?
Intelligent of you to ask. However, no. The door will open as
any of the outside doors at your Family House would open. You might
have noticed
She cut him off. That this is an Ancient place. Yes.
Id noticed. She ran her fingertips across the front of
the door until they reached its midline. From the midline, she let
them slide up to the cold, slick curve of the latch. She pressed
upward on the latch with one hand and rested her palm firmly on the
pressure pad just beneath it.
After a brief hesitation, the door swung inward. She stepped in,
and warm, stale air filled her nostrils. Everything smelled of dust
and long-closed spaces. She could feel the immensity of the room in
which she stood, but she could not see anything; absolute darkness
offered her no markers by which to guide herself.
One step into this and I could lose my way
completely, she said. I could become turned around,
could lose sight of the door, could be trapped in here until I died
. . .
You could, I suppose, if you didnt activate the lights.
Youll find the pressure pads for them on the wall to the
right of you. Just reach out.
She did. Her hand brushed through something soft that crumbled
to dust at her touch, and came to rest on a series of raised pads.
She pressed them, and thousands of warm, shimmering lights sprang
to life overhead and down long corridors that spread away in half a
dozen directions. The lights reflected through sparkling prisms as
numerous as the stars, and covered the floor with uncountable
rainbows. The floor was done primarily in a rich, dark blue stone
speckled with gold; inlays of white marble and a stone as pale as
green seafoam in the shape of waves turned the entire vast expanse
into an ocean. The reflected sparkles gave the scene a life that
made her feel she was walking across water.
She gasped.
Its beautiful.
The Ancients could not have intended In-kanmerea as a private
residence. Its vast lobby could have held ten thousand guests at
one time, and was designed to direct traffic toward the broad
branching corridors. Fountains shaped like delicate ships dotted
the immense floor. No water spouted from them, but Danya expected
that they worked as the fountains in Galweigh House worked, and
that if she felt along their bases for hidden panels, she would be
able to locate the pressure pads that brought them to life.
She was tempted to do so, but she refrained. Luercas wanted her
to see something, and she didnt think he would have been so
insistent about bringing her to In-kanmerea to see the pretty
fountains. He had something bigger in mind.
And in fact, he said, Go to the first corridor on your left.
Youre going to follow it back until it ends in a terminal
intersection. When you reach the place where you can go either
right or left, go right. You want to enter the last door on the
right in that corridor. Do hurry we have much to do.
She would have time to explore the rest of the place in the
future. For the moment, she did as he asked her and hurried.
The corridors ran for unbelievable distances. She must have
passed a hundred doors to either side of her before she reached the
end of the first. When she turned to look behind her, she could see
nothing but corridor no sign at all of the vast lobby
shed left behind. And as she looked to the left and the right
down the intersecting corridor, she couldnt see any sign that
either of them ended.
She felt small and young and temporary, overwhelmed by the great
age and vast expanses of the Ancient place. She picked up her pace,
anxious to reach a part of the building that was built to a scale
she felt comfortable with. By the time she finally got there, her
lope had become a hard trot that had in turn metamorphosed into a
dead-out, panicked run. She leaned against the last door on the
right, breathing hard, until Luercas told her to open it. His voice
held a condescending chuckle that she didnt like.
She let herself in, and found the pressure panel that
illuminated the room. She looked around. Unlike the lobby and the
corridors, this room had not been designed for beauty. It was
large, circular, sunken into the ground in tiers. In the center of
the lowest circle a raised dais sported a round stool beneath a
dome on pillars. None of the rooms appointments
neither the rows of utilitarian seats in the surrounding tiers, nor
the plainness of the central seat and dome, nor the flat,
too-bright lights overhead, said anything but that this was a place
where people came to work.
What sort of work?
Go down to the dais. Sit outside the edge of the circle, but
allow your head to rest beneath the dome.
Odd instructions. Danya shrugged and carried them out.
The reason for them became immediately and shockingly clear. The
sensation of being touched or spied on by the unknown, unwelcome
watchers, vanished immediately. She could still feel, though only
as if from a great distance, their connection to the child she
carried in her womb, but even that felt impersonal and not
threatening.
Can you still hear me?
Yes.
Good. Dont move if you pull the rest of your
body under the dome, the criminals who have been spying on you will
realize that theyve lost their contact with you. As it stands
now, theyre so tied up with your baby that they dont
notice youve escaped their spying. But if you give away the
fact that youve managed to escape them, however temporarily,
theyll move the stars in the heavens to force their way back.
They might already be strong enough that nothing you could do would
stop them.
Who are they?
A cabal of wizards who have hidden themselves and their goal
of world overthrow for over a thousand years, while waiting for the
return of the wizard who led them the first time. Theyve
found their leader now, and theyll do anything they have to
do to get to him.
And what does this have to do with me?
Youre carrying this wizard in your belly,
Danya.
She didnt want to hear that. Bad enough she was pregnant.
Bad enough the horrors by which she had gotten pregnant. Now a pack
of rogue Wolves had claimed the bedamned fetus she carried as their
savior-to-be-born, and had found a way to control it, and to watch
her.
There are herbs that will end a pregnancy, she
said.
There are. But that would be the wrong choice. If you tried
to take such herbs, these wizards would see you as a threat and
stop you from taking them. Further, they might wipe your mind
entirely they dont need your mind in order for your
body to bring forth their hero. That is why I had to get you here
so quickly; you were beginning to make your resentment of their
intrusion too clear, and you might have done something to fight
against them before I could safely tell you the danger they pose to
you. And they would have destroyed you. I wont let them
destroy you, Danya. Not if I can stop them.
She felt sick. Why this baby? Why me, Luercas?
Havent I been through enough?
Thats precisely why you. The infant you carry inside of
you is the product of the mating of a Sabir Wolf who is also
Karnee, and a Galweigh Wolf a mating that would have created
tremendous magical potential under ordinary circumstances. But the
circumstances of your early pregnancy were anything but normal. You
were the channel through which one of the largest focused bursts of
magic since the days of the Wizards War grounded the
magic that Scarred you also Scarred the unborn infant. His Scarring
may not show on the outside, but it will make his body the perfect
house for the returned spirit of the long-dead leader of these
monsters who seek to control you. And the world.
What do I do, then?
For now you do nothing. The time will come when youll
be able to regain complete control of your body, and perhaps wrest
the baby away from them. You probably have no way to save the
child, even if you wanted to. But you can save yourself if
youre careful. Pretend you dont notice them, and in
those times when their presence is so obvious that you cant
pretend you dont notice them, pretend you dont mind
or even that you welcome them.
And never forget theyre dangerous.
Danya closed her eyes. It would be like trying to pretend that
she hadnt minded being raped. Would she be able to do that,
even to save her own life?
Luercas broke into her reverie tentatively. Theres
something else I need to tell you now.
What?
Ill be near you, and Ill be watching over you,
but the only time Ill be able to speak to you is when you
come here.
So she was to be robbed of her guardian spirit and protector at
the same time that she submitted to the invasion of her body and
mind. She shouldnt have been surprised.
Why?
Because I can only protect you if my presence remains secret.
Once your enemies know of me, theyll attack me and
weak as I am, theyll destroy me.
Theyll never find out about you from me.
Then well win against them. Eventually, at
least.
* * *
Light split the Veil, and spiraled inward like a galaxy being
unborn, and the Star Council reconvened.
This time, however, the excitement and enthusiasm of the first
meeting were absent. Dafril brought the meeting to order with
ritual greeting, but immediately said, Has anyone found
Luercas?
Above the babble of negatives, one voice said, We would find
him more easily if we could compel our avatars instead of simply
suggesting.
Patience, Dafril said. My avatar is close to the
Mirror of Souls, and mere months away from returning it to
civilization. Sartrigs avatar pursues, believing himself to
be capturing the Mirror so that he can re-embody Sartrig, whom he
believes to be his dead brother. If my avatar falters or fails,
Sartrigs will take over. We have a larger problem than our
powerlessness or Luercass continued absence that
problem is why Ive called this meeting.
What could be worse? Werris asked.
Solander has returned.
The councillors greeted that statement with dead silence.
Finally one ventured to ask, Are you certain?
As certain as I am of my own existence. Dafril thought
the question stupid and impertinent.
But we destroyed Solander. Banished him to the outer
Veil.
Time passes, Dafril said, and he has found his way
home. The Falcons are not extinct, either, and have located him,
and are beginning to answer his summons. My avatar had contact with
him. He is not yet born, but he is already embodied.
That horrified silence again. This time no one broke it. So
Dafril said, With Solander present, we face the possibility of
our own demise. Therefore, before we panic about the missing
Luercas or worry about our own weakness, we must find a way to
destroy Solander. No other priority must come before that.
Chapter 27
I think I could stand beside you for the rest of my
life, Ian said.
Kait smiled up at him, and reached up to brush a strand of hair
from his cheek. They stood on the foredeck of the Peregrine,
watching as the ship moved out of the narrow channel between two
islands and into the clear water beyond. Youd tire of
me before long, she said. She kept her voice light and
playful. I wear on everyone after a while. Too many
quirks.
I havent seen any quirks, Ian said. He slid an
arm around her waist and squeezed.
She refused to give in to the sadness of knowing that if he knew
what she really was, he would be repulsed. Pretending that he loved
her, or that anyone like him could love her, made such a
pleasant fantasy that she wanted to hang on to it as long as she
could. No, she agreed. You havent.
Then she changed the subject. Ive never seen anyplace
as beautiful as this.
She wasnt exaggerating at all when she said that. The
islands that rose behind and to the sides of the Peregrine
were like uncut emeralds rising from a glass-smooth surface of
sapphire. Onyx cliffs and beaches that glittered like black
diamonds only emphasized the lushness of the terrain. The island
forests grew densely at the bases, leaving pillars of stone to jut
above tree lines. In the softer, gentler light of this latitude, a
slight breeze set the leaves of the trees trembling and sparkling
so that the trees appeared to be decorated with silver coins.
It is lovely, Ian said, but his brow creased and he
frowned thoughtfully. But I dont like the stillness of
the water.
The breeze was enough to keep the Peregrines sails
filled, and to keep her moving steadily. Kait said as much.
It isnt the wind. Its the islands. And the
water. Ive seen something similar once . . .
He pulled away from her and moved to the rail; he looked down at
the water, then back at the islands again. Crow! he
shouted.
Perry the Crow answered from his nest in the high riggings.
Capn?
Are we out of this chain of islands yet?
We look to be.
Then can you tell which way the chain runs to either side
of us?
Perry shaded his eyes and turned first left, then right.
The line of the islands curves north-northeast to the north
of us and south-southeast to the south of us.
Kait noticed that the crewmen all over the ship had grown still;
she felt as if they had drawn in a single simultaneous breath and
were, unaccountably, holding it. Whats wrong?
Ian didnt even look at her. He shouted, Describe the
curves.
A pause. Then, Haw, shit! Were inside a
circle, Capn! A big one!
Ians response was immediate. About! Bring us about
and get us out of here! Now! And the crew moved with similar
terrified speed.
In the center of a circle. Two possibilities existed. The
first was that the cone of an enormous submerged volcano lay
beneath them, its broken rim rising out of the water to form
islands. That was the harmless possibility. The deadly possibility
was that they had sailed into an uncharted Wizards
Circle.
Kait yearned in that moment for just one god to whom she could
cry out. But what god would have ears for the prayers of the
cursed? If they were in a Wizards Circle . . .
The ship failed to come around. The Peregrine seemed to
have grown a will of her own; she sailed straight on across the
glass-smooth water, heading straight east. Turn her, damn
you! Ian screamed. Turn her, if you love your
lives! He bolted for the great wheel, leaving Kait standing
alone on the foredeck, staring down at the water from which a mist
now began to rise. Soft and pale, opalescent, reflecting colors
from soft pink to pale green and blue, gently swirling, it formed
along the surface of the mirror-smooth ocean in little
cloudlets.
One of the human crewmen was yelling for the parnissa; some of
the Scarred had prostrated themselves on the deck and were praying
in their own tongues.
Immune to the labors of the captain and the crew, the
Peregrine kept to her course, as if guided eastward by the
invisible hands of the gods themselves. But Kait knew the guiding
hands belonged to nothing as benign as gods.
The parnissa raced out onto the deck, her hands full of the
sacred implements of her calling. While men and women, both Scarred
and human, swarmed around her, she laid out an altar on the
ships deck and dropped to her knees on the planking. Then, in
a trembling, singsong voice, she began to chant Lodans
Office for the Lost. Lodan was the month-goddess of love and
loss, and her office was one of grieving for those already dead and
beyond the reach of the living. Kait decided the parnissa was a
pessimist.
But their situation, already grave, worsened quickly. The mists
grew out of the surface of the sea like ghosts rising from their
graves, billowing upward and expanding outward into an
ever-expanding, ever-thickening sea of prism-tinted white. The
sails fell slack and hung flat and empty, but the ships
forward speed increased. And Kait picked up a knife-edged keening,
clear at the upper range of her hearing, and felt her skin prickle
and her heart begin to race.
The crew had ceased trying to turn the ship. Some stood on the
deck watching, as she did, too transfixed by the impending disaster
to move. Most knelt and wept, or prayed. Ian stood behind the
ships wheel, berating the gods in a loud voice, and
alternately threatening them and bargaining with them.
A Wizards Circle. One of the places where the worst and
largest of the spells cast during the Wizards War had fallen.
Most likely a city had once stood where the Peregrine now
sailed; a target for the vengeance of power-hungry madmen. Where
unfathomable ocean lay, humans had once worked and lived and loved
and hoped, in houses built on hills or plains solid ground,
now gone. And gone with it the lives of those who had lived there,
and everything they held dear.
Humans outside the range of total destruction when the spells
fell had become the Scarred, and the viable offspring of those poor
damned creatures were Scarred still; monsters born of evil not of
their own making. Within the hell-charmed circles, land, buildings,
and people had vanished. And what had become of them, no one knew.
The circles remained potent. And to Kaits knowledge, no one
who ever went into one came out again.
Mist wraiths blotted out the sky and closed the ship in on all
sides as if they had packed it in cotton. Kait heard a series of
splashes, followed by voices coming through the fog. The magic-born
cloud had thickened to the point where day became night; only if
she looked straight up could she find any proof that somewhere the
sun still burned and somewhere light still existed. The fog changed
the character of sound, making everything seem equally distant, or
perhaps equally near. The praying crewmen on deck and the parnissa
mourning the souls of men and women not yet dead sounded neither
nearer nor more distant than the liquid, gobbling, gurgling cries
that almost formed recognizable words. Because they were hidden
within the embrace of the fog, Kaits mind created images of
the owners of those horrible voices: corpses long gone to rot,
their vocal cords shredded and their bloated lungs almost full of
water. The fear shed felt when she faced Hasmals magic
paled next to the formless dread that washed over her at that
moment.
The mist began to move onto the ship then; light tendrils
dropped down from overhead and crept up onto the deck from below.
In the mist-born darkness, these looked solid, like white vines, or
the tentacles of the corpse of some sea monster. The gibbering
voices grew louder.
But the mist fingers did not reach out to anyone or touch
anyone. As soon as they came within reach of the ship, they lost
all form and condensed into mere drops of water.
Kait watched that happen again and again, and let out a breath
she didnt realize shed been holding. She almost
laughed. Something about the ship kept the horrors at bay. Hasmal,
perhaps, working some great shielding spell from deep within the
heart of the ship. Or . . . it didnt matter. The
ship continued to speed on its course, and the animated mist
continued to dissolve before it could attack, and soon soon
they would have to sail beyond the reaches of the
Wizards Circle.
She watched others realize that the magic of the circle was
impotent. She listened as the weeping stopped, as the prayers
changed from terrified pleading to gratitude, as imprecations to
the heavens became nervous laughter at death narrowly averted. A
few of the crew members embraced.
A light breeze caught the sails and they filled slowly, and the
ship, already moving quickly, picked up speed. At that, the
Peregrines crew sent up a jubilant cheer. All they needed
to make their joy complete was to see the fog lift and the islands
on the other side of the circle come over the horizon.
Perry the Crow yelled, So much for the legends, and
danced across the deck.
Through a growing puddle of water.
Which rose up to embrace him as he touched it.
Crawled over his body lightning-fast, covering him with a
bubblelike film.
Inside of the film, he began to dissolve. Liquefy. As he melted,
he wept and cried out, his voice increasingly indistinguishable
from the voices echoing out of the fog. Several of the crew members
tried to help him. Tried to dry him off, to free him of the thing
that killed him. As they touched him, the bubble whipped across the
bridge of their arms and coated the would-be rescuers.
They glistened in the darkness glistened, and screamed.
Their anguish and their fear infected everyone, including Kait.
Shift surged through her blood, and in spite of every trick of mind
control shed ever learned, her body betrayed her and altered
into its Karnee form.
She looked around for a place to hide, where she could die
unseen, away not just from the danger but from the crew. Both the
human and the animal parts of her cowered at this horror that she
could not understand mist that hunted, water that devoured
its prey. She feared death, and she didnt want to die as a
beast. More than that, though, she didnt want anyone to see
her as a beast, to know that she was as Scarred as any of them, but
in ways that made her an outcast wherever she went.
But then Ian shouted, Off the deck! Get below, everyone,
and close the hatches. Well seal the doors with wax.
Hurry. In the stampede that followed, one of the growing
puddles of water enveloped the parnissa. Ian lunged for her without
thinking.
Kait was faster. Across the deck in two bounds, she catapulted
into Ians chest, preventing him from touching the dying,
dissolving parnissa. She growled and sank her teeth into his upper
arm and dragged him toward the hatch down which the rest of the
crew fled.
A monster has the captain, someone screamed, and
others took up the cry.
Kill it! Kait heard. Kill it! And
interspersed with those cries, one voice that yelled,
Its too late to save him. Just dont let it in
here.
One voice cut clearly through the rabble. Rrru-eeth yelled,
She saved the captain! Dont touch her!
Kait dragged Ian to the hatch and tried to shove him in, but
hands reached up and grabbed both of them and pulled them down into
the gangway.
Already the crew had gathered the ships stores of candles
and wax, and when the hatch closed, men and women were already
shoving tapers lengthwise along the space between door and doorway,
and melting the wax into place with the flames from oil lamps. Kait
had no hands, and so got herself out of the way. She found a dark
corner and huddled there, miserable, ashamed of what she was and
humiliated to have been found out.
No one paid her any attention they all were too busy
sealing the door and checking belowdecks for leaks.
She wondered if they would kill her when they finished taking
care of their own safety. The humans among the crew would surely
want to, and the Scarred were no more likely to want her in their
midst she knew of no people in the world who did not revile
skinshifters. The fact that her sort could appear to be one thing
but in truth be something entirely different made them universally
hated, or so it seemed to Kait.
The wax in the doorway seemed to work. Nothing came through, no
one else screamed or began to dissolve. Silence reigned belowdecks
everyone listened for some sign that more danger came, or
that, conversely, the danger had passed and they could return to
the deck and their work. The voices of the sea still cried out,
their anguish muted by the barriers of wood all around the
survivors. Kait heard them without difficulty, and knew that
Rrru-eeth did, as well. Rrru-eeth took it upon herself to keep the
rest of the crew informed that they were still out there the
sounds were apparently too faint for human ears to pick up over the
creaking of the ship and through the barriers of wood.
Kait fell asleep while still in Karnee form, her head tucked
beneath her paws, her hind feet along the tip of her nose, her tail
held close to her belly. She woke in human form, aching from the
inhuman posture shed retained even after she Shifted back.
Ian sat beside her.
I wanted to thank you for saving my life, he
said.
She nodded dully, in no mood for thanks or kindness. Post-Shift,
the depression and the hunger overwhelmed her, and the fear of
attack, now that everyone knew what she was, gnawed at her. She
wanted to eat, and hide, and sleep. Nothing more. Outside, she
could still hear the lost-soul wailing of the sea; it had taken on
more ominous tones, and the ship rocked and heaved from side to
side, tossed by the angry water.
Are you sick? he asked.
Hungry. One of the symptoms of my . . .
She paused for thought, then said, Of my curse. I get hungry
. . . after.
Go down to the storeroom and get something to eat.
Whatever you want, as much as you want. Ill be here when you
get back. As she nodded and rose, he added, Be careful.
If the water can get in anywhere, it will be down there.
Ill be careful. She felt dull, slow,
dim-witted. She thought if any of the deadly living water had
leaked aboard the Peregrine, she would be too sluggish and
stupid to evade it. But hunger overrode any dim sense of
self-preservation she could muster; she went past the crew, who
stared silently at her, and climbed down the narrow gangway to the
deck just above the bilge.
She knew her way to the storeroom; that was, after all, where
she and Hasmal had magically touched the Reborn. When she thought
about the Reborn, her mood lifted a little; that in itself seemed
like a miracle to her. She considered him and found hope within
herself, even in her worst moment.
She should have realized earlier that she hadnt seen
Hasmal. Only when she found him sprawled on the floor of the
storeroom, bled white, did she realize she hadnt seen him
since the fog began to build. Hed been doing magic. His
implements lay in disarray on the deck beside him; mirror, empty
blood-bowl, tourniquet and bleeding knife, and several objects she
hadnt seen before and thus didnt recognize. At first
she thought he was dead. But she saw the faint rise and fall of his
chest, and felt the breath barely moving from his half-open
mouth.
She shook him, but he didnt respond.
Hasmal! You have to wake up! Hasmal!
Still he made no sign that he could hear her no sign that
he was anything but a man one breath away from death.
She closed her eyes in resignation, gathered his things together
in his bag, and hid them among the bags of yams. If the ship
escaped the Wizards Circle, she would retrieve them for him.
She didnt think she would have that opportunity;
nevertheless, she was not so sure of their demise that she would
let anyone else see what he had so carefully kept hidden. Once his
magical tools were out of the way, she rolled him over on his
stomach, then worked her way beneath him so that she could line up
his shoulders with hers. She thought she heard scuffling as she was
trying to get to her feet, but when she held still and kept silent,
she could hear nothing but the creak of the ship and the moaning of
the ghost-damned sea.
With Hasmals head draped over her right shoulder and his
arms pulled like a stole around her neck, she struggled to her feet
and, bent double, half-carried, half-dragged him out of the
storeroom and to the gangway. She called for help, and several
crewmen appeared above her.
I found him in the storeroom. Hes breathing,
barely, she told them, but I dont know what
happened to him. He looks pale to me.
Without a word, they lifted Hasmal up and carried him away.
Kait didnt try to follow; she saw no need to attempt to
offer an explanation for what shed found. She knew what had
happened to him at least in part but anything she
might say would only further incriminate her and cause problems for
him, too. She had no reason to know why he was in the storeroom or
what had happened to him. Let the crew come to their own
conclusions.
She returned, instead, to the storeroom, and ate. She gorged on
salted pork and dried fruit and beer. Only when she finally felt
full and so sleepy that she wondered if she would be able to
make the trip to the deck above did she pull out the yam
sacks to make sure Hasmals belongings were safe.
She moved bags back and forth; at first shed been sure
which one shed hidden the little bag behind, but her
certainty faded as they all began to look alike. She frowned, and
began from one end of the yams, working her way methodically to the
other. And only when she had moved every single bag did she allow
herself to believe the disaster that had befallen her and
Hasmal.
Someone had stolen the bag.
* * *
Outside, the wind screamed and rain slashed the ship and the
waves tossed it as if it were a childs toy. Ry stayed below
through the worst of the storm; he discovered, to his dismay, that
he got seasick something he had been sure would never happen
to him and that only lying still in his bunk kept him from
feeling his death was imminent. From time to time either Karyl or
Yanth, both of whom proved to be immune to the ships heaving,
would come in to check on him and Trev and Jaim and Valard, and
tell them how much their course had changed, and offer them food.
Ry suspected they offered food out of some mild impulse toward
sadism, since at the very word, the four men in the makeshift
infirmary turned green. He hoped he would live long enough to repay
the favor. Sometimes. And sometimes he just hoped he would die
before the storm could get any worse.
His one consolation was that his connection to Kait had grown
stronger during the storm. She was in the middle of troubles of her
own, and he supposed he could be grateful that his ship had been
forced to sail north to miss the worst of the weather. They would
have a huge amount of distance to make up, but they would not end
up in the middle of a Wizards Circle.
The wizard who traveled aboard the ship with her the one
whose shields had made sensing her presence and her location such a
difficult proposition had dropped his shields to cast some
sort of immense spell. Ry didnt know where hed gotten
the power for it, but he seemed to have singlehandedly conjured a
wind that was blowing Kaits ship through the Wizards
Circle toward the safety of the water beyond. Ry had felt the other
wizard casting the spell, and hed been both fascinated and
horrified by the amount of personal energy the stranger had put
into it. That amount of energy, drawn from his own body, should
have killed him, but though the stranger had drained himself to the
point that he was near death, Ry could feel that he still lived. He
wondered what coin the other wizard had paid for the spell
hed cast.
Something I can discover later, he decided. Not something to
lose sleep over now.
The wizards secrets were secondary to the artifact Kait
hid the artifact she was crossing the ocean to find.
That he would have to claim at the same time that he caught up
with her; she was his ultimate prize, but he intended to claim her
prize, too. Hed paid a tremendous price to come after her
the price of his Family, his honor, his own life, and the
lives of his friends, which could never afterward be the same as
they had been. His dead brother Cadell whispered in the back of his
mind, in the rare moments when Ry dropped his shields, that the
artifact she sought was worth any amount of effort and any sort of
sacrifice. Ry believed him. Still, he found himself hungering for
some proof that he had not chosen a fools path, and at that
moment, knowing he was declared dead at home, he felt certain that
only a massive prize would repay him for all that he had lost.
Chapter 28
Weve all discussed this, Capn, and we
want something done about her. Rrru-eeth stood at the head of
the small cluster of crewmen, all of whom stared at Ian Draclas
with an intensity he found disconcerting. Gone was the mild,
diffident young Scarred woman hed known for so long, replaced
by someone who resembled a frightened animal. We dont
have to have one of her kind aboard, and we wont.
He understood the fear. In the moment that Kait had changed,
hed felt it himself. The gods had not intended skinshifters
to live in the midst of men, or they would not have made the
creatures so terrifying. He thought about the nights shed
slept beside him, and tried to imagine waking to find that
mad-eyed, long-fanged beast at his throat instead of the woman he
found so compelling. His skin crawled. Nevertheless, he did not
intend to give in to the demands of the crew; they wanted him to
let them unseal the door and shove Kait out on the deck to act as
an offering to whatever demons inhabited the Wizards
Circle.
She saved my life, he said. He didnt bother to
mention that shed caught his imagination or that just seeing
her set his pulse racing; that wouldnt help his cause, which
was keeping her on the ship.
And when she turns into that monster again and eats one of
the crew, will you remind us of that again? Rrru-eeth had no
tolerance for anyone who fell outside of her definition of normal.
Hed known this for years, but her prejudices had never
bothered him. Now they became a problem, because the crew liked her
and she would stir them up if she didnt get what she
wanted.
He said, Id think you would consider a woman who
carries a death sentence on her head because of an accident of
birth an ally, not an enemy.
Rrru-eeth curled her lip in a disdainful snarl. You think
you can compare us because neither of us would be welcome in Ibera?
You cannot. I am exactly what everyone sees no more and no
less. I have never masqueraded as a human for the benefits of
privilege and Family that doing so could give me. She is a
liar, a blood-hungry monster who moved among us pretending to be a
friend. And worse, she is in collusion with Hasmal.
You dont like Hasmal, either?
Hes a wizard.
Ian looked at her to see if she was serious; then he burst out
laughing. A wizard? Hes a competent enough
shipwright, and evidently he used to be a shopkeeper of some sort.
But a wizard? He laughed again, but Rrru-eeth didnt
respond to his merriment with a smile of her own. Instead she
shoved a cloth bag at him.
He took it and studied it. It was made of fine leather,
carefully stitched; inside it were a silver-lined wooden bowl, a
mirror, a variety of powders in packets, all labeled in a language
and script he didnt recognize, a bloodletting kit, and other
oddities. And a book. The Secret Texts of Vincalis. Hed never
heard of the book, and didnt know what to make of the bag and
its contents.
Thats a wizards bag, Rrru-eeth said, and
behind her, glowering Manir the cook nodded.
Saw one just like it at the executions in Calimekka
once, he said. Had the same things in it, and the
parnissas used it to prove the wizard done is magic. Nasty
business. And now we have a wizard among us. Or two, phaps,
since that skinshifter hid those things before she brought him to
us, so we wouldnt know what he was. And we find oursels
in a Wizards Circle, and like enough to die with our
crewmates before we get out.
Murmurs of agreement moved through the quiet cluster of crew
like the rumbling of the earth before a volcano erupted, and those
murmurs had much the same feel to them.
So we say, throw them to the sea, Rrru-eeth
said.
Neither Kait nor Hasmal was anywhere to be seen. Ian looked at
his crew, realized he had a problem that could turn dangerous, and
weighed his options, all in a split instant. He leaned forward and
sighed. I didnt want to tell anyone what we were going
after until we actually found it. But Kait has a manuscript
in a language I cant read, so dont ask me to take the
manuscript and throw her to the sea and her manuscript tells
where we will find an Ancient city that hasnt yet been
discovered by anyone else.
The stillness of the crew changed in character. Greed invaded
where a moment before only hatred and prejudice had been. He could
see it in the faces of the men and women before him in the
way their eyes shifted, in the way their mouths tightened, in the
way they suddenly looked at each other, obviously weighing options
on their own.
He sighed and said, You would have found out when we
arrived, and discovered you were cut in for your regular shares.
But I didnt want to tell you what we were looking for, in
case we never found it. He paused, clasped his hands
together, and said, We have to keep her on the ship, and
because theyre friends, we have to keep him, too. Without
them, we have no hope of ever finding that city. And I want to be
rich as a paraglese. Dont you?
They murmured among themselves, and stared thoughtfully at their
feet. Youre sure she knows where such a city is?
Rrru-eeth asked.
No. Ian shrugged. Im taking a chance,
because I think the rewards will be worth it if she does know the
location . . . if, of course, we live to find it.
Im taking a risk. You signed on under my command; I assumed
both the risks and the chance of reward on your behalf. But I
didnt come this far to throw away my only chance at this
opportunity when were almost there.
He waited. They looked at each other, and he could almost see
their thoughts. Wait. We can get rid of the skinshifter and the
wizard once weve found the prize.
Rrru-eeth crossed her arms over her thin chest. So we find
this city and claim it. And then . . . ?
Ian met her eyes and kept all expression from his face. In a
flat voice, he said, What do you think?
She saw what she wanted to see. Her arms uncrossed, she nodded
with satisfaction, and said, Then well wait.
* * *
In the ships infirmary, Kait sat next to Hasmal and held a
mug of beer to his lips. Drink, she said. It will
do you good.
He looked like a corpse. Black circles ringed his sunken eyes.
His lips were blue, his skin chalk-white and waxy. I
dont . . . think I can drink . . .
anything, he whispered.
Drink. Youre going to need your strength. She
sighed. Maybe sooner than we could wish. She slid one
arm under his neck and lifted his head enough that he could
swallow. When he managed a long swallow, she let him lie back.
What do you mean, sooner than we could wish?
Kait wasnt looking forward to telling him the bad news.
I hid your bag of implements before I took you out of the
storeroom. Then, as soon as you had help, I went back to get it. In
the meantime, someone else had already found it. Its gone,
and your secret is probably now as well-known as mine.
Hasmal frowned weakly. Your secret? How?
He didnt need to be more specific. Kait said, I got
scared when the people started dying. The water . . . it
ate them. When I saw that happen, I Shifted. I couldnt stop
myself. Almost everyone saw.
Not good. And they found my bag?
Yes.
Not good. He groaned. Though I dont even
know why Im still alive. I . . . He closed
his eyes and licked dry lips.
Kait raised his head and gave him more beer. Dont
talk. Just drink and get better.
He pulled his head away from the mug after a moment and said,
I need to tell you this. Its important, and I
dont think Im going to live.
Youre going to live. Dont talk like
that.
Shhh. Just listen. He let her force another swallow
of beer down his throat, then said, The water is
alive.
I saw Kait started to interrupt.
Alive, Hasmal said a bit more loudly.
Kait could see that the effort cost him strength, and fell
silent, letting him tell her what he needed to in his own way.
He looked at her, then nodded faintly. I did a divination
to find out the danger we faced. A city once stood here, filled
with more people than I can imagine. It was greater than Calimekka,
perhaps ten times greater. The spell that the Dragons attacked it
with devoured city, people, and land and dropped the edge of the
continent into the ocean. And when it did, it trapped the souls of
every living creature in the basin that it carved. Water flowed in
and the magic that permeated the crater poisoned it. The magic
bound up the souls of the dead in the water, and souls and magic
combined imbued it with life. And memory. The sea beneath us
remembers each of the millions of lives that ended, because each of
those lives was, in effect, its life. It has died horribly millions
of times. It wants revenge.
Kait felt sick.
Hasmal continued. The Reborn needs at least one of us. And
you are the braver. And the one more likely, I thought, to be able
to survive. While I was the one who had the magic to get us to
safety. So I made a deal with my god, Vodor Imrish. I offered my
life and my soul to him if he would get you safely to the city and
to the Mirror of Souls, and he accepted. I think. He told me he
accepted. Except Im still alive, so perhaps he
didnt.
Kait held the hand of the man whod told her he was not
brave and thought about him offering his life in exchange for her
safety. Brave, she thought, was a relative term. In her
eyes, no one could have been braver. She told him that, but he only
shrugged.
I think it takes more courage to live than to die
sometimes. I thought I had the better end of the bargain,
considering the trouble the world will see before the Reborn
overcomes it.
Kait could still hear the many voices of the sea crying out.
How will we know if were safe? she asked.
Hasmal looked at her with disbelief. Then he closed his eyes and
began to laugh softly. I have no idea, he admitted.
I forgot to ask for a clear sign.
* * *
Ian yearned for the comfort of his own cabin, and for the
pleasures of fresh air and daylight, and for the sight of the sea
that he loved. But the survivors huddled together belowdecks
captain, crew, and passenger leaving the ship to tend to
itself, because attempting to sail it while fighting the living
water of the Wizards Circle would be certain death. So they
hid and prayed that the ship wouldnt hit a reef or a cliff
and sink, taking them all with her; only that course of action
might permit them to survive.
A day passed. Then two.
Ian woke on the third day to find sunshine blazing through the
deck prisms, and to hear nothing but the lapping of water on the
sides of the ship. He asked Rrru-eeth if she heard voices outside,
and at last, after two days of gloomy answers in the affirmative,
she told him, smiling, that she did not. The crew cheered her acute
hearing and her news. Ian cheered with them.
Then he drew a deep breath. We have to take the wax from
the hatch. And we have to go up on deck. Ill go first, but
Ill need volunteers to go with me.
Jayti volunteered, as did Rrru-eeth. Hasmal and Kait both
offered. Ian accepted all four, and the five of them began peeling
the wax away from the bottom sill. Everyone else stood well back. A
few crew members left completely for other parts of the ship. Ian
understood. His heart felt like it had risen into his throat and
would choke his breath at any moment. Still, he was as eager to be
out of the confinement of belowdecks as he was terrified of what he
would find when the hatch opened.
Nothing came in between the hatch and the sill; Kait had stood
with wax and flame at the ready to stopper the gap again, but she
didnt need to use it. When the last of the seal came down,
Ian said, Ill go first. Then the rest of you, in
whatever order you prefer.
Kait made a face. And if something happens to you, who
will get this ship back to Calimekka?
Ian grinned. I have one of the best crews sailing. Even if
Im dead, theyll get you back home again. If he
were dead, they probably wouldnt, he thought. He was going to
have the hells own time convincing them to take her back with
them as things stood. But they were a superb crew, and they were
people hed known for years. Some of them were even friends.
Hed make them understand.
He hadnt given up his dream of marrying his way into the
Galweigh Family through Kait but he liked her more than he
ever thought he would. He thought, in spite of her . . .
well, her affliction . . . that he might even love her.
Funny, that. Hed been certain until she walked into his life
that he was immune to love.
With thoughts of love and possible imminent demise on his mind,
he climbed up the gangway and out onto the deck. Into the sunshine.
He looked around, and gasped.
What? someone from below asked. The hatch started to
swing shut.
The city, he said wonderingly. The city is
right ahead of us.
Below, he heard Hasmal say, Vodor Imrish did it. He
actually did it.
Did what? Kait asked.
Gave us wind for the sails and got us all the way to the
city. It was what I . . . ah. What I asked for. When I
prayed. But I didnt think he would give us all of that and
still let me live.
People poured out onto the deck then, and shot up into the
rigging to get better looks, and leaned against the rails. Ian
Draclas stood where he was, staring up at the cliffs ahead of them.
Tangled greenery couldnt completely hide the lean white
spires of Ancient architecture, or the occasional pillar or
buttress. It lay there, all right, waiting for him for more than a
thousand years, like a jewel in a pile of rubbish. Just waiting,
untouched, ripe, and rich. He could feel it. He could feel his
fortune, fame, power all of it tucked away behind sealed
doors at the end of long-forgotten streets.
His palms itched, and his mouth went dry. The gods had to love
him, to deposit him and the Peregrine safely in that
beautiful bay, on a sunny day in the month of Drastu. Fitting, he
thought. Drastu was goddess of fertility, of the egg and the womb
and, by correlation, the goddess of the conception and birth
of new work, new ideas, and new wealth.
Youll have a shrine from me, Drastu, he
murmured before he turned to direct the dropping of the anchor and
to select the crew that would first go ashore.
They took two of the Peregrines three longboats and
rowed to the rocky shore.
This first day, well do a preliminary
exploration, he said. Never go anywhere alone, never
let yourself out of calling distance of one other group, never put
your weapons down. He cleared his throat.
Especially never put your weapons down. We have no
idea who, or what, well find here, and we have to assume that
if we find inhabitants, theyll be hostile. Be careful. Things
you can pick up and carry in one hand you can bring out today.
Bigger things will have to wait. If you find something that is both
good and big, mark the spot and well go back to it as soon as
we can.
Do we get to keep what we find? Jayti asked.
If you find something that you especially want for
yourself, mark it. Small things shouldnt be a problem.
However, we divide the treasure by shares, and the only way
well be able to figure shares is to sell everything when we
get back to Calimekka. Or Wilhene. He didnt like the
idea of Wilhene, which was a Sabir city, but the brokerages there
sometimes offered better prices than those in Calimekka.
The whole time he was giving them the rules, he was trying to
figure out how he could make sure none of them walked off with
something irreplaceable, and at the same time he was wondering how
he could get more than his share. And he knew that most, if not
all, of them were thinking the same thing.
Kait and Hasmal stood together. There, he thought. Right there
was the money crop. Kait knew where the city was, and presumably
had an idea of what might be found in it. Hasmal had bargained with
his god to get them out of trouble and to the city. (Ian needed to
find out more about Vodor Imrish, too, he decided. A god who would
get that deeply involved in his worshipers lives deserved a
few new converts. He had a few favors he thought he would ask of a
god who paid attention.) So when groups paired off, he appended
himself to Kait and Hasmal, smiling all the while. As my
passenger, he told Kait, you deserve the attention of
the captain.
I thought I was more than your passenger, Kait said
once the three of them were alone. Though I can understand
why thats changed.
It hasnt changed, he told her. I love
you, Kait. But Ive had to work hard to get the crew to agree
to keep you on board they wanted to throw you to the sea
when they found out what you were, and they would question my
motives if I seemed to be still . . . He shrugged,
at a loss for words. Still infatuated. Ive had to make
some concessions for the sake of appearances.
He knew he sounded weak-willed to be letting his crew influence
his public actions. Intelligent captains, however, did not invite
mutiny by ignoring the legitimate concerns of the men and women
beneath him.
I understand. I didnt expect them to welcome me once
they knew. For that matter, I was sure you would want to be done
with me, too.
I dont, he said. I wont ever want
to be done with you.
Her wan smile told him more than words could have. She
didnt believe him. He needed to make her believe him;
his future as he wanted to envision it depended on that belief.
At least he had time on his side.
Chapter 29
Kait stared up the steep cliff, at the tops and sides of
buildings that peered out from beneath a thousand years of forest
growth and a thousand years of detritus. She could make out no
roads or signs that there had ever been roads; no doors or windows;
few intact roofs. The remains of the city lay like the half-buried
bones of an ancient battlefield one where both sides lost
and no one came along to collect the bodies.
Listening to the wind blowing through the branches, smelling
plants and animals unlike any she had ever known, feeling the sun
on her back altered by latitude and season, she felt a combination
of hope and despair too vast and rich to put into words, even to
herself. In that jumble of ruins lay her Familys single
fragile magical hope of escape from the deaths it had already
suffered. Somewhere, a thousand years ago, in the midst of
destruction, the blasting of spells, and the end of the world,
someone had left the Mirror of Souls in this city, in one of the
buildings above her. Somewhere. And she had no idea what this
Mirror looked like, no idea how it worked, no idea how to even
begin looking for it. From that depth of ignorance came her
despair.
Hasmal rested a hand on her shoulder and whispered, Has
she told you where to find it?
No. I dont think she knows. Kait frowned; Ian
worked on the rocky beach to the north of them, hiding the
longboats with several of his crew.
Amalee told Kait, I dont know. Things here are very
different than I re than I thought they would be. But with
you able to sense magic, perhaps youll be able to track it
down that way. She projected frustration and disgust. If you
cant, youll just have to hunt through the buildings one
at a time. And I thought the hard part would be getting here. I had
no idea how difficult things could be when we arrived.
She isnt going to be of any help, Kait
said.
I got you here. And I can identify the Mirror when you find
it.
Kait ignored that protest.
Hasmal asked, Then where do we start looking?
Kait closed her eyes. She had a faint headache, one that felt
very much like the headache shed had when she attended the
Dokteerak party. The headache that Dùghall had later
identified as being caused by magic.
Interesting that Hasmals use of magic doesnt give me
a headache like that, she thought. Perhaps his magic is very
weak.
She let the thought drop. With her eyes closed she began to turn
in a slow circle, trying to find one direction that made the
headache worse or better. She found nothing. So she opened her eyes
and began to walk, first along the rocky beach toward Ian and the
longboats, then away. Again, she could sense no difference in her
level of pain. Her headaches let her know something magical waited
nearby, but werent sensitive enough to guide her toward it.
Or, she realized, the entire city could be soaked in magic. Or
there might be artifacts scattered around evenly enough that no
matter which direction she went in felt the same.
Were simply going to have to start
looking.
Hasmal sighed. There must be an easier way. The city might
be larger than it appears to be from here.
Kait had studied what was known of the cities of the Ancients
with her tutors. Some of them had evidently been quite large. And
though this one seemed to fit neatly around the rim of the bay, it
might run inland. She nodded, and, feeling grim, picked a direction
at random.
If its any consolation, Hasmal said, the
fact that we ended up here together seems to indicate that the gods
themselves favor our endeavor. So perhaps well just happen
upon it.
Perhaps. In the meantime, though, try to think of some way
that we can find it without luck or the intervention of the gods. I
would like to get home while Im still a young woman, and
while I still have hope of saving the people I love.
Since theyre already dead, I dont see where
speed is an issue, Hasmal said.
Kaits glare sent him hurrying ahead.
* * *
Three days and hundreds of filthy, half-buried, ruined buildings
later, Hasmal was willing to concede that his joke about waiting
for the intervention of the gods had not been his best. The rest of
the searchers had found treasure beyond their most fevered
imaginings. Plaques and bits of machinery, precious metals, statues
and jewelry and things impossible to identify that would
nonetheless draw a nice sum in the market were rowed out to the
ship in the longboats and poured into the ships holds. The
crew went through the city in shifts, with half staying on board to
recuperate and keep an eye on the accumulated treasure, while the
other half did their best to outdo the previous shift in adding to
it.
Hasmal had never heard of such a trove as the one accumulating
aboard the Peregrine. He thought this city was the richest
ever found. A thousand young men could spend long lives combing for
treasures and do no more than skim the surface. The sheer brutal
size of the place stunned him. Calimekka was the largest city in
the world. More than a million people had lived within its
boundaries at the last census, and it grew greater, in numbers and
sheer size, every day. Mathematicians were forever estimating how
many times the roads and streets of Calimekka could circle the
world, if they were laid end to end. But the ruins of this nameless
graveyard in the forest could have swallowed the great Calimekka
and another dozen like it, and perhaps more. The buildings around
the bay had been only the leading edge of what Hasmal guessed must
have been one of the largest cities ever to exist.
Kait grew more and more dispirited as they searched. She and
Hasmal marked their share of sites where treasure lay, and already
they would be richer than all but the Five Families. But they
werent searching for wealth, so while everyone else grew
jubilant and talked about the castles they would build and the
slaves they would buy, Hasmal watched Kait draw deeper and deeper
into herself.
Ian had noticed her mood, and had done everything he could to
find out what was causing it. Hed been solicitous, but Hasmal
believed the captain suspected he and Kait were searching for
something specific, something of tremendous value, and he wanted to
be sure he got his share of it.
Kait remained uncommunicative.
* * *
The torches of the night searchers flickered on the beach. They
stood waiting for the remainder of the day crew to ferry the last
of their finds out to the ship. Kait stood next to Hasmal at the
longboat that would be last to leave.
Im staying, she said.
Hasmal rubbed his eyes. Staying? By Vodors eyes,
Kait weve searched all day. What can you hope to
accomplish wearing yourself out?
She stared up at the hills, then returned her attention to
Hasmal. Im not going back to the ship again until I
find it. I have this terrible feeling that were running out
of time. I dont know why I dont know where the
feeling comes from, or if theres any truth to it. But I want
to see my mother and father again. My brothers. My sisters.
Dùghall. My cousins. I would do anything
Her voice broke. She swallowed hard, tasting tears. She knew
knew that if she didnt find the Mirror
of Souls within the next day, she would not find it at all. She
felt the truth of that in her marrow, in her blood. She had nothing
she could point to that would let her say, Here. This is why
Im afraid. But that only made the fear worse. She held
lives in her hand, hundreds of lives, and among them the lives she
valued more than her own. And if she failed them because she
hadnt tried hard enough, she would not be able to live with
herself.
Better she had died.
I would do anything to save them, she said when she
regained control of her voice. But there are only so many
things I can do. One thing I can do is search at night.
And when will you sleep?
Once Ive found it. She was Karnee. She could
drive her body harder than any human if she needed to. Now she
needed to. Go and get some sleep, and Ill meet you here
tomorrow morning. Well hunt together then.
I cant let you do this.
You dont have a choice.
Perhaps not. But what about the captain? You know he wants
to stay with us; he wants whatever were looking
for.
I know. So you have to lie for me. Tell him you think I
went to the ship in an earlier boat. If he tried to stay with me
tonight, he would only slow me down.
Understanding flashed across Hasmals face.
Youre going to . . .
Shift. Yes. I can cover much more ground that way, and my
senses are better. Theres something weve been missing,
and I have to think this will be my chance to discover what it
was.
Hasmal looked past her shoulder and whispered, Then go
now. The captains dragging something down the beach;
hell be here in a moment.
Kait nodded, and moved toward the trees. Ill see you
tomorrow. Wish me luck.
Luck, he said.
Kait loped up the hill, unlacing her shirt as she went. She had
not taken a torch. Even in human form, her eyes made the most of
available light, so that she saw quite clearly. When she Shifted,
she would see as well as if she hunted by daylight.
She wanted to avoid the night teams. Like the other crewmen on
the Peregrine, they didnt like her; she didnt
trust them. No matter what good things shed done for their
lives by bringing them to this city, she suspected any of the pairs
would try to hurt her if they found her alone.
She stripped out of her clothes, folded them, and left them in a
building at the top of the cliff. Then she gave herself over to the
inhuman hungers and lusts of Shift, and flowed into the ecstasy of
otherness.
To her keener Shifted senses, the night became a thing of
unutterable beauty. The stars blazed through the broad leaves of
the hardwood canopy, carving the trees into statues of liquid
silver and bleaching the ruined buildings into creations of
translucent shell. The wind sang in whispers, sweet accompaniment
to the voices of insects and nightbirds and the four-legged
predators who hunted through the wood. And the scents
. . .
As soon as she Shifted, shed begun running inland, acting
on hunches and some subliminal direction that she go east. She and
Hasmal had hunted in that direction during the day, and there had
been something . . . something . . . something
that had excited her, but had been too muted and insubstantial for
her to identify. It had tickled the back of her mind during the
day, leaving her certain that she headed in the direction of
something vital. Life-changing. Essential.
Now, stopping at the top of a ridge and facing into the wind,
she caught the faintest whiff of that same pulse-stirring scent.
Yes, her mind told her. Whatever it is, youll find it in that
direction.
She ran into the wind, pushing herself hard, hoping that the
scent would get stronger. It was probably stupid to be chasing it
after all, what were the odds that the aroma meant anything?
She kept running, though; she had no other ideas to pursue.
She ran far beyond the area she and Hasmal had covered, far
enough that she broke free of the cover of forest onto a rolling
plain. Even in the moonlight, she could see the scars that a fire
had left on the remaining stumps of trees. The field had burned
more than a year ago, and in its wake grasses had grown in
profusion, and exquisite wildflowers, and the first tiny starts of
what would, in twenty or thirty years, be the new forest.
Life didnt disappear in the aftermath of disasters, either
large or small, though it did change. Uncounted small creatures
inhabited the plain. They werent alone. She smelled and heard
a pack of big animals moving northeast of her. Her nose identified
the blood-scent on them. Predators, then. She was glad to be
downwind.
That other scent the one she thought she knew got
stronger. Sweet. Beautifully sweet, but under the sweetness, the
slightest taint of decay. Where had she smelled that scent before?
Floral images flashed in her mind, but the scent had not come to
her in a garden. Not in the jungle. No place ordinary.
The puzzle nagged at her, but she didnt focus on it. She
kept tracking; when she found whatever it was, she would most
likely remember where she had run into it before. She lost the
scent, doubled back, and began quartering north to south and back
until she picked it up. When she found it again, the seductive
tendrils of that tantalizing perfume led her far onto the plain,
through rows of the ribs of buried buildings, along a stream, and
finally into a declivity.
She came to the head of a small falls. Cliffs dropped down to
either side, sandstone that jutted at sharp angles from between
tangles of vines and scrub trees. A pond at the bottom of the
cliffs swirled away into a stream that rolled out of sight around a
curve. Whatever shed been tracking was down there. The scent
filled the valley. Sweetness and decay. Both excited and afraid,
she worked her way down the rough cliffs, sampling the air for any
change that indicated danger. A bird sang beautifully, but fell
silent as she neared the water. The insect noises stilled, and she
felt the eyes of the darkness watching her, the frightened and
huddled prey acknowledging her as the predator she was. She took
the silence as her due, but did not break it. She, too, could find
herself prey hunted instead of hunter.
At the bottom of the cliffs, she discovered a path. To that
point, she had seen nothing that would make her think humans
survived anywhere near the city. But while she could not catch any
human scent about the path, it had the look of human work. It was
neat, straight, sharp-edged. And it had been kept up. The fur along
her spine stood up and an instinctive growl rumbled in the back of
her throat. But the path led toward the source of the scent. She
flexed her claws and moved forward, trying to focus on all
directions at the same time. The path followed the edge of the
little pond down to the stream that drained it. It continued to
parallel the stream for perhaps two Calimekkan blocks. Then it
veered sharply to the right and uphill into another ravine.
This ravine bore further signs of current inhabitants: the
increasingly broad, neat path edged with flowers; thorny shrubs
planted to form a barrier hedge along the tops of the cliffs; and
finally, a building in good repair built into the stone in the same
manner that Galweigh House was built into the cliff.
This building looked small from the outside. The part of it that
Kait could see was about as big as the gatehouse back home. Or
perhaps as big as one of the shrines to lesser gods. That thought
occurred to her because in its form, it reminded her of those
shrines. One doorway, no door, no windows, an elaborate roof, and
within the shrine, an altar on a pedestal.
The altar was different, though. It glowed, radiant as a small
sun, its warm golden light illuminating the inside of the shrine,
setting its translucent walls ablaze, and spilling welcoming light
out onto the pathway and the tumbles of flowers to either side. And
from the altar emanated the scent that shed followed for such
a distance.
Honeysuckle, she realized. The cloying sweet scent was
honeysuckle. And the place shed smelled it before had been in
the airible, in the instant before magic had overwhelmed her and
Dùghall. In the instant before everything changed.
In the back of her mind, Amalee said, Thats it.
Thats the Mirror of Souls.
Where? Kait asked, not speaking out loud.
You called it an altar in your thoughts. The glowing
pedestal.
Kait stared at it and groaned. Its too big. Ill
never be able to take it back by myself.
Then get back to the beach and be waiting when your friends
get here. And do it quickly. Because that is what youve come
all this way to find.
At that moment, the monsters who guarded the shrine chose to
attack.
Chapter 30
Shed never smelled them coming, nor heard from them
the faintest sound. The honeysuckle-and-rot scent had hidden them
from her. They dropped down from the sides of the cliffs and
shambled out of the shrine; warped and twisted parodies of humans,
naked and snarling, carrying hoes and long-handled trowels and
rakes in their knot-jointed hands. Their ancestors had surely been
human, but they were not. They smelled only of leaf mold and damp
earth and dark, hidden places, and they whispered as they moved
toward her, wordless whispering that mimicked the rustle of leaves.
They came at Kait from all sides. In spite of her wariness in her
approach, in spite of her strength and speed, they cut off her
route of escape, and she discovered how well they had planned the
protection of their shrine.
She had the low ground, and nothing to guard her back. She
couldnt seek refuge in the cliffs, nor could she attempt
escape in any direction but the one by which shed come. She
counted twelve of them, and doubted that theyd sent their
full complement against her in the first wave. She still saw too
many good hiding places like the ones out of which these attackers
had materialized.
They werent armed well, and they moved awkwardly, their
bodies poorly designed for speed or fighting. Those two advantages
she held. Against the monsters advantages of position,
numbers, familiarity with terrain, and surprise, her two strengths
would not, she felt, be sufficient to save her life. She felt fear
as a force that pressed the air from her lungs and sat atop her
shoulders and back, pressing her down. Making her slow. Weak.
So close. She stood so close to success, to triumph. Shed
come from half a world away, and now crouched less than a
stones throw from the magical device that would restore her
beloved dead to her, and neither she nor they would have their
chances. Kait howled her rage and her anguish, and attacked the
nearest of the monsters.
Kait.
They shrieked and swung their gardening tools, catching her in
the face and across the shoulders and ribs. She leaped and slashed
with teeth and claws, and those she attacked fell back. But others
moved in at her sides, and more blows fell. She slashed one of the
monsters and blood spurted from its belly; at its screams, more of
the creatures appeared from above her, behind her, in front of her.
All of them carried tools, or sticks, or clubs.
Kait!
At last she heard Amalee shouting at her, and realized she had
been doing so since the monsters first surrounded her. Not
now! she snarled. Cant you see Im busy
dying?
You have to be human.
Kait killed one of the creatures, but even more appeared. She
guessed that more than thirty now surrounded and attacked her,
though she couldnt be sure they were all around her
and she was too busy fighting to try for an accurate count. For
every one she killed, a dozen managed to connect with their
makeshift weapons. They wounded her faster than she could heal.
They would kill her in pieces, dragging life from her a little at a
time, tearing her into a slow, gruesome death.
You have to be human! Amalee insisted again, shouting it
into Kaits mind so fiercely that she could no longer ignore
her dead ancestor.
Pity Im not, then, isnt it?
Listen. You have to Shift into human shape. Theyll kill
anything and anyone not in human shape. Theyre the guardians
of the Mirror, and if youre human, theyll let you walk
on the path safely. Theyll even let you take the Mirror. Your
arrival is what their kind have waited almost a thousand years to
witness.
I have no weapons in human form, she said. No
clothes. Ill be completely helpless.
You have to be human. Or youll die. If youre
human, they wont hurt you.
Kait didnt believe her ancestor. Five of the monsters now
lay dead, and she didnt believe they would forgive that
slaughter if she Shifted back to her human form. They would,
instead, kill her all the faster, and with no further loss.
But she was dying. Slowly. She would, in her Karnee form, kill
more of them before they completely overcame her. Nevertheless, she
would still die.
I have to be human, she says.
They wont kill a human, she says.
Shes a fool, I say.
Well, if I must die today anyway, Id rather die as a human
than a beast.
Snarling, fighting, in pain, she struggled to find the still
place within herself, the place that was all blues and greens and
placid water and silence. Fear, rage, and anguish buried her
humanity deep. The red-hot bloodlust nearly drowned it. Years of
effort to keep herself human in the worst of circumstances rose to
her assistance, though, and she found that place after all. Touched
the silence in her soul. Felt the battle hunger die slowly, even
though the monsters still attacked her, even though she no longer
attacked, but only attempted to ward off the blows that rained on
her from all directions.
She Shifted, and felt her blood cool, and her skin grow heavy,
and her senses dull.
She stretched and reformed, and all around her the monsters
backed away, mewling, as she rose from four legs to two, and stood
over their hunched and twisted forms. They dropped their weapons,
and some began to weep, and all of them prostrated themselves at
her feet. She stood over them, bleeding from a hundred burning
cuts, dizzy with pain, and slowly she stepped over and around them.
Not toward the Mirror of Souls. Away from it. Back the way
shed come. She had to get back to the beach by the time the
morning crew arrived. She had to bring Hasmal and Ian and one or
two others to help her carry the Mirror back to the ship. The
journey, which in Karnee form she could run in one night, would
take humans several days. And time was precious. Time was
everything.
Once out of the ravine and well away from the Mirrors
guardians, she forced herself into Shift again, though it drained
her bodys resources. Her body devoured itself to complete the
Shift, and would consume even more of her own tissue when she had
to become human again upon reaching the beach. She stopped her
headlong rush several times to kill and devour animals unlucky
enough to end up in her path. They would only keep her from
starving to death before she reached the ship; she would need a
massive meal when she arrived.
That was a minor detail. Everything else was minor
detail. Against all odds, she had found the Mirror of Souls. Her
Family and the Reborn would triumph.
* * *
Ian stepped out of the longboat onto the beach, the mists of
dawn wrapping around him like a cloak. He met the night crew as
they dragged the last of their finds down to the rocky shore.
Wheres Kait? He kept his fury in check, and
held his voice to a semblance of reasonableness intended to prevent
the crew from discovering how completely her betrayal the night
before had shaken him.
Everyone he asked shrugged and looked surprised. Their answers
varied from, Day shift, I thought, to I figured
shed run off sooner or later, but not a single other
person had seen her.
Hasmal had insisted that she would be on the beach waiting for
the two of them when they arrived. Ian had accused him of lying,
and morning had proved him right.
When the night crew finished loading and rowed back to the ship,
and the day crew scattered to find more treasure, he turned on his
shipwright. Now you can tell me what the two of you have been
looking for all this time. What is it that shes found? What
did the two of you really come here for?
Hasmal hooked his thumbs into his belt and glared up at Ian.
Youve been bedding her, Capn. Youre the one
shed share her pillow talk with.
I didnt share . . . my . . .
pillow talk with . . . anyone, Kait said. She
staggered out from the cover of the forest, and Ian gasped. All he
could recognize of her was her voice, and that was
uncharacteristically harsh. She was skeletally thin, so that her
clothes hung on her like unpitched tents on a tent pole. Scars in
various stages of healing covered her face and every other piece of
skin he could see. Her hair tangled in her face, matted with clots
of blood and dirt. Her ashen color and the waxiness of her skin
would have convinced him, had she not been upright and speaking,
that she was already dead.
His anger dissipated, as if it were fog beneath a blazing sun.
Kait? By Brethwan, whats happened to you?
I . . . I found it, she said to Hasmal.
Then she turned to Ian. And smiled. And sagged.
She managed to catch herself just short of collapse. She
breathed like shed been running. We need to
. . . get started now. I figure . . . the place
where its hidden . . . is . . . about
three days walk. Plus . . . three days
back.
Ian almost couldnt breathe. Hasmal, get her into the
boat. Weve got to have the physick look at her.
Hasmal said, The physick is out hunting for treasure with
the rest of them. He didnt want anyone to question his
share.
Damnall. He put his head down, thinking. Then
well get her out to the ship and ring the bell. By the time
the physick gets back, we can have something done for
her.
Im fine, Kait said. But we
. . . have to hurry.
You arent fine! Ian found himself terrified
for her terrified that she might collapse and die at any
moment.
Kait gave Hasmal a beseeching look. Tell him Im
. . . fine, Hasmal.
You arent fine, Hasmal said. Youre
damn near dead.
I just need . . . She sagged again, and
Ian could see she had more difficulty preventing her fall.
He picked her up and kissed her once. She felt like a bird in
his arms, too light and fragile to survive. To Hasmal he said,
Back to the ship. Well figure out what happened to her
and what were going to do about it when we get
there.
Ians emotions took him by surprise. He didnt
need her anymore; he had the city that would make him rich and
powerful beyond measure, and if she were to die from her injuries,
he would be able to claim primary possession of it. But as he and
Hasmal rowed her out to the Peregrine, he discovered that he
wanted her, and that the wanting went deeper than any
amusement she provided in his bed. He wanted to argue with her
again about the relative merits of the philosophies of Farellhau
and Nstanri. He wanted to sit in front of a great fire in a
great House with her and recount the adventures that had brought
them to that place of wealth and power and happiness. Or, he
realized, he would be happy to spend the rest of his life sailing
across Matrins great seas with her at his side. Ian Draclas
stared at the gaunt, dying woman in his arms and discovered to his
dismay that somewhere between deciding to claim her city for the
wealth and determining to marry her for the Family power, he had
fallen irretrievably in love. In doing that, the wealth and the
power that could undoubtedly be his fell by the wayside, and his
only concern became her life.
By the time they reached the ship, she was barely breathing. Ian
tried to keep her awake and talking, while Hasmal brought in
water.
Until the physick gets back, we can try to get some of
this into her. She looks dehydrated.
Ian nodded. He cradled her head in one arm and helped her
swallow the water Hasmal poured into her mouth by stroking her
throat. Before long, the two of them noticed an improvement. She
began to swallow without assistance, and finally she opened her
eyes and reached for the cup and began drinking on her own.
When she spoke again, her first word was, Food. And
it was her only word for quite some time. Hasmal brought things
from the storeroom and the galley and Kait devoured them and
requested more. The food helped faster than Ian could have
imagined. Within two stations, he could see where she had actually
put on weight she went from being skeletal to being merely
frail. Further, her wounds healed themselves as he watched. She ate
constantly, not speaking at all except to ask for more. In his
entire life he had never seen one person consume so much food.
Finally she pushed her plate back. We have to go after the
Mirror now, she said. Well need help. Its
much larger than I expected. The two of you, me, maybe two other
people. Some sort of travois or sledge to drag it back on. Supplies
for three days out and three days back. Probably weapons. I crossed
paths with predators that would have found me tasty in human form,
though.
Ian said, We arent going after anything. You nearly
died today
She cut him off. I found the single artifact that I claim
as my portion of our treasure. I renounce my claim to everything
else.
Ian froze for just an instant, as greed briefly reasserted
itself. Then he shook it off. Tell me what you
found.
It took her a while, but she did.
Finally, he managed to take it all in. An artifact that
brings back the dead. And youre going to revive the
Galweighs. Once you learn how to use the thing, anyway.
Yes.
It sounded like madness to him, but the Ancients knew more about
everything than anyone had since rediscovered. Perhaps the reason
the Wizards hadnt been worried about destroying the world was
that they knew a way to bring everyone back afterward at
least everyone they liked. He guessed that the person or people who
knew how to do it must have been killed, though.
He took Kaits hand in his own. If the Mirror of Souls did
work, then he would gain quite a bit of favor with his future
in-laws. If it didnt, he gained the greatest share of the
wealth of the city. In either instance, he won. And he would have
done it without hurting Kait in any way.
Well go after it tonight, he said.
Ill help you in every way I can. Ill even help
you get it to your House so that you can revive your
Family.
Her brow creased in puzzlement. You will? But
why?
He stroked the soft skin on the back of her hand, and felt the
delicate bones beneath. She needed to eat more before they left, he
decided. He wouldnt risk her running herself to the brink of
death again. Because I love you, he told her.
It felt funny to know that was the truth.
* * *
He kissed her, Rrru-eeth said to Jayti. At
Rrru-eeths request, the two of them had waited in the trees
above the beach; Rrru-eeth said she was concerned about the
captains behavior.
Jayti had grown used to her concern. Every day when Ian Draclas
went treasure-hunting with Kait and Hasmal, Rrru-eeth complained
about him being in the clutches of the skinshifter and the wizard.
She mentioned at least once each day that she thought she and Jayti
ought to get Kait and Hasmal off by themselves and kill them, so
that the captain would be able to break free from their spell. She
fretted that he would forget he had promised to leave them behind.
Now, spying on them from the cover of the trees, Rrru-eeth radiated
anger.
I cant say I like it, Jayti said, but as
captain, he can do as he pleases.
Rrru-eeths eyebrows rose. Do you think so? Tell me,
do you really? Her voice was a dangerous growl, laced with
scorn.
As much as Jayti adored Rrru-eeth, his first loyalty was to Ian
Draclas, who had saved him from hanging ten years before, when
Jayti, at the age of seventeen, had been accused of touching a
paraglesa. Hed been an assistant to the cook in the Sabir
House in Wilhene, and the wife of the paraglese had taken a fancy
to him. Shed specifically requested him to bring a tray of
confections and a carafe of wine to her room for a small
party. Hed discovered when he arrived that she intended
the party to consist of only the two of them, and she had more in
mind than confections for her dessert.
He thinking the paraglese would have him drawn and
quartered if he touched the mans wife refused to
participate in her party. She with no appreciation of his
care for her honor immediately called the guards and accused
Jayti of accosting her.
Ian Draclas had somehow heard of his plight, and had spirited
him out of the Sabir House dungeon. Jayti still had no idea how he
had managed the trick, or why he had. But he never forgot his
rescue, nor the debt he owed the man who had accomplished it.
If the man found a woman he liked, Jayti thought he deserved to
keep her, for however long he could.
Rrru-eeth, even if he takes them with us when we sail,
hell leave both of them in Calimekka. Theyll be out of
your life forever in just a few more months.
He kissed her. What if he wants her to stay aboard
the ship with him?
Jayti snorted. Shes a parata. You can see Family in
her very bones. She wont give up House and power and riches
to tramp around the sea in the Peregrine with him. You mark
my words shell vanish from the captains life the
second we make landfall.
Rrru-eeth said nothing. But the look in her eyes sent ice down
Jaytis spine. He thought he would be wise to stay close to
the captain for a while.
* * *
When the storm finally ended, the Wind Treasure lay far
north of Kaits position. Ry Sabir felt her presence as a
fixed mark, south and east. Knowledge of Kaits position meant
nothing at that moment, however. The Wind Treasures
sails were rags, her hull leaked dangerously from half a dozen
places, and shed lost nearly a third of her crew. The captain
said the Rophetian ship would be days under repair at best; he also
said Ry could spend his time pacing or he could help with the work,
but that if he and his lieutenants didnt help, they would be
weeks instead of days in the barren northern harbor where
theyd come to rest.
Sabir Wolves did not do manual labor. Ever.
So Im lucky to be declared dead, he thought. Mother
wont have to die of shame.
Ry put himself to work, discovering when he did that he was less
skilled than the least of the crew. He knew nothing of the
shipwrights tools, nothing of the builders techniques,
nothing of the captains needs. He fumbled at the simplest
tasks, and at first he irritated the men and women who made their
livelihood from ships and the sea. In his favor, he had only his
tremendous strength and stamina, and his willingness to learn. He
applied both to the tasks he was given, determined that he would do
whatever he had to do to get to Kait. He struggled, he ached, and
he learned.
Im coming, Kait, he thought as he worked.
Youre mine. Youre mine. You were born to be mine,
and you belong to me and me alone.
And Im coming for you.
Chapter 31
Kait led the party up the walk to the shrine. No sign of
her battle with the guardians remained. The path was perfectly
groomed again, the trampled flowers replaced, the bodies removed.
Even knowing that the guardians kept watch all around the shrine,
and even knowing where they hid, she could not see a single one of
them.
Ian and Hasmal, and Jayti and a sailor named Turben who
had both volunteered to help bring the Mirror back to the ship
followed her up that perfect path to the shrine. She crossed
the threshold first, and got the first unobstructed look at the
Mirror.
It had been made by someone with an eye for beauty. Its sleek,
unornamented lines called to her mind lilies and orchids. It had
both a flower and a stem. The
flower consisted of a ring of five connected petals of
luminous platinum-white metal, the largest of which bore colorful
incised markings. The base supporting this ring mimicked the smooth
curve of three long, swordlike leaves, also of that glowing white
metal. The stem was the most amazing part of the entire
artifact a column of flowing golden light that began at the
ground, rose between the three leaves, and spiraled outward in the
center of the ring to disappear at last when it touched the petals.
Kait stood watching the movement of the light, mesmerized.
Ian came to stand beside her, and rested a hand on her shoulder.
I doubted you when you told me about this, he said
softly. I didnt think such a device could exist. But
when I look at this, I can see its value. Its worth more than
everything else weve found so far. And it will be worth even
more than that when it gives you back your parents and sisters and
brothers.
She nodded, too full of emotion to even speak. She reached out a
hand and touched one of the petals, and through her fingertips felt
the Mirror humming with a life of its own. She felt that stirring
as a promise, as rich and beautiful in its own way as the love
shed felt when her soul touched the Reborn. The Mirror
promised to return her world to her, or at least the part of it
that mattered most.
Jayti and his friend Turben put together the travois on which
they would strap the Mirror. While they were lacing cord around
their poles and through the sailcloth theyd carried with
them, Jayti pulled the captain aside. It was clear he didnt
intend for Kait or Hasmal to hear what he said. Hasmal
wouldnt be able to; Kait, studying the Mirror, pretended she
didnt.
Voice soft and nervous, he said, Turben and I came with
you for a reason, Capn. I expect trouble when we get back.
Rrru-eeths scared of yon Kait and the wizard she wants
them left behind, and she thinks you dont intend to do
it.
Ian glanced at Kait and Hasmal, then looked past them as if he
were checking out the area. Shes right, he said.
Im not leaving either of them. I love Kait. And even if
I didnt, shes the one who brought us to this city.
Hasmal offered to sacrifice himself while working the spell that
got us out of the Wizards Circle. He turned and looked
evenly at Jayti. Im not that disloyal. And I dont
think you are, either.
Jayti shrugged. Thats why were here. He
kept lacing the cord, and kept his head down. They may need
protection on the way back. Rrru-eeth may intend for them to have
an . . . accident. And if she does, I think shell
be able to get some of the others to help her.
Just some?
Most. You know Turben and I arent the only ones who
owe you . . . but most everyone is afraid, Capn.
Knowing youre sharing space with skinshifters and magic
dont let a man sleep easy at night.
Even you?
He shrugged again. Im no braver than most. But I
reckon if you think theyre trustworthy, then they are.
Youve had my life in your hand more than once, and Im
still drawing air.
The captain patted him on the shoulder. I vouch for both
of them with my life, Jayti.
Thats more than enough for me. He finally
looked up from what he was doing. Well get them back
safe, me and Turben. I swear it.
Kaits eyes blurred with tears. That a man would offer his
life in protection of hers out of loyalty to the captain stunned
her. Ian was a pirate, she knew. She suspected he was
barzanne, as well the son of Family ejected, disowned,
and declared never born for some sin or imagined sin that hed
committed. But he was more than that. Much more.
She wondered if she would ever find out all there was to know
about him.
When the travois was ready, they faced the dilemma of moving the
Mirror onto it.
Can we just pick it up? the captain asked.
Everyone looked at Kait.
Amalee told her, Dont touch the light.
Kait passed that information on. It was harder advice to follow
than it seemed. Her own hand brushed very near it when she helped
pick the Mirror up, and when it did, her skin prickled and the
honeysuckle scent grew stronger. So did the scent of decay. She
pulled back, and gagged.
Ian glanced at her face and frowned. Whats
wrong?
The smell. It got worse when my hand came too near the
light.
His puzzled expression intensified. Smell?
Now Hasmal looked puzzled. The smell. From the Mirror of
Souls. Sweet, and a little rotten.
It doesnt smell, Ian said. Jayti and Turben
agreed.
This close, the smell is almost overwhelming, Kait
said.
I cant smell a thing, Jayti said. And I
have a good nose.
I dont, Hasmal said, and I could smell
the damn thing from the top of the ravine.
I followed it here by its smell, Kait said.
They stood looking at each other, all equally puzzled. Then
Hasmal smiled slightly. I know what it is.
What? Kait asked.
The scent is magical in origin. You and I can smell it
because of . . . He winced as he glanced at the
other three. Were . . . sensitive to magic.
They arent, so for them, there is no smell.
Kait sighed. That makes sense.
Then it isnt important? the captain asked.
Why would it be? Its just a characteristic of the
Mirror. It isnt as if the scent does anything, Hasmal
said, and shrugged.
A little gingerly, they began dragging the Mirror away from the
shrine. They passed out of the ravine as easily as they had
entered, and with no sign that guardians existed there beyond the
flower-lined walk and the carefully tended hedges. Their return
took less than three days, perhaps because they were elated by the
magnitude of their prize. Kait wanted to shout to the sky that
shed found what she came for. Except for a few times in
childhood, and the day that she received her first diplomatic
assignment, she could never remember being so happy.
She would embrace her mother again. She would talk with her
father one more time about his horse breeding, about his prize
stallion and beautiful broodmares. She would hear the voices of
young cousins and nieces and nephews racing through the lower
floors of the House, playing chase and cant-find-me.
And when she had done those things, she and Hasmal would take
the Mirror to the Reborn, wherever he might be. They would give it
to him, and then they would witness the birth of an age of love and
enlightenment.
Chapter 32
When they neared the bay, the party became cautious. Kait
didnt let on that she knew the crew expected an attack
against her and Hasmal. She remained on alert with her sword loose
in its scabbard and her other hand near her dagger. The lively
conversation the five of them had shared during the trip back died
to silence a silence unbroken by any human noises at
all.
Theyve either planned an ambush or theyve done
nothing at all and are far afield hunting for treasure, Ian
said at last. I dont hear anyone.
Neither do I, Kait thought, and I think I would. She braced
herself for the attack.
They kept moving forward through the forest. At last they
reached the rise that led down to the bay. Silence. Kait wished
they could find a clearing, but the thick forest offered no view of
what lay ahead.
Her nose picked up an unmistakable scent, though, and no sooner
did she stop and sniff the air than the rest of the party followed
her example. The reek of death and decay blew through the forest,
and the buzz of flies grew very loud as the five of them put the
Mirror of Souls down and carefully worked their way to the bay.
Four bloated bodies sprawled on the rocky beach. Ian ran to
them, with his men close behind.
Daverrs, Ian called, identifying the first
corpse.
Turben said, Seeley and Smiths Son.
Bright, Jayti said. All the ones with the most
reason to be loyal to you.
Kait had been looking at the bodies with the rest of them, but
suddenly her heart thudded painfully in her breast. She looked out
over the water and asked softly, Ian, wheres the
ship?
The five of them stared out at the empty bay, then back down at
the bodies.
Ian looked as dead as the corpses. Rrru-eeth convinced
them to take my ship. My ship.
Hasmal paled. Were the only humans on this
continent?
Turben and Jayti looked at each other and then at the other
three. Jayti said, We have no supplies besides the little we
have left in our packs.
Kait stared out at the bay and at the thin line of the ocean
that lay beyond. It doesnt matter, she said. She
lowered her shields, and instantly she felt Ry Sabir, still hunting
her, getting closer. It truly doesnt matter. Our
problems are bigger than that. Night falls, and the hunters are
coming.
About the Author
Holly Lisle, born in 1960, has been writing fiction and fantasy
full-time since November 30, 1992. Prior to that, she worked as an
advertising representative, a commercial artist, a guitar teacher,
a restaurant singer, and for ten years as a registered nurse
specializing in emergency and intensive care. Originally from
Salem, Ohio, she has also lived in Alaska, Costa Rica, Guatemala,
North Carolina, Georgia, and Florida. She and Matt are raising
three children and several cats.